Skip to main content

Full text of "The adventures of Harry Rochester : a tale of the days of Marlborough and Eugene"

See other formats


STORY  OF  THE 

DAYS  OF 
ARLBOROUCH 
\ND  EUGENE 


3 


XX 


The  Adventures  of  Harry  Rochester 


By  HERBERT  STRANG 

The  Adventures  of  Harry  Rochester :  A 
Tale  of  the  Days  of  Marlborough  and 
Eugene. 

The  Light  Brigade  in  Spain ;  or,  The  Last 
Fight  of  Sir  John  Moore. 

Kobo.     A  Story  of  the  Russo-Japanese  War. 
Each  12°,  illustrated          .         .        $1.50 


The   Fight   in   the   Castle  Yard 


The  -  Adventures  -  of 
Harry  -  Rochester 

A  Tale  of  the 
Days  of  Maryborough  and  Eugene 


BY 


HERBERT    STRANG 

x^ 

AUTHOR  OF   "TOM   BURNABY "    "BOYS  OF  THE   LIGHT   BRIGADE' 
"KOBO:   A   STORY  OF  THE   RUSSO-JAPANESE  WAR" 


Illustrated  by  William  Rainey,  R.I. 


NEW  YORK 
G.  P.  PUTNAM'S  SONS 

27  AND  29  WEST  230  STREET 

»9°S 


"Honour  hath  three  things  in  it :  the  vantage-ground  to  do 
good  ;  the  approach  to  kings  and  principal  persons ;  and  the 
raising  of  a  man's  own  fortunes." 

— Bacon. 

to 


My  dear  Tom, 

You  received  my  former  books  so  kindly  that  I  feel 
assured  you  will  not  object  to  have  this  volume  inscribed  with 
your  name.  I  am  not  the  less  convinced  of  this  because  you 
know  well  the  country  in  which  my  opening  scenes  are  laid, 
and  I  had  the  pleasure  last  year  of  playing  cricket  with  you 
within  a  few  miles  of  the  village  here  disguised  as  Winton 
St.  Mary. 

I  hope  you  will  bear  with  me  for  one  minute  while  I  ex- 
plain that  in  writing  this  book  I  had  three  aims.  First,  to 
tell  a  good  story:  that  of  course.  Secondly,  to  give  some 
account  of  the  operations  that  resulted  in  one  of  the  most 
brilliant  victories  ever  gained  by  our  British  arms.  Thirdly, 
to  throw  some  light— fitful,  it  may  be,  but  as  clear  as  'the 
circumstances  of  my  story  admitted — on  life  and  manners 
two  hundred  years  ago.  History,  as  you  have  no  doubt 
already  learnt,  is  not  merely  campaigning;  and  I  shall  be 
well  pleased  if  these  pages  enlarge  your  knowledge,  in  ever 
so  slight  a  degree,  of  an  interesting  period  in  our  country's 
annals.  And  if  you,  or  any  other  Christ's  Hospital  boy, 
should  convict  me  of  borrowing  a  week  from  the  life  of  a 
great  personage,  or  of  antedating  by  a  little  a  develop- 
ment in  our  national  pastime — well,  I  shall  feel  compli- 
mented by  such  evidence  of  careful  reading,  and  not  be 
in  the  least  abashed. 

I  take  the  opportunity  of  this  open  letter  to  acknowledge 
my  indebtedness  to  the  monumental  "  Memoires  militaires 
relatifs  a  la  succession  d'Espagne"  issued  by  the  French 


General  Staff;  to  Mr.  Austin  Dobson  for  a  detail  which 
only  his  perfect  knowledge  of  the  i8th  centiiry  could  so 
readily  have  supplied;  and  to  Lord  Wolseley's  brilliant  life 
of  Marlborough,  which  every  student  of  military  history 
must  hope  so  competent  a  hand  will  continue  and  complete. 

Yours  very  sincerely, 

HERBERT  STRANG. 
Michaelmas  Day,  7905. 

vi 


Contents 

Chapter  I  Page 

THE  QUEEN'S  PURSE-BEARER I 

Chapter  II 

SHEREBIAH  SHOUTS 19 

Chapter  III 

MASTER  AND  MAN 35 

Chapter  IV 

MYNHEER  JAN  GROOTZ  AND  ANOTHER  ....  48 
Chapter  V 

A  MESSAGE  FROM  THE  SQUIRE 63 

Chapter  VI 

MY  LORD  MARLBOROUGH  MAKES  A  NOTE  ...  72 
Chapter  VII 

SNARED 87 

Chapter  VIII 

FLOTSA'M 103 

Chapter  IX 

MONSIEUR  DE  POLIGNAC  PRESSES  HIS  SUIT  .  .  .127 
Chapter  X 

BLUFF 145 

Chapter  XI 

THE  BATTLE  OF  LINDENDAAL 168 

Chapter  XII 

HARRY  is  DISCHARGED 180 

Chapter  XIII 

CONCERNING  SHEREBIAH 194 

Chapter  XIV 

HARRY  RIDES  FOR  A  LIFE 209 

vii 


Contents 

Chapter  XV  Page 

THE  WATER  OF  AFFLICTION 219 

Chapter  XVI 

KNAVES  ALL  THREE 232 

Chapter  XVII 

IN  THE  DUSK 240 

Chapter  XVIII 

A  LITTLE  PLOT 253 

Chapter  XIX 

MARLBOROUGH'S  MARCH  TO  THE  DANUBE     .     .     .   266 

Chapter  XX 

THE  CASTLE  OF  RAUHSTEIN 299 

Chapter  XXI 

ACROSS  THE  FOSSE 317 

Chapter  XXII 

THE  FIGHT  IN  THE  KEEP 337 

Chapter  XXIII 

BLENHEIM 356 

Chapter  XXIV 

THE  WAGES  OF  SIN 375 

Chapter  XXV 

A  BUNDLE  OF  LETTERS  .  .  383 

Chapter  XXVI 

THE  NEW  SQUIRE  ....  392 

Chapter  XXVII 

VISITORS  AT  WINTON  HALL      r 413 

viii 


List  of  Illustrations 

Plate    I  Page 

THE  FIGHT  IN  THE  CASTLE  YARD      .Frontispiece     318 

Plate  II 

HARRY  MAKES  A  DIVERSION 30 

Plate  III 

MY  LORD  MARLBOROUGH 80 

Plate  IV 

AT  THE  LAST  GASP 121 

Plate  V 

"  MON  COLONEL,  WE  ARE  SURROUNDED!"      .     .     .   165 

Plate  VI 

THE  STROKE  OF  EIGHT 218 

Plate  VII 

"FlRE    AND    FURY!"    SHOUTED    AGLIONBY  .       .       .       .    23$ 

Plate  VIII 

MEIN  WIRTH   is  SURPRISED *1 


Map  and   Plan 

Map  of  the  Low  Countries  in  1703 128 

Plan  of  the  Battle  of  Blenheim .   365 


CHAPTER   I 

The  Queen's  Purse-Bearer 

"  STAR  me,  Frank,  if  ever  I  rattle  my  old  bones  over  these 
roads  again!  Every  joint  in  me  aches;  every  wrinkle — 
and  I've  too  many — is  filled  with  dust;  and  my  wig — 
plague  on  it,  Frank,  my  wig's  a  doormat.  Look  at  it 
— whew!" 

My  lord  Godolphin  took  off  his  cocked  hat,  removed 
his  full  periwig,  and  shook  it  over  the  side  of  the  calash, 
wrying  his  lips  as  the  horse  of  one  of  his  escort  started 
at  the  sudden  cloud.  My  lord  had  good  excuse  for  his 
petulance.  It  was  a  brilliant  June  day,  in  a  summer  of 
glorious  weather,  and  the  Wiltshire  roads,  no  better  nor 
worse  than  other  English  highways  in  the  year  1702,  were 
thick  with  white  dust,  which  the  autumn  rains  would  by 
and  by  transform  into  the  stickiest  of  clinging  mud.  The 
Lord  High  Treasurer,  as  he  lay  back  wearily  on  his 
cushions,  looked,  with  his  lean,  lined,  swarthy  face  and 
close-cropt  grizzled  poll,  every  day  of  his  fifty-eight  years. 
He  was  returning  with  his  son  Francis,  now  nearly  twenty- 
three,  from  a  visit  to  his  estates  in  Cornwall.  Had  he  been 
a  younger  man  he  would  no  doubt  have  ridden  his  own 
horse ;  had  he  been  of  lower  rank  he  might  have  travelled 
by  the  public  coach;  but  being  near  sixty,  a  baron,  and 
lord  of  the  Treasury  to  boot,  he  drove  in  his  private 
four-horsed  calash,  with  two  red-coated  postilions,  and  four 
sturdy  liveried  henchmen  on  horseback,  all  well  armed 
against  the  perils  of  footpads  and  highwaymen. 

It  was  nearing  noon  on  this  bright,  hot  morning,  and 

i 


Winton   St.   Mary 


my  lord  had  begun  to  acknowledge  to  himself  that  he 
would  barely  complete  his  journey  to  London  that  day. 

"Where  are  we  now,  Dickory?"  he  asked  languidly  of 
the  nearest  rider  on  the  off-side. 

"Nigh  Winton  St.  Mary,  my  lord,"  replied  the  man. 
"Down  the  avenue  yonder,  my  lord;  then  the  common, 
and  the  church  on  the  right,  and  the  village  here  and  there 
bearing  to  the  left,  as  you  might  say,  my  lord." 

"  Look  'ee,  Frank,  we'll  draw  up  at  Winton  St.  Mary 
and  wet  our  whistles.  My  lady  Marlborough  expects 
us  in  town  to-night,  to  be  sure;  but  she  must  e'en  be 

content  to  wait.  Time  was eh,  my  boy? — but  now, 

egad,  I'll  not  kill  myself  for  her  or  any  woman." 

"  'Twould  be  a  calamity — for  the  nation,  sir,"  said 
Frank  Godolphin  with  a  grin. 

"So  it  would,  i'  faith.  Never  fear,  Frank,  I'll  not 
make  way  for  you  for  ten  years  to  come.  But  what's 
afoot  yonder?  A  fair,  eh?" 

The  carriage  had  threaded  a  fine  avenue  of  elms,  and 
come  within  sight  of  the  village  common,  which  stretched 
away  beyond  and  behind  the  church,  an  expanse  of  rough 
turf  now  somewhat  parched  and  browned,  broken  here 
by  a  patch  of  shrub,  there  by  a  dwindling  pond,  and 
bounded  in  the  distance  by  the  thick  coverts  of  the  manor- 
house.  My  lord's  exclamation  had  been  called  forth  by 
the  bright  spectacle  that  met  his  eyes.  At  the  side  of 
the  road,  and  encroaching  also  on  the  grass,  were  ranged 
a  number  of  vehicles  of  various  sizes  and  descriptions, 
from  the  humble  donkey-cart  of  a  sherbet  seller  to  the 
lofty  coach  of  some  county  magnate.  Between  the 
carriages  the  travellers  caught  glimpses  of  a  crowd ;  and 
indeed,  as  they  drew  nearer  to  the  scene,  their  ears  were 
assailed  by  sundry  shoutings  and  clappings  that  seemed 
to  betoken  incidents  of  sport  or  pastime.  My  lord 
Godolphin,  for  all  his  coldness  and  reserve  in  his  official 
dealings,  was  in  his  moments  a  keen  sportsman;  from 
a  horse-race  to  a  main  of  cock-fighting  or  a  sword- 
match,  nothing  that  had  in  it  the  element  of  sport  came 

2 


Cricket:   Old  Style 

amiss  to  him;  and  as  he  replaced  his  wig  and  settled 
his  hat  upon  it  his  eyes  lit  up  with  an  anticipation  vastly 
different  from  his  air  of  weary  discontent. 

"  Split  me,  Frank,"  he  cried  in  a  more  animated  tone 
than  was  usual  with  him;  "whatever  it  is,  'twill  cheer  us 
up.  John,"  he  added  to  the  postilion,  "drive  on  to  the 
grass,  and  stop  at  the  first  opening  you  find  in  the  ring. 
Odsbodikins,  'tis  a  game  at  cricket;  we'll  make  an  after- 
noon of  it,  Frank,  and  brave  your  mother-in-law's  anger, 
come  what  may." 

The  postilions  whipped  up  their  horses,  wheeled  to  the 
right,  and  drove  with  many  a  jolt  on  to  the  common, 
passing  behind  the  row  of  vehicles  until  they  came  to  an 
interval  between  one  of  the  larger  sort  and  a  dray  heaped 
with  barrels  of  cider.  There  they  pulled  up  sideways  to 
the  crowd,  over  whose  heads  the  occupants  of  the  calash 
looked  curiously  towards  the  scene  of  the  game.  It  was 
clearly  an  exciting  moment,  for  beyond  a  casual  turning 
of  the  head  the  nearest  spectators  gave  no  heed  to  the 
new-comers.  A  space  was  roped  in  at  some  distance  in 
front  of  the  church,  and  within  the  ring  the  wickets  were 
pitched — very  primitive  compared  with  the  well-turned 
polished  apparatus  of  to-day.  The  stumps  were  two  short 
sticks  forked  at  the  top,  stuck  at  a  backward  slant  into 
the  turf  about  a  foot  apart,  with  one  long  bail  across  them. 
Nothing  had  been  done  to  prepare  the  pitch;  the  grass 
was  short  and  dry  and  stubby,  with  a  tuft  here  and  there 
likely  to  trip  an  unwary  fielder  headlong.  There  was  no 
crease,  but  a  hole  in  the  ground.  Nor  was  there  any 
uniformity  of  attire  among  the  players :  all  had  the  stock- 
ings and  pantaloons  of  daily  wear,  and  if  there  was  any 
difference  in  their  shirts,  it  was  due  merely  to  their  differ- 
ence in  rank  and  wealth. 

"  Over"  had  just  been  called  as  Lord  Godolphin  and  his 
son  drove  up,  and  something  in  the  attitude  of  the  crowd 
seemed  to  show  that  the  game  was  at  a  crisis.  The 
umpires,  armed  with  rough  curved  bats  somewhat  like 
long  spoons,  had  just  taken  their  new  places,  and  the 

3 


Last  Man  In 

batsman  who  was  to  receive  the  first  ball  of  the  new  over 
was  taking"  his  block.  A  tall,  loose-limbed  young  fellow, 
he  held  his  bat  with  an  air  of  easy  confidence. 

"Egad,  sir,  'tis  Gilbert  Young,"  said  Frank  Godolphin 
to  his  father.  "I  knew  him  at  Cambridge:  a  sticker. 
Who's  the  bowler?  I  don't  know  him." 

The  bowler  was  a  youth,  a  mere  stripling-  of  some 
sixteen  or  seventeen  years,  who  stood  at  his  end  of  the 
wicket,  ball  in  hand,  awaiting  the  word  to  "play".  His 
loose  shirt  was  open  at  the  neck;  his  black  hair,  not  yet 
cropt  for  a  wig,  fell  in  a  strong  thick  mass  over  his 
brow;  and  as  he  waited  for  the  batsman  to  complete  his 
somewhat  fastidious  preparations,  he  once  or  twice  pushed 
up  the  heavy  cluster  with  his  left  hand. 

"Gibs  was  ever  a  tantalising-  beast,"  said  Frank  aside. 
"  Hi,  you  fellow!"  he  shouted  to  a  broad-shouldered  yokel 
who  stood  just  in  front  of  him  by  the  rope,  "how  stands 
the  score?" 

The  man  addressed  looked  over  his  shoulder,  and  seeing- 
that  the  speaker  was  one  of  the  "quality"  he  doffed  his 
cap  and  replied: 

" 'Tis  ninety-four  notches,  your  honour,  and  last  man  in. 
Has  a'ready  twenty-vive  to  hisself,  and  the  Winton  boys 
can't  get  un  out." 

"Play!"  cried  the  umpire.  The  batsman  stood  to  his 
block,  and  looked  round  the  field  with  a  smile  of  con- 
fidence. The  bowler  gave  a  quick  glance  around,  took 
a  light  run  of  some  three  yards,  and  delivered  the  ball — 
underhand,  for  round-arm  bowling-  was  not  yet  invented. 
The  ball  travelled  swiftly,  no  more  than  two  or  three  feet 
above  the  ground,  pitched  in  front  of  the  block-hole,  and 
was  driven  hard  to  the  off  towards  a  thick-set,  grimy- 
looking  individual — the  village  smith.  He,  bending  to 
field  the  ball,  missed  it,  swung-  round  to  run  after  it,  and 
fell  sprawling-  over  a  tussock  of  grass,  amid  yells  of 
mingled  derision  and  disappointment. 

"Pick  theeself  up,  Lumpy!"  roared  the  man  to  whom 
Frank  Godolphin  had  spoken.  But  the  ball  had  already 

4 


Bowled 

been  fielded  by  Long  Robin  the  tanner,  running  round 
from  long-on.  Sir  Gilbert  meanwhile  had  got  back  to  his 
end  of  the  wicket,  and  the  scorer,  seated  near  the  umpire, 
had  cut  two  notches  in  the  scoring  stick. 

Again  the  ball  was  bowled,  with  an  even  lower  delivery 
than  before.  The  batsman  stepped  a  yard  out  of  his 
ground  and  caught  the  ball  on  the  rise ;  it  flew  high  over 
the  head  of  the  remotest  fieldsman,  over  the  rope,  over 
the  crowd,  and  dropped  within  a  foot  of  the  lych-gate  of 
the  church.  Loud  cheers  from  a  party  of  gentlemen 
mounted  on  coaches  in  front  of  a  tent  greeted  this  stroke ; 
four  notches  were  cut  to  the  credit  of  the  side,  bringing 
the  score  to  a  hundred.  There  was  dead  silence  among 
the  crowd  now;  it  was  plain  that  their  sympathies  lay 
with  the  out  side,  and  this  ominous  opening  of  the  new 
bowler's  over  was  a  check  upon  their  enjoyment. 

Sir  Gilbert  once  more  stood  to  his  block.  For  his  third 
ball  the  bowler  took  his  run  on  the  other  side  of  the 
wicket.  His  delivery  this  time  was  a  little  higher:  the 
ball  pitched  awkwardly,  and  the  batsman  seemed  to  be  in 
two  minds  what  to  do  with  it.  His  hesitation  was  fatal. 
With  a  perplexing  twist  the  ball  slid  along  the  ground 
past  his  bat,  hit  the  off  stump,  and  just  dislodged  the  bail, 
which  fell  perpendicularly  and  lay  across  between  the 
sticks.  Sir  Gilbert  looked  at  it  for  a  moment  with  rueful 
countenance,  then  marched  towards  the  tent,  while  the 
crowd  cheered  and,  the  innings  being  over,  made  for  the 
stalls  and  carts,  at  which  ale  and  cider  and  gingerbread 
were  to  be  had. 

"  Egad,  'twas  well  bowled,"  ejaculated  Lord  Godolphin; 
"a  cunning  ball,  a  most  teasing  twist;  capital,  capital!" 

"I'll  go  and  speak  to  Gibs,"  said  Frank.  "Will  you 
come,  sir?" 

"Not  I,  i'  faith.  'Tis  too  hot.  Bring  him  to  me.  I'll 
drink  a  glass  of  cider  here  and  wait  your  return." 

There  was  a  cider  cart  near  at  hand,  and  his  man 
Dickory  brought  my  lord  a  brimming  bumper  drawn  from 
the  wood.  He  winced  as  the  tart  liquor  touched  his 

5 


The  Gaffer  Explains 

palate,  unaccustomed  to  such  homely  drink;  but  it  was 
at  least  cool  and  refreshing,  and  he  finished  the  bumper. 
As  he  gave  it  back  he  noticed  an  old  man  slowly  ap- 
proaching, leaning  with  one  hand  upon  a  stout  knobby 
stick  of  oak,  and  holding  in  the  other  a  rough  three-legged 
stool,  which  he  placed  between  my  lord's  calash  and  the 
rope.  He  was  a  fine-looking  old  man,  dressed  in  plain 
country  homespun ;  his  cheeks  were  seamed  and  weather- 
beaten,  but  there  was  still  a  brightness  in  his  eyes  and  an 
erectness  in  his  figure  that  bespoke  health  and  the  joy  of 
life.  He  sat  down  on  the  stool,  took  off  his  hat  and  wiped 
his  brow,  then,  resting  both  hands  on  his  stick,  looked 
placidly  around  him.  There  was  no  one  near  to  him ;  the 
space  was  clear,  for  players  and  spectators  had  all  flocked 
their  several  ways  to  get  refreshment,  and  for  some 
minutes  the  old  man  sat  alone.  Then  Lord  Godolphin, 
to  ease  his  limbs  and  kill  time,  stepped  out  of  his  carriage 
and  went  towards  the  veteran. 

"Well,  gaffer,"  he  said,  "have  ye  come  out  to  get 
a  sunning?" 

The  old  man  looked  up. 

"Ay  sure,  your  honour,"  he  said,  "and  to  zee  the 
match.  You  med  think  me  too  old;  true,  I  be  gone  eighty; 
come  Martinmas  I  shall  be  eighty-one,  and  I  ha'n't  a 
wamblen  tooth  in  my  head — not  one,  old  as  I  be.  A 
man's  as  old  as  he  feels,  says  my  boy — one  o'  the  wise 
sayens  he  has:  I  ha'n't  felt  no  older  this  twenty  year, 
nay,  nor  twenty-vive  year  neither." 

"  By  George!  I  wish  I  could  say  the  same.  What's  the 
match,  gaffer?" 

"Well,  they  do  say  'tis  for  a  wager;  'tis  all  '  I'll  lay  ye 
this '  and  '  I'll  lay  ye  that '  in  these  days.  I  don't  know 
the  rights  on't,  but  'tis  said  it  all  come  about  at  a  supper 
up  at  Squire's. — Do  'ee  know  Squire?  Eh  well,  there  be 
the  house,  yonder  among  the  trees.  Squire's  son  be  hot 
wi'  his  tongue,  and  at  this  same  supper — I  tell  'ee  as  I 
yeard  it — he  wagered  young  Master  Godfrey  of  the  Grange 
he'd  bring  eleven  young  gen'lmen  from  Cambridge  college 

6 


More  Explanations 


as  would  beat  our  village  players  at  the  cricket.  A 
hunnerd  guineas  was  the  wager,  so  'tis  said.  Master 
Godfrey  he  ups  and  says  '  Done  wi'  'ee ',  and  so  'tis  come 
about.  The  Cambridge  younkers  be  all  high  gentry, 
every  man  on  'em;  our  folks,  as  your  honour  med  see,  be 
just  or'nary  folks  in  the  main :  there's  Long  Robin  the 
tanner  and  Lumpy  the  smith — he  that  turned  topsy-turvy 
a-hunten  the  ball  by  there;  and  Honest  John  the  miller: 
Old  Everlasten  they  calls  un,  'cause  he  never  gets  cotched 
out  nor  bowled  neither:  ay,  a  good  stick  is  Old  Ever- 
lasten, wi'  a  tough  skin  of  his  own.  And  there  be  Soapy 
Dick  the  barber,  and  Tom  cobbler,  and  more  of  the 
village  folk;  and  the  only  gentry  among  'em  is  Master 
Godfrey  hisself  and  pa'son's  son,  and  he  don't  count 
for  gentry  wi'  some.  Do  'ee  know  pa'son?  a  good  man, 
saven  your  honour,  ay,  a  right  good  man  is  Pa'son 
Rochester,  and  stands  up  to  old  Squire  like  a  game-cock, 
so  he  do — a  right  good  man  is  pa'son,  ay  sure.  And  his 
son  Harry — well,  to  tell  'ee  the  truth,  I'm  main  fond  of 
the  lad;  main  fond;  'tis  a  well-favoured  lad,  well  spoken 
too,  and  he  thinks  a  deal  o'  me,  he  do,  and  I  thinks  a 
deal  o'  he.  Why,  'twas  he  bowled  that  artful  ball  as 
put  out  t'  last  man  from  Cambridge  college. — There,  my 
old  tongue  runs  on;  I  don't  offend  your  honour?" 

"Not  a  whit,"  said  my  lord.  "The  young  bowler  is 
the  parson's  son,  eh?  Bred  for  a  parson  too,  I  suppose?" 

"  He's  over  young  yet,  your  honour,  but  a  month  gone 
seventeen.  He  said  to  me  only  yesterday :  'Gaffer,'  says 
he,  '  what'll  'ee  do  'ithout  me  when  I  go  up  to  Oxford?' 
He  be  gwine  come  October,  a'  believe.  'Twas  at  Oxford 
college  they  made  his  feyther  a  pa'son,  so  belike  the  lad'll 
put  on  the  petticoats  too,  though  sure  he's  fit  for  summat 
better.  But  he'll  make  a  good  pa'son  if  he  takes  arter  his 
feyther.  Bless  'ee,  Pa'son  Rochester  be  the  only  man  in 
the  parish  as  a'n't  afeard  o'  Squire.  I  be  afeard  o' 
Squire,  I  be,  though  'ee  med  not  think  it.  Ah!  he's  a 
hard  man,  is  Squire.  A'  fell  out  with  pa'son  first  'cause 
he  wouldn't  be  his  chaplain  —  goo  up  t'  hall  an'  say 

(B35T)  7  B 


Parson  Rochester 

grace  and  eat  the  mutton  and  turmuts,  an'  come  away 
wi'out  pudden.  Wi'out  pudden ! — I  wouldn't  goo  wi'out 
pudden  for  no  man ;  that's  why  I  first  took  a  fancy  for 
pa'son.  Then  Squire,  he  wanted  to  fence  in  a  big"  slice  of 
this  common  land,  as  ha'  belonged  to  the  folks  of  Winton 
Simmary  time  wi'out  mind;  and  pa'son  stood  up  to  'n, 
and  told  'n  flat  to  his  face  'twas  agen  the  law,  an'  he  had 
the  law  on  'm,  he  did;  an'  the  wise  judges  up  in  Lun'on 
town  said  as  how  Squire  were  wrong.  But  Lor'  bless  'ee, 
Squire  be  as  obstinate  as  a  pig;  he  don't  care  nowt  for 
judges;  he  ups  and  'peals  to  King  Willum  hisself.  Then 
King  Willum  dies,  poor  feller,  an'  Queen  Anne  sits  proud 
on  the  gold  throne,  an'  there  'tis;  'twill  take  a  time  for 
her  poor  woman's  mind  to  understand  the  rights  o'  the 
matter;  her  don't  know  pa'son  so  well  as  we." 

"Or  she  might  make  him  a  bishop,  eh?  Perhaps  I  can 
put  in  a  word  for  him,"  said  my  lord  jestingly. 

The  old  man  stared. 

"And  who  med  'ee  be,  your  honour,  if  I  mebbe  so  bold 
to  axe?"  he  said  slowly. 

"  I?     Oh — well,  I  have  care  of  the  Queen's  purse." 

"There  now,  and  l'-ve  been  talken  to  'ee  just  as  if  'ee 
were  a  knight  or  squire,  when  I  med  ha'  known  'ee  by 
your  cut  for  one  of  the  mighty  o'  the  earth.  But  'ee'll 
forgive  a  old  man — ay,  gone  eighty  year.  I  was  born 
three  year  afore  Scotch  Jamie  died;  no  sart  of  a  king  was 
Jamie,  a  wamblen  loon,  so  I've  yeard  tell.  And  Charles 
One,  he  was  well-favoured  before  the  Lord,  true,  but  not 
a  man  of  his  word.  Nay,  Noll  Crum'ell  was  the  right  sart 
o'  king;  I  mind  un  well.  I  was  a  trooper  in  his  regi- 
ment, and  we  was  as  fine  a  set  o'  men  as  ever  trod  neat's 
leather,  true,  we  was.  I  rode  wi'  un  to  Marston  Moor 
in  '44,  nigh  zixty  year  back.  Ay,  a  right  king  was  old 
Noll.  And  I  fought  in  Flanders  when  Noll  was  friends 
with  the  French  king;  but  I  left  that  line  o'  life  when 
Charles  Two  come  back  with  his  French  madams ;  and 
now  we  be  a-fighten  the  French,  so  'tis  said;  'twas  what 
us  Englishmen  was  born  for,  to  be  sure;  ay,  that  'tis." 

8 


u 


The  Boy 


Here  my  lord's  attention  was  attracted  towards  a  group 
of  villagers  approaching.  They  were  led  by  a  short  well- 
set-up  fellow  with  a  humorous  cast  of  face;  his  thumbs 
were  stuck  into  his  arm-pits,  and  as  he  walked  he  was 
singing  to  the  accompaniment  of  a  flute  played  by  the  man 
at  his  side.  The  old  man  looked  towards  him  and  smiled 
affectionately. 

" 'Tis  my  boy  a-comen,"  he  said.  "Was  born  in  '59, 
your  honour,  the  year  afore  Charles  Two  coom  back; 
and  I  chrisomed  un  Sherebiah  Stand-up-and'-bless  out  of 
Nehemiah  nine;  a  good  boy,  though  wilful." 

The  boy  of  forty-three  was  singing  lustily : 

"  'Twas  on  a  jolly  summer's  morn,  the  twenty-first  of  May, 
Giles  Scroggins  took  his  turmut-hoe,  and  with  it  trudged  away. 
For  some   delights   in   hay  -  makin',   and   some   they   fancies 

mowin', 

But  of  all  the  trades  as  I  likes  best,  give  I  the  turmut  hoein'. 
For  the  fly,  the  fly,  the  fly  is  on  the  turmut; 
And  'tis  all  my  eye  for  we  to  try,  to  keep  fly  off  the  turmut." 

"Mum,  boy,  mum!"  said  his  father.  "The  boy  has  a 
sweet  breast,  your  honour,"  he  added,  turning  to  Godol- 
phin,  "and  'tis  my  belief  'twill  lead  un  into  bad  company 
in  the  days  o'  his  youth.  He  will  sing  '  Sir  Simon  the 
King'  and  'Bobbing  Joan',  and  other  sinful  ditties.  Ah! 
I  had  a  good  breast  in  my  time;  and  you  should  ha'  yeard 
Noll's  men  sing  as  we  marched  into  Preston  fight;  I  could 
sing  counter  to  any  man.  —  Boy,  doff  your  hat  to  the 
Queen's  purse-bearer. — Ay,  'twas  psa'ms  an'  hymns  an' 
speritual  songs  in  my  time,  as  the  Book  says." 

"  Sarvant,  yer  honour,"  said  the  new-comer,  bobbing 
to  Godolphin.  "  Feyther  been  taken  away  my  good 
name?  'Tis  a  wise  feyther  knows  his  own  child;  feyther 
o'  mine  forgot  that  when  he  named  me  Sherebiah  Stand- 
up-and-bless.  Beant  the  fault  o'  my  name  I  ha'n't  took 
to  bad  courses.  But  there,  he's  a  old  ancient  man,  nigh 
ready  for  churchyard — bean't  'ee,  dad?" 

"Not  till  I  make  a  man  on  'ee,  boy." 

9 


Cambridge  in  the  Field 

"May  I  present  my  friend  Sir  Gilbert  Young-,  sir?" 
said  Frank  Godolphin,  coming  up  at  this  moment  through 
the  gathering  crowd. 

My  lord  bowed  and  swept  off  his  hat  in  the  courtly 
fashion  of  the  day,  in  response  to  a  still  lower  salutation 
from  the  young  Cambridge  man. 

"  I  am  honoured,  my  lord,"  said  Sir  Gilbert. 

"My  lard,  i'  fecks!"  ejaculated  Sherebiah's  father,  with 
a  startled  look.  "  My  lard, — an'  I  ha'n't  even  pulled  my 
forelock  !  Bby,  doff  your  cap  to  my  lard  !  And  the  Book 
says,  'They  shall  stand  afore  princes',  and  I'm  a-sitten!" 

The  old  fellow  began  to  struggle  to  his  feet  with  the 
aid  of  his  staff,  but  Godolphin  laid  his  hand  on  his  arm, 
and  pressed  him  down. 

"Sit  fast,  gaffer,"  he  said.  "See,  the  players  are 
coming  out  again.  I  am  pleased  to  have  met  one  of 
Noll's  veterans  so  hale  and  hearty,  and  I  hope  your  son 
will  turn  out  as  great  a  comfort  to  you  as  mine." 

He  put  his  arm  fondly  through  Frank's,  and  returned 
to  his  carriage.  The  crowd  was  collecting  about  the 
rope,  and  the  Cambridge  men  were  already  taking  their 
places  in  the  field.  Their  score  of  a  hundred  was  higher 
than  the  average  in  those  days,  and  the  villagers  were 
eagerly  discussing  the  chances  of  their  team  excelling  it. 
They  had  seen  nothing  of  the  other  side's  bowling  powers, 
but  as  they  compared  notes  on  the  various  merits  as  bats- 
men of  Honest  John,  and  Long  Robin,  and  Lumpy,  and 
the  rest,  many  of  them  shook  their  heads  and  looked 
rather  down  in  the  mouth. 

The  first  pair  of  batsmen  came  to  the  wickets.  They 
were  Old  Everlasting  and  Soapy  Dick.  The  former  took 
the  first  over,  bowled  by  Gilbert  Young,  the  captain 
of  the  team,  and  calmly  blocked  every  ball  of  the  four, 
giving  a  wink  to  his  friends  in  the  crowd  when  over  was 
called.  Soapy  Dick,  at  the  other  wicket,  was  a  little  man 
with  very  red  hair  brushed  up  into  a  sort  of  top-knot  in 
front.  He  handled  his  bat  in  a  nervous  manner,  and  was 
made  still  more  nervous  by  the  cries  of  the  crowd. 

10 


Village  Batsmen 


"  Hit  un,  Soapy!"  cried  one  yokel.  "  Doan't  be  afeard, 
man." 

"Gi't  lather,  Soapy!"  shouted  another,  whose  cheeks 
cried  out  for  the  barber's  attentions. 

Dick  grinned  mirthlessly,  and  fixed  his  eyes  on  the 
bowler  at  the  other  end.  The  ball  came  towards  him — 
a  slow,  tempting  lob  that  was  too  easy  to  let  pass.  Dick 
lifted  his  bat  and  smote;  the  ball  returned  gently  to  the 
bowler's  hands,  and  a  roar  of  derision  sped  the  shame- 
faced little  barber  back  to  the  tent.  One  wicket  down, 
and  no  notches! — a  bad  beginning  for  Winton  St.  Mary. 

Lumpy  was  the  next  to  appear.  He  waddled  across 
the  grass  turning  up  his  sleeves — a  fat  little  fellow  with 
bandy  legs,  and  arms  as  thick  as  most  men's  thighs.  As 
he  stood  to  take  his  block,  he  seemed  to  handle  the  bat 
with  contemptuous  surprise,  as  though  wondering  what 
use  that  was  to  a  man  accustomed  to  wield  the  sledge- 
hammer at  the  anvil.  Satisfied  with  his  position,  he 
planted  his  feet  firmly,  drew  his  left  hand  across  his 
mouth,  and  glared  fiercely  at  the  bowler.  He  was  not 
to  be  so  easily  tempted  as  poor  Soapy  Dick  had  been. 
He  waited  for  the  ball,  and  as  it  rose  brought  his  bat 
down  upon  it  with  a  perpendicular  blow  that  appeared  to 
drive  it  into  the  turf,  where  it  lay  dead.  The  Cambridge 
men  roared  with  laughter,  the  crowd  applauded  vigor- 
ously, and  Lumpy  once  more  wiped  his  mouth  on  the 
back  of  his  hand.  The  third  ball  of  the  over  came,  pitch- 
ing slightly  to  leg.  Lumpy  jumped  completely  round  as 
the  ball  reached  him,  and  with  a  tremendous  swipe  sent 
it  high  over  long-stop's  head  into  a  patch  of  gorse,  whence 
it  was  not  recovered  until  he  had  had  three  notches  cut 
to  his  credit.  The  last  ball  of  the  over  thus  came  to 
Old  Everlasting,  who  solemnly  blocked  it,  and  beamed 
upon  the  spectators  with  his  usual  smug  smile. 

Lumpy  had  but  a  short  life,  after  all.  There  was  no 
cunning  about  him ;  if  he  hit  a  ball  it  was  bound  to  travel 
far,  but  he  struck  out  every  time  with  the  same  violence, 
and  when  he  missed  could  hardly  recover  his  balance.  In 


Old  Everlasting  makes  One 

twenty  minutes  he  had  scored  eleven  notches,  Old  Ever- 
lasting- having  consistently  done  nothing  but  block  the 
balls  that  fell  to  him ;  then,  in  hitting  out,  Lumpy,  never 
too  steady  on  his  bow  legs,  overbalanced  himself  and  fell 
flat,  and  the  long  bail  was  promptly  knocked  off  by  the 
wicket-keeper.  Two  wickets  down  for  eleven. 

After  this,  disaster  followed  disaster  in  such  rapid  suc- 
cession that  the  villagers  looked  blue.  Long  Robin  the 
tanner  was  caught  second  ball,  and  was  afterwards  heard 
complaining  bitterly  of  the  bad  leather  the  ball  was  made 
of.  Tom  the  cobbler  came  to  the  wicket  with  a  bat  of 
his  own — one  that  he  kept  hanging  behind  his  kitchen 
door,  and  took  down  every  week  for  a  thorough  greasing. 
He  scored  six  notches,  then  hit  a  ball  into  his  wicket,  and 
in  the  tent  afterwards  explained  to  his  cronies  that  another 
week's  greasing  would  have  prevented  the  accident.  Four 
wickets  were  now  down  for  seventeen,  and  Godfrey  Fan- 
shawe  himself  came  in,  amid  a  great  outburst  of  cheers 
from  the  crowd,  with  whom  he  was  very  popular,  and 
who  looked  to  him,  as  the  originator  of  the  match  and 
the  captain  of  the  team,  to  retrieve  the  fortunes  of  the 
day.  He  snicked  his  first  ball  for  one;  then  Old  Ever- 
lasting evoked  intense  enthusiasm  by  poking  a  ball  be- 
tween slip  and  point,  and  scoring  his  first  notch.  The 
score  rose  slowly  to  thirty-one,  Fanshawe  making  all  the 
runs,  and  then  he  ran  himself  out  in  trying  to  snatch  an 
extra  from  an  overthrow.  The  fifth  wicket  was  down. 
Fanshawe  was  reputed  the  best  batsman  in  the  team, 
and  Winton  St.  Mary  was  still  sixty-nine  behind.  There 
was  much  shaking  of  the  head  among  the  villagers,  and 
they  waited  in  glum  silence  for  the  next  man  to  appear. 

"  Look  'ee!"  exclaimed  the  old  trooper  suddenly,  "  beant 
that  old  Squire  a-comen  down-along  by  covert  fence?" 

"True,  Gaffer  Minshull,"  said  a  by-stander;  "what 
eyes  'ee've  got,  for  a  old  ancient  soul !  'Tis  old  Squire 
sure  enough,  and  young  Squire  and  the  Cap'n  wi'  un." 

Old  Minshull  leant  forward  on  his  stick,  and  with 
pursed  lips  peered  at  the  three  figures  approaching.  One 

12 


The  Squire 


was  a  burly  man  in  the  prime  of  life,  dressed  in  semi- 
military  garb — a  feathered  hat,  long-  red  coat  marked 
with  many  stains  and  wanting-  some  buttons,  leather 
breeches,  and  spurred  boots.  His  features  were  coarse 
and  red,  his  eyes  prominent  and  blood-shot;  he  walked 
with  a  swagger,  his  left  hand  on  his  sword-hilt.  The 
second  was  a  youth  of  some  twenty  years,  dressed  in 
the  extremity  of  foppishness.  A  black  hat,  looped  up 
and  cocked  over  one  eye,  crowned  a  full  auburn  wig 
fastidiously  curled.  The  coat  was  blue,  the  waistcoat 
purple,  open  to  display  a  fine  holland  shirt.  A  laced 
steinkirk  was  tucked  in  at  the  breast.  The  breeches 
matched  the  vest,  the  stockings  were  of  red  silk,  the 
shoes  had  high  red  heels  and  large  silver  buckles.  In 
Mr.  Piers  Berkeley's  mouth  was  a  toothpick;  from  one 
of  the  buttons  of  his  coat  dangled  an  amber -headed 
cane. 

The  third  figure  was  a  striking  contrast  to  the  others. 
He  was  tall  and  thin  and  bent,  with  pale  wrinkled  cheeks 
and  bushy  white  eyebrows  that  ill  matched  his  dark  wig. 
He  scarcely  lifted  his  eyes  from  the  ground  as  he  moved 
slowly  along,  leaning  heavily  upon  a  silver-knobbed  stick. 
His  dress  was  fusty  and  of  a  bygone  mode;  to  a  Lon- 
doner the  old  man  must  have  resembled  a  figure  out  of 
a  picture  of  Charles  the  Second's  time. 

"Who's  this  queer  old  put  ambling  along,  Frank?" 
asked  my  lord.  "The  rascals  there  avoid  him  as  he  had 
the  plague." 

"  On  my  life  I  don't  know,  sir,"  replied  Mr.  Godolphin. 
"  The  fellow  with  him  might  stand  for  Bobadil  himself." 

"  Or  for  Captain  Bluffe  in  Mr.  Congreve's  play." 

"  And  the  young  sprig  wants  a  kicking." 

"Sarvant,  my  lord,"  put  in  Sherebiah,  who  was  stand- 
ing by;  "  'tis  old  Squire,  and  young  Squire,  and No, 

I  won't  say  't;  a  wise  head  keeps  a  still  tongue;  I  won't 
say  't,  leastways  when  a  fowl  o'  the  air  med  carry  it 
where  'twould  do  me  and  feyther  o'  mine  no  manner 
o'  good." 

13 


An  Invitation 

The  crowd  parted  with  a  kind  of  sullen  unwilling  respect 
to  make  way  for  the  new-comers.  Suddenly  the  squire 
paused,  as  the  elder  of  his  two  companions  addressed  him ; 
flashing  an  angry  glance  at  him,  he  said  a  few  vehement 
words  in  a  low  tone  that  no  one  else  could  hear.  Captain 
Ralph  Aglionby  laughed  aloud,  shrugged  carelessly,  and 
sauntered  across  the  common  towards  the  tent.  The 
squire  followed  him  with  a  dark  glance  for  a  moment, 
then  resumed  his  slow  progress  with  his  son,  and  came 
to  within  a  few  feet  of  Lord  Godolphin's  carriage. 

"Your  lordship's  servant,"  he  said  with  a  profound 
bow,  copied  with  elaborate  elegance  by  his  son.  His 
voice  was  thin  and  hard,  a  voice  that  set  the  teeth  on 
edge.  "  I  heard  your  lordship  was  on  the  ground,  and 
made  bold  to  come  and  pay  my  duty  to  your  lordship." 

"  I  am  vastly  beholden  to  you,  Mr. " 

"Berkeley,  my  lord,  Nicolas  Berkeley  of  Winton  Hall; 
and  would  your  lordship  but  favour  me,  I  should  be  proud, 
when  the  match  is  over,  to  offer  your  lordship  a  cover  at 
my  table — poor  country  fare,  I  fear,  but  such  as  it  is, 
freely  at  your  lordship's  disposal." 

"'Tis  handsome  of  you,  Mr.  Berkeley,  but  I  fear  our 
business  will  not  permit  us  to  accept  of  your  hospitality. — 
Ah !  I  perceive  the  next  batsman  is  coming  to  the  wicket. 
I  hope  you're  as  keen  a  sportsman  as  I  am  myself,  and 
will  forgive  me  if  I  fix  my  attention  on  the  game." 

Mr.  Berkeley  bowed  again  with  expressionless  face,  and 
after  a  moment's  irresolution  moved  away.  Gaffer  Min- 
shull  might  have  been  observed  to  lick  his  old  lips  with 
appreciation  at  this  the  very  courtliest  of  cold  shoulders. 
Piers  Berkeley,  the  young  squire,  stayed  for  a  minute  or 
two,  gazing  with  silly  face  at  my  lord;  then,  finding  that 
he  remained  unnoticed,  he  stuck  the  head  of  his  cane  into 
his  mouth  and  walked  away  sucking  it. 

The  game  was  resumed.  For  an  hour  it  was  tedious 
watching.  The  new  batsman  snatched  a  run  now  and 
then,  while  Old  Everlasting  blocked  every  ball  that  came 
to  him  with  the  same  want  of  enterprise  and  the  same 

'4 


Lord  Godolphin  is  Interested 

boundless  self-satisfaction.  At  length  his  partner  was 
caught  in  the  long  field;  the  sixth  wicket  had  fallen, 
and  the  score  was  no  more  than  forty-five. 

"  Give  you  three  to  one  against  the  rustics,  Frank,"  said 
Lord  Godolphin. 

"  I'll  take  you,  sir,  though  'tis  a  risk.  Who's  our  next 
man?" 

"  'Tis  our  bowler  friend,  the  young  sprig  of  a  parson, 
unless  I  mistake,"  said  my  lord.  "  What's  the  lad's  name, 
gaffer?" 

"  'Tis  Henry  Winterborne  Rochester,  my  lard,  by  the 
water  o'  baptism ;  too  rich  a  name  for  poor  folks  like  we. 
Young  pa'son  we  calls  un  mostly." 

"A  limber  youth.  I  like  his  looks,  eh,  Frank?  Does 
he  bat  as  well  as  he  bowls?" 

"  Middlen,  my  lord,  middlen,"  said  Sherebiah.  "  Has 
a  good  eye,  but  a  deal  o'  growen  to  do  afore  he  can 
smite  the  ball  as  it  should.  But  there,  my  lord,  he  as 
can't  do  what  he  would  must  do  what  he  can,  as  you 
med  say." 

"Nothen  truer,  boy,"  said  his  father  approvingly.  "  Ay, 
_'tis  a  pretty  lad.  Gi*  un  a  cheer,  souls." 

"  Mum,  feyther,"  expostulated  Sherebiah.  "  Old  Squire's 
comen  back-along  this  way;  little  sticks  kindle  fires,  as 
you  med  say." 

"True.  I  be  a  timbersome  man,  afeard  o'  Squire, 
though  you  med  n't  think  it.  Well!" 

But  though  Gaffer  Minshull  forbore  to  cheer,  the  rest  of 
the  crowd  had  no  scruples,  and  the  warmth  of  their  greet- 
ing brought  a  flush  to  the  new  batsman's  honest  face.  He 
stood  at  the  wicket  with  quiet  ease  and  watched  Old  Ever- 
lasting block  the  last  ball  of  the  over;  then  he  glanced 
around,  stooped  to  his  bat,  and  fixed  his  gray  eyes  steadily 
on  the  bowler. 

The  rest  of  the  afternoon  provided  an  unfailing  subject 
for  gossip  in  the  village  for  six  months  afterwards.  Play- 
ing at  first  with  patient  wariness,  Harry  never  let  a  ball 
pass  his  bat,  but  treated  all  with  a  respectful  consideration 

'5 


An  Uphill  Game 


that  was  as  noticeable  as  his  graceful  style.  He  played 
two  overs  without  getting  a  notch;  then,  after  another 
excellent  blocking  performance  by  his  partner,  came  a 
change.  The  first  ball  of  the  next  over  was  rather  loose ; 
Lord  Godolphin,  who,  perhaps  alone  of  the  spectators,  kept 
his  gaze  fixed  on  the  batsman's  face,  saw  his  lips  come 
together  with  a  slight  pressure  and  his  eyes  suddenly 
gleam — and  there  was  the  ball,  flying  straight  over  the 
bowler's  head,  passing  between  two  coaches  into  the  road. 
Gaffer  Minshull  was  on  the  point  of  raising  his  stick  to 
wave  it,  but  was  stopped  by  his  son  with  a  "  Mind  old 
Squire,  feyther  o'  mine." 

"  Varty-vive  and  vour  makes  varty-nine,"  muttered  the 
old  man.  "  I  could  do  a  bit  o'  cipheren  in  my  time.  Ay, 
varty-nine." 

Nothing  came  of  the. next  ball,  but  the  third  rose  most 
happily  to  Harry's  bat,  and  with  a  neat  little  cut  he  sent  it 
under  the  rope  among  the  crowd,  who  nimbly  parted  to  let 
it  roll.  Three  notches  were  cut  to  his  credit.  Old  Ever- 
lasting complacently  blocked  the  next  ball,  and  Harry 
treated  the  bowler  at  the  other  end  with  great  respect  till 
the  fourth  ball,  which  he  snicked  away  for  a  single.  Get- 
ting back  thus  to  the  wicket  at  which  he  had  started,  he 
delighted  the  spectators  by  driving  every  ball  of  the  over, 
at  the  close  of  which  the  score  had  risen  to  sixty-three. 

" 'Tis  the  eye  doos  it,"  said  the  old  man  delightedly; 
"  Master  Harry  has'n  clear  an'  steady.  Ay  sure,  a'  would 
ha'  made  a  good  captain  for  Noll  Crum'ell ;  if  so  be  he's 
a  pa'son,  all  the  use  he  can  make  o'  his  eye,  'twill  be  to 
tarrify  poor  sinners  like  you  an'  me,  my  lard." 

But  misfortune  was  in  store  for  the  Winton  St.  Mary 
men.  Old  Everlasting  had  the  first  ball  of  the  next  over, 
delivered  by  a  new  bowler,  a  lanky  fellow  with  a  tremen- 
dous pace,  for  whom  two  long-stops  were  placed.  The 
batsman  was  taken  by  surprise;  he  missed  the  ball,  the 
stumps  went  flying,  and  Old  Everlasting  walked  away 
scratching  his  poll,  rejoicing  in  the  magnificent  score  of 
one.  Harry  accompanied  him  to  the  tent,  and  held  a 

16 


Young  Pa'son 


short  conversation  with  the  next  man.  The  fruit  of  this 
was  seen  as  soon  as  they  reached  the  wickets.  The  first 
ball  missed  bat,  stumps,  wicket-keeper,  and  both  long- 
stops;  Harry  called  his  partner  for  a  bye,  and  though 
there  was  plenty  of  time  for  a  second  run  he  was  con- 
tented with  a  single,  thus  securing  the  next  ball.  This 
he  hit  round  to  leg,  a  stroke  that  ought  to  have  made  two, 
but  his  partner  was  somewhat  bulky,  and  suffered  for  his 
misfortune  by  being  promptly  run  out  after  one  run  had 
been  scored. 

Eight  wickets  were  now  down,  and  the  score  was  sixty- 
five — thirty-five  behind  that  of  the  Cambridge  eleven.  A 
restlessness  was  observable  in  the  crowd;  it  seemed  im- 
possible that  the  home  team  could  win;  and  there  was 
general  despondency  when  it  was  noticed  that  the  in- 
coming batsman  was  a  spindle-legged  fellow  known  as 
Soft  Jemmy,  who  did  odd  jobs  about  the  village.  Only 
Sherebiah  still  appeared  full  of  confidence. 

"A  fight  bean't  lost  till  it  be  won,"  he  said.  "Keep 
up  your  sperits,  souls." 

Soft  Jemmy  never  got  a  chance  to  miss  the  ball.  Such 
scheming  was  never  seen  on  a  cricket-field  before.  Harry 
had  privately  instructed  Jemmy  to  do  just  as  he  was  told, 
and  the  half-witted  youth  at  least  knew  how  to  obey. 
When  Harry  called  him  he  ran;  when  told  to  stand  in 
his  ground  he  remained  fixed  like  a  post;  and  so,  snatch- 
ing byes,  blocking,  hitting  when  it  was  safe,  Harry  defied 
all  the  bowling,  and  the  score  rose  by  ones  and  twos  and 
threes.  A  change  came  over  the  attitude  of  the  spec- 
tators. From  dejection  they  passed  to  almost  delirious 
joy.  Every  hit  was  cheered  to  the  echo;  every  little 
manoeuvre  of  "young  pa'son "  added  to  their  delight. 
The  effect  on  the  out  side  was  equal  and  opposite. 
They  became  irritated  at  the  altered  aspect  of  the  game. 
Bowlers  bowled  wildly;  fieldsmen  fielded  loosely,  and  got 
in  one  another's  way;  and  the  more  agitated  they  became, 
the  more  coolly  and  confidently  did  Harry  ply  his  bat.  At 
last,  stepping  out  to  a  full  pitch,  he  made  a  magnificent 


The  Winning  Hit 


drive  over  the  bowler's  head,  and  brought  the  total  to  a 
hundred  and  two. 

The  cheer  that  rose  from  the  crowd  might  have  been 
heard  a  mile  away.  Some  of  the  men  made  a  rush  for 
Harry,  and  bore  him  shoulder-high  to  the  tent.  Others 
flew  to  secure  their  winnings,  and  celebrate  the  famous 
victory  in  cider  or  home-brewed  ale.  Gaffer  Minshull  was 
with  difficulty  dissuaded  from  whirling  his  hat  round  on 
the  top  of  his  stick,  and  nothing  could  check  his  gleeful 
exclamation : 

"  A  flick  to  young  Squire;  a  terrible  douse,  ay  sure!" 

"  By  George,  a  notable  match  !"  said  Godolphin.  "  Your 
young  parson  is  a  lad  of  mettle,  gaffer;  he'll  be  a  sports- 
man an  he  lives  long  enough.  Here,  man,  drink  his 
health,  and  tell  him  from  me  that  the  Lord  Treasurer 
loves  pretty  play.  Come,  Frank,  we'll  drive  on." 

He  flung  a  coin  to  the  old  man,  remounted  his  carriage, 
and  drove  off.  Gaffer  looked  at  the  money,  then  after  the 
calash. 

"  Ah,  'tis  a  mighty  fine  thing  to  hold  the  Queen's  purse, 
my  lads,  mighty  fine!  There  be  a  power  o'  these  same 
shinen  bright  ones  in  the  Queen's  purse;  eh,  lads?" 

A  shout  came  from  the  distance,  and  the  eyes  of  the 
small  group  around  old  Minshull  were  turned  towards 
the  road.  Lord  Godolphin's  carriage  had  broken  down. 
The  axle  had  snapped  in  two;  the  horses  were  plunging, 
and  my  lord  and  his  son  were  clinging  to  the  sides  of  the 
vehicle.  A  score  of  sturdy  fellows  rushed  to  lend  a  hand, 
and  Gaffer  Minshull  was  left  to  himself. 


18 


CHAPTER   II 

Sherebiah  Shouts 

"'Tis  here  or  hereabouts,  baten  years  ha'n't  tooken  my 
memory.  True,  feyther  o'  mine  calls  me  boy,  and  so  I  be 
to  a  old  aged  man  like  him ;  but  when  a  man's  comen  on 
forty-four,  and  ha'  seen  summat  o'  the  world — well, 

"'Man's  life  is  but  vain,  for  'tis  subject  to  pain 

An'  sorrow,  an'  short  as  a  bubble; 
'Tis  a  hodge-podge  o'  business,  an'  money,  an'  care, 
An'  care,  an'  money,  an'  trouble.' 

Ay,  'tis  so,  'tis  so!" 

Sherebiah  sighed,  but  the  sigh  ill  became  his  round, 
jolly  face;  it  was  merely  to  chime  with  the  words  of  the 
song.  He  was  walking,  about  six  o'clock  on  the  morning 
after  the  cricket-match,  along  the  bank  of  a  little  hill- 
stream,  rod  in  hand,  yet  not  expecting  to  halt  for  a  while, 
for  he  took  no  pains  to  moderate  his  voice.  He  was  not 
alone.  His  companion  was  the  youth  who  had  won 
the  match  for  Winton  St.  Mary  on  the  previous  day — 
Harry  Rochester,  the  parson's  son.  Each  carried  a  rod 
— the  huge  clumsy  rod  of  those  days,  nearly  seventeen  feet 
in  length;  each  was  laden  with  wallet,  landing-net,  and 
other  apparatus;  and  in  fact  they  had  already  had  an 
hour's  sport  with  ground-bait,  having  risen  from  their 
beds  soon  after  three  on  this  ideal  angler's  morning.  A 
haze  lay  over  the  ground,  and  a  light  rain  was  falling. 

Sherebiah  was  several  yards  ahead,  scanning  the  banks. 
His  voice  sank  a  little  as  he  repeated  the  lines: 

"'Tis  a  hodge-podge  o'  business,  an'  money,  an'  care, 
An'  care,  an'  money,  an'  trouble." 

19 


An  Angling  Story 


"  Cheer  up !"  said  Harry,  behind  him.  "  I  like  the  second 
verse  best,  Sherry : 

"'But  we'll  take  no  care  when  the  weather  proves  fair, 
Nor  will  we  vex  now  though  it  rain — 

He  was  interrupted  by  the  sudden  halt  of  Sherebiah. 
The  man  had  swung  round;  his  lips  were  shot  out  in  the 
motion  of  shooing,  a  warning  finger  was  held  up.  Harry's 
voice  died  away,  and  he  hastened  to  his  companion's  side. 

"  Yonder's  the  spot,"  said  Sherebiah  in  a  whisper,  point- 
ing to  a  large  pool,  shaded  with  willows,  some  thirty  yards 
ahead.  "Mum's  the  word!  They  be  sharp-eared,  they 
trouts.  'Tis  there  I  took  ten  lusty  nibblers,  ten  year 
agoo  come  Michaelmas.  Faith,  'twas  all  I  could  do  to 
carry  'em ;  ay,  and  I  shouldn'  ha'  got  'em  home  but  for 
Tom  Dorrell,  t'  carrier  from  Salisbury,  who  came  trundlen 
along  in  his  wagon.  He  be  dead  an'  gone,  poor  soul,  as 
must  we  all." 

"And  what  did  you  do  with  them?"  asked  Harry  with 
a  smile. 

Sherebiah  was  famous  for  his  angling  stories,  and  they 
had  perhaps  as  much  foundation  as  most.  No  one  in  the 
country-side  knew  the  ways  of  the  trout  as  he  did ;  but  he 
was  equally  at  home  in  trolling  for  jack  or  pike,  roving 
for  perch,  and  sniggling  for  eels.  None  could  match  his 
knowledge  of  the  flies  in  their  several  seasons :  the  hour 
of  the  day  at  which  each  is  most  killing ;  the  merits  of 
the  silver  twist  hackle  and  the  lady-fly,  whether  for  dap- 
ping or  whipping;  when  to  use  the  black  gnat,  when  the 
blue;  under  what  conditions  of  the  evening  sky  the  shyest 
trout  will  rise  to  a  red  spinner.  And  who  could  tie  a  fly 
like  Sherebiah  Minshull?  Many  a  time  Harry  had  ex- 
amined his  rich  store  of  materials — as  varied  as  the  con- 
tents of  a  witch's  cauldron  :  feathers  of  every  bird  that  flies, 
manifold  silks  and  wires  and  hooks,  wax  and  needles, 
hog's  down  and  squirrel's  fur.  Many  a  time  had  he 
watched  him  dress  a  fly  and  thread  a  bait,  and  admired 
his  dexterous  whipping  of  the  streams. 


Old  Izaak 

"What  did  I  do  wi'  'em?"  Sherebiah  had  sat  down 
with  legs  far  apart,  and  was  carefully  selecting"  a  fly  from 
his  case.  He  spoke  always  in  a  whisper.  "Well,  'tis 
ten  year  since,  and  my  memory  bean't  what  it  was ;  but 
now  I  mind  on't,  I  gi'  one  to  Tom  carrier  for  his 
lift,  and  a  couple  to  miller  up  by  Odbury,  and  one  to 
Susan  Poorgrass  at  Sir  Godfrey's — I  was  a-courten  then ; 
her  wouldn't  ha'  me,  thank  the  Lord!— and  a  couple  to 
Ned  Greenhay,  Sir  Godfrey's  keeper  as  was,  for  a  brace 
o'  leverets ;  and  to  please  feyther  o'  mine  I  took  three  up 
to  the  Hall.  Zooks!  and  small  thanks  I  got,  for  old 
Squire  hisself  come  to  the  door,  and  gi'  me  a  douse,  he 
did ;  said  if  I  didn't  find  summat  better  to  do  than  go 
traipsen  the  country-side,  poachen  or  wuss,  he'd  commit 
me  for  a  rogue  and  vagabond.  An'  th'  old  curmudgeon 
kept  the  fish ;  ay,  he  did  so ! — Ah !  ha'  got  it ;  'tis  a  fly 
that  cost  me  more  time  in  the  maken  than  a  dozen  others; 
a  beauty,  to  be  sure;  eh,  Master  Harry?" 

He  proceeded  to  put  it  on  his  hook.  It  was  an  artificial 
oak-fly,  blue,  green,  brown,  and  orange  so  cunningly 
mingled  that  no  trout  could  fail  to  be  deceived. 

"  We'll  now  see  some  sport,"  continued  Sherebiah,  still 
in  a  whisper,  as  he  prepared  to  cast.  "  I  can't  abide  bait- 
fishen ;  sport,  i'  faith !  'tis  mere  bludgeon-play.  True,  it 
fills  the  pot,  but  there's  no  pleasure  in  't.  'Tis  no  pastime 
for  a  true  bob." 

"  Why,  Sherry,  'twas  only  yestere'en  I  was  reading  in  a 
most  excellent  book  of  angling  by  Master  Izaak  Walton, 
and  he,  it  seems,  held  little  to  the  fly.  His  discourse  is  in 
the  main  of  bait." 

"Why,  there  'tis.  I  met  Master  Walton  once,  a-fishen 
in  the  Itchen  above  Winchester — a  quaint  man,  with  a 
good  breast  for  a  song,  for  all  he  was  ripe  for  the  grave. 
Myself  I  was  but  twenty  or  so,  he  a  man  of  fourscore  and 
upward;  ay,  a  fine  hale  old  man,  wi'  a  store  o'  memories. 
We  fell  into  talk ;  a'  told  me  how  a'  once  rid  to  Lunnon 
wi'  a  rich  jewel  o'  King  Charles's  in  his  doublet;  ay,  he 
was  a  royal  man,  wi'  a  jolly  red  face,  but  no  harm  in  un, 

21 


Landed 

not  a  whit ;  and  learned,  too — but  no  angler.  No,  faith, 
no  angler,  for  a'  talked  o'  fishen  down  stream,  a'  did,  when 
ne'er  a  child  but  knows  fish  lie  wi'  their  heads  up  stream. 
Ye  cotch  fish  as  'ee  do  Frenchmen,  from  behind !  Now, 
hook's  ready.  Mum,  Master  Harry,  while  I  cast." 

He  dropped  his  fly  deftly  into  the  still  pool,  watching  it 
with  keen  eyes  and  pursed  lips.  Meanwhile  Harry  had 
chosen  an  orle  fly,  and  made  his  cast  a  little  lower  down. 
The  anglers  were  silent  for  some  minutes. 

"What's  that?"  asked  Harry  suddenly,  looking  up  as 
a  distant  sound  of  wood-chopping  reached  his  ears. 

"Mum,  boy!"  whispered  Sherebiah  in  reply.  "There, 
I  beg  pardon,  Master  Harry,  but  you've  scared  away  a 
samlet  just  as  he  opened  his  jaws.  That?  'Tis  Simon 
forester,  belike,  fellen  Sir  Godfrey's  timber.  Now,  a  still 
tongue " 

He  broke  off,  rose,  and  followed  his  line  stealthily  for  a 
yard  or  two.  The  surface  of  the  water  was  disturbed,  and 
Harry  caught  a  glimpse  of  a  gleaming  side.  There  was 
a  splash;  the  rod  bent;  then  Sherebiah  hastened  his  steps 
as  the  fish  went  away  with  a  rush. 

"He's  a-showen  fight,"  whispered  Sherry.  "Whoa! 
he's  sounded,  Master  Harry;  a  big  un.  Pray  the  tackle 
may  hold !  Ah !  he's  clear,  and  off  again  !  Whoa !  whoa ! 
Nay,  my  pretty,  'ee  may  fight,  but  I'll  land  'ee." 

For  ten  minutes  the  contest  continued ;  then  the  angler 
got  in  his  line  slowly,  and  beckoned  to  Harry  to  assist 
him.  The  fish  was  carefully  drawn  in ;  Harry  stooped 
with  his  net  at  the  critical  moment,  and  with  a  sudden 
heave  landed  a  fine  four-pounder,  which  he  slipped  into 
Sherebiah's  creel. 

"That's  the  way  on't,  Master  Harry,"  said  Sherebiah 
contentedly.  "  Had  no  luck  yourself,  eh?  What  be  'ee 
a-fishen  wi'?" 

"An  orle." 

"Ah,  'tis  an  hour  or  two  too  early  in  the  day  for  that, 
mebbe.  Still,  these  waters  of  Sir  Godfrey  bean't  often 
fished  since  young  Master  Godfrey  went  to  Cambridge 


Breakfast 

college,  and  the  trout  mayn't  be  over  squeamish.     Stick 
to  't!" 

An  hour  passed,  and  both  anglers  were  well  satisfied. 
Sherebiah's  fly  proved  irresistible,  either  from  its  cunning 
make  or  the  wary  skill  with  which  he  whipped  the  stream. 
Four  fat  trout  had  joined  the  first  in  his  basket ;  two  had 
rewarded  Harry's  persistence;  then  he  laid  down  his  rod 
and  watched  with  admiration  the  delicate  casts  of  his 
companion.  Sherebiah  landed  his  sixth.  The  haze  having 
now  disappeared,  and  the  sun  growing  hot,  he  wound  up 
his  line  and  said : 

"  Rain  afore  seven,  fine  afore  'leven.  I  be  mortal 
peckish,  Master  Harry ;  what  may  'ee  have  in  your  basket, 
now?" 

"Powdered  beef,  I  think,  Sherry;  and  Polly  put  in  a 
cate  or  two  and  some  radishes,  and  a  bottle  of  cider; 
plain  fare,  you  see." 

"Well,  hunger's  the  best  saace,  I  b'lieve.  We  poor 
folks  don't  need  to  perk  up  our  appetites.  I  warrant, 
now,  that  mighty  lord  we  saw  yesterday  would  turn  up  his 
nose  at  powdered  beef.  Fine  kickshawses  a'  had  at  Sir 
Godfrey's,  no  doubt.  To  think  o'  such  a  mighty  lord,  the 
Queen's  purse-bearer  an'  all,  bein'  kept  in  a  little  small 
village  by  rust  or  dry-rot,  just  like  a  ordinary  man !  Old 
Squire  would  ha'  liked  to  gi'  him  a  bed,  I  reckon ;  but  Sir 
Godfrey  were  aforehand,  an'  there  he  lies  till  this  mornen: 
axle  was  to  be  mended  by  six,  if  Lumpy  had  to  work  all 
night  to  finish  the  job.  Med  I  axe  'ee  a  question,  Master 
Harry?  Do  'ee  think  that  shinen  piece  a'  flung  to  feyther 
were  his  own,  or  out  o'  Queen's  purse?" 

Harry  laughed. 

"Lord  Godolphin  doesn't  go  about  the  country  with 
the  Queen's  purse  slung  at  his  waist,  Sherry.  What  he 
meant  was  that  he  was  Lord  Treasurer,  the  Queen's  chief 
minister,  the  man  who  rules  the  country,  you  know." 

"  Well,  now,  if  I  didn't  think  it'd  be  folly  to  carry  the 
Queen's  purse  loose  about  the  country!  Then  'tis  Lord 
Godolphin  says  we're  to  fight  the  French?" 

(  B  357 )  23  0 


Marlborough's   Smile 

"Yes,  he  and  my  lord  Marlborough  between  them." 

"Ah!  there  'tis.  My  lord  Marlborough  bean't  free 
with  his  money  like  t'other  lord.  He  wouldn't  ha'  given 
old  feyther  o'  mine  nothen.  Why,  I  was  at  Salisbury  in 
'88  when  my  lord — Lord  Churchill  he  was  then,  to  be  sure 
— was  there  to  meet  King  Willum,  and  I  held  his  horse 
for  'n,  and  he  gi'  me — what  do  'ee  think  he  gi'  me, 
Master  Harry?" 

"Well?" 

"  Nowt  but  a  smile!  What  med  'ee  think  o'  that  for 
a  lord?  'Thank  'ee,  my  man,'  says  he,  and  puts  his  foot 
in  the  stirrup  and  shows  his  teeth  at  me,  and  rides  off! 
Lord!  Now  t'other  one,  the  Lord  Godolphin,  he  is  a  lord, 
to  be  sure,  a  fine  free-handed  gentleman,  though  he  ha'n't 
got  such  fine  teeth.  I  like  a  lord  to  be  a  lord,  I  do." 

"  My  lord  Marlborough  is  indeed  rather  close-fisted, 
they  say." 

"Ay,  but  I  ha'  knowed  a  wuss.  Did  ever  I  tell  'ee  of 
Jacob  Spinney  the  potticary?  I  was  a  growen  lad,  and 
feyther  o'  mine  wanted  to  put  me  to  a  trade.  So  he  bound 
me  prentice  to  Jacob  Spinney,  that  kept  a  potticary's  shop 
by  Bargate  at  S'thampton.  Zooks  !  Jacob  was  a  deceiver, 
like  his  namesake  in  the  Book.  A'  promised  feyther  he'd 
gi'  me  good  vittles  and  plenty  on  'em,  bein'  a  growen  lad; 
but  sakes,  I  never  got  no  meat  save  at  third  boilen ;  'twas 
like  eatin'  leather.  A'  said  I  was  growen  too  fast,  a'  did, 
and  he'd  keep  me  down.  Pudden — I  never  put  my  lips  to 
pudden  for  two  year,  not  once.  I  took  down  shutters  at 
zix  i'  the  mornen,  and  put  'em  up  at  eight  o'  nights;  be- 
twixt and  between  I  was  pounden  away  at  drugs,  and 
carryen  parcels,  and  scrubben  floors  and  nussen  mistress' 
babby :  ay,  what  med  'ee  think  o'  that?  If  so  happened  I 
broke  a  bottle,  or  overslept  five  minutes — oons!  there  was 
master  a-strappen  me  to  a  hook  in  the  wall  he  kept  o' 
purpose,  and  layen  a  birch  over  my  shoulders  and  keepen 
me  on  bread  and  water  or  turmuts  not  fit  for  a  ox.  I 
dwindled  crossways  to  a  shadder,  Master  Harry,  I  did  so, 
and  every  week  th'  old  villain  made  me  write  a  letter  to 

24 


The   Story  of  a  Potticary 

feyther,  sayen  as  how  I  was  fat  and  flourishen  like  a  green 
bay  tree.  Do  what  a'  would,  however,  I  growed  and 
growed,  at  fourteen  a  long  slip  of  a  feller  all  arms  and 
legs.  Two  mortal  year  I  put  up  wi'  un ;  then  I  got  tired. 
One  day,  mistress  was  out,  and  I  was  rollen  pills  in  the 
little  back  shop,  when  master  come  in.  He  was  in  a 
terrible  passion,  goodness  alone  knows  what  about.  He 
pitched  into  me  for  wasten  his  drugs  and  eatin'  up  all  his 
profits,  and  hit  me  with  his  cane,  and  sent  me  spinnen 
agen  the  table,  and  knocked  off  his  best  chiney  mortar, 
and  there  'twas  on  the  floor,  smashed  to  atomies.  Bein' 
his  own  doen,  it  made  his  temper  wuss,  it  did,  and  he 
caught  me  by  the  hair  and  said  he'd  skin  me.  I'  fecks,  I 
were  always  a  man  o'  peace,  even  as  a  boy,  but  I'd  had 
long  sufferen  enough,  and  now  my  peaceful  blood  was  up. 
I  wriggled  myself  free — and  there  he  was,  flat  on  the 
floor,  and  me  a-sitten  on  him.  He  hollered  and  cussed, 
for  all  he  was  a  Puritan ;  and,  haven  respect  unto  my 
neighbours,  I  stuffed  a  handkercher  into  his  mouth.  There 
I  sits,  a-thinken  what  to  do  wi'  un.  'Twas  in  for  a 
penny  in  for  a  pound  wi'  me  then ;  I'd  have  to  run,  'den- 
tures or  no  'dentures,  and  it  seemed  fair  to  have  my 
pen'orth  afore  I  went.  There  was  that  hook  I  knowed  so 
well,  and  that  strap  hangen  still  and  loose:  'I'll  gi'  un 
a  taste  o'  the  birch  he  be  so  uncommon  fond  on,'  thinks  I. 
So  I  hoists  un  up,  and  soon  has  un  strapped  ready;  but 
looken  at  un  I  thinks  to  myself:  '  You  be  a  poor  wamblen 
mortal  arter  all,  skinny  for  all  the  pudden  you  eat.  I'll 
ha'  mercy  on  your  poor  weak  flesh.'  Besides,  I  had 
another  notion.  So  I  casts  un  loose  and  sits  un  on  a 
chair  and  straps  un  to  chair-back,  hands  to  sides. 

"You  med  have  heard  of  Jacob  Spinney's  famous  mix- 
ture for  pimples?  Well,  'twas  knowed  all  over  Hants 
and  Wilts.  'Twas  a  rare  sight  o'  market  days  to  see  the 
farmers'  wives  a-troopen  into  the  shop  for  bottles  o'  the 
mixture.  But  th'  odd  thing  was,  Spinney  hisself  was 
owner  of  a  fair  pimpled  face,  yet  never  did  I  know  un 
take  a  dose  o'  his  own  firm  cure.  '  I  pity  'ee,'  says  I  to 

25 


Dosed 

un,  as  he  sat  strapped  to  the  chair;  'poor  feller,  wi'  all 
those  pimples.  Shall  have  a  dose,  poor  soul.'  Many's 
the  bottle  I'd  made  up:  'twas  brimstone  and  powder  o' 
crab  and  gentian  root  in  syrup.  Well,  I  mixed  a  dose  all 
fresh  afore  his  eyes,  and  got  a  long  wooden  spoon,  and 
slipped  the  handkercher  out  o'  his  mouth  and  the  dose  in. 
The  ungrateful  feller  spets  it  out  and  begins  to  holler  again; 
so  in  goes  the  handkercher,  and  says  I :  '  Ye  don't  know 
what's  for  your  own  good.  Bean't  it  tasty  enough?  Ah, 
Master  Spinney,  often  and  often  'ee've  physicked  me ; 
what's  good  for  me  without  pudden  will  be  better  for 
'ee  with;  you  shall  have  a  dose.'  So  I  made  un  a  dose 
o'  senna  and  jalap  and  ipecacuan,  but  I  was  slow  with 
the  handkercher,  and  afore  I  could  get  the  spoon  in 
he  had  his  teeth  clinched  tight.  But  I  hadn't  nussed  the 
babby  for  nothen.  I  ups  with  finger  and  thumb  and 
pinches  his  nose;  he  opens  his  mouth  for  breath,  and 
in  goes  spoon,  and  sputter  as  he  med  he  had  to  swaller, 
he  did. 

"Ah,  I  was  wild  and  headstrong  in  they  young  coltish 
days.  I  bean't  so  fond  o'  pudden  now.  Not  but  what 
they  mixtures  did  Jacob  Spinney  a  world  o'  good,  for  his 
next  prentice  had  a  easier  time  nor  me,  steppen  into  his 
master's  business  when  he  was  laid  in  churchyard.  /  got 
no  good  on  'em,  to  be  sure,  for  I  had  to  run  away  and  try 
another  line  o'  life,  and  ha'  been  a  rollen-stone  ever  since. 
Ay  well,  'tis  all  one  to  a  man  o'  peace." 

During  his  narrative  the  breakfast  had  been  finished. 

"Well,  Sherry,  when  I'm  out  of  sorts  I'll  come  to  you," 
said  Harry,  rising.  "Now,  while  you  pack  up,  I'll  go 
a  stroll  up  the  hillside ;  there'll  be  a  good  view  now  the 
day  is  clearing,  and  maybe  I'll  get  a  glimpse  of  Salisbury 
spire." 

He  left  the  river-bank  and  strolled  leisurely  up  a  gentle 
ascent,  which  gradually  became  steeper  until  it  terminated 
somewhat  suddenly  in  a  stretch  of  level  ground.  Fifty 
yards  from  the  edge  rose  a  long  grassy  mound,  a  well- 
known  landmark  in  the  neighbourhood.  It  was,  in  fact, 

26 


On  the  Horizon 

a  barrow,  dating-  centuries  back  into  the  dim  ages — the 
burial  place,  perhaps,  of  British  warriors  who  had  fought 
and  fallen  in  defence  of  their  country  against  the  Roman 
invader.  Harry  had  always  felt  a  romantic  interest  in 
these  memorials  of  the  past,  and  more  than  once  had 
stood  by  such  a  barrow,  alone  in  the  moonlight  of  a  sum- 
mer night,  while  his  imagination  called  up  visions  of  far-off 
forgotten  things. 

He  sat  down  now  with  his  back  to  the  mound,  and 
allowed  his  eyes  to  rove  over  the  prospect.  Tradition 
said  that  three  counties  were  visible  from  this  elevated 
spot,  and  on  a  clear  morning  like  this  it  seemed  likely 
enough  that  report  said  true.  Far  to  the  left,  peeping 
over  the  bare  contour  of  Harnham  Hill,  rose  the  graceful 
spire  of  Salisbury  Cathedral,  at  least  fifteen  miles  away 
as  the  crow  flies.  His  eye  followed  the  winding  course 
of  the  little  stream  below  him,  losing  it  here  and  there 
behind  some  copse  or  knoll,  tracing  it  again  to  its  junction 
with  a  larger  stream,  till  this  in  its  turn  was  lost  to  view 
amid  the  distant  elm-bordered  meadows.  Nearer  at  hand 
he  saw  the  old  Roman  road,  grass-grown  and  silent  now, 
bounding  the  park  of  Sir  Godfrey  Fanshawe,  crossing  the 
stream  by  an  ancient  bridge,  and  running  into  the  London 
road  at  some  invisible  point  to  the  right.  It  was  a  very 
pleasing  prospect,  brilliant  beneath  the  cloudless  sky,  and 
freshened  by  the  early  morning  showers. 

As  he  looked  along  the  forsaken  highway,  once  trodden 
perhaps  by  the  legions  of  Constantine  the  Great,  his 
glance  was  momentarily  arrested  by  a  small  moving  speck 
in  the  distance.  "  Some  wagon  from  one  of  Sir  Godfrey's 
home  farms,"  he  thought.  It  was  approaching  him,  for  it 
passed  out  of  sight  into  a  clump  of  trees,  then  reappeared, 
and  was  again  hidden  by  an  intercepting  ridge.  The  road 
was  downhill;  in  fifteen  or  twenty  minutes,  perhaps,  the 
wagon  would  pass  beneath  him,  at  a  point  nearly  three- 
quarters  of  a  mile  away,  where  the  highway  skirted  a  belt 
of  trees  perched  on  the  side  of  a  steep  declivity.  Between 
him  and  the  road  lay  a  ditch  which,  as  he  knew,  was  apt 

27 


Highwaymen 


in  winter-time  to  overflow  on  to  the  meadows  and  the 
lower  parts  of  the  track,  making  a  sticky  swamp  of  the 
chalky  soil.  But  it  was  dry  now,  and  the  floodings  were 
only  indicated  by  the  more  vivid  green  of  the  grass  and 
the  tall  reeds  that  filled  the  hollow  on  this  side.  On  the 
other  side  a  strong  stone  wall  edged  the  road,  marking 
the  boundary  of  Sir  Godfrey's  park ;  it  was  overhung  with 
elms,  from  which  at  this  moment  Harry  saw  a  congrega- 
tion of  rooks  soar  away. 

Thus  idly  scanning  the  roadway,  all  at  once  his  eye  lit 
upon  the  figure  of  a  horseman  half  concealed  by  the  belt  of 
reeds  in  the  hollow.  He  was  motionless ;  his  back  was 
towards  Harry,  his  horse's  head  pointing  towards  the 
road,  from  which  he  was  completely  screened  by  the  reeds 
and  the  willows. 

"What  is  he  doing  there?"  thought  Harry.  He  rose, 
and  walked  towards  the  edge  of  the  descent.  Narrowly 
scanning  the  brake,  he  now  descried  two  other  horsemen 
within  a  few  yards  of  the  first,  but  so  well  concealed  that 
but  for  his  quickened  curiosity  he  would  probably  never 
have  discovered  them.  For  all  he  knew,  there  might  be 
others.  "What  is  their  game?"  His  suspicion  was 
aroused;  the  vehicle  he  had  seen  approaching  was  perhaps 
not  a  wagon ;  it  might  be  a  chaise  belonging  to  Sir  God- 
frey; it  might  be —  -  "Why,  'tis  without  a  doubt  Lord 
Godolphin  himself  on  his  way  to  London,  and  coming 
by  the  shortest  cut."  There  was  no  need  for  further 
speculation;  in  those  days  the  inference  was  sure:  a 
carriage  in  the  distance,  a  party  of  horsemen  lurking  in 

a  copse  by  the  roadside "'Tis  highway  robbery — ah! 

the  Queen's  purse!" 

Harry  unconsciously  smiled  at  the  thought.  His  first 
impulse  was  to  warn  the  approaching  travellers.  But 
the  carriage  was  at  present  out  of  sight;  he  could  not 
make  signals,  and  before  he  could  reach  the  stretch  of 
road  between  the  ambuscade  and  their  prey,  the  travellers 
would  certainly  be  past,  while  he  himself  might  be  seen 
by  the  waiting  horsemen,  and  headed  off  as  he  crossed 

28 


A   Man  of  Peace 

a  tract  of  open  country.  Moving-  downwards  all  the  time, 
he  in  a  flash  saw  all  that  it  was  possible  to  do.  The 
stream  passed  under  the  roadway  some  twenty  yards 
beyond  the  spot  where  the  horsemen  were  lying-  in  wait; 
the  banks  were  reedy,  and  might  screen  an  approach  to 
the  copse  beyond  the  wall.  There  was  a  bare  chance,  and 
Harry  took  it. 

He  raced  downhill  towards  Sherebiah,  who  was  sitting- 
on  the  bank  still,  placidly  smoking  his  pipe ;  landscape  had 
no  charm  for  him. 

"  Sherry,"  said  Harry  in  jerks,  "  Lord  Godolphin  or 
someone  is  driving  down  the  road ;  hig-hwaymen  hiding 
in  the  reeds ;  in  five  or  six  minutes — come,  come,  we  have 
no  time  to  lose." 

"Then  we'll  go  home  along,"  said  Sherry,  putting  his 
pipe  in  his  pocket  as  he  rose. 

"Nonsense!  we  can't  slink  away  and  leave  them  to  be 
robbed."  Harry  took  Sherry  by  the  arm  to  drag-  him 
along. 

"  What  be  the  good?  Fishen-rods  bean't  no  match 
for  pistols,  and  bein'  a  man  o'  peace — 

"Come,  I  can't  wait.      I'll  go  alone,  then." 

He  released  the  man's  arm  and  stepped  into  the  stream. 
Sherebiah  hesitated  for  a  moment;  then,  seeing  that  Harry 
was  in  earnest,  he  dropped  his  tackle  and  strode  forward, 
saying- : 

"  Zooks,  not  if  I  knows  it!  I'm  a  man  o'  peace,  sure 
enough,  but  fairplay's  a  jewel.  Have  at  the  villains!" 

He  followed  Harry  into  the  water.  Side  by  side  they 
raced  on,  dodging  the  weeds,  scrambling  over  occasional 
rocks,  slipping  on  the  chalky  bottom,  making  at  top  speed 
for  the  bridge.  As  they  approached  this  they  went  more 
slowly,  to  avoid  being  heard.  Fortunately,  at  the  point 
where  the  road  crossed  the  stream  there  was  a  line  of 
rocks,  over  which  the  water  plunged  with  a  rustle  and 
clatter,  drowning-  the  sound  of  their  footsteps.  They  had 
to  stoop  low  to  avoid  the  moss-grown  masonry  of  the 
arch;  as  they  emerged  on  the  farther  side  they  heard  a 

29 


Behind  the  Scenes 

muffled  exclamation  from  one  of  the  horsemen,  and  climb- 
ing- the  steep  face  of  the  tree-covered  slope  towards  the 
wall  they  heard  a  shot,  then  another,  mingled  with  shouts 
and  the  dull  thuds  of  horses'  hoofs  on  the  turf-covered 
road. 

On  the  way  Harry  had  explained  his  plan  in  panting 
whispers.  Running  along-  now  under  cover  of  the  wall, 
they  came  opposite  to  the  scene  of  the  ambush. 

"Now,  Sherry,  do  your  best,"  said  Harry,  as  he  pre- 
pared to  mount  the  wall. 

Instantly  a  new  clamour  was  added  to  the  uproar  in  the 
road. 

"This  way!" 

"Shoot  'em!" 

"  Lash  the  noddy  peaks!" 

"Pinch  their  thropples!" 

"Quoit  'em  down!" 

"Haick!  haick!" 

By  this  time  Harry  was  on  the  wall,  by  favour  of  Shere- 
biah's  strong  arm.  A  slug-  whizzed  past  his  head  and 
sank  with  a  thud  into  the  trunk  of  a  tree  just  behind ; 
next  moment  the  horse-pistol  from  which  it  had  been 
discharged  followed  the  shot,  the  butt  grazing  Harry's 
brow.  There  was  no  time  to  take  in  the  details  of  the 
scene.  Harry  made  a  spring  for  the  masked  horseman 
who  had  fired  at  him,  two  yards  from  the  wall;  but  the 
fellow,  alarmed  by  the  various  shouts  and  the  sudden 
appearance  of  Sherebiah  at  Harry's  side,  dug  the  spurs 
into  his  steed's  flanks  and  galloped  off  down  the  road, 
over  the  bridge,  and  out  of  sight.  One  of  his  companions 
lay  motionless  on  the  road;  the  others  had  ridden  away 
at  the  first  alarm  from  the  wall. 

Harry  mopped  his  brow  and  looked  about  him.  Lord 
Godolphin  stood  upright  in  the  carriage,  his  lips  grimly 
set,  a  smoking  pistol  in  his  hand.  His  son  was  on 
foot  with  drawn  sword;  a  postilion  was  crawling  out  of 
the  ditch  all  bemired,  pale  and  trembling. 

"Odzooks!"  cried  my  lord,  "a  welcome  diversion!" 

30 


Harry  makes  a   Diversion 


Nos  Duo 

He  was  perfectly  cool  and  collected,  though  his  hat  was 
off  and  his  wig  awry.  "A  thousand  thanks,  my  men. 
Whew!  'twas  in  the  nick  of  time.  Where  are  the  rest 
of  you?" 

"There  are  no  more,  my  lord,"  said  Harry,  lifting  his 
cap. 

"No  more!  But  the  shouts,  then? — I  heard  a  dozen 
shouting,  at  least.  Are  the  rest  on  the  other  side  of  the 
wall?" 

"All  on  this  side,  my  lord,"  said  Harry  with  a  smile. 
"  Here  is  the  mob." 

He  indicated  Sherebiah,  who  touched  his  cap  and  bobbed 
to  his  lordship. 

Godolphin  stared,  then  chuckled  and  guffawed. 

"  Egad!  'tis  a  rare  flam.  Frank,  this  fellow  here  did  it 
all,  shouted  for  a  dozen;  by  George,  'twas  a  mighty  neat 
trick !  And,  by  George,  I  know  your  face ;  I  saw  you  yes- 
terday, I  believe!  What's  your  name,  man?" 

"Sherebiah  Stand-up-and-bless  Minshull,  my  lord,"  said 
Sherry,  "by  the  water  o'  baptism,  your  honour,  for  I  was 
born  while  old  Rowley  were  in  furren  parts.  If  a'd  been 
born  two  year  arter,  my  lord,  I  med  ha'  been  chrisomed 
wi'  less  piety." 

"  I  remember  you,  and  the  old  gaffer  your  father — a 
fine  old  fellow.  Well,  my  man,  your  name  suits  me 
better;  'tis  for  us  to  stand  up  and  bless,  eh,  Frank?  And 
here's  a  guinea  for  you." 

Sherebiah  put  his  hands  behind  him  and  looked  down  at 
the  coin  in  my  lord's  hand. 

"  Nay,  nay,  my  lord,"  he  said  slowly.  "True,  I  did  the 
shouten,  or  most  on't,  but  'twas  Master  Harry  his  notion. 
Pa'son's  son,  you  see,  my  lord;  know'd  all  the  holy  story 
o'  Gideon;  says  to  me,  '  Sherry,'  says  he,  '  shout  high  and 
low,  bass  and  tribble,  give  it  tongue,'  says  he;  and  I  gi'd 
it  tongue,  so  I  did." 

Both  gentlemen  laughed  heartily. 

"  I  recognize  you  now,"  said  my  lord,  turning  to  Harry, 
who  looked  somewhat  embarrassed.  "  Surely  you  are  the 


Promises 

hero  of  yesterday's  cricket  match?  You  swing-  a  straight 
bat,  my  lad,  and,  stap  me !  you've  a  quick  wit  if  you 
devised  this  late  surprise.  How  came  you  on  the  scene?" 

"  We'd  been  fishing  yonder,  my  lord,  and  I  chanced  to 
spy  your  carriage  and  the  villains  waiting  here,  almost  at 
the  same  time.  It  was  clear  what  they  were  about,  and  as 
there  was  no  time  to  warn  you  we  came  along  the  stream, 
and — Sherry  shouted." 

His  smile  as  he  said  the  last  words  met  an  answering 
smile  on  Lord  Godolphin's  face. 

"A  mighty  clever  trick  indeed — eh,  Frank?  We're 
beholden  to  you.  'Twas  a  mere  chance  that  I  sent  my 
mounted  escort  on  ahead  by  the  highway  to  arrange  a 
change  of  horses,  never  thinking  to  be  waylaid  at  this 
time  o'  day." 

"Ay,  'twas  the  Queen's  purse,  my  lord,"  struck  in  Shere- 
biah.  "To  know  Queen's  purse-bearer  were  a-comen 
along  old  road  like  a  common  mortal,  'twere  too  much  for 
poor  weak  flesh  and  blood." 

"The  ignorant  bumpkins  mistook  your  meaning,"  said 
Frank. 

"So  it  appears.  But  come,  you're  the  parson's  son,  I 
believe.  I  forget  your  name?" 

"  Harry  Rochester,  my  lord." 

"  Going  to  be  a  parson  yourself,  eh?" 

"I  am  going  up  to  Oxford  in  October,  my  lord;  my 
father  wishes  me  to  take  orders." 

"Ah!     And  your  own  wish,  eh?" 

Harry  hesitated. 

"  Come,  out  with  it,  my  lad." 

"  I  had  thought,  my  lord,  I  should  like  to  carry  the 
Queen's  colours;  but  'tis  a  vain  thought;  my  father's  living 
is  small,  and " 

"And  commissions  in  the  Queen's  army  sell  high.  'Tis 
so,  indeed.  Well,  I  heard  something  of  your  father  last 
night  at  Sir  Godfrey's ;  you  can't  do  better  than  follow  his 
example.  And  hark  'ee,  if  ever  you  want  a  friend,  when 
you've  taken  your  degrees,  you  know,  come  and  see  me; 

32 


Black  John  Simmons 

I  owe  you  a  good  turn,  my  lad;   and  maybe  I'll  have  a 
country  vicarage  at  my  disposal." 

"Thank  you,  my  lord!" 

"And  now  we  must  get  on.  Dickory,  you  coward, 
help  these  two  friends  of  ours  to  remove  that  tree.  The 
villains  laid  their  ambush  well;  you  see  they  felled  this 
larch  at  an  awkward  part  of  the  road." 

"And  I  thowt  'twas  Simon  forester  a-choppen,"  said 
Sherebiah,  as  he  walked  towards  the  tree. 

"What  shall  we  do  with  this  ruffian  on  the  road?" 
said  Frank  Godolphin.  "  He  appears  to  be  stone  dead. 
'Twas  a  good  shot,  sir." 

"  Leave  the  villain.  You'll  lay  an  information  before 
Sir  Godfrey  or  another  of  your  magistrates,  young  master 
parson.  Did  you  recognize  any  of  the  gang?" 

"No,  my  lord.  I  only  saw  the  masked  man.  Perhaps 
Sherry  was  more  fortunate." 

"Not  me  neither,"  said  Sherebiah  hastily.  He  had 
gone  to  the  fallen  man,  looked  in  his  face,  and  turned 
him  over.  "'Twas  all  too  quick  and  sudden,  and  my 
eyes  was  nigh  dazed  wi'  shouten." 

"  Well,  well,  Sir  Godfrey's  is  near  at  hand;  go  and 
inform  him,  and  he  will  scour  the  country.  We  must 
push  on." 

The  tree  was  removed;  the  bedraggled  and  crestfallen 
postilions  resumed  their  saddles,  and  with  a  parting  salu- 
tation my  lord  drove  off.  Harry  stood  looking  thoughtfully 
after  the  departing  carriage. 

"  Master  Harry,"  said  Sherebiah,  coming  up  to  him, 
"this  be  a  bad  business.  The  man  bean't  dead." 

"  He's  saved  for  the  hangman,  then." 

"  Ay,  and  who  med  'ee  think  he  be?" 

"You  do  know  him,  then!  What  does  this  mean, 
Sherry?" 

"Well,  I  be  a  man  o'  peace,  and  there's  mischief  to 
come  o'  this  day's  piece  o'  work,  sure  as  I'm  Sherebiah 
Stand-up-and-bless.  'Tis  black  John  Simmons,  Cap'n 
Aglionby's  man." 

33 


Sherebiah  is  Troubled 

"A  scoundrel  his  master  may  well  be  rid  of." 

"Ay,  if  the  man  were  dead!     But  he  be  alive;  the  lord 

didn't  shoot 'n  at  all;  'a  fell  off  his  horse  and  bashed  his 

nob;  an'  he's  got  a  tongue,  Master  Harry." 

"Well,   what  then?     If  he  rounds  on   his   fellows,   so 

much  the  better.     What  are  you  afraid  of,  Sherry?" 

"  I  bean't  afeard,  not  I ;  but  the  Cap'n " 

He    paused,    and    Harry    looked    at    him    enquiringly. 

Sherebiah  turned  away. 

"Ah!  little  sticks  kindle  fires,  little  sticks  kindle  fires, 

they  do." 


34 


CHAPTER   III 

Master  and  Man 

THE  clock  of  St.  Mary's  church  had  just  chimed  the  first 
quarter  after  midnight,  and  the  deep  note  of  the  lowest 
bell  was  dying  away  over  the  tree -tops,  when  the 
sound  was  intercepted  by  the  distant  clink  and  clatter 
of  iron-shod  hoofs  on  the  hard  road,  approaching  from 
the  direction  of  Salisbury.  The  horse's  pace  was  slow, 
and  there  was  something  in  the  fall  of  the  hoofs  that 
betokened  a  jaded  steed.  It  was  a  clear  calm  night; 
the  air  carried  every  sound  distinctly;  and  nothing  broke 
the  stillness  save  the  footfalls  of  the  horse,  an  occasional 
murmur  from  the  birds  in  the  trees,  and  the  whirr  of 
wings  as  a  solitary  owl,  disturbed  by  the  nocturnal  rider, 
left  its  search  for  food  and  rustled  back  to  its  nook  in 
the  tower. 

The  horseman  came  presently  to  the  church,  wheeled 
round  to  the  right,  and  urged  his  flagging  beast  along 
the  road  leading  to  the  manor  house.  Arriving  at  the 
park,  he  flung  himself  from  the  saddle,  hitched  the  bridle 
over  his  left  arm,  and  turned  the  handle  of  the  massive 
iron  gate.  But  there  was  no  yielding  to  his  push:  the 
gate  was  locked.  The  man  shook  and  rattled  the  handle 
impatiently,  to  assure  himself  that  he  was  not  mistaken, 
then  turned  aside  with  an  inarticulate  rumble  of  anger, 
and  went  to  the  lodge,  a  low  ivy-grown  cottage  abutting 
on  the  road.  He  tapped  on  the  small  latticed  window 
with  the  butt  of  his  riding-whip ;  there  was  no  reply.  The 
horse  by  his  side  hung  its  head  and  breathed  heavily;  it 
was  jaded  to  the  point  of  exhaustion.  Again  he  rapped 
on  the  glass,  growling  between  his  teeth;  and  when  his 

35 


A   Midnight  Summons 

summons  still  met  with  no  response  he  dealt  so  smart 
a  blow  that  one  of  the  thick  square  panes  fell  in  with  a 
crash.  A  moment  later  a  voice  was  heard  from  within. 

"Away  wi'  'ee!  Who  be  you,  a-breaken  an  honest 
man's  rest  at  this  fearsome  time  o'  night?" 

A  night-capped  head  appeared  at  the  hole,  just  visible 
in  the  faint  illumination  of  the  clear  summer  sky. 

"Open  the  gate,  Dick,"  said  the  rider  impatiently. 
"  Ods  my  life,  will  you  keep  me  waiting  here,  will  you?" 

"  Be  it  you,  Cap'n?" 

"  Zounds,  man,  must  I  tell  you  my  name?  Ha'  ye 
never  seen  me  before !  Stir  your  old  stumps,  or  by  the 
lord  Harry " 

"Squire  give  orders  t'  gate  were  to  be  locked  and 
kep'  locked;  not  a  man  to  come  in,  not  a  soul.  They's 
my  orders,  ay  sure,  Cap'n." 

"Orders!  orders!"  cried  the  other  in  a  burst  of  passion. 
"  Adslidikins,  if  you're  not  at  the  gate  with  the  key 
inside  of  two  minutes  I'll  put  a  slug  through  your  jolt 
head,  you  mumper,  you  miching  rogue  you!" 

And  indeed  Captain  Aglionby  displayed  a  monstrous 
blunderbuss,  and  pointed  it  full  in  the  face  of  the  scared 
lodge-keeper.  For  an  instant  the  man  hesitated;  then, 
muttering  to  himself,  he  disappeared  from  the  window, 
and  soon  afterwards  emerged  from  the  side  door  within 
the  palings,  his  night-gown  showing  beneath  a  heavy 
driving  coat.  He  came  towards  the  gate  with  the  key 
— a  bent  old  man,  tottering  and  mumbling. 

"I  shall  lose  my  place;  Squire  give  orders,  a'  did,  not 
a  soul  to  come  in ;  to  drag  a  aged  man  from  his  nat'ral 
sleep  an'  lose  him  his  place  an'  all ;  well,  I  was  forced ; 
no  man  can  zay  as  I  warn't  forced;  mumper  as  I  be,  I 
vallies  my  little  bit  o'  life,  and " 

"  Hold  your  tongue,  you  old  flap-eared  dotard,  and 
make  haste,  or  I'll  pink  your  soul.  Don't  you  see  the 
jade's  dead-beat;  'tis  time  I  stabled  her." 

The  man  turned  the  key  and  slowly  opened  the  gate. 
With  a  grunt  the  captain  led  his  horse  through,  and,  with- 

36 


A  Warm   Reception 

out  so  much  as  a  glance  at  the  lodge-keeper,  proceeded 
up  the  quarter-mile  drive  leading  to  the  house. 

"Old  Nick's  not  abed,"  he  said  to  himself  as  he  cast 
his  eye  over  the  house  front.  A  light  shone  from  a 
window  in  the  turret  over  the  porch.  "The  old  night- 
bird!  Lock  me  out!  Oons!" 

He  threw  the  bridle  over  an  iron  post  at  the  side  of 
the  entrance,  and  walked  round  a  projecting  wing  of  the 
building  till  he  came  to  a  small  door  in  the  wall.  He 
turned  the  iron  ring,  pushed,  rattled;  the  door  was  fast 
shut.  Cursing  under  his  breath,  he  was  proceeding 
towards  the  servants'  quarters  when  he  heard  the  creak 
of  a  key  turning,  and,  wheeling  round,  came  to  the  postern 
just  as  it  was  opened  by  Squire  Berkeley  himself,  his  tall, 
lean,  bent  figure  enwrapped  from  neck  to  heel  in  a  black 
cassock-like  garment,  a  skull-cap  of  black  velvet  covering 
his  head.  He  held  a  lighted  candle;  his  piercing  eyes 
flashed  in  the  darkness. 

"Hey,  Squire!"  cried  the  captain  in  a  tone  of  forced 
good-humour,  "  I  had  much  ado  to  rouse  old  Dick.  'Tis 
late  to  be  sure ;  but  if  you'll  give  me  the  key  of  the  stables 
I'll  settle  Jenny  for  the  night  and  get  to  bed." 

He  made  as  if  to  enter,  but  Mr.  Berkeley  spread  himself 
across  the  narrow  doorway. 

"Who  are  you,  sirrah,"  he  said,  "to  break  into  my 
park  against  my  express  orders?" 

There  was  contempt  in  his  cold  incisive  tones,  and 
anger  with  difficulty  curbed. 

"Why  now "  Aglionby  began. 

"  Who  are  you,  I  say?  And  what  am  I,  that  my  orders 
are  defied,  and  my  house  made  a  common  inn,  a  toping 
house  for  you  and  your  toss -pot  ruffians?  Go — go,  I 
say!" 

The  captain  was  for  a  moment  staggered ;  the  old  man's 
manner  left  no  room  for  doubt  that  he  was  in  earnest. 
But  Aglionby  was  too  old  a  campaigner  to  cry  off  so 
easily.  In  a  tone  half- conciliatory,  half- aggrieved  he 
said — 

37 


Righteous  Indignation 

"  Fair  and  softly,  Squire !  this  is  but  scurvy  treatment 
of  a  tired  man.  Look  you,  I've  been  in  the  saddle  this 
livelong"  day ;  the  mare's  well-nigh  foundered ;  and  for 
myself — gads  so,  I  could  eat  an  ox  and  drink  a  hogs- 
head. To-morrow,  in  a  few  hours,  I'll  bid  ye  good-bye — 
for  a  time,  if  ye  want  a  change ;  but  to-night — no,  Squire, 
'tis  not  hospitable  of  you,  'tis  not  indeed." 

"You  dally  with  me!"  cried  the  squire,  the  hand  that 
held  the  candle  shaking  with  passion.  "You  set  no  foot 
within  this  door — now,  nor  ever  again.  Begone,  while 
there  is  time." 

"While  there  is  time!  Look  ye,  Master  Berkeley,  I 
will  not  brook  insults  from  you.  Yesterday  you  must 
put  an  affront  on  me  in  the  presence  of  my  lord  Godolphin, 
shoving  me  out  of  the  way  as  I  were  a  leper,  and  at  the 
very  moment,  stap  me!  when  I  might  ha'  paid  court  to 
his  lordship,  and  got  the  chance  o'  my  life.  Adsbud,  I 
was  not  good  enough  to  approach  my  lord,  to  accost  him, 
have  speech  with  him " 

"An  omission  you  have  since  repaired,"  interjected  the 
old  man  with  a  meaning  look.  The  captain  started,  and 
there  was  a  perceptible  interval  before  he  resumed,  in  a 
tone  still  more  blusterous — 

"Ods  my  life,  what  mean  you  now?  You  took  care  I 
should  not  meet  my  lord  in  your  company;  and,  i'  faith,  he 
showed  he  wanted  none  of  that  neither." 

"Hold  your  peace  and  begone!"  cried  the  squire  in  a 
fury.  "You  think  I  know  nothing  of  your  villainies? 
How  many  times  have  I  harboured  you — ay,  saved  you 
perchance  from  the  gallows !  How  many  times  have 
you  eat  my  food,  rid  my  horses,  browbeat  my  servants, 
roistered  it  in  my  house,  till  I  could  bear  with  you  no 
longer,  and  then  betaken  yourself  to  your  evil  practices 
abroad,  consorted  with  villains,  run  your  neck  well-nigh 
into  the  hangman's  noose,  and  then  come  back  with  con- 
trite face  and  vows  of  amendment,  to  fawn  and  bluster 
and  bully  again  ?  Out  upon  you !  Your  rapscallion  of 
a  servant  is  even  now  laid  by  the  heels,  and  to-morrow 

38 


Aglionby   Retorts 


will  have  to  answer  to  the  charge  of  waylaying  the  Lord 
Treasurer.  He's  a  white-livered  oaf,  and  his  tongue  will 
wag,  and  you'll  companion  him  before  Fanshawe,  and 
you'll  swing  on  the  same  gibbet." 

At  the  mention  of  his  man's  plight  the  captain's  face 
had  fallen ;  but  when  Mr.  Berkeley's  tirade  was  ended  he 
broke  into  a  laugh. 

"  Ha!  ha!  Squire,  now  I  come  to  understand  you.  'Tis 
your  own  skin  you  have  a  care  for!  Ha!  ha!  I  might 
have  known  it.  I  am  to  be  haled  before  Sir  Godfrey, 
am  I  ?  and  to  hold  my  tongue,  am  I  ?  and  to  be  mum 
about  certain  little  affairs  in  the  life  of  Master  Nicolas 
Berkeley— that  paragon  of  virtue,  that  pampered,  patched 
old  interloper,  am  I?  By  the  lord  Harry,  if  I  stand  in 
manacles  before  Sir  Godfrey,  you  shall  bear  me  company, 
you  painted  pasteboard  of  a  saint!" 

Berkeley's  pale  face  blanched  with  fury.  For  a  moment 
he  was  incapable  of  speech.  Then  he  stepped  forward  a 
pace;  the  hand  holding  the  candle  shook  so,  that  the 
grease  sputtered  upon  his  gown.  His  voice  came  in 
vehement  passionate  whispers : 

"You  threaten  me!  Do  your  worst — I  defy  you! — 
Back  to  your  wallow,  bully! — begone!" 

He  suddenly  withdrew  within  the  doorway,  slammed  the 
door,  and  bolted  it. 

"Whew!"  whistled  the  captain,  left  standing  outside. 
"'Tis  the  worst  passion  ever  I  saw  him  in.  Defies  me! 
Well,  Master  Nicolas,  would  I  could  afford  to  take  you 
at  your  word!  A  plague  on  Simmons!  I  thought  he 
was  dead.  He'll  split,  sure  enough,  and  there's  an  end  of 
Ralph  Aglionby.  Jenny,  my  dear,  you're  a  sorry  jade,  but 
you'll  have  to  bear  my  carcase  till  we're  out  of  harm's  way. 
We  have  five  or  six  hours  before  the  world's  astir.  Do 
your  best,  my  girl,  and  we'll  cheat  'em  yet." 

Captain  Aglionby  led  his  tired  steed  down  the  drive  to 
the  gate,  roused  Dick  the  lodge-keeper  with  scant  cere- 
mony, and  in  a  few  minutes  was  riding  slowly  towards 
the  village.  As  he  came  into  the  principal  street,  he  was 

(B357)  39  D 


The   Berkeley  Arms 

surprised  to  notice  that  the  only  inn  was  lit  up,  a  most 
unusual  circumstance  at  that  time  of  night.  The  door 
stood  open,  and  there  were  lights  in  several  of  the 
rooms  on  the  ground  floor.  A  feeling  of  apprehension 
seized  upon  him;  he  could  not  but  connect  these  lively 
signs  with  the  events  of  the  morning,  and  especially  with 
the  capture  of  his  man.  Could  the  fellow  have  blabbed 
already?  He  was  just  making  up  his  mind  to  spur  the 
mare  past  the  inn,  over  the  bridge,  on  to  the  London  road, 
when  two  persons  came  to  the  door  and  caught  sight  of 
him.  One  was  Mistress  Joplady,  the  buxom  hostess;  the 
other  William  Nokes,  the  village  constable.  It  was  too 
late  to  evade  them  :  indeed  he  heard  the  hostess  exclaim, 
"Well,  I  never!  'tis  the  Cap'n  hisself,  sure."  Resolving 
like  a  wise  man  to  make  the  best  of  it,  he  rode  up  to  the 
door,  dismounted,  and,  swaggering,  with  his  usual  air  of 
assurance  said : 

"  Egad,  mistress,  I'm  glad  to  find  you  afoot.  My  mare's 
dead-beat,  has  carried  me  nigh  forty  miles  this  day;  send 
Tom  ostler  to  stable  her,  like  a  good  soul ;  and  give  me  a 
bite  and  a  bed.  I  didn't  care  about  disturbing  the  squire 
at  this  time  o'  night." 

The  captain  was  no  favourite  with  good  Mistress  Joplady, 
but  she  received  him  now  with  something  more  than  her 
usual  urbanity. 

"Come  away  in,  Cap'n  Aglionby,"  she  said.  "Sure 
your  name  was  in  our  very  mouths.  Strange  things  be 
doing — ay,  strange  things  in  Winton  Simmary;  bean't  it 
so,  William  Nokes?  Take  the  cap'n  into  the  parlour, 
William;  a  few  souls  be  there,  Cap'n,  not  fit  company  for 
the  likes  o'  you,  to  be  sure,  but  they'll  tell  'ee  summat  as'll 
stir  your  blood,  they  will  so.  Tom'll  see  to  Jenny,  so  be 
easy." 

Captain  Aglionby  followed  the  constable  into  the  parlour, 
where  a  group  of  the  village  worthies  were  assembled. 
They  were  neither  smoking  nor  drinking,  a  sure  sign  that 
they  had  something  momentous  to  talk  about.  A  silence 
fell  upon  the  company  as  the  captain  clanked  into  the 

40 


A   Village   Sensation 

room,  and  one  or  two  of  the  more  active-minded  of  them 
threw  a  quick  glance  at  each  other,  which  the  new-comer 
did  not  fail  to  note. 

"A  fine  night,  men,"  said  the  captain  jovially. 

"Ay,  'tis  so." 

"  And  a  late  hour  to  find  the  Berkeley  Arms  open." 

"Ay,  'tis  latish,  sure  enough." 

"Any  news  from  the  army  in  Flanders?  A  post  from 
London,  eh?" 

"  Nay,  not  'zackly  that." 

"Odzooks!  speak  up,  men,"  cried  the  captain  im- 
patiently. "Why  are  they  all  mumble-chopped  to-night, 
mistress?"  he  asked,  turning  to  the  hostess,  who  had 
followed  him  with  bread  and  cheese  and  beer. 

"Ah,  they  be  pondering  strange  things,"  returned  Mrs. 
Joplady.  "Tell  the  cap'n  all  the  long  story,  William 
Nokes." 

The  constable,  fingering  the  hat  in  his  hand,  looked  for 
sympathy  into  the  stolid  faces  of  his  fellows,  cleared  his 
throat,  and  began : 

"Cap'n,  your  sarvant.  Eight  o'clock  this  mornin',  or 
mebbe  nine — 'twixt  eight  and  nine,  if  the  truth  was  told — 
comes  Long  Tom  from  the  Grange,  Sir  Godfrey's  man,  as 
ye  med  know,  Cap'n.  Says  he  to  me,  '  Constable,'  says  he, 
'  Sir  Godfrey  commands  'ee  as  a  justice  o'  the  peace  to 
bring  your  staff  and  irons  and  other  engines,'  says  he, 
'  up  along  to  Grange,  wi'out  remorse  or  delay,  and  arrest  a 
prisoner  in  the  Queen's  name.'  You  may  think  what  a  turn 
it  gi'  me,  souls,  so  early  in  the  mornin'.  'Be  he  voilent?' 
says  I.  'Can  I  arrest  the  villain  all  alone  by  myself?' 
'  Ay  sure,'  says  he ;  '  there's  no  knowin'  what  a  tough  job 
'twould  be  an  he  were  sound  and  hearty,  but  he's  dazed,  so 
he  be,  wi'  a  crack  in  the  nob,  and  won't  give  no  trouble  to 
no  mortal  constable,  not  a  bit,'  says  he.  '  A  crack  in  the 
nob,'  says  he;  didn't  he,  souls?" 

A  murmur  of  assent  came  from  the  group. 

"So  I  ups  and  goos  wi'  Long  Tom  hotfoot  to  the 
Grange,  and  Tom  he  tells  me  by  the  way  the  longs  and 

4* 


The  Constable's  Story 

shorts  on't.  Seems  'twas  Sherry  Minshull  as  cracked 
his  nob,  leastways  he  picked  un  up,  he  and  young- 
master  pa'son  betwixt  'em,  an'  hoisted  him  on  a  cart  o' 
Farmer  Leake's,  an'  so  carried  un  to  Grange  and  laid  un 
afore  Sir  Godfrey.  'Twas  highway  robbery,  Cap'n,  a-took 
in  the  very  act,  a-stoppen  the  carriage  o'  the  high  lard  as 
come  this  way  yesterday,  or  day  afore,  as  'ee  med  say, 
seein'  'tis  mornin'  now  by  the  rights  on't.  And  Sir  Godfrey 
commits  un,  he  do,  dazed  as  he  were  wi'  the  crack  in  the 
nob,  and  hands  un  over  to  the  law,  and  says,  '  Constable,' 
says  he,  '  keep  the  knave  fast  in  the  lock-up,  an'  hold  un 
till  I  gets  word  from  my  Lard  Godolphin  in  Lun'on.' 
They  be  his  words,  Cap'n." 

"Well,  well,  cut  your  story  short,  man.  Adsheart, 
ye've  more  words  than  matter." 

"Ay,  but  wait  to  th'  end,  wait  to  th'  end,"  put  in  a 
voice. 

"The  end  of  a  rope  'twill  be,  and  not  for  one  neither," 
added  another. 

The  constable  looked  a  little  uncomfortable. 

"  So  I  had  un  fast  in  the  lock-up,  Cap'n,"  he  went  on, 
"and  'twas  the  talk  o'  the  village  all  day  long.  Squire 
himself  heard  on't,  and  down  he  come,  so  he  do,  and 
bein'  hisself  a  justice  o'  the  peace  he  goos  into  the 
lock-up  and  zees  the  man,  and  axes  un  questions,  not 
for  my  ears,  me  bein'  a  constable;  nay,  I  stood  guard 
at  the  door;  and  when  Squire  coom  out  he  says  to  me, 
'Constable,'  says  he,  'keep  a  good  guard  on  un;  he 
deserves  hangen,  ay,  and  his  mates  too.'  Never  seed  I 
Squire  so  mad-like;  'twas  'cos  it  was  a  lard,  maybe,  and 
on  his  own  ground,  as  'ee  med  say." 

"  Ay,  and  nearer  nor  that,"  said  a  voice. 

The  captain  put  down  the  tankard  from  which  he  was 
quaffing,  and  glared  round  the  faces.  They  were  blank 
as  the  wall  behind  them. 

"And  now  what'll  he  say?"  pursued  the  constable.  "He 
were  mad  afore,  ay  sure;  now  he'll  ramp  and  roar  worse 
nor  the  lion  beast  at  Salisbury  Fair.  Ye  med  not  believe 

42 


Aspersions 


it,  Cap'n,  but  'tis  true  for  all  that;  the  godless  villain  ha' 
dared  Squire  an'  Sir  Godfrey  an'  me  an'  all;  ha'  broke  his 
bonds  an'  stole  away,  like  a  thief  i'  the  night,  as  the  Book 
says." 

"What!"  cried  the  captain,  leaning  forward  and  thump- 
ing the  table.  "  Escaped,  has  he?" 

"  A'  has  so,  like  a  eel  off  the  hook." 

"Ha!  ha!  Stap  me!  eels  are  slippery  things.  But 
'tis  a  rub  for  you,  master  constable.  You'll  lose  your 
place,  i'  faith,  you  will." 

"Why  now,  it  be  no  sin  o'  mine.  I  left  un  snug  in 
lock-up,  I  did,  door  double-locked  and  bar  up,  an'  went 
to  take  my  forty  winks  like  a  honest  poor  man ;  an'  no 
sooner  my  back  turned  than  out  skips  the  pris'ner,  like 
Simon  Peter  in  the  story.  There  be  witchcraft  in't,  an' 
that  'ee  ought  to  know,  Cap'n,  seein'  as  the  villain  be 
your  own  sarvant." 

"Eh,  fellow?" 

"  Sakes  alive,  I  thowt  as  'ee  knowed  that  all  the  time! 
Sure  'twas  John  Simmons,  your  honour's  own  body-slave, 
so  to  speak.  An'  I  was  main  glad  to  see  'ee,  Cap'n,  'cause 
now  'ee  know  un  for  what  he  is,  'ee'll  help  me  to  cotch 
un,  in  the  Queen's  name." 

"  Knows  where  he  be,  I'll  be  bound,"  said  one  of  the 
group  in  a  low  tone.  The  captain  sprang  from  his  chair, 
ran  round  the  table,  and,  before  the  speaker  could  defend 
himself,  he  caught  him  by  the  throat  and  hurled  him  to 
the  floor. 

"Zounds,  loon!"  he  cried  in  a  passion,  "what  do  you 
mean?  Will  you  affront  me,  eh?  will  you  mouth  your 
cursed  insults  to  my  very  face?  Odzooks,  I'll  slit  your 
weazand,  hound,  and  any  man  of  you  that  dares  a  hint 
o'  the  sort,  so  'ware  all ! " 

The  men  looked  abashed  and  uncomfortable;  the  hos- 
tess was  pale  with  apprehension,  and  the  constable  edged 
away  from  the  irate  captain.  His  burst  of  passion 
over,  he  turned  to  Mrs.  Joplady  and  spoke  in  quieter 
tones. 

43 


Unimpeachable  References 

"  I  brook  no  insolence,  mistress.  I  don't  answer  for 
my  servant's  deeds  behind  my  back.  I've  been  away  all 
day,  as  poor  Jenny  will  bear  me  witness ;  was  I  to  know 
my  fool  of  a  servant  would  play  highwayman  in  my 
absence?  'Tis  a  useful  fellow,  civil,  too,  beyond  most; 
I  picked  him  up  in  London;  he  was  in  truth  commended 
to  me  by  no  less  than  his  grace  the  Duke  of  Ormond, 
who  tapped  me  on  the  shoulder  in  the  Piazza  at  Covent 
Garden,  and  said,  '  Aglionby,  my  bawcock,  you  want  a 
servant;  I  know  the  very  man  for  you!'  Could  I  suspect 
a  man  after  that?  How  he  got  mixed  up  in  this  business 
beats  me.  And  as  for  helping  master  constable  to  repair 
his  carelessness — adsbud,  'tis  not  likely.  The  man  in 
truth  is  no  longer  servant  of  mine.  I  am  on  my  way 
to  serve  the  Queen  in  Flanders,  and  this  very  day 
arranged  with  my  friend  Sir  Rupert  Verney  to  take  the 
fellow  off  my  hands.  You  may  hang  him,  for  me!" 

"There  now,  Sam,"  said  the  hostess,  turning  to  the 
man  who  had  been  felled,  and  was  now  at  the  door 
glowering;  "your  tongue  runs  away  wi'  'ee.  Beg  the 
cap'n's  pardon,  and  don't  go  for  to  make  a  ninny  o' 
yourself." 

"  Never  mind,  my  good  woman,"  said  Aglionby  loftily. 
"The  yokel  knows  no  better.  Now,  I'm  tired  out;  give 
me  a  bed,  good  soul,  for  I  must  away  at  sunrise — and 
egad,  'tis  past  one  o'clock !  Good-night  to  'ee,  men ;  and 
I  hope  Sir  Godfrey  will  forgive  you,  constable." 

He  went  from  the  room,  and  soon  afterwards  the  hostess 
bade  the  villagers  get  to  their  beds,  and  closed  the  inn  for 
the  short  remnant  of  the  night. 

Before  seven  o'clock  next  morning  the  captain  was  on 
horseback.  The  ground  was  wet;  it  had  been  drizzling 
for  several  hours,  but  a  misty  sun  was  now  struggling 
up  the  sky,  and  Tom  ostler  foretold  a  fine  day.  The 
captain  rode  off,  answering  with  a  bold  stare  the  sus- 
picious and  lowering  glances  of  the  few  villagers  who 
were  on  the  spot.  He  was  in  high  spirits;  the  anxieties 
of  the  past  night  were  gone ;  and  as  he  rode  he  hummed 

44 


Waylaid 


a  careless  tune.  He  had  ridden  but  little  more  than  a 
mile  when,  from  an  intersecting  lane,  a  man  stepped  out 
and  gripped  the  horse's  reins. 

"  Get  off  that  there  horse!"  he  said  bluntly. 

"Gads  so,  Sherry,  you  gave  me  quite  a  turn,"  said  the 
captain  with  unusual  mildness.  "Don't  hinder  me,  man; 
I'm  off  to  Flanders,  and,  i'  faith,  that's  where  you  ought  to 
be  yourself,  if  all  was  known.  Come,  what's  the  meaning 
o't?" 

"Get  off  that  there  horse!"  repeated  Sherebiah.  "  I'm 
a  man  o'  peace,  I  be,  and  I  settles  all  scores  prompt." 

There  was  a  look  of  determination  in  his  eyes,  and  in  his 
right  hand  he  grasped  a  knobby  cudgel. 

"Right!  but  we've  no  accounts  to  settle. — What!"  he 
cried,  as  he  saw  Sherebiah's  cudgel  raised,  "you  play  the 
bully,  eh?  Gadzooks,  I'll  ferk  ye  if " 

He  was  drawing  his  sword,  but  the  cudgel  fell  with  a 
resounding  whack  upon  his  knuckles,  and  with  a  cry  of 
pain  he  scrambled  to  the  ground  and  stood,  a  picture  of 
sullen  rage,  before  his  intercepter. 

"  I'll  thank  'ee  for  your  pistols,"  said  Sherebiah,  remov- 
ing them  from  the  holsters  as  he  spoke.  "  Nay,  don't 
finger  your  sword;  I  be  a  man  o'  peace,  and  you  know 
my  play  with  the  quarterstaff.  Jenny,  old  girl,  crop  your 
fill  by  the  roadside  while  I  have  a  reckonen  wi'  Cap'n  Ag- 
lionby."  He  laid  a  curious  stress  upon  the  title.  "  Now, 
Ralph,  you  be  comen  wi'  me  into  wood  yonder.  'Tis  there 
we'll  settle  our  score." 

Seizing  the  captain  with  his  left  hand,  he  led  him  down 
the  lane,  through  a  gap  in  the  hedge,  into  a  thin  copse 
of  larches,  until  he  came  to  a  narrow  glade.  Aglionby 
assumed  an  air  of  jocular  resignation;  but  that  he  was 
ill  at  ease  was  proved  by  the  restless  glances  he  gave 
Sherebiah  out  of  the  corner  of  his  eye. 

"Off  wi'  your  coat!"  said  Sherebiah,  having  reached 
the  centre  of  the  glade.  "Off  wi't!  I  be  gwine  to 
pound  'ee;  you  can  defend  yourself,  but  you'm  gwine  to 
be  pounded  whether  or  no." 

45 


Squaring  Accounts 


"Confound  you,  man,  what  have  I  done  to  you?  Why 
the— 

"Off  wi't,  off"  wi't!  Least  said  soonest  mended.  Great 
barkers  be  no  biters,  so  it  do  seem ;  doff  your  coat,  Cap'n 
Aglionby !" 

"Well,  if  you  will!"  cried  the  captain,  with  a  burst  of 
passion.  "  I'll  comb  your  noddle,  I'll  trounce  you,  for  an 
insolent  canting  runagate  booby!" 

He  flung  his  coat  on  the  wet  grass ;  Sherebiah  laid  down 
the  cudgel  and  followed  his  example. 

"Come  on,  Cap'n  Aglionby!"  he  said.  "  Tis  not,  as 
'ee  med  say,  a  job  to  my  liken,  trouncen  a  big  grown 
man  like  you ;  but  't  ha'  got  to  be  done,  for  your  good  and 
my  own  peace  o'  mind.  So  the  sooner  'tis  over  the  better." 

To  a  casual  onlooker  the  two  would  have  seemed  very 
unequally  matched.  The  captain  stood  at  least  a  head 
taller  than  his  opponent,  and  was  broad  in  proportion. 
But  he  was  puffy  and  bloated ;  Sherebiah,  on  the  other 
hand,  though  thick-set,  was  hard  and  agile. 

As  if  anxious  to  finish  an  uncongenial  task  with  the  least 
delay,  he  forced  matters  from  the  start.  The  captain  had 
no  lack  of  bull-dog  courage,  and  he  still  possessed  the 
remnant  of  great  physical  strength.  To  an  ordinary 
opponent  he  would  have  proved  even  yet  no  mean  antago- 
nist; and  when,  after  a  few  sharp  exchanges,  Sherebiah's 
punishing  strokes  roused  him  to  fury,  he  rained  upon  the 
smaller  man  a  storm  of  blows  any  one  of  which,  had  it  got 
home,  might  have  felled  an  ox.  But  Sherebiah  parried 
with  easy  skill,  and  continued  to  use  his  fists  with  mathe- 
matical precision.  Once  or  twice  he  allowed  the  captain, 
now  panting  and  puffing,  to  regain  his  wind,  and  when 
the  burly  warrior  showed  a  disposition  to  lengthen  the 
interval  he  brought  him  back  to  the  business  in  hand  with 
a  cheery  summons. 

"Now,  Cap'n  Aglionby,"  he  would  say,  "let's  to  't 
again.  Come,  man,  'twill  soon  be  over!" 

At  last,  beside  himself  with  rage,  the  captain  attempted 
to  close  with  and  throw  his  opponent.  He  could  scarcely 

46 


The  Captain   Rides  Away 

have  made  a  more  unfortunate  move.  For  a  few  moments 
the  two  men  swung  and  swayed ;  then  Aglionby  described 
a  semicircle  over  Sherebiah's  shoulder,  and  fell  with  a 
resounding  thud  to  the  ground.  Neither  combatant  was 
aware  that  for  some  time  a  spectator  had  been  silently 
watching  them.  Harry  Rochester,  coming  whistling 
through  the  trees,  had  halted  in  surprise,  at  the  edge 
of  the  glade,  as  his  eyes  took  in  the  scene. 

"There  now,  'tis  over  and  done,"  said  Sherebiah,  stoop- 
ing to  pick  up  his  coat.  "That  score's  wiped  off.  Stand 
on  your  feet,  man!  And  I'll  trouble  'ee  for  your  sword." 

The  captain  staggered  to  his  feet.  He  was  in  no  condi- 
tion to  refuse  the  victor's  demand. 

Sherebiah  took  the  weapon  and  broke  it  across  his  knee. 
From  his  own  pocket  he  then  took  the  captain's  pistols. 
He  carefully  drew  their  charges,  and  handed  them  back. 

"Now,  hie  'ee  to  Flanders,"  he  said.  "You've  done 
more  fighten  this  mornin'  than  you'll  ever  do  there.  You'll 
find  Jenny  on  the  road." 

The  captain  glared  at  him,  and  seemed  about  to  reply. 
But  he  thought  better  of  it,  and  with  a  vindictive  glare 
walked  slowly  away. 

"What's  it  all  about,  Sherry?"  said  Harry,  stepping 
forward  when  Aglionby  had  disappeared. 

"Ah,  that  be  'ee,  sir?  'Twas  only  a  little  small  matter 
o'  difference  'twixt  Cap'n  Aglionby  and  me.  We're  quits 
now." 

"  You'll  have  to  get  Mistress  Joplady  to  give  you  a  raw 
steak  for  your  eye." 

"  Ay  sure,  Cap'n  did  get  in  a  hit  or  two,"  replied  Shere- 
biah placidly. 

"  I  didn't  know  you  were  such  a  fighter." 

Sherebiah  gave  him  a  quick  look  out  of  his  uninjured 
eye. 

"  Nay,  I  bean't  a  fighter,  not  me,"  he  said.  "  I'm  a  man 
o'  peace;  I  be  so." 


47 


CHAPTER   IV 

Mynheer  Jan  Grootz  and  Another 

IT  was  a  dull,  damp  day  towards  the  end  of  November, 
a  little  more  than  four  months  after  Captain  Aglionby's 
unhappy  departure  from  Winton  St.  Mary.  There  was 
again  great  bustle  at  the  Berkeley  Arms;  Mistress  Jop- 
lady's  ample  face  was  red  with  exertion,  and  her  voice, 
when  she  gave  directions  to  her  servants,  was  raised  to 
an  acrimonious  pitch  far  from  usual  with  her.  The  whole 
village  appeared  to  be  gathered  either  within  or  without 
the  inn.  Gaffer  Minshull  was  there,  seated  with  his  back 
to  the  wall  and  leaning  on  his  inseparable  staff.  Lumpy, 
Soapy  Dick,  Long  Robin  the  tanner,  Old  Everlasting  the 
miller,  stood  in  a  group  about  the  door,  talking  to  the 
ostler,  who  stood  guard,  with  arms  akimbo,  over  four 
brimming  pails  of  water  ranged  along  the  wall. 

Soft  Jemmy  was  standing  a  yard  or  two  away,  watch- 
ing with  open  mouth  a  man  who,  straddling  across  a 
step-ladder,  was  smearing  the  ancient  sign -board  with 
daubs  of  black  paint,  obliterating  every  trace  of  the  crude 
heraldic  design  that  had  marked  the  inn's  connection  with 
the  lord  of  the  manor.  When  the  board  was  one  un- 
broken black,  the  painter  descended  the  ladder  with  his 
brush  and  can,  winked  at  Jemmy,  and  went  into  the  inn 
to  "mix  the  flavours",  as  he  said  in  passing.  The  half- 
witted youth  contemplated  his  handiwork  for  some  minutes 
in  mild  surprise ;  then  he  walked  towards  old  Minshull 
and  addressed  him  timorously: 

"Gaffer,  I'm  afeard  my  poor  yead  won't  stand  the 
wonder  on't,  but  it  med  do  me  good  to  know  why  John 
painter  ha'  covered  that  noble  pictur  wi'  the  colour  o' 
sut." 

48 


The   Gaffer  Chops  Logic 

"Why,  boy,  black's  for  sorrow,  as  'ee  med  know  wi'out 
tellen  an  'ee  weren't  so  simple,  and  'tis  a  black  day  for 
Winton  Simmary,  so  'tis." 

"Why  be  it  more  black  to-day  than  'tis  a-Sunday?" 
asked  the  youth.  '-'Tis  Tuesday,  gaffer,  bean't  it?  and 
new  pa'son  didn't  holler  it  in  church  for  a  holy  day." 

"  Boy,  your  poor  yead  won't  stand  high  things,  'tis  true, 
but  'ee  know  young  pa'son  be  off  to  Lun'on  town  to-day, 
an'  that's  why  all  the  souls  be  here,  to  see  the  last  on  un." 

Jemmy  looked  up  again  at  the  defaced  sign-board, 
puzzling  his  poor  brains  to  find  some  connection  between 
it  and  the  departure  of  "young  pa'son". 

"'Tis  a  shame,  gaffer,"  said  Honest  John,  "to  deceive 
the  poor  lad,  when  you  know  the  sign  bean't  painted  out 
for  no  such  thing." 

"Why,  there  now,"  returned  old  Minshull,  "bean't  it 
all  one?  I  axe  'ee  that,  souls.  Young  pa'son  be  a-gwine 
to  Lun'on  'cause  his  poor  feyther's  dead  an'  gone;  Pa'son 
Rochester  be  dead  an'  gone  'cause  o'  the  fight;  an  I 
weren't  afeard  on  un,  I'd  say  the  fight  were  all  along  o' 
Squire;  and  Mis'ess  Joplady  ha'  changed  the  ancient  sign 
of  th'  inn  'cause  her  can't  abear  to  think  on't.  Bean't  that 
gospel  truth,  souls  all?" 

The  group  looked  impressed  with  the  old  man's  logic. 
Mistress  Joplady,  coming  for  a  moment  to  the  door,  had 
overheard  his  concluding  sentences. 

"'Tis  true,"  she  said,  wiping  away  a  tear.  "I  never 
liked  Squire;  nobody  never  did  as  I  ever  heerd  on;  but 
when  pa'son  died  I  couldn't  abear  him.  One  thing  I'm 
thankful  for  from  the  bottom  o'  my  heart,  and  that  is, 
that  my  house  is  college  property,  like  the  church,  and 
I  can  snap  my  vingers  at  Squire,  and  I  do."  She  suited 
the  action  to  the  word.  "  Has  been  the  Berkeley  Arms 
for  a  hunnerd  years,  but  'twill  be  so  no  longer.  When 
paint's  dry,  up  goos  the  yead  o'  Queen  Annie,  bless  her! 
a  poor  soul  as  ha'  lost  all  her  childer,  like  myself,  and 
the  Queen's  Head  it'll  be  for  ever  more." 

"Ay,  things  be  main  different  in  village  now,  sure," 

49 


In  Print 

said  Lumpy.  "To  think  what  mighty  changes  come  in 
a  little  time !  Zeems  only  a  few  days  sin'  young  pa'son 
won  that  noble  match — you  mind,  souls,  the  day  the  lord's 
carriage  broke  under  the  weight  of  the  Queen's  purse — ay, 
the  day  afore  he  were  stopped  in  old  road.  I  never  under- 
stood the  rights  o'  that  bit  o'  work.  Gaffer,  hav  'ee  got 
that  printed  paper  ye  read,  where  the  Lun'on  talk  be  given 
like  the  words  of  a  book?" 

Old  Minshull  slowly  drew  from  his  pocket  a  folded  sheet, 
rather  dirty,  worn  at  the  edges,  and  falling  apart  at  the 
folds.  He  opened  it  out  with  great  care,  and  spread  it 
on  his  knees. 

"That's  he,"  said  Lumpy.  "Gaffer,  you  be  a  scholard; 
read  it  out  loud  to  us  again." 

"Ay,  an'  don't  need  spectacles  neither,"  said  Minshull 
proudly;  "well,  listen,  souls." 

Very  slowly,  and  with  as  much  deliberation  as  though 
he  were  reading  it  for  the  first  instead  of  the  hundredth 
time,  and  moving  his  forefinger  along  the  line,  the  old 
man  began  to  read  the  account  of  the  attempted  robbery 
of  Lord  Godolphin  which  the  Daily  Courant  presented  to 
the  London  public  a  week  after  the  event.  The  names 
of  the  principal  persons  concerned  appeared  with  a  dash 
between  the  initial  and  final  letters,  and  Godolphin's  was 
read  by  Minshull  as  "Lard  G  line  n  ".  After  briefly  re- 
lating the  incident,  the  writer  of  the  paragraph  added : 

"  'Tis  said  the  Prisoner  that  broke  jail  was  a  Servant  of  a 

Captain  A y,  a  Guest  at  that  time  of  Esq.  N s  B y. 

The  gallant  Captain's  Commission  (as  it  is  credibly  reported)  is 
not  under  the  seal  of  her  Gracious  Majestie,  or  King  Will"1  lately 
Deceas'd  of  Noble  Memorie,  but  of  the  Czar  of  Muscovy.  'Tis 
vouch'd  by  some  'twas  none  other  than  the  Great  Cham. 

"Ay,  that's  print,"  said  Soapy  Dick  at  the  conclusion 
of  the  reading.  "The  '  Cap'n  A  line  y'  was  Cap'n 
Aglionby  sure  enough,  an'  some  did  zay  as  how  'twas 
he  let  the  pris'ner  out  o'  lock-up,  and  so  brought  shame 
to  Will'm  Nokes." 


The  London  Coach 

"Ay,  an'  some  did  say  as  how  the  Cap'n  hisself  made 
one  o'  the  cut-purse  rogues  as  waylaid  the  lard,"  said 
Honest  John. 

"Old  wives'  tales,"  said  Minshull.  "My  boy  Sherry 
be  wise  for  his  years,  an'  he  says  Cap'n  couldn't  ha'  let 
prisoner  out,  'cause  a'  were  miles  away  at  the  time.  And 
as  for  Cap'n  bein'  on  the  road — why,  when  Sir  Godfrey 
coom  in  all  the  might  o'  the  law  to  'stablish  the  truth, 
Squire  up  and  said  as  how  Cap'n  was  abed  and  asleep  on 
that  early  mornen  when  the  deed  was  done." 

"  Ay  true,  Squire  said  so;  but  did  a'  take  his  dyin'  oath 
like  a  common  man?  Tell  me  that,  souls." 

At  this  moment  the  conversation  was  interrupted,  and 
the  villagers  were  thrilled  into  excitement  by  the  distant 
tootle  of  a  horn. 

"  Here  be  coach  at  last,"  cried  the  ostler.  "  Ten  minutes 
behind  time,  and  no  sign  of  young  Master  Rochester.  Giles 
coachman  won't  wait,  not  he." 

But  as  the  coach  came  in  sight  at  a  bend  of  the  road, 
two  figures  were  seen  hastening  along  from  the  direction 
of  the  rectory.  One  was  a  tall  youthful  form  clad  in 
black  from  his  low  felt  hat  to  his  buckle  shoes.  His 
steinkirk  was  black,  and  its  fringed  ends  were  tucked 
into  a  black  waistcoat.  Black  were  his  plain  drugget 
coat  and  breeches,  black  also  his  woollen  stockings. 
Nothing  redeemed  the  sable  hue  of  his  garments  save 
his  cambric  shirt,  the  white  front  of  which  was  much 
exposed,  in  the  fashion  of  the  time.  Harry  Rochester's 
face  was  pale,  its  expression  sad. 

His  companion,  a  head  shorter  than  himself,  was  Shere- 
biah  Minshull,  clad  in  the  sober  brown  of  ordinary  country 
wear,  and  trudging  along  steadily  under  the  weight  of 
a  fair-sized  valise.  Winter  or  summer,  his  appearance 
never  varied:  his  firm  round  cheeks  were  always  ruddy, 
his  blue  eyes  always  bright;  and  his  expression,  now  as 
always,  was  that  of  placid  self-content,  well  becoming  "  a 
man  of  peace  ". 

The  two  drew  nearer  to  the  inn,  where  the  group  had 

5' 


Simple  Annals 


by  this  time  been  enlarged  by  the  accession  of  the  greater 
part  of  the  village  population,  women  and  children, 
workers  and  loafers,  mingled  in  one  interested  throng. 
As  Giles  Appleyard  was  at  that  moment  explaining  to 
the  passenger  at  his  side,  he  had  never  seen  such  a  crowd 
at  Winton  St.  Mary  before,  though  he  had  driven  the 
coach,  good  weather  and  bad,  for  fifteen  years  come 
Christmas.  It  reminded  him  of  the  crowd  at  Salisbury 
Fair. 

"  And  seein'  as  how  I've  been  laid  up  wi'  a  bad  leg  for 
two  months,"  he  added,  "I'm  behind  the  times,  I  be; 
news  travels  slow  to  them  as  don't  drive  coaches,  and, 
i'  feck,  I  know  no  more  than  the  dead  what  this  mortal 
big  crowd  do  mean,  i'  feck  I  don't." 

But  many  voices  were  ready  to  tell  him  when,  having 
pulled  up  his  four  steaming  horses  at  the  inn  door,  he 
descended  with  grave  deliberation  from  his  perch,  saluted 
Mistress  Joplady  with  the  gallantry  of  the  road,  and 
entered  her  house  "to  warm  his  nattlens ",  as  he  said, 
with  a  tankard  of  her  home-brewed.  Young  'pa'son  was 
a-gwine  to  Lun'on  town!  It  seemed  a  slight  cause  for  such 
an  unwonted  scene ;  in  reality  it  was  a  momentous  event 
in  the  life  of  Harry  Rochester  and  in  the  history  of  his 
village.  Small  things  bulk  large  in  the  imagination  of 
rustic  folk ;  a  journey  to  London  came  within  the  ex- 
perience of  few  of  them ;  and  the  departure  of  young 
pa'son,  following  so  closely  upon  two  such  notable  events 
as  the  cricket  match  and  the  attack  on  the  Lord  High 
Treasurer,  had  already  furnished  unfailing  material  for 
gossip,  and  would  be  the  theme  of  comment  and  specu- 
lation for  a  year  to  come. 

It  was  all  along  of  old  Squire,  they  said ;  and  the  coach- 
man, for  the  first  and  only  time  in  his  career,  delayed  his 
departure  for  some  minutes  after  the  horses  had  been 
watered,  in  order  to  listen  to  the  story.  A  few  days  after 
Lord  Godolphin's  flying  visit,  Squire  Berkeley  had  fenced 
in  a  piece  of  land  which  time  out  of  mind  had  been  re- 
garded as  part  of  the  village  common.  Old  Gaffer  Min- 

52 


A  Village  Hampden 

shull,  whose  memory  went  back  fifty  years,  was  called  up 
to  tell  how  in  the  year  '53,  just  before  Christmas,  the  then 
parson  had  held  a  prayer-meeting  on  that  very  spot  to 
celebrate  the  making"  of  Noll  Crum'ell  Lord  Protector; 
he  remembered  it  well,  for  it  lasted  five  hours,  and  old 
Jenny  Bates  fainted  on  the  ground  and  took  to  her  bed 
from  that  day. 

' '  Ay,  'twas  a  holy  spot,  an'  Squire  med  ha'  feared  to 
touch  un,  as  the  old  ancient  folk  feared  to  lay  hands  on 
the  Lord's  holy  ark;  but,  bless  'ee,  Squire  bean't  afeard 
o'  nothen,  nay,  not  o'  the  still  small  voice  pa'son  do  zay  be 
inside  on  us  all." 

When  the  ground  was  fenced  in  the  good  parson  was 
disposed  to  carry  the  matter  to  law.  But  though  he  had 
already  won  one  case  (a  matter  of  right  of  way)  in  the 
courts,  the  only  result  was  that  the  squire  had  carried  it 
to  appeal,  trusting  in  the  power  of  the  purse.  The  angry 
villagers  therefore  determined  to  take  the  law  into  their 
own  hands.  Without  consulting  the  rector,  they  assem- 
bled one  evening  towards  the  end  of  October,  and  hasten- 
ing in  a  body  to  the  disputed  space,  began  to  make  short 
work  of  the  new  fencing.  But  the  squire  had  got  wind 
of  their  intention,  by  some  witchcraft  of  his  own,  they 
believed:  he  soon  appeared  on  the  scene  at  the  head  of 
a  gang  of  his  own  men.  There  was  a  fight ;  heads  were 
broken,  and  the  squire's  party  were  getting  badly  mauled 
when  the  rector  suddenly  arrived  and  rushed  between  the 
combatants. 

"Ay,  poor  pa'son,  I  zee  un  now,  I  do,"  said  Gaffer 
Minshull  feelingly,  "goen  headlong  into  the  rout  wi'  all 
his  petticoats  flyen !  A  fine  upstanden  man  was  pa'son, 
as  ought  to  ha'  been  a  man  o'  war.  A'  stood  in  the  eye  of 
Squire,  an'  Squire  opened  on  un,  gave  tongue  to  a  deal 
o'  hot  an'  scorchen  words,  a'  did.  But  pa'son  took  no 
heed  to'n,  not  he:  he  spoke  up  fair  an'  softly  to  Squire's 
men,  and  wi'  that  way  o'  his  a'  made  'em  feel  all  fashly 
like ;  a'  had  a  won'erful  way  wi'  'n,  had  pa'son ;  an'  they 
made  off  wi'  their  broken  heads,  they  did ;  an'  Squire  was 

53 


Bereft 

left  a-frothen  an'  cussen  as  he  were  a  heathen  Frenchman 
or  Turk.  Ah,  poor  pa'son !  Such  a  fine  sperit  as  he  had, 
his  frame  were  not  built  for  't;  wi'  my  own  aged  eyes  I 
seed  un  go  blue  at  the  lips,  and  a'  put  his  hand  on  his 
bosom,  a'  did,  an'  seemed  as  if  all  the  breath  was  blowed 
out  of  his  mortal  body ;  and  a'  went  home-along  a  stricken 
soul,  and  two  days  arter  his  weak  heart  busted,  an'  young 
pa'son  had  no  feyther — ay,  poor  soul,  no  feyther,  an'  my 
boy  Sherebiah  be  nigh  varty-vour,  and  here  I  be.  Tis 
strange  ways  Them  above  has  wi'  poor  weak  mortals — 
strange  ways,  ay  sure!" 

Mr.  Berkeley  took  advantage  of  the  rector's  death  to 
pay  off  old  scores.  The  legal  actions  which  Mr.  Rochester 
had  taken,  on  behalf  of  his  flock,  collapsed  for  want  of 
further  funds ;  he  had  already  seriously  impoverished  him- 
self by  his  open-hearted  generosity;  and  when  the  squire 
came  down  on  the  dead  man's  estate  for  the  law  costs, 
Harry  found  that,  after  all  debts  were  paid,  he  was  pos- 
sessed of  some  twenty  guineas  in  all  wherewith  to  start  life. 

His  project  of  going  to  Oxford  was  necessarily  aban- 
doned. He  was  at  a  loss  to  find  a  career.  Educated  by 
his  father  with  a  view  to  entering  the  Church,  he  was 
fairly  well  grounded  in  classics  and  mathematics,  and  had 
in  addition  a  good  acquaintance  with  French,  and  a  great 
stock  of  English  poetry;  but  his  knowledge  was  not 
marketable.  He  was  too  young  for  a  tutor's  place,  and 
had  no  influence  to  back  him ;  friendless  and  homeless,  he 
was  at  his  wits'  end. 

Then  one  day  he  bethought  him  of  Lord  Godolphin's 
promise.  It  had  been  frank  and  apparently  sincere.  My 
lord,  it  was  true,  had  spoken  of  a  country  benefice  when 
Harry's  Oxford  days  were  over;  but  Harry  reflected  that 
the  slight  service  he  had  rendered  was  not  likely  to  appear 
greater  with  the  lapse  of  time,  while  his  need  was  actual 
and  urgent.  Why  not  take  the  Lord  Treasurer  at  his 
word,  journey  to  London,  and  put  his  case  before  the  man 
who,  in  all  the  kingdom,  was  the  most  able  to  help  him 
if  he  would? 

54 


An  Offer  of  Service 

He  mentioned  the  'matter  to  Gaffer  Minshull,  rather 
expecting"  that  the  sturdy  veteran  would  pour  cold  water 
on  his  idea.  To  his  surprise  the  old  man  urged  him  to 
carry  it  out,  and  -overbore  the  objections  which  every 
high-spirited  lad,  even  in  those  days  of  patronage,  must 
have  had  to  soliciting  favours  from  the  great.  His  eager- 
ness was  partially  explained  to  Harry  when  the  old  fellow 
added  a  suggestion  of  his  own.  He  was  seriously  con- 
cerned about  his  boy  Sherebiah.  In  spite  of  strict  injunc- 
tions to  have  nothing"  to  do  with  the  expedition  against 
the  squire's  fencing-,  Sherebiah,  man  of  peace  as  he  was, 
had  been  attracted  to  the  scene  as  a  moth  to  a  candle.  At 
first  he  had  watched  events  from  a  distance,  among"  other 
interested  spectators;  but  when  he  saw  the  fight  at  its 
beginning"  go  against  the  villagers,  owing"  to  the  superior 
training  of  the  squire's  men,  many  of  whom  were  old 
soldiers,  he  could  contain  himself  no  longer.  At  the  head 
of  the  waverers  he  dashed  into  the  affray,  and  set  such  an 
example  of  valour  that  it  would  have  gone  hardly  with  the 
enemy  but  for  the  opportune  arrival  of  the  rector. 

From  that  moment  Sherebiah  was  a  marked  man. 
Whatever  reasons  the  father  had  for  fearing  Mr.  Berkeley 
were  strengthened  when  it  became  evident  that  the  squire 
had  marked  and  would  resent  the  son's  action.  Sherebiah 
had  been  doing  no  good  in  the  village  since  he  suddenly 
returned  to  it,  from  no  one  knew  where,  a  few  years 
before.  His  father  was  anxious  that  he  should  go  away 
for  a  time,  at  least  until  the  squire's  anger  had  cooled. 
He  welcomed  the  opportunity  afforded  by  the  approach- 
ing departure  of  Harry. 

"  Let  un  goo  wi'  'ee,"  he  said.  "  'Tis  a  knowen  boy, 
handy,  with  a  head  full  o'  wise  things  he's  larned  in  the 
world.  He'd  be  proud  to  sarve  'ee,  ay,  that  he  would." 

"  But,  gaffer,  I  can't  afford  a  servant.  Twenty  guineas 
are  all  I  have,  and  I  know  not  what  may  happen.  If  Lord 
Godolphin  fails  me,  my  money  will  soon  be  gone,  and  then 
there'll  be  two  poor  fellows  instead  of  one." 

"  Never  fear.     I  bean't  afeard  for  'ee.     And  what  does 

(B867)  55  E 


A   Hearty   Send-off 

the  Book  say?  Why,  'twas  the  holy  King  David  as  said 
it  hisself:  'Once  I  were  young-,'  says  he,  'and  now  I  be 
old ;  but  never  ha'  I  knowed  the  righteous  forsaken,  nor 
his  seed  a-beggen  bread  neither.'  That's  what  he  said, 
and  he  knowed  a  thing  or  two,  so  he  did." 

"  Perhaps  he  didn't  know  everything,  gaffer.  Well, 
you're  set  on  it,  I  see.  Sherry  would  certainly  be  better 
out  of  the  squire's  way ;  so  he  can  come  with  me,  and  as 
soon  as  I  find  something  to  do  he  had  better  look  for 
employment,  and  London  ought  to  be  a  good  place  for 
that." 

Thus  it  happened  that,  on  this  November  morning,  the 
two  passengers  who  had  booked  places  in  the  Salisbury 
coach  for  London  were  Harry  Rochester  and  Sherebiah 
Minshull. 

The  story  took  a  long  time  in  the  telling  in  the  parlour 
of  the  inn,  and  Giles  Appleyard  was  somewhat  perturbed 
when  he  saw  by  the  big  clock  in  the  corner  that  his  depar- 
ture was  overdue.  He  drained  his  tankard,  wiped  his 
mouth  with  the  back  of  his  hand,  and  went  out,  calling 
loudly  to  the  passengers  to  take  their  places.  Harry 
shook  hands  all  round;  every  man  had  something  to  say 
to  him  that  Was  intended  to  be  pleasant  and  encouraging, 
but  was  in  many  cases  the  reverse.  His  heart  was  full  as 
he  thought  of  leaving  the  good  folk  among  whom  he  had 
lived  and  whose  kindly  feeling  for  him  was  so  evident. 
When,  last  of  all,  Mistress  Joplady  flung  her  arms  round 
his  neck  and  hugged  him  to  her  ample  bosom,  and  then 
wiped  her  eyes  with  the  corner  of  her  apron,  he  felt  a  lump 
in  his  throat,  and  was  glad  to  escape  and  mount  to  his 
place  on  the  roof  of  the  coach. 

"All  right,  Bill?"  shouted  the  coachman  over  his 
shoulder. 

"Ay." 

"  Let  goo,  ostler." 

And  gathering  up  the  reins  he  cracked  his  whip,  and 
with  a  clatter  and  rumble  the  heavy  vehicle,  amid  a 
volley  of  cheers,  lurched  forward  on  the  way  to  London. 

56 


Outside  Passengers 

The  journey  of  nearly  seventy  miles  was  not  likely  to 
be  pleasant.  The  stage-coaches  of  those  days  were  large 
and  clumsy  structures,  with  hard  springs.  The  inside 
passengers  were  jolted  and  jostled;  the  outside  passen- 
gers had  no  proper  seats,  but  found  what  sitting  room 
they  could  among  the  packages  and  bundles.  On  this 
morning,  there  was  only  one  other  passenger  on  the  roof 
of  the  coach,  a  stout  broad-faced  man  dressed  in  brown 
clothes  much  like  Sherebiah's.  He  had  retained  his  seat 
during  the  scene  of  farewell,  and  sat  solemnly  munching 
a  thick  sausage,  scanning  the  crowd  out  of  shrewd  little 
twinkling  eyes  that  seemed  a  size  too  small  for  the  other 
features.  When  his  sausage  was  finished,  -he  filled  a 
huge  pipe  and  sat  puffing  in  stolid  silence. 

For  some  time  after  the  coach  started,  no  word  was 
spoken  by  the  three  passengers.  Harry  was  wrapt  in  his 
thoughts,  brooding  over  the  past,  dreaming  about  the 
future.  Sherebiah  had  lit  his  pipe  as  soon  as  he  was 
settled,  and  smoked  on  contentedly,  stealing  a  glance 
every  now  and  then  at  the  broad  figure  separated  from 
him  by  a  large  travelling  trunk.  He  seemed  to  find  some 
amusement  in  these  occasional  peeps  at  his  neighbour, 
who  by  and  by  returned  his  glance. 

"  Mizzly  mornen,"  said  Sherebiah,  with  a  nod. 

"  Zo,"  grunted  the  other.  His  eyes  were  resting  on 
Sherebiah's  pipe. 

"Tobacco  be  a  great  comfort,"  said  the  latter,  noting  the 
look.  "  Master  Harry  there,  he  bean't  come  to  't  yet;  true, 
'tis  not  for  babes  an'  sucklens;  but  I  took  to  'bacca  when 
Susan  wouldn't  take  me,  and  'tis  better  nor  any  wife." 

"Where  you  get  dat  pipe?"  asked  the  stranger,  in  a 
slow  pleasant  voice  with  a  foreign  accent. 

"This  pipe!  Why,  over  in  Amesbury;  see,  'tis  marked 
wi'  the  gauntlet,  sure  token  of  a  Amesbury  pipe,  an'  there's 
no  better  in  the  land.  Why  med  'ee  axe  such  a  feelen 
question,  now?" 

"Once  I  zaw  a  pipe  like  it,  wid  de  mark  on  it — de 
gauntlet,  you  zay." 

57 


Introductions 

"Oh!  I  say,  master,  what  part  o'  the  land  med  'ee 
hail  from?  Your  tongue  makes  me  think  'ee  med  be  a 
Dutchman,  though  I  wouldn't  say  so  to  your  face." 

The  man  looked  at  his  interrogator  without  replying. 
He  stuffed  the  tobacco  down  into  his  pipe  with  a  fat 
forefinger  which  exactly  fitted  the  bowl. 

"You  know  Amsterdam,  my  vrient?"  he  said. 

"Ha'  been  there,  mynheer;  so  'tis  Amsterdam  you  hail 
from !  Well,  I  ha'  been  in  wuss  places.  Ay,  ha'  seed 
summat  o'  the  world,  I  have,  and  I  knowed  'ee  by  your 
cut  for  a  Dutchman." 

There  was  silence  again  for  a  space.  Both  the  men 
sat  smoking?,  heedless  of  all  things  around  them.  They 
finished  their  pipes  at  the  same  moment,  and,  moved  by 
a  mutual  impulse,  each  handed  his  pouch  to  the  other. 

"Virginia,"  said  Sherebiah  laconically. 

"Ah!  Barbados,"  returned  the  other.  "My  name,  Jan 
Grootz." 

"And  it  becomes  'ee,"  said  Sherebiah.  "Now  mine 
bean't  so  good  a  match;  'tis  over  long  for  one  o'  my 
inches,  and  over  proud  for  a  man  so  meek :  Sherebiah 
Stand-up-and-bless  Minshull  in  the  church  book,  but  plain 
Sherry  to  them  as  I  takes  to,  like  young  pa'son  there." 

Harry  was  roused  from  his  reverie  at  hearing  himself 
mentioned.  He  looked  for  the  first  time  at  his  fellow- 
passenger,  who  at  that  moment  lifted  his  podgy  right 
hand  and  pointed  to  a  windmill  in  full  sail  a  little  distance 
from  the  road. 

"Ay  sure,  minds  'ee  of  home;  your  country's  full  of 
mills,  to  be  sure.  Mebbe  you  be  a  miller,  now?" 

The  Dutchman  waited  to  blow  a  great  cloud  from 
his  mouth  before  he  answered. 

"A  sailor,"  he  said;   "but  I  have  mills." 

"A  skipper,"  rejoined  Sherry,  looking  over  his  costume. 
"  'Tis  not  for  me  to  say,  but  to  mortal  eye  you  be  more  like 
a  varmer. — 'Tis  a  skipper  from  Holland,"  he  added,  in- 
cluding Harry  in  the  conversation,  "that  has  a  mill  or 
two  to  his  name  and  smokes  'bacca  out  o'  Barbados." 

58 


Contractor  to  the  Forces 

"Jan  Grootz,"  said  the  Dutchman. 

Harry  acknowledged  the  introduction,  and  remarked 
on  the  slowness  of  their  progress  over  the  rough  road. 
On  this  Mynheer  Grootz  volunteered  the  remark  that, 
having  come  all  the  way  from  Bristol,  he  would  be  glad 
when  the  journey  was  ended.  By  degrees  he  became  still 
more  communicative;  and  when  the  coach  pulled  up  at 
Basingstoke  for  the  mid-day  meal,  Harry  had  learnt  that 
the  Dutchman  had  been  to  Bristol  to  inspect  a  vessel  of 
which  he  was  part-owner,  and  which  had  come  most 
fortunately  to  port  after  being  first  knocked  about  by  a 
French  privateer,  then  badly  damaged  by  a  storm.  It 
was  to  the  storm  that  she  owed  her  escape  from  the 
Frenchman,  and  to  her  captain's  seamanship  her  escape 
from  the  storm.  Grootz  was  particularly  gratified  at  her 
safe  arrival,  for  she  represented  a  large  amount  not  only 
to  him  personally,  but  to  others  who  could  ill  afford  to 
lose  on  a  venture  upon  which  he  had  persuaded  them  to 
embark. 

When  the  journey  was  resumed,  the  conversation 
became  still  more  friendly.  Harry  liked  the  look  of  the 
Dutchman.  His  broad  face  with  its  wide  nose  and  little 
eyes  was  not  handsome,  but  its  expression  inspired  con- 
fidence; and  the  careful  slowness  of  his  speech,  and  his 
habit  of  pointing  with  his  forefinger  when  he  wished  to 
be  emphatic,  were  a  little  amusing.  He  asked  no  ques- 
tions, but  Harry  by  and  by  found  himself  explaining  his 
own  position  and  relating  the  events  that  had  led  to  it, 
and  told  him  of  his  projected  visit  to  Lord  Godolphin.  At 
this  up  came  the  forefinger. 

"Ah,  my  young  vrient,  you  are  de  son  of  a  minister: 
ver'  well :  you  know  de  good  Book :  ver'  well :  '  Put  not 
your  drust  in  princes ; '  de  words  are  drue.  I  tell  you  dis ; 
besides  my  mills  and  my  ships,  I  do  oder  dings ;  I  supply 
food  for  de  men  and  horses  of  de  English  and  Dutch 
armies;  and  I  have  met  princes;  yes — I,  Jan  Grootz.  I 
tell  you  dis;  wid  a  good  honest  merchant  of  London  or 
of  Amsterdam,  I  care  not,  man  knows  where  he  stand; 

59 


Followed 

his  foot  is  on  de  solid  rock ;  but  wid  dukes  and  grand- 
dukes  and  oder  princes — ah !  man  tread  a  quicksand.  Dey 
promise,  but  do  dey  pay?  You  are  good  boy,  I  dink;  mind 
you,  I  do  not  say  I  know,  for  outside  do  not  always  speak 
drue;  de  apple  may  be  red,  and  all  de  time  a  maggot  at 
core.  I  tell  you  dis ;  seven  year  ago  I  make  contract  over 
hay  wid  young  captain  of  Bavarian  Elector;  it  was  in 
Namur  campaign ;  he  look  good,  he  speak  good,  I  am 
well  content;  but  donder!  my  hay  I  lose,  and  3242  thalers 
3  groschen  beside.  Dis  den  I  tell  you;  avoid  arms  and 
de  law,  drive  some  honest  trade :  zo  you  respect  yourself, 
and  oder  people  dey  respect  you.  You  owe  noding;  no- 
body owe  you ;  you  are  a  man." 

Ever  since  the  departure  from  Basingstoke,  Sherebiah, 
sitting  just  behind  Harry,  had  taken  no  part  in  the  con- 
versation, but  appeared  to  find  something  curiously 
interesting  in  the  road  behind,  for  after  once  or  twice 
looking  over  his  shoulder  he  at  last  faced  round  altogether, 
and  sat  with  his  back  to  the  horses.  Just  as  the  Dutchman 
finished  his  speech — the  longest  to  which  he  had  yet  given 
utterance,  and  one  that  his  slow  delivery  lengthened 
beyond  its  natural  extent — Sherebiah  turned  round,  tapped 
Harry  on  the  shoulder,  and  in  a  low  tone  said : 

"Summat's  i'  the  wind." 

"What  do  you  mean,  Sherry?" 

"Wind  yourself  about  and  look  down  the  road  behind." 

"  Well,  I  see  nothing — stay,  there's  a  horseman  just 
topping  the  hill,  a  good  mile  behind  us:  what  of  that?" 

"Why,  'tis  like  this.  He  always  is  a  mile  behind: 
that's  where  'tis.  I  seed  him  afore  we  come  to  Basing- 
stoke; but  he  didn't  come  to  the  inn  to  eat  his  vittles, 
not  he.  I  seed  him  again  when  we  was  a  mile  this  side 
o'  Basingstoke;  what  had  he  been  doen,  then,  while  we 
eat  and  drank?  We  stop,  he  falls  behind;  when  we  trot, 
he  trots ;  'tis  as  if  he  were  a  bob  at  th'  end  of  a  line,  never 
nearer  never  vurther." 

"You  think  we  are  being  followed?" 

"That's  what  I  do  think,  sure  enough." 

60 


The  Man  on  the  Road 

"  A  highwayman?  " 

"Mebbe,  mebbe  not;  most  like  not,  for  'tis  not  dark 
enough,  and  he's  always  in  sight." 

"  Perhaps  he  thinks  he  can't  be  seen." 

"  Not  reckonen  on  the  height  of  the  coach  roof?  But  I 
seed  him,  I  did,  two  hours  an'  more  agoo." 

"  Why  should  he  follow  the  coach,  I  wonder?  He  may 
belong  to  someone  inside." 

"  Mebbe,  mebbe  not;  'tis  curious  anyways." 

"Well,  the  fellow  is  clearly  dogging  the  coach;  if  your 
curiosity  troubles  you,  suppose  you  slip  off  a  mile  before 
we  reach  the  next  post-house  and  try  to  get  a  nearer  look 
at  him  as  he  passes?  You  can  catch  up  the  coach  while 
they  change  horses." 

"Ay,  I  will,  sure.  We  be  nigh  the  river  now;  over  the 
bridge  and  we  come  to  Hounslow  heath,  a  fearsome  place 
for  highwaymen.  We  change  at  the  Bull  and  Gate,  then 
run  straight  into  Lun'on:  oh,  I  know  the  road." 

It  was  late  in  the  afternoon  by  the  time  the  coach 
reached  the  inn  where  the  last  change  of  the  journey  was 
made.  Ten  minutes  before,  Sherebiah  nimbly  slipped  down, 
crept  through  a  gap  in  the  hedge,  and  waited  for  the 
pursuer  to  appear.  Presently  he  heard  the  clatter  of  hoofs ; 
the  sound  grew  louder,  but  all  at  once  began  to  diminish. 
Scrambling  back  into  the  road,  he  was  just  in  time  to  see 
the  horseman  strike  off  at  full  speed  along  a  by-road  to  his 
left,  which  led,  as  Sherebiah  knew,  to  London  by  a  course 
only  a  mile  or  two  longer  than  the  main  highway.  The 
man  must  evidently  have  changed  his  horse  somewhere  on 
the  road,  and  could  only  have  taken  the  detour  in  a  desire 
to  arrive  in  London  ahead  of  the  coach. 

Sherebiah  stared  long  and  earnestly  at  the  retreating 
figure.  He  frowned  and  looked  puzzled  as  he  set  off  to 
overtake  the  coach.  The  driver  was  mounting  the  box  as 
he  came  up. 

"  Well,  what  do  you  make  of  it?"  asked  Harry. 

"  He  be  gone  off  by  a  side  road,"  replied  Sherebiah. 

"  So  your  curiosity  is  not  to  be  satisfied  after  all?" 

61 


Sherebiah  Muses 

"  Well,  he  rid  away  hard  to  the  left,  wi'  his  back  towards 
me,  an'  'tis  groweri  duskish,  an'  nowt  but  a  owl  could  see 
clear." 

But  when  Sherebiah  clambered  to  his  place  he  wore  a 
sober  look  which  did  not  escape  the  clear  little  eyes  of 
Jan  Grootz,  who  silently  extended  his  pouch  to  him. 
Sherebiah  refilled  and  puffed  away,  every  now  and  then 
removing  the  pipe  from  his  mouth  and  staring  contem- 
platively at  the  bowl. 


CHAPTER  V 

A  Message  from  the  Squire 

SHEREBIAH  sat  very  silent  for  the  rest  of  the  journey.  The 
coach  jolted  on  rapidly  towards  the  great  city :  passed  the 
market-gardens  of  Hammersmith,  the  open  fields  of  Ken- 
sington, along  Piccadilly,  where  the  first  street-lamps  shed 
a  dim  oily  light,  through  Holborn,  at  last  pulling  up  at  the 
Angel  and  Crown  in  Threadneedle  Street.  It  was  past 
nine  o'clock,  dull  and  murky,  and  few  people  were  about. 
But  a  small  crowd  was  gathered  at  the  door  of  the  inn 
to  meet  the  coach,  and  Sherebiah,  as  he  shouldered  the 
luggage  and  moved  towards  the  door,  shot  a  keen  but 
unobtrusive  glance  at  the  faces  of  the  men.  His  move- 
ments were  somewhat  too  slow  for  Harry,  who,  eager  to 
ease  his  limbs  after  a  whole  day's  stiffness  and  discomfort, 
entered  the  hostelry  first.  All  at  once  Sherebiah  quickened 
his  step,  hastened  into  the  lobby,  set  the  luggage  down  at 
the  foot  of  the  stairs,  and  then,  making  a  mumbled  excuse 
to  Harry,  slipped  out  behind  one  of  the  inn  servants,  and 
looked  narrowly  at  the  diminishing  crowd.  He  was  just 
in  time  to  see  a  man,  whom  he  had  already  noticed  on  the 
outskirts  of  the  group,  saunter  away  in  the  direction  of 
London  Bridge.  Appearances  are  deceptive,  and  Shere- 
biah was  not  sure  that  he  was  right,  but  he  thought  the 
man  bore  a  resemblance  to  the  rider  whom  he  had  seen 
following  the  coach,  and  of  whom  he  had  caught  one 
nearer  glimpse  as  he  turned  into  the  by-road.  He  followed 
the  man,  stepping  as  quietly  as  his  heavy  shoes  allowed, 
accommodating  his  pace  to  that  of  the  man  in  front,  and 
taking  advantage  of  the  shadow  afforded  by  the  penthouse 
fronts  of  the  closed  shops.  The  man  quickened  his  steps 

63 


The  Old  White  Hart 

as  he  approached  the  bridge.  Sherebiah  pursued  him  at  a 
discreet  distance  over  the  narrow  roadway,  beneath  the 
rickety  four-story  houses  that  towered  above  the  bridge 
over  almost  its  entire  length,  through  Traitor's  Gate,  and 
on  into  Southwark.  The  man  went  along  one  narrow  street, 
and  at  last  passed  under  a  low  archway.  Walking  even 
more  stealthily,  Sherebiah  still  followed,  and  found  himself 
in  the  spacious  yard  of  the  Old  White  Hart  Inn.  This 
famous  three-storied  hostelry  was  built  about  three  sides 
of  a  square.  Along  two  sides  of  the  upper  story  ran  a 
balustraded  gallery,  with  wooden  pillars  supporting  the 
sloping  roof.  All  was  quiet.  Sherebiah,  keeping  in  the 
shadow  of  the  arch,  peeped  round  and  saw  the  man  he 
followed  standing  at  the  door  waiting  for  an  answer  to  his 
summons  at  the  bell,  which  hung  on  the  outer  wall  under 
a  gabled  cover.  After  a  little  time  the  door  opened  and 
the  porter  appeared. 

"  Be  Cap'n  Aglionby  within?"  said  the  man. 

"Ay,  and  abed  and  asleep.  What  do  you  want  wi' 
him  ?  " 

"  I  want  to  see  un." 

"A  pretty  time  o'  night!  House  was  shut  up  an  hour 
ago — no  business  doin'  these  hard  times.  Why  didn't  you 
come  sooner  ?" 

"A  good  reason,  'cause  I  be  only  just  come  to  Lun'on. 
I  has  a  message  for  Cap'n  Aglionby." 

"Well,  needs  must,  I  s'pose,"  grumbled  the  servant. 
"  I'll  go  up  and  wake  the  captain,  and  be  cursed  horrible 
for  my  pains.  Who  shall  I  say  wants  him?" 

"Tell  un  a  friend  from  the  country." 

The  porter  went  into  the  inn,  and  soon  reappeared  in  the 
gallery  at  the  top  of  the  house,  where  he  tapped  at  the 
door  of  one  of  the  bedrooms  opening  from  it.  He  tapped 
once,  twice,  thrice,  and  received  no  answer;  then  to  his 
fourth  knock  came  a  response  the  tone  of  which,  though 
not  the  words,  could  be  heard  in  the  yard  below.  A  colloquy 
ensued,  of  which  only  the  share  of  the  inn  servant  was  dis- 
tinctly audible  to  Sherebiah. 

64 


A  Letter  for  the  Captain 

"A  man  from  the  country,  Cap'n,  to  see  you." 

Mumble  from  within. 

"  So  I  told  him,  but  here  he  bides." 

More  mumbling. 

"  Didn't  tell  me  his  name;  a  man  from  the  country  was 
all  he  said,  and  I  knows  no  more." 

The  answering  mumble  was  of  higher  and  impatient 
mood.  Then  the  man  came  slowly  downstairs,  grumbling 
under  his  breath  all  the  way. 

"You're  to  go  up,"  he  said  to  the  stranger.  "  'Tis 
number  thirty -two.  And  fine  tantrums  he  be  in,  waked 
out  of  sleep;  as  if  I  ain't  waked  out  of  sleep  or  kept 
from  it  day  and  night,  and  all  year  long." 

The  man  entered  the  inn  after  the  servant,  and  began  to 
ascend.  Sherebiah  meanwhile,  looking  around,  had  espied 
another  stairway  at  the  opposite  angle  of  the  courtyard. 
Darting  across  on  tiptoe,  he  mounted  quickly,  quietly, 
and  reached  the  gallery  above  in  time  to  see  the  mes- 
senger disappear  into  the  captain's  room.  He  hurried 
along,  and,  relying  on  the  porter's  complaint  of  the  paucity 
of  business,  he  opened  the  door  of  the  adjacent  room  and 
slipped  in,  leaving  the  door  ajar.  Through  the  thin  parti- 
tion he  heard  the  murmur  of  voices  in  the  next  room,  but 
could  not  catch  a  word  distinctly.  In  a  few  moments, 
however,  there  was  a  crash  as  of  a  chair  being  overthrown, 
followed  by  a  torrent  of  execrations  from  the  captain. 
Then  the  door  of  the  next  room  opened,  and  Aglionby 
came  out  on  to  the  gallery  accompanied  by  his  visitor. 

"  Hang  you  and  the  squire  too ! "  said  the  angry  warrior. 
"The  tinder's  wet,  and  I  can't  light  my  candle.  Give  me 
the  letter  and  I'll  read  it  by  the  light  of  the  lantern  yonder, 
and  catch  my  death  o'  cold  withal." 

Shrinking  back  into  the  darkness  of  his  room,  Sherebiah 
caught  sight  of  Captain  Aglionby  as  he  passed  the  half- 
open  door  on  his  way  to  the  single  lantern  that  feebly  lit  up 
the  gallery.  He  had  pulled  on  his  breeches  and  stockings, 
but  for  the  rest  was  in  night  attire.  The  lantern  swung 
from  a  hook  at  the  corner  of  the  gallery,  three  rooms 

65 


Visions 

beyond  that  into  which  Sherebiah  had  ventured.  Stand- 
ing- beneath  it,  the  captain  broke  the  seal  of  the  letter 
given  him  by  the  visitor,  and  read  rapidly  under  his 
breath.  The  reading  finished,  he  stuffed  the  paper  into 
his  pocket  and  chuckled. 

"  Stap  me,  he  begs  and  prays  me  now!"  he  exclaimed. 
"  See,  Jock,  tell  me  what  ye  know  of  this.  Ye  ha'n't  read 
the  letter,  ha'  ye?  By  the  Lord  Harry,  I'll  slit — " 

"Nay,  nay,  Cap'n,"  interrupted  the  man;  "I  know 
nought  o'  the  letter.  I'll  tell  'ee  how  it  all  come  about. 
I  was  openen  the  gate  for  Squire,  when — ' 

"Speak  lower,  man;  your  brazen  throat'll  wake  the 
house." 

"  I  was  openen  the  gate  for  Squire,"  resumed  the  fellow 
in  a  lower  tone,  which  was,  however,  still  audible  to  Shere- 
biah's  straining  ears,  "when  who  should  come  by  but 
young  master  popinjay  dressed  all  in  his  black.  He  never 
bobbed  to  Squire,  not  he ;  never  so  much  as  cast  eyes  on 
un;  but  when  Squire  saw  the  young  swaggerer  he  stopped 
still  as  a  stone,  and  looked  after  un  dazed  like.  Then  he 
put  his  arm  on  the  gate,  a'  did,  and  leant  heavy  on  it, 
thinken  mortal  hard ;  'twas  a  matter  o'  five  minutes  afore 
he  lifted  his  head  again,  and  never  seed  I  a  stranger  look 
on  any  man's  face  than  I  seed  then  on  Squire's.  A'  jumped 
when  his  eyes  fell  on  me;  'What  be  staren  at,  fool?'  says 
he,  in  one  of  his  rages.  '  Shall  I  run  for  doctor?'  says  I; 
'you  do  look  mortal  bad.'  '  Nay,'  says  he,  '  'tis  nothen;  a 
little  faintness ;  'twill  pass.'  I  touched  my  cap,  as  becomes 
me,  and  Squire  went  into  park  and  shut  gate  behind  un. 
But  a'  hadn't  walked  more  nor  three  steps  when  a'  stops, 
swings  about,  and  'Jock!'  says  he,  'order  post-horses  for 
Hungerford  road  to-morrer.  And  come  up  to  hall  inside 
of  an  hour;  I  shall  ha'  a  job  for  'ee.' 

"Well,  I  went  up  to  hall  after  I'd  ordered  horses,  and 
Squire  give  me  this  letter.  '  You'll  ride  to  Lun'on  to- 
morrer,  and  take  this  letter  to  Cap'n  Aglionby  at  White 
Hart,  South'ark.  And  you'll  tell  the  cap'n  where  young- 
Master  Rochester  be  stayen.'  '  How'll  I  know  that, 

66 


Aglionby  gives   Instructions 

Squire?'  says  I.  Ton  that  he  burst  into  one  of  his  terr'ble 
rages  again.  '  How,  fool!'  says  he;  '  why,  keep  the  coach 
in  sight,  and  see  that  'ee  make  no  mistake.'  So  here  I  be, 
Cap'n,  and  young  Master  Rochester  he's  at  Angel  and 
Crown  in  Threadneedle  Street." 

"Thank  'ee,  Jock;  I  know  the  house.  And  is  the 
young  springald  alone?" 

"Not  he;  has  Sherry  Minshull  with  un,  a-carryen  his 
belongens." 

"  Zounds  and  thunder!  did  Sherry  see  you?" 

"No,  i'  feck;  I  kept  too  far  from  coach  to  be  seen  for 
sarten,  and  at  Angel  and  Crown  Sherry  was  too  heavy 
laden  to  spy  me." 

"Well  for  you,  well  for  you!  Jock,  you'll  come  and 
take  up  your  quarters  here;  there's  plenty  of  room.  I'll 
tell  'em  to  gi'  ye  a  bed." 

"What  about  the  horse,  Cap'n?  I  left  un  at  Angel 
and  Crown." 

"Let  him  bide  till  morning;  then  you  can  bring  him 
here  too." 

"  But  Squire,  Cap'n, — won't  he  expect  us  back,  me  and 
horse?" 

"Not  he;  'tis  here  written;  I'm  to  keep  you  if  there's 
any  work  for  you,  and  odzooks !  I'll  ha'  some  work  for  you, 
never  fear.  Jock,  if  your  story  has  made  you  as  dry  as 
it  has  made  me  you're  main  thirsty;  go  down  and  bring 
up  beer  for  two,  and  a  lighted  candle.  I'll  ring  and  wake 
that  rascal  by  the  time  you  get  to  the  foot  of  the  stairs." 

The  man  went  down  by  the  way  he  had  come,  and  the 
captain  returned  to  his  room.  As  soon  as  the  coast  was 
clear,  Sherebiah  slipped  out  into  the  gallery,  carrying  his 
shoes  to  avoid  noise,  ran  down  the  outer  staircase,  stood 
for  a  few  moments  at  the  foot  to  make  sure  that  all  was 
safe,  then  darted  across  the  yard  and  out  at  the  gate.  The 
street  was  quite  deserted,  and  Sherebiah,  secure  from 
molestation,  walked  slowly  along  towards  London  Bridge, 
deep  in  thought.  His  friend  Harry  had  been  followed  to 
London  at  the  orders  of  the  squire ;  what  was  the  meaning 

67 


The  Watch 

of  that?  Surely  Mr.  Berkeley  did  not  intend  to  wreak 
vengeance  on  the  son  for  the  baffled  opposition  of  the 
father?  What  had  Captain  Aglionby  to  do  with  the 
matter?  Rumour  the  omniscient  had  informed  the  village 
that  the  captain's  departure  had  been  occasioned  by  a 
violent  quarrel  with  the  squire;  yet  it  was  plain  that  the 
squire  knew  the  captain's  whereabouts  and  was  enlisting 
his  aid  in  some  project.  Sherebiah  wished  that  he  could 
get  a  sight  of  Mr.  Berkeley's  letter;  he  was  puzzled  to 
account  for  the  old  man's  shock  as  Harry  passed  the  gate; 
but  try  as  he  might  to  piece  these  strange  circumstances 
together,  all  his  cogitation  suggested  no  clue. 

So  absorbed  was  he,  so  mechanical  his  movements,  that 
he  started  convulsively  when,  just  as  he  had  passed  through 
Traitor's  Gate,  a  man  stepped  suddenly  before  him  from 
a  narrow  entry  and  bade  him  stop  in  the  Queen's  name. 
Looking  up,  he  saw  that  his  way  was  barred  by  a  cor- 
pulent constable  in  cocked  hat  and  laced  coat,  with  a  staff 
two  feet  longer  than  himself,  and  half  a  dozen  ancient  and 
decrepit  watchmen  with  lanterns  and  staves. 

"Stand!"  cried  the  constable.  "Give  an  account  of 
yourself." 

Sherebiah  took  his  measure. 

"Not  so,  neither,  master  constable.  Out  o'  my  way; 
'tis  a  late  hour,  and  I  ought  to  be  abed." 

He  made  to  move  on,  but  the  constable  stood  full  in  his 
path,  and  the  watchmen  grouped  themselves  behind  their 
superior. 

"You  may  be  a  villain  for  aught  I  know,"  said  the 
constable,  "  or  even  a  vagrom  or  thief.  Why  abroad 
at  this  hour  o'  night?" 

"I'm  as  sober  as  a  judge,"  replied  Sherebiah,  "and 
neither  thief  nor  vagrom.  Stand  aside,  master  con- 
stable." 

"Well,  'tis  dry  and  thirsty  work  watching  o'  nights, 
and  there  be  seven  of  us,  and  a  shilling  don't  go  far  in 
these  war  times;  we'll  take  a  shilling  to  let  ye  pass; 
eh,  men?" 

68 


Half-Truths 

The  watchmen  mumbled  assent.     Sherebiah  laughed. 

"A  shilling-?  'Tis  a  free  country,  master  constable, 
and  a  sober  countryman  don't  carry  shillings  to  buy  what's 
his.  And  seems  to  me,  so  it  does,  as  ye've  had  drink 
enough  a'ready;  out  o'  my  way,  I  say!" 

"  Arrest  him,  men!"  cried  the  constable,  angry  at  being 
disappointed  of  his  expected  tip. 

The  words  were  scarcely  out  of  his  mouth  when  with 
sudden  energy  Sherebiah  threw  himself  against  him,  at  the 
same  time  placing  a  leg  behind  his  knee.  As  the  constable 
fell,  Sherebiah  dashed  at  the  watchmen,  toppled  two  of 
them  over,  their  fall  being  accompanied  by  the  crash  of 
their  lanterns,  scattered  the  rest,  and  ran  rapidly  across 
the  bridge.  This  unexpected  onset  from  one  whom  they 
had  taken  for  a  simple  and  timid  country  bumpkin  was 
too  much  for  the  watch.  They  made  no  attempt  to  pursue 
the  fugitive,  but  returned  surly  and  crestfallen  to  their 
lair. 

"Where  on  earth  have  you  been,  Sherry?"  asked  Harry, 
as  his  man  re-entered  the  inn. 

"  Payen  a  visit  to  a  cousin  o'  mine,  Master  Harry. 
And  I  was  nigh  put  in  lock-up,  I  was.  Was  stopped  by 
the  watch,  but  I  toppled  un  over,  I  did.  I'm  a  man  o' 
peace." 

"  If  you  are  let  alone,"  said  Harry,  laughing.  "  I  feared 
some  harm  had  happened  to  you.  Our  Dutch  friend  tells 
me  London  is  an  ill  place  at  night  for  a  stranger." 

"Ay,  and  by  day  too,  Master  Harry,"  rejoined  Shere- 
biah earnestly.  "  If  I  med  make  so  bold,  I'd  say,  get  'ee 
to-morrow  a  good  cane, — none  of  your  little  small  amber- 
tipt  fancies  as  fine  gentlemen  swing  in  their  dainty 
fingers,  but  a  stout  length  of  oak  or  birch,  fit  to  crack 
a  pate." 

"  I  have  a  sword,  Sherry,  and  can  use  it,  thanks  to 
you." 

"Ay,  but  'tis  not  always  easy  to  draw  a  sword  in  time 
in  a  street  brawl,  and  there  be  light-fingered  gentry  as  can 
coax  a  sword  from  the  scabbard  and  the  wearer  none  the 

69 


Ways  and  Means 


wiser  till  it  be  too  late.  Be  it  your  poor  feyther's  sword 
you  ha'  brought,  sir?" 

"Yes,  the  silver-hilted  one;  I  showed  it  you  once, 
Sherry." 

"Well,  'tis  right  for  a  gentleman  to  wear  a  sword, 
though  I  marvel,  I  do,  at  a  holy  man  o'  peace  like  pa'son 
haven  such  a  deadly  piece  o'  furniture." 

"Ay,  and  I've  often  wondered  how  a  man  of  peace  like 
yourself  is  able  to  handle  a  sword  so  well.  You  made 
a  swordsman  of  me,  Sherry;  how  did  you  become  one 
yourself?" 

"  Ah,  sir,  'tis  a  many  things  a  man  o'  peace  has  to  know 
in  the  way  o'  dressens.  I  believe  in  peace  with  a  cudgel 
in  your  hand.  Them  as  wants  peace  be  most  like  to  get 
it  an  they  be  ready  for  war." 

"You  remind  me  of  what  Master  Butler  says: 

'  There 's  but  the  twinkling  of  a  star 
Betwixt  the  man  of  peace  and  war '. 

But  the  hour  is  late,  Sherry,  and  I  must  be  up  betimes  in 
the  morning,  for  my  visit  to  Lord  Godolphin." 

"  You  bean't  gwine  to  see  the  high  lard  to-morrer,  sir? 
Better  larn  to  find  your  way  about  this  tangle  o'  busy 
streets  first.  'Tis  as  easy  as  sucken  eggs  to  lose  your 
way." 

"  I  have  made  up  my  mind  to  go  to-morrow.  You  see, 
I  must  lose  no  time.  I  have  only  twenty  guineas,  as  you 
know,  and  by  to-morrow  two  of  those  will  be  gone.  And 
I  sha'n't  rest  till  I  have  tried  my  luck.  Good-night,  Sherry ! 
Wake  me  at  seven." 

Left  to  himself,  Sherebiah  ordered  a  pint  of  small  beer, 
and  sat  for  an  hour  longer,  ruminating,  with  knit  brows 
and  compressed  lips.  More  than  once  he  got  up  and 
walked  round  the  deal  table,  stopping  to  take  a  pull  at 
the  tankard,  heaving  a  sigh,  then  going  on  again.  He 
was  disquieted.  The  sudden  discovery  that  the  squire's 
animosity  was  pursuing  Harry  no  less  perplexed  than 
disturbed  him.  Harry  and  Mr.  Berkeley  had  never  met 

70 


Hard  Thinking 


at  close  quarters;  there  had  been  no  intercourse  between 
hall  and  parsonage.  A  personal  cause  of  offence  was,  as 
it  seemed  to  Sherebiah,  out  of  the  question;  yet  it  was 
strange  that  the  squire's  hatred  of  the  father  should  ex- 
tend to  the  son.  At  length,  muttering  "No  one  can  tell 
what's  what  with  the  likes  o'  old  Squire,"  Sherebiah 
brought  his  big  fist  down  on  to  the  table  with  a  bang 
that  made  the  pewter  jump  and  rattle,  and  fetched  the 
drawer  from  his  place  in  the  bar. 

"What  d'ye  lack?"  said  the  man. 

"  Nothen,  sonny,  nothen.  'Tis  a  way  o'  mine  to  hit  out 
when  I  be  a-thinken,  a  bold  way  for  a  man  o'  peace,  true. 
Bacon  at  half  arter  seven,  drawer, — and  we  be  country 
eaters,  mind  'ee.  Good-night!" 


(B85T)  71 


CHAPTER  VI 

My  Lord  Marlborough  makes  a  Note 

HARRY  was  awake  long  before  Sherebiah  tapped  at  his 
door  next  morning'.  His  projected  visit  to  Lord  Godolphin 
gave  him  some  concern.  He  had  no  tremors  of  shyness 
at  the  thought  of  meeting  the  Lord  Treasurer;  but,  igno- 
rant as  he  was  of  London  ways,  he  knew  not  how  to 
time  his  visit,  and  could  hope  for  no  counsel  on  that  point 
from  Sherebiah.  He  was  too  much  excited  to  do  justice 
to  the  crisp  rashers  which  were  placed  before  him  at  the 
breakfast-table,  and  felt  little  disposed  to  converse  with 
Jan  Grootz  the  Dutchman  opposite.  Sherebiah  had  taken 
upon  himself  to  wait  at  table,  but,  as  a  privileged  servitor, 
did  not  think  it  unbecoming  to  throw  in  a  word  here  and 
there.  He  gave  Grootz  his  views  on  the  price  of  oats  and 
the  policy  of  King  Louis  of  France  with  equal  assurance. 

"  Know  ye  where  de  lord  live?"  asked  the  Dutchman 
suddenly. 

Harry  had  forgotten  that  he  had  mentioned  his  errand 
to  his  fellow-passenger,  and  for  the  moment  repented  his 
confidence.  Before  he  could  reply,  Grootz  went  on : 

"  He  live  over  against  the  Queen's  Wood  Yard,  by 
Thames-side,  leading  to  Scotland  Yard.  My  vrient  John 
Evelyn  built  de  house.  I  have  been  dere." 

"Oh!"  exclaimed  Harry.  "Then  can  you  tell  me  the 
best  time  to  visit  him?" 

"Ja!  De  best  time,  it  is  ten  o'clock,  before  he  go  to  de 
palace.  He  rise  late;  he  has  many  visitors;  I  zee  him 
myself  in  his  dressing-gown  before  his  zervant  have  curled 
his  wig,  and  I  wait  my  turn  two  hours.  And  when  you 
zee  him,  you  zall  lose  no  time;  he  like  man  to  speak  out, 
mark  you." 

7* 


London   Streets 

The  Dutchman  spoke  very  slowly,  not  interrupting-  his 
meal,  and  wagging  his  fat  finger  as  he  concluded. 

"And  how  shall  I  go?     Shall  I  walk?" 

"  I'  feck,  no,"  said  Sherebiah  from  behind.  "The  night 
have  been  rainy,  and  the  streets  be  mushed  wi'  mud; 
you'd  be  spattered  from  head  to  heel,  Master  Harry. 
Nay;  you  med  walk  as  far  as  the  Exchange  and  buy  'ee 
a  pair  o'  gloves  there  for  seemliness,  and  then  get  your 
shoes  brushed  by  one  o'  the  blackguards  at  the  corner. 
Then  you  can  take  a  chair;  'tis  a  shilling  a  mile,  and  easier 
goen  nor  the  hackneys,  for  the  chairmen  walk  on  the  pave- 
ment, and  you  won't  get  jolted  nor  splashed  so  bad." 

"  Ja,  and  I  tell  you  dis,"  added  the  Dutchman.  "  Short 
poles,  and  short  men ;  zo,  dey  take  not  zo  much  room, 
and  if  dey  upzet  you,  why,  you  do  not  fall  zo  much." 

"Ay,  and  don't  let  'em  chouse  'ee  out  o'  more  than  their 
due,"  said  Sherebiah.  "  I  know  they  men.  If  they  think 
a  man  be  up  from  country,  they  look  at  un  and  then  at 
the  shilling,  up  and  down,  and  miscall  un  wi'  such  brazen 
tongues  that  he'll  pay  anything  to  save  his  ears.  A  shilling 
a  mile,  Master  Harry,  no  more." 

"Zo!  De  counsel  is  good.  But  I  give  you  a  better: 
go  not  at  all.  Lords!  I  tell  you  dis  before:  an  honest 
merchant  is  worth  two,  dree,  no  man  zay  how  many 
lords ;  and  de  Book  zay,  '  Put  not  your  drust  in  princes '. 
Still,  I  wish  you  good  luck,  my  young  vrient,  Jan 
Grootz;  zo!" 

He  squeezed  Harry's  hand  in  his  own  great  fist,  and 
then,  having  demolished  his  mountain  of  food,  filled  his 
pipe  and  set  forth  for  the  Custom  House  on  Thames  bank. 
Two  hours  later,  Harry  left  the  inn  under  Sherebiah's  guid- 
ance, and  for  the  first  time  in  his  life  trod  the  streets  of 
London.  Filled  though  his  mind  was  with  the  approach- 
ing interview,  which  might  mean  so  much  to  him,  he  was 
yet  able  to  take  an  interest  in  the  strange  scenes  that 
opened  before  his  inexperienced  eyes:  the  brilliant  shops, 
each  with  its  sign  of  painted  copper,  pewter,  or  wood 
hanging  from  iron  branches;  the  taverns  and  coffee- 

73 


A  Chair! 

houses,  already  crowded  with  people  eager  to  hear  and 
discuss  the  news,  and  perhaps  to  get  a  peep  at  the 
morning's  Courant;  the  court  and  porticoes  of  the  Royal 
Exchange,  to  which  merchants  were  flocking;  the  crowds 
of  money-dealers  in  Change  Alley,  looking  for  clients.  He 
went  up  to  the  gallery  on  the  first  floor  of  the  Exchange, 
and  bought  a  pair  of  gloves  from  a  neat  and  pretty  girl  at 
one  of  the  booths;  then  strolled  along,  admiring  the  rich 
and  dazzling  display  of  silks  and  jewellery  which  a  few 
hours  later  would  attract  all  the  fine  ladies  in  town. 

Descending  to  the  street  again,  he  passed  up  Cheapside 
and  through  St.  Paul's  Churchyard,  down  Ludgate  Hill 
and  through  Ludgate,  where  he  beheld  impaled  on  stakes 
a  row  of  hideous  heads  of  traitors,  one  of  which,  Shere- 
biah  told  him  with  indignation,  was  that  of  Noll  Crum'ell. 
Then  skirting  the  Fleet  Ditch,  once  navigable,  but  now  a 
noisome  slimy  sewer,  he  came  into  Fleet  Street,  through 
Temple  Bar  to  the  Strand,  and  at  length  arrived  at  Charing 
Cross,  where  he  was  nearly  overturned  by  a  hasty  chair- 
man, whose  "  By  your  leave!"  was  not  yet  familiar  to  his 
ears.  At  Charing  Cross  stood  a  number  of  boys  with 
boxes  before  them  on  the  pavement,  and  cries  of  "Clean 
your  shoes!"  "  London  fucus!"  "  Best  Spanish  blacking!" 
came  in  eager  competing  tones.  Sherebiah  selected  one 
whose  stand  was  in  front  of  a  barber's  shop. 

"  Here's  the  blackguard  for  'ee,  Master  Harry,"  he  said. 
"  He'll  shine  your  shoes  while  barber  shaves  my  stubble. 
A  penny;  no  more." 

When  the  shoes  were  polished  and  the  stubble  mown, 
Sherebiah  called  up  a  couple  of  chairmen  who  were  sitting 
on  their  poles  near  by. 

"Do  'ee  know  my  Lord  Godolphin's  noble  house?"  he 
asked. 

"  Ay;  servant,  sir." 

"Well  then,  carry  my  young  master  to  that  very  house, 
and  see  'ee  don't  jolt  'n,  or  drop  'n,  or  let  'n  get  splashed. 
'Tis  under  a  mile,  Master  Harry,"  he  whispered  at  parting. 

Harry  would  rather  have  walked.  The  men  took  what 

74 


A  Great  Man's  Portals 

care  they  could,  but  the  press  of  people  was  so  great  that 
they  had  to  dodge  at  every  few  steps,  and  their  fare 
gripped  the  seat  to  prevent  himself  from  being  knocked 
against  first  one  side,  then  the  other,  of  the  conveyance. 
At  the  corner  of  Whitehall,  as  they  turned  into  Scotland 
Yard,  a  passing  dray  splashed  up  a  shower  of  liquid  mud, 
and  Harry  felt  a  moist  dab  upon  his  nose.  Fortunately 
the  spot  was  soon  removed  with  his  handkerchief;  and 
when,  after  crossing  by  the  Charcoal  House  and  through 
the  Wood  Yard,  the  chairmen  at  length  set  him  down  at 
the  door  of  Godolphin's  house,  he  would  have  felt  no 
anxiety  about  his  personal  appearance,  if  he  had  been 
sufficiently  self-conscious  to  think  about  it.  He  had  put 
on  his  best  coat,  silk  stockings,  and  buckle  shoes;  at  his 
side  he  wore  the  sword  about  which  he  had  spoken  to 
Sherebiah.  He  sprang  alertly  up  the  steps,  and  looked 
about  him  with  a  keen  quick  gaze  that  bespoke  a  definite 
purpose. 

The  great  entrance-hall  was  thronged.  Servants,  officers, 
government  officials,  men  about  town,  stood  in  groups  or 
moved  here  and  there  in  pursuit  of  their  several  objects 
of  business  or  pleasure.  No  one  appeared  to  remark  the 
presence  of  the  new-comer,  who  walked  quietly  through 
the  throng  towards  the  broad  staircase.  At  the  foot  a 
gorgeously-dressed  flunkey  was  standing,  to  whom  one 
or  two  gentlemen  had  already  applied  for  information. 
As  Harry  was  about  to  address  him,  his  attention  was 
attracted  by  a  woolly-pated  wide-grinning  black  boy,  who 
at  that  moment  ran  down  the  stairs.  He  carried  a  silver 
tray,  on  which  a  cup  and  jug  of  fine  porcelain  jingled  as 
he  ran. 

"  Done,  Sambo?"  asked  the  tall  flunkey  at  the  stair-foot. 

"  Yussir!"  replied  the  boy  with  a  white  grin.  "  My  lord 
jolly  dis  mornin ;  oh  yes ;  drink  him  chocolate  without  one 
cuss.  Gwine  to  begin  work  now;  oh  yes." 

"Can  I  see  the  Lord  Godolphin?"  asked  Harry,  step- 
ping up  to  the  servant  as  Sambo  disappeared. 

The  man  gave  Harry  a  stare,  but  answered  respectfully: 

75 


An  Effort   of  Memory 

"  My  lord's  levee  is  over,  sir.  The  nig-ger  brings  down 
the  tray  when  the  last  visitor  has  gone." 

"  I  have  come  specially  to  see  my  lord,  and ' 

"  Have  you  an  appointment,  sir?" 

"  I  think  if  you  will  take  my  name  to  my  lord  he  will 
see  me." 

Harry  spoke  quietly ;  he  was  determined  not  to  be  turned 
from  his  purpose  by  mere  formality  or  red  tape.  The  man 
eyeing  him  saw  nothing-  but  self-possession  and  confidence 
in  his  air. 

"  My  lord  is  now  engaged  with  his  correspondence,"  he 
said.  "  He  does  not  brook  interruption." 

"My  name  is  Harry  Rochester;  I  will  answer  for  it 
that  you  will  do  no  wrong  in  acquainting  his  lordship." 

After  a  moment's  hesitation  the  man  beckoned  to  a 
fellow-servant,  and  gave  him  Harry's  message.  He  went 
upstairs,  and  returning  in  a  few  minutes  said : 

"What  is  your  business  with  my  lord,  sir?  His  lord- 
ship does  not  remember  your  name." 

There  was  the  suggestion  of  a  sneer  in  the  man's  voice. 
With  hardly  a  perceptible  pause  Harry  replied : 

"Tell  his  lordship  I  am  from  Winton  St.  Mary,  at  his 
invitation." 

A  faint  smile  curled  the  lips  of  the  two  flunkeys.  The 
second  again  mounted  the  stairs.  When  he  descended,  his 
face  wore  its  usual  expression  of  deference  and  respect. 

"  Be  so  good  as  to  wait  upon  his  lordship,"  he  said,  and 
led  the  way. 

In  a  few  minutes  Harry  found  himself,  hat  in  hand, 
making  his  bow  to  Lord  Godolphin  in  a  large  wainscoted 
apartment.  Four  large  candles  burnt  upon  the  mantel- 
piece, daylight  being  kept  out  by  the  heavy  curtains  on 
either  side  of  the  narrow  window.  A  huge  log  fire  filled 
the  chimney-place ;  beyond  it  stood  a  broad  table  littered 
with  papers,  which  at  that  moment  a  young  man  was 
sorting  by  the  light  of  a  shaded  candle.  Lord  Godolphin 
was  in  dressing-gown  and  slippers. 

"Well,  sir? "he  said. 

76 


Patronage 


"  My  name  is  Rochester,  my  lord." 

"  I  am  aware  of  that.     I  do  not  recall  it.     Well?" 

My  lord's  tone  was  cold  and  uninviting. 

"Your  lordship  will  permit  me  to  mention  a  little  in- 
cident on  the  Roman  road  by  Sir  Godfrey  Fanshawe's 
park,  when " 

"  Stay,  I  remember  now.     You  are  the  lad  they  called 
the  young"  parson,  eh?     I   have  a  poor  head  for  names 
When  my  man  spoke  of  Winton  St.  Mary  I  supposed  you 
might   be  a  messenger   from   the  gentleman  who   enter 
tained  us  there." 

Now  that  Harry  was  actually  face  to  face  with  the 
Lord  Treasurer,  he  felt  some  diffidence  in  opening  <he 
subject  of  his  visit.  My  lord,  in  spite  of  his  desha^Jle, 
seemed  far  less  approachable  than  he  had  been  r>i<  the 
old  Roman  road.  Then  he  was  the  country  sport/  /nan ; 
now  he  was  the  chief  minister  of  the  Queen. 

"Your  shouting  friend  with  the  scriptural  nam». — how 
is  he?"  he  asked  in  a  somewhat  more  cordial  ton*. 

"  He  is  well,  my  lord;  he  is  with  me  in  London.' 

"And  your  father:  has  he  won  his  case  against  the 
squire?  I  heard  something  of  him  at  Sir  Godfrey  Fan- 
shawe's, I  think." 

"  My  father  is  dead,  my  lord." 

' '  Indeed !  Pray  accept  my  condolences.  And  now,  tell 
me  what  brings  you  here." 

"Your  lordship  may  remember,  after  the  scene  with 
the  highwaymen " 

' '  Yes,  yes ;  you  did  me  a  service,  you  and  your  man ; 
what  then?" 

"  It  was  but  a  slight  service,  my  lord;  I  do  not  presume 
on  it;  but  you  were  so  good  as  to  say  that  if,  at  some 
future  time,  I  should  find  myself  in  need  of  assistance, 
I  was  to  come  to  your  lordship." 

"Why,  I  did  speak  of  a  country  parsonage,  I  believe. 
But  you," — he  smiled — "why,  I  really  may  not  venture  to 
set  you  up  in  a  cure  of  souls.  You  have  to  take  your 
degrees  yet." 

77 


Marlborough 


"That  is  impossible,  my  lord.  My  father  impoverished 
himself  in  his  feuds  with  Mr.  Berkeley;  when  his  affairs 
were  settled  I  found  myself  possessed  of  but  a  poor  twenty 
guineas.  I  have  given  up  all  thought  of  going  to  Oxford ; 
I  must  seek  a  livelihood." 

"H'm!" 

Lord  Godolphin  looked  him  up  and  down,  as  though 
estimating  his  chances  of  making  his  way  in  the  world. 

"You  wear  a  sword,"  he  said.  "Rochester — you  are 
no  connection  of  the  earl's? — no,  of  course  .not,  he  is  a 
Wilmot.  Where  do  you  spring  from?" 

"  My  grandfather  was  a  soldier,  my  lord;  I  have  heard 
that  he  died  young,  but  my  father  seldom  spoke  of  these 
matters;  we  have  no  relatives." 

"H'm!  I  bethink  me  now,  you  yourself  have  an  itch 
for  martial  life.  All  boys  have,  I  suppose.  Young  Lord 
Churchill  was  cut  to  the  heart  a  few  months  ago  because 
my  lady  Marlborough  would  not  permit  him  to  follow  his 
father  to  Flanders.  Well,  to  be  frank  with  you,  I  see  no 
way  of  helping  you.  With  twenty  guineas  you  can  no 
more  buy  a  commission  than  you  can  enter  yourself  at 
a  college.  To  enlist  as  a  common  soldier  would  be  a  last 
resource  to  one  of  your  breeding.  There  are  too  many 
young  scions  of  good  stocks  for  the  lesser  places  at  court 
to  go  round  among  them.  Yet  I  would  fain  do  something 
for  you." 

He  began  to  saunter  up  and  down  the  room,  his  hands 
clasped  behind  him,  stopping  for  a  moment  to  listen  as  the 
sound  of  cheers  came  from  the  street.  Suddenly  the  door 
was  opened,  and  the  voice  of  the  servant  was  heard  an- 
nouncing a  visitor. 

"  My  lord  Marlborough." 

Harry  looked  with  eager  curiosity  as  the  great  soldier 
entered  the  room.  He  saw  a  tall,  singularly  handsome 
man,  with  short  curved  upper  lip,  firm  chin,  long  almond- 
shaped  eyes,  and  a  calm  benignity  of  expression.  John 
Churchill,  Earl  of  Marlborough,  was  at  this  time  fifty-two 
years  of  age.  As  captain-general  of  the  English  forces, 

78 


A  Step  in  the  Peerage 

in  the  summer  of  this  year,  1702,  he  had  opened  in 
concert  with  the  Dutch  a  campaign  in  Flanders  against 
Louis  the  Fourteenth  of  France, — a  new  campaign  in  the 
great  war  of  the  Spanish  Succession  which  the  policy  of 
William  the  Third  had  bequeathed  to  his  sister-in-law. 
Venloo  and  other  towns  had  been  captured  by  the  con- 
federate armies,  Liege  had  been  reduced,  and  the  forces 
having  gone  into  winter  quarters,  Marlborough  had  re- 
turned to  England  to  support  the  Occasional  Conformity 
Bill.  He  was  a  close  personal  friend  of  Godolphin,  and 
allied  to  him  by  the  marriage  of  Francis  Godolphin  to  his 
daughter  Henrietta. 

"Welcome,  my  dear  lord!"  said  Godolphin,  starting 
forward  to  meet  the  earl.  "  I  did  not  know  you  had 
arrived." 

"  I  am  but  just  come  from  waiting  on  the  Queen,"  said 
Marlborough.  "  I  arrived  late  last  night." 

"You  are  welcome  indeed.  All  men's  mouths  are  full 
of  your  praises." 

"Ay,"  returned  Marlborough  with  a  smile;  "your 
Londoners  have  lusty  throats.  And  I  have  a  piece  of 
news  for  you."  He  dropped  his  voice:  the  secretary  had 
vanished  through  a  further  door:  Harry  stood  in  a  quan- 
dary, the  noblemen  both  seeming  to  ignore  his  presence. 
"The  Queen  has  been  pleased  to  express  her  wish  to 
make  me  a  duke." 

Godolphin  laid  his  hand  on  his  friend's  arm,  and  said 
cordially:  "I  congratulate  you,  Jack,  with  all  my  heart. 
Why,  this  very  morning  I  have  a  letter  from  Churchill  at 
Cambridge;  there  are  shrewd  wits  there;  he  says  'tis 
whispered  you  are  to  be  raised  in  the  peerage,  and  the 
boy,  young  dog,  begs  me  to  tell  him  what  his  own  title 
will  be  then." 

"Ah!  'tis  over  soon  to  talk  of  it.  I  must  acquaint  my 
lady  first,  and  methinks  she  will  object." 

"  Stap  me,  Jack!  'tis  few  women  would  hesitate  to  ex- 
change countess  for  duchess. — God  bless  me,  I'd  forgotten 
the  boy!  My  lord,  this  is  the  hero  of  the  little  adventure 

79 


A   Memorandum 

at  Winton  St.  Mary  I  writ  you  of.  'Twas  he  that  in- 
spired the  stout  fellow  to  shout,  and  scared  the  highway- 
men out  of  their  five  wits." 

Marlborough  looked  towards  Harry,  who  flushed  and 
bowed.  An  idea  seemed  to  strike  Godolphin.  Linking 
his  arm  with  the  earl's,  he  led  him  slowly  to  the  other 
end  of  the  room,  and  stood  there  talking  earnestly  to  him 
in  tones  too  low  for  Harry  to  catch  a  word.  Once  or 
twice  both  glanced  at  the  tall  youthful  figure  standing 
in  some  natural  embarrassment  near  the  door.  Once 
Marlborough  shook  his  head  and  frowned,  upon  which 
Godolphin  took  him  by  a  button  of  his  laced  coat  and 
spoke  more  earnestly  than  before.  At  length  Marlborough 
smiled,  laid  a  hand  on  Godolphin's  shoulder,  and  spoke  a 
few  words  in  his  ear.  Then  he  turned  about,  and  coming 
slowly  towards  Harry,  said,  in  his  clear  bell-like  tones: 

"  My  lord  Godolphin  tells  me  you  have  lost  your  father 
and  are  all  but  penniless.  Tis  an  unfortunate  situation 
for  a  lad  of  your  years.  You  would  serve  the  Queen?" 

"Ay,  my  lord." 

"You  have  a  quick  wit,  my  lord  says.  I  may  make 
some  use  of  you.  Write  your  name  on  a  piece  of  paper, 
and  the  name  of  your  lodging." 

Godolphin  motioned  him  to  the  table,  where  he  found 
paper  and  a  pencil.  He  wrote  his  name  and  the  name  of 
his  inn,  and  handed  the  paper  to  Marlborough,  who  said, 
as  he  folded  it  and  placed  it  in  his  pocket : 

"  I  will  send  for  you,  Master  Rochester,  if  I  can  serve 
you." 

"  My  lord,  I  am  much  beholden  to  you — "  began  Harry. 

Marlborough  interrupted  him. 

"  'Tis  my  lord  Godolphin  you  should  thank  for  his  good 
word." 

"'Faith,  my  lord,"  said  Godolphin,  "'tis  due  to  Master 
Rochester  that  the  Queen  is  served  by  her  present  Lord 
Treasurer.  I  am  glad,  my  lad,  that  my  friend  Lord 
Marlborough  chanced  to  come  upon  us  here,  and  I  hope 
you  will  have  reason  to  be  glad  also.  Now,  you  will 

80 


My  Lord   Marlborough 


A   Friend  in  London 

excuse  us;  we  have  matters  of  state  to  speak  of;  I  wish 
you  well." 

Harry  murmured  his  thanks  and  bowed  himself  out. 
His  nerves  were  a-tingle  with  his  unexpected  good  fortune. 
To  have  seen  and  spoken  with  the  greatest  man  in  the 
kingdom  was  itself  an  unforeseen  privilege;  and  the 
prospect  of  assistance  from  such  a  powerful  and  august 
personage  filled  him  with  elation.  The  earl  had  shown 
no  great  cordiality,  it  was  true;  but  Harry  was  inclined 
to  draw  good  augury  from  the  few  words  he  had  uttered. 
They  were  probably  more  sincere  than  a  warm  volubility 
would  have  been.  He  left  the  house  with  a  sparkling  eye 
and  a  springy  gait,  and  looked  eagerly  around  to  see  if 
Sherebiah  were  near  at  hand  to  hear  his  news.  But  Shere- 
biah  was  nowhere  to  be  seen.  Having  no  particular  busi- 
ness, now  that  his  great  errand  was  accomplished,  Harry 
walked  through  Whitehall  into  St.  James's  Park,  in  the 
hope  that  he  might  catch  a  glimpse  of  Queen  Anne  herself. 
The  guard  had  just  been  changed  at  St.  James's  Palace, 
and  a  stream  of  people  met  him  as  he  strolled  along  the 
Mall.  He  was  interested  in  watching  them — the  fine  ladies 
with  their  hoops  and  patches,  the  beaux  with  their  many- 
coloured  coats,  canes  dangling  at  their  buttons,  toothpicks 
between  their  teeth,  and  snuff-boxes  in  frequent  use.  So 
absorbed  was  he  that  he  was  startled  when  all  at  once  a 
hand  struck  him  a  hearty  blow  on  the  shoulder,  and  a 
voice  exclaimed: 

"  Hey,  Harry,  what  make  you,  ogling  the  ladies?" 

He  turned  and  saw  his  friend  Godfrey  Fanshawe,  the 
captain  of  the  cricket  team  to  whose  victory  he  had  so 
much  contributed.  The  two  young  fellows  shook  hands 
heartily. 

"  What  brings  you  to  London?"  continued  Fanshawe. 

"  I've  come  in  search  of  fortune,  like  Dick  Whittington. 
You  heard  of  my  father's  death?" 

"Ay,  but  nothing  since.  They  seldom  write  letters  at 
home." 

Harry  then  explained  the  course  of  events  which  had 

81 


A  Dinner  at  Locket's 

brought  him  to  London,  concluding1  with  his  recent  inter- 
view with  Marlborough  and  Godolphin. 

"Egad,  man!"  exclaimed  Fanshawe,  "you're  in  luck's 
way  indeed.  Would  that  I  stood  so  well  with  the  two 
greatest  men  in  England.  My  lord  Marlborough  will 
gazette  you  an  ensign  of  foot  or  a  cornet  of  horse;  and 
my  cornetcy,  I  may  tell  you,  cost  my  father  a  pretty 
penny.  What  luck,  Harry,  if  we  make  the  next  campaign 
together !  The  earl  will  surely  go  back  to  Flanders  when 
the  winter  is  over." 

"  I  should  like  nothing  better." 

"Where  are  you  staying?" 

"At  the  Angel  and  Crown,  in  Threadneedle  Street." 

"You  must  leave  that  and  come  westward.  Are  you 
alone?" 

"Sherry  Minshull  is  with  me  at  present;  but  he'll  get 
work  for  himself  as  soon  as  I  am  settled." 

"Sherry's  a  handy  fellow;  egad,  I  know  no  better! 
He'll  tie  a  fly  with  any  man,  and  is  as  good  with  sword 
or  quarterstaff  as  he  is  with  his  fists.  Well  now,  'tis 
drawing  towards  dinner-time;  come  and  dine  with  me; 
the  people  of  fashion  here  dine  at  four,  but  I  stick  to 
country  habits.  We'll  go  to  Locket's  at  Charing  Cross; 
you're  my  guest  to-day.  And  we'll  go  to  the  play  this 
evening;  the  first  time,  I  warrant  you,  you've  seen  a  play. 
Come !  I  stand  well  with  the  people  at  Locket's,  and  the 
sharp  air  this  morning  has  given  me  an  appetite." 

It  was  but  five  minutes'  walk  to  Locket's  tavern.  Enter- 
ing, Fanshawe  bowed  with  elaborate  courtesy  to  the  fair 
dame  in  charge,  and  called  for  the  card. 

"There's  boiled  beef  and  carrots,  I  see,  and  a  goose, 
and  look,  a  calf  s  head.  I  adore  calf  s  head.  What  say 
you?  Yes?  Boy,  bring  calf  s  head  for  two,  and  quickly." 

With  calf  s  head  and  cabbage  and  a  wedge  of  Cheshire 
cheese,  the  two  young  fellows  appeased  their  unjaded 
appetites.  Fanshawe  sat  for  some  time  finishing  his 
bottle  of  wine,  Harry  contenting  himself  with  small  beer. 
Then,  as  there  still  remained  a  few  hours  to  while  away 

82 


Mr.   Colley  Gibber 


before  theatre  time,  Fanshawe  proposed  a  row  on  the 
river.  Harry  eagerly  assented;  they  sallied  forth,  took 
boat  at  Westminster  stairs  and  rowed  up  to  Chelsea, 
returning  to  Westminster  in  time  for  the  performance 
of  Mr.  Colley  Gibber's  new  play,  "She  would  and  she 
would  not",  by  Her  Majesty's  Servants  at  Drury  Lane. 
Harry  was  delighted  with  his  first  visit  to  the  theatre.. 
He  was  tickled  at  the  unabashed  impertinence  of  Trap- 
panti  the  discarded  servant,  played  by  Mr.  Penkethman, 
one  of  the  best  comedians  in  London,  as  Fanshawe  in- 
formed him;  and  fell  in  love  with  Hypolita  the  heroine, 
a  part  which  suited  Mrs.  Mountford  to  perfection.  But 
he  was  perhaps  most  interested  in  Mr.  Colley  Gibber  him- 
self, who  played  the  part  of  Don  Manuel  the  irascible 
father.  His  pleasure  was  complete  when,  after  the  per- 
formance, Fanshawe  took  him  to  the  Bull's  Head  tavern, 
and  showed  him  Mr.  Gibber  with  his  paint  washed  off, 
surrounded  by  a  circle  of  actors,  soldiers,  lords,  and  even 
clergymen.  He  had  never  seen  an  author  before.  Mr. 
Gibber  had  no  presence  to  boast  of,  with  his  thick  legs, 
lean  face,  and  sandy  hair;  but  the  liveliness  of  his  con- 
versation gave  him  a  sort  of  pre-eminence  among  his 
coterie,  and  made  a  considerable  impression  on  a  youth 
ready  to  admire  and  wonder  at  anything. 

Fanshawe  appeared  quite  at  home  among  the  company. 
He  was  indeed  a  frequent  visitor  at  the  Bull's  Head  after 
the  play,  where  all  were  welcome  on  condition  of  providing 
their  quota  towards  the  general  hilarity.  Fanshawe  was 
the  lucky  possessor  of  a  fine  baritone  voice,  and  his  spirited 
singing  of  west-country  songs  had  won  him  instant  popu- 
larity. On  this  night,  in  response  to  the  usual  call,  he 
began — 

"  Tom  Pearce,  Tom  Pearce,  lend  me  thy  grey  mare, 

All  along,  down  along,  out  along  lee ; 
For  I  want  for  to  go  to  Widdicombe  Fair, 
Wi'  Bill  Brewer,  Jan  Stewer,   Peter  Gurney,   Peter  Davy, 

Dan  Whiddon,  Harry  Hawk, 
Old  uncle  Tom  Cobleigh,  and  all  "; 

83 


Great  Expectations 


and  by  the  time  he  reached  the  end  of  the  third  of  the 
eight  stanzas,  the  whole  company  were  ready  to  join  him 
in  trolling  the  chorus, 

"  Old  uncle  Tom  Cobleigh  and  all ". 

It  was  late  when  Harry  reached  the  Angel  and  Crown. 
Sherebiah  was  marching  up  and  down  before  the  tavern, 
blowing  great  clouds  from  his  pipe. 

"  Hey  now,  Master  Harry,"  he  said,  with  an  expression 
of  mingled  wrath  and  relief;  "'tis  a  mighty  scurvy  trick 
you  have  played  me,  i'  feck  'tis  so.  Here  we  are,  your 
second  day  in  London,  and  you  must  go  off  along  by  your 
lone  self  on  who  knows  what  errand  o'  foolery.  Ay,  'tis 
strong  words  for  me,  and  a  man  o'  peace  and  all,  but 
not  too  strong,  seee'n  as  I  knows  the  wicked  ways  o'  the 
town  and  you  be  unfledged.  Zooks,  sir,  I've  been  in  a 
terrible  way,  thinken  all  manner  of  awsome  an'  gashly 
things,  as  how  you  med  ha'  been  trepanned,  or  slit  by 
the  Scourers,  or  trampled  by  some  high  lard's  horses,  or 
rifled  and  beat  by  footpads,  or  'ticed  into  a  dicing  den  by 
sweetners  always  on  the  look-out  for  a  country  gudgeon, 
or " 

"  Hold,  Sherry,  you  forget  yourself,"  said  Harry,  who 
was,  however,  not  displeased  to  find  the  honest  fellow  so 
solicitous  about  him.  "  In  truth,  I  forgot  all  about  you. 
I  can  take  care  of  myself,  I  think.  I  dined  with  Mr.  God- 
frey Fanshawe,  whom  I  chanced  to  meet,  and  we  went  to 
the  play  afterwards,  and  I  never  laughed  so  much  in  my 
life.  Mrs.  Mountford's  a  beauty,  Sherry,  and  Mr.  Gibber — 
when  he  doesn't  squeak — has  the  pleasantest  voice  ever  I 
heard — nay,  not  that,  after  all ;  'tis  not  so  pleasant  as  my 
lord  Marlborough's.  What  d'ye  think,  Sherry?  I  met  the 
earl  himself  at  Lord  Godolphin's,  and  he  has  my  name  on 
a  scrap  of  paper,  and  to-morrow  or  next  day  I  shall  hold 
the  queen's  commission,  and  then  off  with  the  troops 
to  Flanders,  and  I  shall  make  my  fortune,  man,  and 
then " 


A   Thick  Stick 

"Huh!"  put  in  a  voice  from  the  doorway.  "  Haastige 
spoed  is  zelden  goed." 

Harry's  excitement  was  dashed  by  the  slow  drawl  of 
Mynheer  Grootz,  whose  little  eyes  were  twinkling  as  he 
puffed  at  his  big  pipe. 

"Ay,  a  true  word,"  said  Sherebiah.  '"More  haste,  less 
speed,'  as  the  Dutch  words  mean  put  into  rightful  lan- 
guage. '  Counten  chickens  afore  they  be  hatched,'  as  ye 
med  say." 

Though  he  was  a  little  nettled,  Harry  had  too  much 
good  sense  not  to  see  that  his  elation  had  carried  him 
too  far.  He  could  laugh  at  himself — an  excellent  virtue 
in  man  or  boy. 

"I  am  an  ass,  Mr.  Grootz,"  he  said;  "but  really  I  did 
not  expect  such  good  luck.  My  lord  Godolphin  was 
very  kind,  and  so  was  the  earl,  and  as  he  used  but  few 
words  I  do  think  he  meant  what  he  said.  I  am  sorry  my 
absence  made  you  uneasy,  Sherry ;  but  I  don't  understand 
why  you  should  imagine  all  manner  of  harm." 

"An  ye  knew "  began  Sherebiah;  but  he  paused, 

hemmed,  and  changed  his  sentence.  "All's  well  as  ends 
well,  Master  Harry;  I  axe  your  pardon  for  my  free  words; 
and  here  be  a  fine  stout  piece  of  ash  I  bought  in  Fleet  Street 
for  your  hand.  Feel  un;  'twill  crack  a  pate  as  quick  as 
speaken,  and  I'll  be  more  easy  in  mind  knowen  you  have 
such  a  good  staff  in  company." 

"Thanks,  Sherry!"  said  Harry  with  a  laugh,  weighing 
in  his  hand  the  stick  with  which  the  man  presented  him. 
"  But  I'm  a  man  of  peace,  you  know,  eh? — at  present. 
Now  let's  to  bed." 

As  they  went  from  the  room  Harry  remarked,  "  By  the 
way,  Sherry,  how  is  it  that  you  know  Dutch?" 

"  Me  know  Dutch?  Why,  sir,  what  makes  ye  think  I 
know  that  outlandish  tongue?" 

"  Why,  didn't  you  tell  me  just  now  the  meaning  of  what 
Mynheer  Grootz  said  to  me?" 

"  Ay,  so  I  did,  now.  It  must  ha'  been  as  a  dog  knows  his 
master's  speech,  or  just  as  I  knowed  the  meanen  o'  the 


Prevarication 

holy  things  your  good  feyther  was  used  to  speak  in  the 
high  pulpit,  for  egad,  word  by  word  I  knowed  no  more 
than  the  dead  what  a'  said,  not  I." 

The  explanation  struck  Harry  as  rather  lame,  but  he 
merely  said,  with  a  laugh : 

"Well,  you'll  make  a  very  faithful  watch-dog,  Sherry. 
Good-night !  I  shall  sleep  well; — if  I  don't  dream  too  much 
of  battle  and  glory." 


CHAPTER   VII 

Snared 

SEVERAL  days  passed — days  of  unfailing-  happiness  for 
Harry.  Though  he  spent  hours  in  roaming-  the  town, 
there  was  always  something-  fresh  to  see,  something  novel 
to  capture  his  interest.  He  saw  the  state  entrance  of  the 
new  Venetian  ambassador.  He  visited  the  Tower,  the 
Abbey,  and  St.  Paul's,  saw  Winstanley's  water-works  in 
Piccadilly  near  Hyde  Park,  and  witnessed  a  football 
match  at  Covent  Garden.  He  accompanied  Fanshawe 
several  times  to  the  theatre,  and  somewhat  offended 
that  sparkish  young-  gentleman  by  constantly  refusing 
to  join  him  in  card -parties  and  night  escapades  in 
the  streets.  He  saw  a  back -sword  match  at  the  Bear 
Garden  in  Hockley  in  the  Hole,  and  a  billiard  match  at 
the  Greyhound  Coffee-house  near  Monmouth  Street. 
Apart  from  these  public  sights,  he  found  endless  diversion 
in  the  ordinary  street  scenes :  the  markets,  the  itinerant 
vendors,  the  acrobats,  or  posture-masters  as  they  were 
then  called,  who  performed  their  dancing  and  tumbling 
in  squares  remote  from  the  traffic.  It  amused  Harry  that 
Sherebiah  never  tired  of  these  mountebank  tricks,  but 
would  stand  and  watch  them  with  unflagging  interest  by 
the  hour,  applauding  every  neatly  executed  feat,  and 
criticising  with  unsparing  severity  every  instance  of 
clumsiness  or  bungling.  Soldiers,  on  the  other  hand, 
apparently  did  not  interest  Sherebiah.  Harry  liked  to 
watch  them  drilling  on  the  Horse  Guards'  parade  or  in 
Hyde  Park;  but  on  these  occasions  Sherebiah  always 
strolled  away,  waiting  with  impatience  until  his  young 
master  had  satisfied  his  curiosity. 

"  They  won't  kill  you,  Sherry,"  said  Harry  once,  laugh- 

(B357)  87  G 


Hope  Deferred 


ing  as  the  man  sheered  off.  "Their  muskets  are  not 
loaded." 

"  True.  But  'tis  no  pleasure  to  me  to  see  such  men 
o'  war.  Feyther  o'  mine  were  a  trooper;  he  be  always 
talken  on  it;  I  be  a  man  o'  peace,  I  be." 

Every  day  when  he  came  down  to  breakfast,  and  when 
he  returned  in  the  evening,  Harry  eagerly  looked  for  a 
message  from  Lord  Maryborough.  But  the  days  passed; 
a  week  flew  by;  and  still  no  message  came.  After  the 
second  day  he  made  no  reference  to  the  matter ;  Sherebiah 
and  Grootz  considerately  forbore  to  allude  to  it.  But  they 
watched  him  with  shrewd  eyes,  and  saw,  through  all  the 
curiosity  and  pleasure  he  took  in  his  new  life,  a  growing 
sense  of  disappointment  and  anxiety.  He  had  built  high 
hopes  upon  the  interview  at  Godolphin's ;  as  boys  will,  he 
had  allowed  his  fancy  to.  outstrip  his  judgment,  and  had 
added  a  good  deal  of  embroidery  to  the  simple  facts. 
Already  in  imagination  he  saw  himself  carrying  the 
Queen's  colours,  performing  heroic  deeds  in  the  field,  win- 
ning golden  opinions  from  the  general,  coming  home 
laden  with  honour  and  substantial  rewards,  perhaps  to 
gain,  as  the  acme  of  bliss,  an  approving  smile  from  the 
Queen  herself.  And  he  would  wake  from  these  day-dreams 
to  the  sober  reality — that  the  desired  message  from  Marl- 
borough  had  not  come,  and  meanwhile  time  was  fleeting 
by,  and  every  day  saw  his  little  stock  of  money 
diminished. 

He  had  resisted  Fanshawe's  recommendation  to  change 
his  lodging.  Charges  were  higher,  Sherebiah  informed 
him,  in  the  more  fashionable  parts,  and  he  knew  that  he 
could  not  afford  to  run  risks.  At  first  he  had  not  been 
parsimonious;  he  was  not  extravagant  by  nature,  but  he 
had  not  hesitated  to  buy  a  trifle  that  pleased  him,  to  give 
largesse  to  the  ballad-singers  and  street  musicians,  to  pay 
his  eighteenpence  for  a  seat  in  the  pit  at  Drury  Lane  or 
Lincoln's  Inn  Fields.  But  he  gave  all  this  up,  and  thought 
twice  about  spending  a  penny.  He  bought  only  the 
strictest  necessaries,  and  for  his  amusement  depended  on 


Motes  in  the   Sunbeam 

the  sights  of  the  streets,  the  parks,  and  the  river,  and  such 
entertainment  as  could  be  had  at  the  coffee-houses, 
where  for  a  penny  he  could  obtain  a  dish  of  coffee,  read 
the  Daily  Courant  with  its  manuscript  supplement,  or 
Dawks's  News  Letter,  and  hear  all  the  news  of  the  day 
discussed  with  more  heat  than  information  by  arm-chair 
politicians. 

One  day  the  Courant  announced  that  the  Queen  had 
been  pleased  to  confer  the  dignity  of  a  dukedom  upon 
the  Earl  of  Marlborough,  and  that  the  House  of  Commons 
would  be  asked  to  grant  him  an  annual  pension  to  match 
his  new  rank.  Harry  remembered  what  he  had  heard 
pass  between  Marlborough  and  Godolphin,  and  when 
the  coffee-house  gossips  supplemented  the  official  intima- 
tion with  the  rumour  that  the  Countess  Sarah  had  been 
violently  opposed  to  her  husband's  elevation  in  the  peerage, 
he  understood  the  meaning  of  the  peculiar  tone  in  which 
Marlborough  had  spoken  of  acquainting  her  ladyship. 
The  new  duchess  was  the  theme  of  much  conversation 
and  many  jests  in  these  free-spoken  assemblies.  Marl- 
borough  was  a  very  great  general ;  everybody  was  agreed 
on  that;  but  it  was  doubted  whether  he  was  master  in 
his  own  house;  some  said  he  was  henpecked;  one  plain 
blunt  fellow  declared  in  Harry's  hearing  that  the  duke 
was  as  much  afraid  of  his  missis  as  any  Thames  bargee. 
Harry  was  not  interested  in  Marlborough's  domestic 
affairs,  but  his  heart  sank  when  he  reflected  on  his  own 
insignificance  beside  the  great  man  whom  the  Queen  was 
delighting  to  honour.  After  all,  how  could  he  expect  a 
man  of  such  eminence,  immersed  in  state  affairs,  with  all 
the  responsibility  for  conducting  a  great  campaign,  to 
remember  a  country  youth  whom  he  had  seen  once,  and 
who  had  made,  perhaps,  as  deep  an  impression  on  him 
as  a  fly  might  make  on  a  lion. 

That  night  Harry  was  eating  his  supper,  somewhat 
moodily,  when  Mynheer  Grootz,  sitting  opposite,  made 
him  a  sudden  proposition. 

"  I  tell  you  dis,"  he  said.      "  I  go  back  to  my  country 


Mynheer  makes  an  Offer 

zoon.  I  have  business  wid  de  armies;  I  sell  hay  for 
de  horses,  meal  for  de  men.  You  are  quick,  I  see  dat; 
you  speak  French,  enough  for  my  purpose;  I  give  you 
good  wages  if  you  come  and  help  me  in  my  business." 

Harry  flushed.  The  Dutchman  dipped  a  hunk  of  bread 
into  his  soup  and  filled  his  mouth  with  it,  looking  down  at 
the  bare  deal  board  the  while. 

"I  thank  you,  Mynheer,"  said  Harry  with  some  con- 
straint. "  I  have  another  purpose,  as  you  know." 

Up  came  the  fat  forefinger,  moist  with  gravy. 

"I  speak  plain  to  you.  You  have  pride;  I  alzo.  But 
I  have  mills,  and  ships,  and  vields;  dey  are  mine;  I  am 
rich — ja,  rich;  I,  Jan  Grootz.  My  fader,  he  was  a  poor 
weaver  in  Dort;  he  work  hard  and  die  poor;  I  work  hard, 
and  grow  rich.  I  have  what  for  to  be  proud.  You  are  a 
gentleman ;  dat  is  zo ;  it  is  good  to  be  a  gentleman ;  it 
is  not  good  to  be  poor.  And  more,  it  is  not  good  to  zee 
money  go  every  day,  every  day,  and  wait  for  some  prince 
to  fill  de  empty  purse.  You  have  pride;  for  what?  For 
white  hands,  and  by  and  by  an  empty  stomach.  My  hands, 
dey  are  not  white,  naturlik ;  but  my  stomach  is  full,  and 
I  stand  up  before  any  prince;  Jan  Grootz;  zo!" 

He  spread  his  broad  hands  before  Harry,  as  though 
he  were  proud  even  of  their  horny  skin.  The  action  brought 
a  smile  to  the  lad's  gloomy  face  and  dulled  the  edge  of  his 
irritation. 

"  I  won't  debate  the  matter  with  you,"  he  said.  "  I'm 
not  afraid  of  work,  I  hope,  and  maybe  my  white  hands 
may  be  red  enough  before  long.  I  won't  despair  of  my 
lord  Marlborough  yet;  and  I  know  your  intention  is 
friendly,  Mynheer." 

The  Dutchman  grunted,  and  applied  himself  again  to 
his  meal. 

Great  as  were  Harry's  anxieties,  Sherebiah's  were  per- 
haps even  greater.  He  also  was  disappointed  by  the 
forgetfulness  or  neglect  of  Marlborough,  and  concerned 
at  the  constant  drain  upon  his  young  master's  purse;  but 
he  had  further  causes  of  trouble  of  which  Harry  was  un- 

90 


Sherebiah  on  Guard 

aware.  Ever  since  their  arrival  in  London  Sherebiah  had 
been  possessed  by  a  dread  of  irnpending  ill.  He  had 
always  in  mind  the  interview  between  Captain  Aglionby 
and  the  squire's  man  at  the  White  Hart  tavern,  and  day 
by  day  expected  it  to  bear  fruit  to  Harry's  harm;  but  for 
reasons  of  his  own  he  hesitated  to  tell  him  the  plain  truth. 
He  stuck  like  a  leech  to  Harry  when  he  went  walking,  and 
many  times  when  the  lad  would  rather  have  been  alone 
with  his  dismal  thoughts  he  found  Sherebiah  at  his  heel, 
like  the  watch-dog-  to  which  he  had  compared  him.  He 
did  not  know  that  even  when  he  succeeded  in  eluding  his 
too  solicitous  henchman,  it  was  only  in  appearance;  for 
Sherebiah,  armed  with  a  stout  ash  cudgel,  was  seldom 
many  yards  behind.  Many  a  night  after  Harry  had  gone 
disconsolate  to  his  bed,  the  man  wended  his  way  to  South- 
wark  in  the  hope  of  making  a  further  discovery;  but  he 
never  saw  the  captain  or  anyone  whom  he  knew  to  be 
connected  with  him,  and  when  at  last  he  found  an  oppor- 
tunity of  making  a  discreet  enquiry  at  the  hostelry,  he  was 
more  alarmed  than  pleased  to  find  that  Captain  Aglionby 
had  departed  some  time  before,  and  that  nothing  had 
since  been  heard  of  him. 

One  morning,  when  they  had  been  for  about  a  month 
in  London,  when  Parliament  had  been  prorogued,  and  a 
new  year  had  opened,  Sherebiah  surprised  Harry  by 
suggesting  that  they  should  remove  to  an  inn  near 
Leicester  fields. 

"Why,  you  were  against  it  when  Mr.  Fanshawe  pro- 
posed it.  How  is  it  that  you  have  changed  your  mind, 
Sherry?" 

"Well,  sir,  'tis  this  way,  if  I  med  be  so  bold.  Your 
money  be  gwine  fast,  and  'twould  never  do  to  begin  a  more 
humble  way  o'  liven  here.  Nay,  what  I  say  is,  if  you 
must  pare  and  scrape,  go  where  you  bean't  so  well  known, 
and  then  nobody'll  think  the  worse  on  'ee  for't." 

"  Hang  me,  who  talked  of  paring  and  scraping, 
Sherry?"  cried  Harry  impatiently. 

"  I    axe   your   pardon,   sir,"    said    Sherebiah   earnestly, 


New  Quarters 

"but  I  were  not  born  yesterday.  Here  are  we,  four 
weeks  in  Lun'on,  and  you  know  yourself  how  many  golden 
guineas  you  brought  wi'  'ee,  and  how  many  be  left.  Sure 
I  bean't  a  great  eater  myself,  but  even  my  little  small 
morsel  ha'  got  to  be  paid  for.  Master  Harry,  'twill  be 
best  for  'ee  to  do  as  I  say.  Ay,  an'  if  I  knowed  'ee 
wouldn't  up  and  rate  me,  I'd  say  another  thing,  I 
would  so." 

"Well— what's  that?" 

"Why,  I'd  say,  hand  over  your  purse  to  me.  Nay, 
sir,  don't  be  angry;  ye're  not  wasteful,  no;  but  if  we  go 
to  another  house,  I  can  save  'ee  many  a  penny  here  and 
penny  there  in  ways  you  wouldn't  so  much  as  dream  on. 
I  know  Lun'on  folk,  you  see;  ay,  I  know  'em  well." 

In  the  upshot,  Sherebiah  had  his  way  on  both  points. 
The  reason  for  his  change  of  front  was  that  on  the 
previous  afternoon  he  had  seen  the  squire's  man  Jock 
hanging  about  the  inn,  and  had  found  out  subsequently 
that  Captain  Aglionby  had  returned  to  his  old  quarters 
at  the  White  Hart.  It  was  just  as  well,  he  thought,  to 
take  one  step  further  from  danger  by  changing  their  lodg- 
ing. When  this  was  done,  and  Sherebiah  kept  the  purse, 
Harry  was  amazed  to  find  how  much  further  his  money 
went.  It  would  not  have  surprised  him  if  the  weekly 
bill  had  been  reduced  by  a  small  amount ;  but  when  he 
discovered  that,  though  he  fared  quite  as  well,  the  ex- 
penses were  not  half  what  they  had  been,  he  began  to 
think  that  Sherebiah  possessed  some  talisman  against 
the  cupidity  of  London  innkeepers.  He  found,  too,  that 
he  was  left  much  more  to  himself,  and  wondered  why, 
with  the  change  of  lodging,  Sherebiah's  watchfulness 
appeared  to  have  diminished. 

He  was  walking  with  Godfrey  Fanshawe  one  cold 
January  afternoon  by  Pye  Corner,  when  he  was  attracted 
by  a  crowd  of  people  gazing  at  a  street  show  that,  to 
judge  by  their  laughter  and  applause,  was  exceedingly 
entertaining.  Elbowing  their  way  through  the  stragglers 
on  the  outskirts,  the  two  young  fellows  arrived  at  a 

92 


Tumblers 

position  whence  they  could  see  what  was  going  on.  A 
group  of  posture -masters  were  performing,  and  at  the 
moment  of  Harry's  arrival,  a  short  thickset  man,  dressed 
in  fantastic  costume,  and  with  painted  face,  was  dancing 
on  his  knees  with  his  toes  in  his  hands,  keeping  time  to 
the  music  of  a  flute  and  a  violin.  The  tune  was  a  merry 
one,  and  the  movements  of  the  acrobat  irresistibly  funny, 
so  that  every  member  of  the  crowd  roared  with  laughter. 

"  Adzooks!"  exclaimed  Fanshawe,  "the  fellow's  face  is 
the  funniest  part  of  the  performance.  Look'ee,  Harry,  'tis 
as  sober  as  a  judge's  on  assize;  one  would  think  'twere  a 
hanging  matter." 

Harry  had  been  so  tickled  by  this  odd  mode  of  dancing 
that  he  had  not  noticed  the  performer's  features.  He 
glanced  at  them  now,  started  with  a  sudden  gasp,  and 
cried : 

"  By  the  Lord  Harry,  'tis " 

"  'Tis  what?"  said  Fanshawe,  looking  at  him  in  surprise. 

"Oh,  nothing!" 

"Come,  I  scent  a  mystery.     Unravel,  sir!" 

"'Tis  nothing.  See,  Fanshawe,  the  dance  is  over.  Let 
us  go  on." 

Without  waiting  for  his  companion,  he  pushed  his  way 
back  through  the  crowd. 

"  Faith,  I  don't  understand  you  of  late,  Rochester,"  said 
Fanshawe  in  a  half-vexed  tone,  when  he  overtook  him. 
"You're  moody,  full  of  whimsies,  all  starts  and  surprises. 
Would  to  Heaven  that  the  duke  would  bethink  him  of 
that  paper  you  gave  him  !  You  need  settling  in  life.  Why 
don't  you  go  to  him,  or  to  Lord  Godolphin  again?  'Tis 
few  suitors  but  would  show  more  perseverance." 

"Not  I.  'Twas  against  the  grain  to  beg  even  one 
favour.  I'd  rather  earn  my  bread  by  scraping  a  fiddle,  or 
dancing  on  my  knees  like — like  the  poor  fellow  there." 

"Well,  let  me  tell  you,  you'll  rue  your  independence. 
Adsbud,  who  would  get  on  in  this  world  if  he  didn't  pay 
court  to  the  great !  Your  starveling  poet  writes  a  flatter- 
ing dedication  to  a  lord — for  pay !  Your  snivelling  parson 

93 


Solvitur  Ambulando 

toadies  to  the  lord  of  the  manor — for  a  meal !  I  except 
your  father,  Harry;  he  was  a  rare  one.  'Tis  the  way  o' 
the  world;  we  must  all  do  it,  or  pay  the  penalty." 

"  Be  the  penalty  what  it  will,  I'll  pay  it  rather  than  play 
lick-spittle  to  any  man." 

Fanshawe  shrugged.  "  By  the  way,"  he  said,  "  Mr. 
Berkeley  is  in  town — to  pay  his  court  to  someone,  I  swear. 
'Tis  said  he  is  buying  a  commission  for  that  cub  his  son ; 
pray  Heaven  it  be  not  in  my  regiment !  That's  the  way 
o'  the  world  again.  Here's  Piers  Berkeley,  the  young 
popinjay,  all  grins  and  frippery,  like  to  carry  the  Queen's 
colours  in  a  fine  regiment  because  his  father  has  a  long 
purse,  and  you,  a  deal  more  fit  for  it,  kicking  your  heels 
for  want  of  a  rich  father  or  a  richer  patron.  I  fear  'tis  all 
up  with  your  chances  now;  but  I  wish  you  luck.  I  go  to 
Flanders  in  a  week ;  home  to-morrow  to  say  good-bye ; 
who  knows  when  we  may  meet  again!" 

The  two  friends  bade  each  other  a  cordial  farewell;  then 
Harry  returned  sadly  to  his  lodging.  Some  two  hours 
later  Sherebiah  came  back. 

"What  do  'ee  think,  Master  Harry?"  he  said.  "I  ha' 
seed  old  Squire." 

"  I  knew  he  was  in  town,"  replied  Harry.  "And  what 
do  you  think  I've  seen,  Sherry?" 

Detecting  a  something  strange  in  his  tone,  Sherebiah 
gave  him  a  hard  look. 

"  I  never  was  no  good  at  guessen,"  he  said.  "  Mebbe 
the  German  giant  at  Hercules'  Pillars,  or  the  liven  fairy 
in  Bridges  Street." 

"No,  'twas  no  giant  and  no  fairy,  but  a  short  man — 
about  your  height,  Sherry— with  a  round  face — just  as 
round  as  yours — and  a  solemn  look — like  yours  at  whiles ; 
and  what  think  you  he  was  doing?  He  was  dancing  on 
his  knees,  with  a  crowd  of  numskulls  round  him  grinning 
at  his  capers,  and " 

"There  now,  'twas  sure  to  be  found  out,  I  knowed  it. 
'Twas  me — I  don't  deny  it,  'cos  bean't  no  good." 

"Now  I  know  why  you  wanted  to  keep  the  purse,  you 

94 


Doubling 


old  dissembler.  You  eke  out  my  little  store  with  the  pence 
your  antics  fetch.  Sherry,  I  love  thee ;  I  do  indeed.  But 
how  did  you  learn  those  fantastic  tricks  with  your  knees?" 

"  Oh,  I  ha'  done  a  tiit  o'  tumblen  in  my  time;  ay  sure." 

"  You  seem  to  have  done  a  bit  of  everything".  But  when? 
and  why?  You  must  tell  me  all  about  it." 

"  Some  day  mebbe.  Ha'  led  a  motley  life  for  a  man  o' 
peace ;  so  'tis.  'Tvvould  make  old  feyther  o'  mine  drop  all 
his  old  bones  in  a  heap  if  so  be  as  he  knowed  all  my  lines 
o'  life.  The  time'll  come  to  tell  'ee,  sir,  but  'tis  not  yet, 
no." 

That  was  the  end  of  Sherebiah's  acrobatic  performances. 
From  that  day  he  stuck  to  Harry  more  closely  than  ever; 
and  the  weekly  bills  increased.  They  had  been  in  town 
now  for  nearly  two  months,  and  by  dint  of  the  greatest 
economy  Sherebiah  thougtit  that  the  money  might  last  for 
a  fortnight  longer.  Then  the  wolf  would  be  at  the  door. 
Harry  had  not  told  his  man  of  Jan  Grootz's  offer,  though 
he  surmised,  from  a  word  Sherebiah  let  fall,  that  he  knew 
of  it.  Hoping  against  hope,  he  waited  and  longed  for  some 
sign  from  the  duke.  Every  day  Sherebiah  went  to  the 
Angel  and  Crown  to  see  if  a  letter  had  come,  and  every 
day  he  came  back  disappointed.  He  had  not  given  the 
host  his  new  address,  for  reasons  of  his  own;  and  when 
on  one  of  his  visits  he  learnt  that  a  man  had  enquired 
for  the  present  whereabouts  of  Mr.  Harry  Rochester,  he 
hugged  himself  on  his  prudence.  He  would  not  have 
been  so  well  pleased  if  he  had  known  that  on  the  very  next 
day,  when  he  returned  from  the  Angel  and  Crown  by  a 
roundabout  way  to  his  inn  in  Leicester  Fields,  he  was 
shadowed  by  a  man  who  had  waited  for  several  hours 
for  the  opportunity.  And  he  would  undoubtedly  have 
counselled  a  second  change  of  abode  if  he  had  known 
that  the  spy,  after  assuring  himself  that  Harry  Rochester 
was  a  guest  of  the  inn,  had  gone  hotfoot  to  Captain 
Aglionby. 

Another  week  went  by.  On  Saturday  night  Sherebiah 
counted  up  the  contents  of  his  purse,  and  found  that  by 

95 


Sick  at  Heart 

the  end  of  the  next  week  he  would  have  spent  the  utter- 
most farthing. 

"I  give  it  back  to  'ee,  sir,"  he  said.  "Come  Monday 
morn,  I  go  to  find  work." 

"Not  so  fast,  Sherry.  We  share  alike;  when  you  go 
to  find  work,  I  go  too.  The  duke  may  send  for  me  even 
at  the  eleventh  hour." 

"A  plague  on  the  duke!  I  wish  I  may  never  hear  Of 
dukes  again  to  th'  end  o'  my  mortal  days.  A  duke's  a 
bubble,  and  that's  the  truth  on't.  Better  be  an  honest 
man,  as  Mynheer  Grootz  says." 

"'Tis  mere  forgetfulness,  I  am  sure,  Sherry.  He  has 
mislaid  the  paper,  I  suspect,  and  his  mind  being  filled 
with  weightier  matters,  has  forgotten  that  even  so  insig- 
nificant a  person  as  myself  exists." 

"  'Tis  my  belief  he  never  did  a  kindness  to  man,  woman, 
or  child  in  all  his  born  days.  Why,  all  the  chairmen  and 
hackney  coachmen  know  un ;  ay,  and  madam  his  duchess 
too.  My  lady  will  haggle  with  an  oyster -wench  over  a 
ha'penny,  and  the  only  thing  my  lord  gives  away  for  nowt 
is  his  smile.  Hang  dukes  and  duchesses,  say  I !" 

"  Well,  Sherry,  I  can't  gainsay  you,  because  I  don't 
know.  We'll  give  him  three  days'  grace,  and  then " 

He  sighed.  The  world  looked  black  to  him.  He  knew 
no  trade,  had  practised  no  art,  had  no  means  to  enter  a 
profession.  He  turned  over  in  his  mind  the  possible  open- 
ings. He  could  not  apprentice  himself  to  a  merchant  or 
handicraftsman,  for  that  needed  money.  He  might  perhaps 
get  a  clerkship  in  a  goldsmith's  or  a  warehouse;  Sir  God- 
frey Fanshawe,  no  doubt,  would  vouch  for  his  respectability ! 
He  almost  envied  the  footmen  of  gentlemen  of  quality,  who 
wore  a  livery,  earned  six  pounds  a  year,  and  a  crown  a 
week  extra  for  gloves  and  powder.  He  writhed  on  his 
sleepless  bed  that  night  as  he  contrasted  his  present  cir- 
cumstances with  his  former  prospects  and  his  recent 
imaginings.  A  clergyman,  — an  officer  of  the  Queen's, 
forsooth!  he  was  a  pauper,  a  beggar,  with  nothing  but 
his  health  and  his  wits.  Then  he  rated  himself  for  his 

96 


Too  Late 

despondency.  "Fancy  snivelling1,"  he  said  to  himself, 
"  because  a  duke  hasn't  the  grace  or  the  time  to  re- 
member a  promise!  What  would  my  father  think  of  me? 
Here  have  I  wasted  precious  time  waiting  on  a  duke's 
pleasure  when  I  might  have  been  turning  the  weeks  to 
some  profit.  And  I  was  too  proud  to  accept  the  Dutch- 
man's friendly  offer.  Egad,  I'll  go  to  him  on  Monday  and 
beg  him  to  give  me  employment;  sink  my  pride  for  good 
and  all." 

So  possessed  was  he  by  his  determination  that  Sunday 
passed  all  too  slowly.  On  Monday  morning  he  walked  early 
to  the  Angel  and  Crown  and  asked  for  Mynheer  Grootz. 
The  landlord  replied  that  Mynheer  Grootz  had  left  the  inn 
on  Friday,  removing  all  his  baggage.  He  was  about  to  sail 
for  Holland,  and,  as  the  wind  favoured,  it  was  probable 
that  his  ship  had  already  left  the  Thames.  This  news 
was  a  terrible  damper.  Harry  had  built  confidently  on 
the  anticipated  interview.  Mingled  with  his  gratitude  for 
the  coming  favour,  he  even  felt  a  pleasant  glow  at  his 
condescension  in  accepting  service  so  much  beneath  him. 
And  now  this  new  house  of  cards  was  toppled  down !  He 
turned  gloomily  away,  and  wandered  aimlessly  through  the 
streets,  disposed,  under  the  first  sting  of  the  disappoint- 
ment, to  believe  that  fate  had  indeed  a  spite  against  him. 
He  was  glad  he  had  said  nothing  to  Sherebiah  of  his  inten- 
tion, being  in  no  mood  to  endure  condolences,  in  word  or 
look.  "What  a  useless  loon  I  am!"  he  said  to  himself 
bitterly.  "  Sherry  can  earn  his  living  by  tumbling  in  the 
streets,  and  maybe  in  dozens  of  other  ways;  I  can  do 
nothing.  Even  Piers  Berkeley  has  a  commission  in  the 
army — that  puppy!" 

But  Harry  was  never  long  in  the  dumps.  He  was  only 
a  boy,  and  the  misfortunes  that  had  befallen  him  so  sud- 
denly were  sufficient  excuse  for  his  passing  fits  of  moodi- 
ness ;  but  his  was  naturally  a  sanguine  temper,  and  by  the 
time  he  reached  the  inn  his  brow  had  cleared  and  he  was 
able  to  eat  his  dinner  with  good  appetite. 

"The  last  but  one,  Sherry,"  he  said  with  a  smile.  "After 

97 


A  Debit  Balance 

to-morrow  the  purse  will  be  all  but  dry,  and  then  I  shall 
have  to  earn  my  bread.  What  do  you  say?  Will  you 
teach  me  to  stand  on  my  head,  to  begin  with?" 

"Zooks,  sir,  dont'ee  put  it  so  terrible  low.  Look'ee, 
now,  I  ha'  some  score  o'  guineas  behind  my  belt;  ye're 
welcome  to  the  loan  on  'em  till  your  ship  do  come  home." 

"You're  a  good  fellow,  Sherry,  but  I  couldn't  think  of 
it.  Do  you  want  to  make  me  still  more  ashamed  of 
myself?" 

"Well  then,  sir,  why  not  go  to  my  lord  Marlborough's 
noble  house  and  walk  up  and  down  outside  till  the  duke 
comes  out,  and  stand  full  in  his  path  and  catch  his  eye — 
or  mebbe  his  missis' ;  her  med  be  taken  wi'  'ee  and  com- 
mand her  good  man  to  remember  'ee,  for  by  all  accounts 
she " 

"Hold  your  tongue,  sirrah!"  cried  Harry  with  a  touch 
of  anger.  "  Hang  about  a  great  man's  door,  like  Lazarus 
waiting  for  the  offal !  No  indeed.  Nay.  To-morrow  we 
shall  be  adrift;  pray  God  a  fair  breeze  will  carry  us  into 
port.  Sherry,  you  had  better  go  and  tell  the  landlord  we 
shall  leave  him  to-morrow.  Ask  for  the  reckoning;  we  Will 
pay  the  score  and  begin  the  morning  at  least  free  men." 

In  half  an  hour  Sherebiah  returned  with  the  bill.  Harry 
pulled  a  long  face  as  he  glanced  at  it.  He  untied  the 
purse-strings  and  laid  his  money  out  on  the  table. 

"Tis  worse  than  I  thought,"  he  said  ruefully.  "In 
some  unconscionable  fashion  the  bill  mounts  higher  this 
week;  I  am  ten  shillings  short  without  vails  to  the 
servants." 

"Ah,  I  know  Lun'on  folk,  I  do.  But  don't  let  that 
trouble  'ee,  sir;  ten  shillens  won't  make  a  great  hole  in 
my  store." 

"  But  I  won't  have  your  money.  Nay,  Sherry,  call  it  a 
whim  of  mine;  'tis  our  last  day;  the  charges  are  mine; 
to-morrow  we  must  start  afresh.  I  have  some  trinkets  in 
my  box ;  their  worth  I  know  not ;  but  you  can  take  one  or 
two  to  a  goldsmith's  and  place  them  with  him  until  the  luck 
turns.  You  will  do  that  better  than  I." 

98 


Gloom 

He  left  the  room  and  came  back  with  a  miniature  set  in 
gold  and  a  brooch  of  antique  make.  Sherebiah  looked  at 
them  with  a  deliberative  air. 

"Baubles  like  these  sell  for  next  to  nowt,"  he  said. 
"Tis  not  all  gold  that  glitters.  But  I'll  take  'em,  sir, 
and  cheapen  'em  as  best  I  may.  Be  I  to  pledge  'em  in 
my  name  or  yours?" 

"  It  doesn't  matter — whichever  you  like.  I'll  sit  by  the 
fire  and  read  while  you  are  gone." 

"Ay,  'tis  a  raw  and  nippen  afternoon,  and  there  be 
true  comfort  in  a  log  fire." 

He  flung  his  cloak  over  his  shoulders  and  was  gone. 
Harry  went  to  his  room  and  brought  down  a  volume  of  his 
father's  containing  Mr.  John  Milton's  poem  of  "Samson 
Agonistes  ".  In  the  dark  afternoon  he  read  for  some  time 
by  the  light  of  the  fire,  finding  a  certain  melancholy  plea- 
sure in  fitting  Samson's  woeful  laments  to  his  own  case. 

"So  much  I  feel  my  genial  spirits  droop, 
My  hopes  all  flat", 

he  murmured,  and  then  closed  the  book  over  his  finger 
and  gazed  into  the  ruddy  cavern  of  the  fire  till  his  eyes 
ached.  Sherebiah  seemed  a  long  time  gone;  a  feeling  of 
restlessness  stole  upon  Harry.  He  let  the  book  fall  from 
his  hand,  rose,  and  paced  about  the  room,  stopping  once 
or  twice  at  the  narrow  window  to  look  out  into  the  street. 
The  air  was  misty,  the  pavement  sticky  with  mud;  every 
passing  horse  stepped  under  a  blanket  of  vapour;  the 
wayfarers  were  muffled  about  their  necks  and  walked  as 
though  bent  under  a  load.  Harry  fidgeted,  wondering 
why  Sherebiah  was  so  long.  His  reading  had  not  cheered 
him ;  his  musing  did  but  increase  his  gloom.  At  last, 
unable  to  endure  inaction  longer,  he  put  on  his  cloak  and 
hat,  took  up  the  cudgel  without  which,  in  deference  to 
Sherebiah's  advice,  he  seldom  went  abroad,  and  sallied 
forth  into  the  street,  to  walk  off  his  fit  of  the  dumps,  if 
that  might  be. 

By  the   flickering   light  above  the  door   he  saw  three 

99 


Cold  Streets 

sailors  lurching-  up  the  street.  He  passed  them,  giving 
them  but  a  casual  glance,  turned  into  the  Strand,  and 
spent  some  time  looking  listlessly  into  the  lighted  shops. 
At  the  door  of  a  coffee-house  he  noticed  a  group  gathered 
about  a  newspaper  pasted  on  the  wall.  A  manuscript 
supplement  had  just  been  affixed  to  it.  When  he  could 
get  near  enough  to  see  the  writing,  he  felt  a  momentary 
interest  in  the  announcement  he  read. 

"The  Duke  of  Marlborough  has  rid  post  to  Cambridge,  call'd 
thither  by  the  desperate  state  of  the  Marquis  of  Blandford.  It  is 
now  'stablish'd  beyond  doubt  that  the  young  Lord  is  suffering 
from  the  Small-Pox." 

Even  the  great  duke  had  his  troubles.  Lord  Blandford 
was,  as  Harry  knew,  Marlborough's  only  son ;  he  was  the 
Lord  Churchill  who  had  written  to  Godolphin  with  boyish 
curiosity  to  know  what  his  title  would  be  when  his  father 
became  a  duke.  Harry  passed  on,  more  than  ever  con- 
vinced that  the  great  man,  beset  by  cares  public  and 
domestic,  could  have  no  time  to  think  of  the  small  con- 
cerns of  a  country  parson's  son. 

He  turned  into  the  Savoy  and  came  by  and  by  to  the 
Temple  Gardens,  forlorn  and  desolate  in  the  chill  February 
evening.  Not  far  behind  him  three  sailors  were  sauntering- 
in  the  same  direction,  on  their  way  perhaps  to  rejoin  their 
vessel  in  the  Thames.  The  damp  cold  air  struck  Harry  to 
the  bone  ;  he  shivered  and  drew  his  cloak  closer  around 
him,  and  was  on  the  point  of  turning  to  retrace  his  steps 
when  there  suddenly  stood  before  him  a  woman,  thin-clad, 
bare-headed,  with  a  whining  child  in  her  arms. 

"Spare  a  penny,  kind  sir,  to  buy  bread.  My  lips  have 
not  touched  food  the  livelong  day,  and  my  little  boy  is 
fair  starved.  Oh,  sir,  have  pity  on  a  poor  lone  woman; 
spare  a  penny,  kind  sir." 

Harry  stopped  and  looked  at  the  thin  haggard  cheeks, 
the  dark-rimmed  eyes,  the  hair  hanging  in  loose  damp 
wisps  over  the  brow.  The  child's  feeble  moans  stabbed 
him  like  a  knife;  its  poor  pinched  wizened  face  was  a 

100 


Three  Sailors 

speaking  tale  of  woe.  Loosening  his  cloak,  the  woman 
all  the  while  continuing  her  monotonous  complaint,  he 
untied  his  purse.  It  contained  a  guinea  and  one  crown 
piece.  At  that  moment  the  three  sailors  passed  him, 
talking  loudly,  and  laughing  coarsely  as  they  jostled  the 
woman  in  their  path. 

"The  poor  creature's  need  is  greater  than  mine,"  he 
thought.  "Sherry  will  bring  back  some  money.  Here 
you  are,"  he  said,  handing  her  the  guinea.  "And  for 
God's  sake  take  your  little  one  out  of  the  damp  and  cold ! 
Good-night!" 

Harry  moved  on,  impressed  by  the  spectacle  of  a  misery 
deeper  than  his  own,  and  pursued  by  the  voluble  thanks 
of  the  poor  woman.  He  had  forgotten  his  purpose  to  turn 
back;  and  was  only  recalled  to  it  by  the  sight  of  the  three 
sailors  rolling  on  ahead.  They  were  walking  arm  in  arm, 
and  from  their  gait  Harry  concluded  that  the  middle  one 
of  the  three  was  intoxicated,  and  needed  the  support  of  his 
comrades.  One  of  them  glanced  back  over  his  shoulder 
just  as  Harry  was  turning.  The  next  moment  there  was  a 
heavy  thud;  the  drunken  sailor  was  on  the  ground,  the 
others  bending  over  him.  A  hoarse  cry  for  help  caused 
Harry  to  hasten  to  the  group. 

"What  is  amiss?"  he  asked. 

"  Be  you  a  surgeon,  mate?"  replied  the  man,  a  thickset 
and  powerful  salt.  "  Bill  be  taken  wi'  a  fit,  sure  enough. 
A's  foaming  at  the  mouth." 

"  No,  I'm  not  a  surgeon.      I  thought  he  was  drunk." 

"  Not  him.     Belay  there;  let  the  gentleman  see." 

Harry  went  to  the  man's  head  and  leant  over,  peering 
into  his  face.  Instantly  the  fallen  sailor  flung  his  arms 
round  Harry's  legs  and  pulled  them  violently  towards  him. 
Unable  to  recover  himself  Harry  fell  backward,  and  before 
he  could  cry  out  a  cloak  was  flung  over  his  head  and  a 
brawny  hand  had  him  by  the  throat.  Through  the  folds 
of  cloth  he  heard  the  men  with  many  oaths  congratulate 
themselves  on  the  ease  with  which  they  had  accomplished 
their  job.  For  a  few  moments  he  struggled  violently,  until 


Muffled 

he  felt  that  resistance  was  hopeless.  Then  the  cloak  was 
tied  about  his  neck,  and  he  felt  himself  carried  by  two  of 
the  three,  one  having-  him  by  the  head,  the  other  by  the 
heels.  They  walked  swiftly  along,  and,  not  troubling-  to 
keep  step,  jolted  him  unpleasantly.  There  was  a  singing 
in  his  ears ;  he  gasped  for  breath ;  and  soon  his  physical 
discomfort  and  his  fears  were  alike  annihilated.  He  had 
lost  consciousness. 


102 


CHAPTER   VIII 

Flotsam 

WHEN  Harry  recovered  his  senses  he  found  himself  tied 
hand  and  foot,  and  with  a  cloth  gag  between  his  teeth.  It 
was  pitch  dark ;  he  could  hear  nothing  save  a  faint  scratch- 
ing near  at  hand;  mice  were  evidently  at  their  nocturnal 
work.  He  lay  still  perforce;  he  found  it  impossible  even 
to  wriggle  over  on  to  his  side.  Here  was  indeed  a  cul- 
mination of  his  misfortunes. 

He  tried  to  think,  but  the  sudden  attack  and  his  sub- 
sequent unconsciousness  had  left  his  brain  in  a  whirl. 
Gradually  the  sequence  of  events  came  back  to  him :  his 
walk  through  the  streets  towards  Blackfriars,  the  beggar 
woman,  the  three  sailors,  the  pretended  fit.  What  was 
the  meaning  of  it?  Had  he  been  marked  by  the  press- 
gang,  and  trepanned  to  serve  Her  Majesty  on  the  high 
seas?  Had  he  been  kidnapped,  to  be  robbed  or  held  to 
ransom?  Hardly  the  former,  for  a  knock  on  the  head 
would  have  served  the  kidnappers'  ends.  Hardly  the 
latter,  for  no  one  could  have  taken  the  pains  to  waylay 
for  such  a  purpose  a  penniless  youth  with  no  friends. 

Suddenly  he  remembered  the  vague  uneasiness  shown 
at  times  by  Sherebiah ;  his  earnest  warnings;  the  cudgel 
which  after  all  had  proved  useless.  Sherebiah,  it  seemed, 
had  had  more  definite  reasons  for  alarm  than  he  had 
avowed;  why  then  had  the  silly  fellow  not  spoken  his 
mind  freely?  Who  was  the  enemy?  What  motive  could 
any  person  in  the  wide  world  have  for  kidnapping  one  who 
was  even  yet  a  boy  and  had,  so  far  as  he  knew,  done  no 
harm  to  a  living  soul?  The  more  he  thought,  the  more  he 
was  puzzled. 

103  H 


Under  the  Leads 

He  was  in  pain.  The  cords  cut  into  his  flesh ;  his  throat 
was  parched;  he  could  not  swallow.  How  long-  was  this 
torture  to  continue?  Where  was  he?  Where  were  his 
capturers?  He  longed  for  a  light,  so  that  he  might  at 
least  see  the  prison  in  which  he  was  confined,  and  so 
dimmish  even  by  one  his  terrible  uncertainties.  But  no 
light  came,  no  voice  or  footfall  sounded  gratefully  upon 
his  ear;  and  presently  a  lethargy  stole  upon  his  mind 
and  all  things  were  again  in  oblivion. 

He  was  roused  by  a  light  flashed  in  his  eyes.  Dazed 
and  still  only  half  conscious,  he  saw  an  unknown  face 
bending  towards  him,  and  a  hand  holding  a  candle.  The 
man  grunted  as  though  with  relief  to  find  the  captive  still 
alive;  then,  setting  the  candle  upon  the  floor,  he  removed 
the  gag.  Harry  tried  to  speak,  but  no  word  issued  from 
his  lips.  The  man  went  from  the  room,  leaving  the  candle 
still  burning.  By  its  light  Harry  saw  that  he  was  in  a 
narrow  attic,  with  rough  beams  supporting  a  slanting 
roof,  and  whitewashed  walls.  There  was  a  sky -light 
above  him;  he  could  hear  the  first  patters  of  a  shower 
of  hail. 

Presently  the  man  returned  bearing  a  can  and  a  hunk  of 
bread.  Lifting  Harry,  he  held  the  can  to  his  lips.  The 
prisoner  drank  the  beer  greedily. 

"Where  am  I?"  he  asked,  recovering  his  voice. 

"Hold  your  jaw!"  was  the  surly  answer.  "You  are 
where  you  are." 

"Why  am  I  brought  here?  What  is  to  be  done  with 
me?" 

"Hold  your  jaw,  I  say!  Ye'll  get  nothing  out  of  me. 
Keep  a  still  tongue;  for  if  ye  raise  your  voice  someone  I 
know  will  find  means  to  quiet  ye." 

"But  I  insist  on  knowing,"  cried  Harry  in  indignation. 
"Why  was  I  dogged  and  attacked  in  the  streets,  and 
brought  captive  to " 

"Stow  it!  Least  said  soonest  mended.  Behave  wi' 
sense  and  ye'll  be  treated  according;  otherways — well,  I 
won't  answer  for't." 

104 


A   Thames-side  Attic 

"  Loose  my  arms  then." 

"  Well,  I'll  do  that  for  'ee,  and  legs  too;  don't  think  ye 
can  run  away,  'cos  ye  can't.  Here's  your  supper;  dry,  but 
'tis  drier  where  there's  none.  I'll  leave  ye  to't." 

Untying  the  cords,  the  man  gave  the  bread  into  Harry's 
hand,  took  up  the  candle,  and  went  out,  locking  the  door 
behind  him.  Harry  could  not  eat ;  his  limbs  were  cramped 
with  his  long  immobility;  when  he  stood  his  knees  hardly 
supported  him.  But  it  was  pleasant  to  be  able  to  use 
arms  and  legs  once  more,  and  after  a  time  his  aching 
pains  abated.  He  groped  round  the  room,  shook  the 
door,  and  found  it  fast.  He  could  just  touch  the  sky-light 
with  his  outstretched  hand,  and  he  felt  that  the  glass  was 
loose;  but  he  could  not  remove  it  unless  he  stood  higher, 
and  groping  failed  to  find  any  chair  or  stool.  Escape  was 
impossible ;  he  could  but  wait  for  the  morning. 

He  lay  awake  the  greater  part  of  the  night,  but  was 
sound  asleep  when  the  same  man  re-entered  with  his 
meagre  breakfast.  The  morning  brought  no  comfort.  A 
gray  dawn  struggled  through  the  grimy  sky-light,  reveal- 
ing the  nakedness  of  the  room.  Cobwebs  festooned  the 
beams ;  the  boards  of  the  floor  were  dirty  and  mouldered ; 
the  walls  in  places  were  green  with  damp.  Harry  took 
silently  the  food  offered  him;  he  was  not  encouraged  by 
the  previous  night's  experience  to  question  his  taciturn 
jailer.  The  morning  passed  slowly,  irksomely;  when  the 
man  returned  with  another  meal  at  noon,  Harry  ventured 
to  address  him. 

"  How  long  am  I  to  remain  caged  here?" 

"  I  can't  tell  'ee,  'cos  I  don't  know." 

"  You're  not  one  of  the  sailors  who  trapped  me?" 

"Lord,  no.  I  wouldn't  be  a  dirty  swab  for  nothing 
'cept  to  'scape  the  gallows." 

"Who  employs  you  in  this  turnkey  business?" 

"  That's  my  business." 

"  Don't  be  surly.     I've  done  nothing  to  you." 

"Well,  that's  true.  You  ha'n't  done  nothing  to  me. 
That's  true  enough." 

105 


A   Man  of  Law 

"Will  you  do  something  for  me,  then?  You're  a  good 
fellow,  I'm  sure." 

"Nay,  nay,  you  don't  come  over  me,  young  master. 
Soft  speeches  ain't  no  good  for  a  tough  un  like  me.  When 
I  goes  out  I  locks  ye  in,  and  if  ye  holler  till  ye  bust,  'tis  no 
good,  not  at  all." 

"  I  didn't  mean  that.  Tis  dull  as  death  lying  on  these 
rotten  boards  with  nothing  to  do;  bring  me  the  morning's 
paper  and  I'll  thank  you." 

"Well,  that's  harmless  enough,  to  be  sure.  Gi'  me 
twopence  and  I'll  buy  ye  a  Courant" 

"  'Tis  only  a  penny." 

"True;  t'other  penny's  for  me." 

Harry  smiled  and  felt  for  his  purse.     It  was  gone. 

"Plucked  clean,  eh?"  chuckled  the  man.  "Trust  your 
Wapping  swab  for  that.  All  the  same  you  shall  have  the 
paper."  . 

He  returned  with  the  morning's  Courant,  already  well 
thumbed.  Harry  ran  his  eye  over  the  meagre  half-sheet ; 
there  was  nothing  that  interested  him  except  the  announce- 
ment of  Lord  Blandford's  death  at  Cambridge. 

"The  duke  has  lost  his  heir,"  he  thought.  "  He  was  a 
little  older  than  myself.  Perhaps  it  is  my  turn  next." 

The  day  wore  on.  In  the  afternoon  the  door  opened 
and  a  stranger  entered  along  with  the  custodian.  By  his 
cut  Harry  guessed  him  to  be  a  lawyer's  clerk.  His  move- 
ments were  soft  and  insinuating;  his  face  was  wreathed 
into  an  artificial  smile. 

"Good-morning,  sir!"  he  said  softly,  bowing.  "  I  have 
waited  upon  you  to  complete  a  little  matter  of  business ;  a 
mere  formality.  The  document  is  quite  ready ;  I  have  here 
inkhorn  and  quill;  I  have  only  to  ask  you  to  write  your 
name  at  the  foot." 

He  unrolled  the  paper  he  carried,  and  signed  to  his 
companion  to  bring  the  writing  materials. 

"Ah!  there  is  no  table,  I  see.  You  can  hardly  write  on 
the  floor,  sir;  James,  fetch  a  table  from  below.— Your 
furniture  is  scanty,  sir,"  he  continued  as  the  man  went  out; 

106 


A   Matter  of  Form 

"in  truth,  there  is  nothing  to  recommend  your  situation 
but  its  loftiness.  You  are  near  the  sky,  sir,  and  very  for- 
tunately so,  for  'tis  murky  and  damp  in  the  street. — Thank 
you,  James!  Now,  sir,  everything  is  in  order;  you  will,  if 
you  please,  sign  your  name  where  I  place  my  finger,  there." 

Harry  took  the  pen  offered  him,  and  dipped  it  in  the 
inkhorn.  He  gave  no  sign  of  his  amazement. 

"Yes,"  he  said,  "with  pleasure — when  I  have  read  the 
paper." 

"Surely,  sir,  at  this  stage  it  is  unnecessary.  Why 
delay?  I  assure  you  that  the  document  is  perfectly  in 
order,  and  the  phraseology  of  us  men  of  law  is — well,  sir, 
you  understand  that  a  scrivener  is  paid  so  much  a  folio, 
and  he  has  no  temptation  to  be  unduly  brief:  he!  he!" 

"  Still,  if  you  do  not  object  I  will  read  the  paper.  It  is 
merely  a  form,  as  you  say." 

"  Very  well,  sir,"  said  the  man  with  a  patient  shrug. 

He  lifted  his  hand  from  the  paper,  and  Harry  bent  over 
the  table  to  read  it.  The  writing  was  clerkly  and  precise; 
the  sentences  were  long  and  involved,  with  no  support 
from  punctuation ;  but,  unfamiliar  as  he  was  with  legal 
diction,  Harry  had  no  difficulty  in  making  out  the  gist  of 
the  document  so  obligingly  placed  before  him.  His  heart 
was  thumping  uncomfortably,  for  all  his  cool  exterior; 
and  he  deliberately  read  down  the  close  lines  slowly  in 
order  to  gain  time  to  collect  his  thoughts.  The  request 
to  sign  the  paper  had  been  surprising  enough,  but  his 
bewilderment  was  increased  tenfold  when  he  found  what 
it  was  that  he  was  asked  to  sign. 

Stripped  of  its  verbiage,  the  document  stated  that 
whereas  Christopher  Butler,  gentleman,  lately  residing 
in  Jermyn  Street  over  against  the  Garter  Coffee-house, 
had  been  acquitted  of  all  his  debts  by  the  good  offices 
of  John  Feggans,  merchant  of  the  City  of  London,  the 
said  Christopher  Butler  hereby  entered  into  an  indenture 
to  serve  the  said  John  Feggans  in  his  Plantations  in  the 
island  of  Barbados  for  a  period  of  five  years.  There  were 
qualifications  and  provisos  and  penalties  which  Harry 

107 


A  Question  of  Identity 

passed    over;    then,    having    read    the    principal    articles 
again,  he  looked  up  and  said : 

"Why  should  I  sign  this?" 

"Sir!"  said  the  attorney  in  surprise. 

"Why  should  I  sign  this?  What  have  I  to  do  with 
Christopher  Butler  or  John  Feggans?" 

The  lawyer  looked  round  at  the  other  man  as  though 
asking  whether  he  had  heard  aright. 

"  I  am  at  a  loss  to  give  you  better  reasons  than  you 
know  already.  Who  should  sign  it  if  not  you?" 

"  I  am  afraid  I  must  trouble  you  to  explain.  See,  1  find 
that  Christopher  Butler,  having  incurred  debts  to  a  large 
amount,  has  assigned  these  debts  to  John  Feggans,  who 
has  paid  them,  and  that  Christopher  Butler  indentures 
himself  a  slave  to  John  Feggans,  to  win  his  release  by 
working  in  the  Plantations.  I  ask  you,  what  have  I  to 
do  with  all  this?" 

"  Christopher  Butler  asks  that?" 

"  Who?     What  did  you  say?" 

"Christopher  Butler — yourself." 

Harry  laughed,  so  great  was  his  sense  of  relief.  It  was 
all  a  mistake,  then;  he  had  been  seized  by  mistake  for 
some  poor  wretched  fellow  who  had  lost  all  his  money  and 
been  forced  to  adopt  this,  the  last  resource  of  impecunious 
spendthrifts. 

"Pardon  me,"  he  said.  "There  has  been  a  mistake. 
My  name  is  not  Christopher  Butler." 

He  smiled  in  the  attorney's  face.  The  little  man  looked 
staggered. 

"  Not  Christopher  Butler?" 

"  Certainly  not.      My  name  is " 

Harry  stopped.  Some  instinct  of  caution  warned  him 
not  to  disclose  his  real  name  at  present. 

"  My  name  is  neither  Butler  nor  Christopher,"  he  added. 
"  Now,  pray  let  me  go." 

"  Sir,  I  have  my  instructions.  I  must  make  enquiries. 
This  is  unlocked  for,  most  perplexing.  Pray  excuse  me 
for  one  moment." 

108 


A   Fine  Mesh 

He  hurried  from  the  room,  leaving  the  door  open.  The 
surly  custodian,  who  had  followed  the  colloquy  with  evident 
interest,  showed  that  he  was  not  a  bad  fellow  at  bottom. 

"  I'm  right  glad,  that  I  am,"  he  said.  "  'Twas  my  own 
thought  you  was  too  young  to  be  such  a  wild  dog,  or  else 
you  was  a  most  desperate  wild  one." 

Harry  did  not  reply.  Through  the  open  door  he  heard 
loud  voices  proceeding  from  a  room  below.  He  could  not 
catch  the  words,  but  there  was  something  in  the  tone  of 
the  loudest  voice  that  sounded  familiar.  He  had  no  op- 
portunity of  forming  a  conclusion  on  the  matter,  for  the 
speaker's  tone  was  instantly  moderated,  as  though  in 
response  to  a  warning.  Immediately  afterwards  the  at- 
torney returned,  accompanied  by  a  low-browed  fellow  in 
a  lackey's  livery.  The  lawyer's  smile  was  as  bland  as  ever 
as  he  came  into  the  room. 

"  'Tis  not  unusual  for  a  man  to  change  his  mind,  Mr. 
Butler,  but  in  this  case  I  fear  't  will  be  a  little  awkward. 
I  am  instructed  that  you  are  the  Christopher  Butler  named 
in  this  indenture,  and  have  to  insist  on  your  affixing  your 
signature  to  it." 

"Nonsense!"  said  Harry  impatiently.  "I  tell  you  my 
name  is  not  Butler,  and  I  refuse  to  sign  the  paper.  'Tis  a 
preposterous  error.  I  never  was  in  debt  in  my  life ;  I  know 
nothing  of  Feggans ;  indeed,  know  hardly  a  soul  in  London ; 
why,  I  never  was  in  London  till  a  month  or  two  ago." 

"  My  dear  sir,  my  dear  sir,"  said  the  lawyer,  as  though 
expostulating  with  a  hardened  liar.  Turning  to  the 
lackey,  he  asked:  "You  see  this  young  gentleman?" 

"  Ay,  ay,  I  do  so." 

Harry  started.  The  accent  was  pure  Wiltshire,  and 
fell  on  his  ears  like  a  message  from  home.  He  scanned 
the  man's  features,  but  did  not  recognize  him. 

"  What  is  his  name?"  went  on  the  lawyer. 

"  Butler;  ay,  'tis  Butler,  sure  enough." 

"  Where  did  you  see  him  last?" 

"  In  the  Fleet  prison,  to  be  sure,  ay,  and  on  the  com- 
mon side,  too." 

109 


A  Dash  for  Freedom 

"  You  are  sure  of  this?" 

"  Ay,  faith,  sure  enough.  I  seed  the  gentleman  often 
at  maister's;  many's  the  time  I  called  a  hackney  for'n  in 
the  darkest  hour  o'  night,  thinken  as  them  as  goo  fast 
won't  goo  long." 

"  And  you  were  present  with  your  master  when  this 
little  matter  of  business  was  arranged?" 

"  I  was  so,  ay." 

The  lawyer  looked  with  his  eternal  smile  at  Harry. 

"  Now,  sir,"  he  said,  "you  will  no  longer  delay  to  put 
your  hand  to  this  document." 

Harry  had  been  thinking  rapidly.  He  gave  up  the 
hypothesis  of  error;  the  lawyer's  visit  was  clearly  part  of 
a  deliberate  plot;  it  mattered  little  whether  he  was  privy 
to  it,  or  was  innocently  carrying  out  his  instructions. 
No  doubt  there  was  a  Christopher  Butler  who  had  thus 
sold  himself  to  pay  his  debts,  but  somebody  had  deter- 
mined to  substitute  Harry  for  the  real  man.  He  had 
noticed  that  the  name  Christopher  Butler  was  written  in 
pencil  every  time  it  occurred  in  the  document,  all  else 
being  in  ink;  and  it  suddenly  flashed  upon  him  that  the 
object  had  been  to  entrap  him  into  signing  his  real  name, 
which  would  then  be  substituted  for  the  name  pencilled  in. 
He  gave  the  lawyer  a  long  look,  put  his  hands  behind  his 
back,  and  said : 

"  It  is  waste  of  time.     I  refuse." 

Again  the  lawyer  smiled  and  shrugged. 

"  Tis  immaterial,  sir.  This  is  but  a  duplicate;  the 
original  was  signed  three  days  ago  in  the  Fleet.  I  have 
now  to— 

"Liar!"  shouted  Harry,  springing  forward,  his  face 
aflame.  The  door  stood  open ;  only  the  lackey  was  in 
a  direct  line  between  the  prisoner  and  freedom.  Before 
the  man's  slow  rustic  mind  had  accommodated  itself  to  the 
situation,  he  was  sent  reeling  against  the  wall  by  a  straight 
blow  between  the  eyes.  Harry  was  already  out  of  the 
room,  at  the  top  of  the  staircase,  when  the  little  attorney 
seized  him  from  behind  and  shouted  for  help.  The  taci- 


Help  in  Need 


turn  jailer  stood  looking  on.  There  were  cries  from  below 
and  a  stampede  of  feet,  and  before  Harry,  with  the  lawyer 
clinging-  to  him,  had  descended  more  than  four  steps  he 
was  met  by  the  three  sailors.  Swearing  hearty  oaths  they 
threw  themselves  upon  him,  and  in  five  minutes  he  was 
back  in  the  attic  securely  trussed  up. 

Even  his  surly  jailer,  bringing  him  food,  looked  at  him 
with  a  touch  of  sympathy.  Harry's  haggard  eyes  met  his 
with  a  mute  appeal  for  help. 

"Odsbud!"  exclaimed  the  man,  "'tis  hard  on  a  mere 
stripling.  If  your  name  bean't  Christopher  Butler,  what 
be  it?" 

"  My  name  is  Harry  Rochester.  'Tis  a  vile  plot.  You 
believe  me?" 

"  Ay,  I  believe  ye.  Tain't  in  reason  that  a  boy  should 
ha'  got  ocean  deep  in  debt." 

"  Will  you  help  me?  You  see  what  a  snare  is  about 
me.  Will  you  go  to  the  Star  and  Garter  in  Leicester 
fields  and  ask  for  Sherebiah  Minshull?  Tell  him  where 
I  am,  and  what  they  are  going  to  do  with  me." 

"  But  what'd  be  the  good,  mister?" 

"  He  would  find  a  way  to  help  me.  You  would  know 
that  if  you  knew  him." 

"  And  how  much  might  ye  be  willing  to  pay,  now?" 

"  I  haven't  a  penny,  as  you  know,  but  he  had  some 
money.  Lose  no  time;  pray  go  now,  at  once." 

"  Well,  the  truth  on't  is  I'm  paid  by  t'other  party." 

"Who  is  it?  What  is  the  name  of  the  man  who  has 
hired  you?" 

"  Faith,  I  don't  know,  but  he  have  a  fine  long  purse, 
and  'tis  a  fine  swashing  gentleman.  Howsomever,  I'll  go 
to  the  Star  and  Garter  as  you  say,  and  see  your  man — 
what  be  his  name?  Minshull;  good;  I'll  go  soon,  and— 
Coming,  sir,  coming,"  he  added  in  answer  to  a  hail  from 
below.  "  I'll  go  afore  'tis  dark,  'struth,  I  will.'' 

He  left  the  room,  and  Harry  felt  a  momentary  glow  of 
hope.  It  was  dulled  immediately.  The  three  sailors  re- 
entered.  Without  ado  they  again  bound  his  arms,  which 


For  the  Plantations 

had  been  loosed  to  allow  of  his  lifting  his  food,  and  carried 
him  downstairs.  Daylight  was  fading.  At  the  door 
Harry  looked  eagerly  around  for  some  person  whom  a  cry 
might  bring  to  his  rescue.  Alas!  the  house  was  in  a 
blind  alley,  and  no  one  but  his  captors  was  in  sight.  He 
did  raise  his  voice  and  give  one  resounding  call.  A  gag 
was  instantly  slipped  into  his  mouth,  and  he  was  hurried 
to  the  open  end  of  the  alley,  where  a  hackney  coach  stood 
waiting.  Into  this  he  was  thrown;  two  of  the  sailors  got  in 
with  him,  the  third  mounted  to  a  place  beside  the  driver, 
and  the  vehicle  rumbled  and  jolted  over  the  rough  cobbles. 

Some  twenty  minutes  later  it  pulled  up  at  the  Tower 
Wharf,  where  Harry  had  vainly  sought  for  Jan  Grootz 
a  few  days  before.  It  was  now  night,  and  as  he  was  lifted 
out  and  borne  towards  the  wharf  side,  Harry  saw  by  the 
light  of  naphtha  torches  a  busy  scene.  Sailors,  lighter- 
men, stevedores  were  moving  hither  and  thither;  the 
ground  was  strewn  with  bales  and  packages ;  the  last 
portions  of  a  cargo  were  being  transferred  to  the  hold  of 
a  barque  that  lay  alongside.  No  one  paid  attention  to  the 
not  unusual  spectacle  of  a  young  fellow  going  unwillingly 
to  a  vessel  bound  for  the  Plantations.  Harry's  captors, 
joking,  chewing,  spitting,  shoved  him  with  no  tender 
hands  on  to  the  gangway.  At  the  other  end  of  it  stood 
a  dark-featured,  beetle-browed  old  seaman,  the  captain  of 
the  vessel,  bawling  orders  to  this  and  that  member  of  his 
crew. 

"  Ha!"  he  cried,  as  he  saw  the  new-comer  hauled  along 
in  the  sailors'  arms;  "this  be  the  springald?  Zooks!  ye 
are  none  too  soon:  tide  turns  in  half  an  hour." 

"  Here  we  be,  sir,  true;  and  this  be  Christopher  Butler, 
mark  you,  for  the  Plantations." 

"  Papers?"  roared  the  captain,  spitting  into  the  river. 

"All  taut,  sir,"  replied  the  man,  producing  the  document 
that  Harry  had  refused  to  sign ;  it  bore  a  signature  now. 

"  Obstropolous,  eh?" 

"Changed  his  mind,  sir,  it  seems,  since  signing  on; 
ha'  give  us  some  trouble." 


Visitors  on   Board 

"Oons!  We'll  cure  that.  All  aboard!  Stow  the 
cockerel  in  the  foc'sle;  strap  un  to  a  plank;  we'll  have  no 
'tarnal  tricks." 

As  Harry  was  lugged  forward  he  noticed  two  figures 
standing  beneath  a  lamp  swinging  to  one  of  the  yards. 
He  started,  and  involuntarily  increased  his  weight  upon 
his  bearers.  One  of  the  two  came  forward  a  step  towards 
the  captain  and,  tapping  a  snuff-box,  said : 

"  Whom  have  we  here,  captain?" 

"  A  young  puppy  as  ha'  run  through  a  duke's  fortune 
and  goes  as  redemptioner  where  I've  carried  many  a  man 
before  him." 

"Indeed!  So  young!  'Tis  sad,  the  wastefulness  of 
young  men  in  this  age." 

He  took  a  pinch  of  snuff  and  stepped  back  again. 
Harry  had  scanned  his  features  and  heard  what  he  said. 
His  heart  almost  stopped  beating  with  surprise,  for  the 
speaker  was  Mr.  Berkeley,  the  squire,  and  his  companion 
was  Captain  Aglionby.  "Did  they  not  recognize  me?" 
he  thought.  Surely  if  he  could  appeal  to  the  squire  he 
might  even  yet,  at  the  last  moment,  be  saved.  He 
struggled  with  his  captors,  but  they  tightened  their  hold 
upon  him  and  wrenched  his  limbs  with  brutal  callousness. 
He  was  carried  to  the  sailors'  quarters  in  the  foc'sle.  His 
bonds  were  loosed  for  a  moment;  then  he  was  laid  on 
a  plank  and  lashed  to  it.  There  was  a  sudden  commotion. 
The  captain  roared  an  order  to  his  men,  then  went  to  the 
side  to  meet  a  custom-house  officer  who  had  just  come 
aboard  with  two  men.  An  observer  would  have  noticed 
that  Mr.  Berkeley  hastily  turned  his  back  and  retreated 
into  the  shadow. 

"  Thought  you'd  forgot  us,  sir,"  said  the  captain. 

"  No,  no.  But  we  won't  keep  you  long;  you  want  to 
catch  the  tide." 

The  rummaging  crew  began  a  perfunctory  inspection  of 
the  vessel.  When  they  were  out  of  sight  Mr.  Berkeley 
came  forward  and  spoke  in  a  low  tone  to  the  captain. 

"  Right,  sir,"  he  replied,  and  sent  a  man  forward  with 

113 


Ned  Bates 

orders  to  place  Harry  in  a  bunk  in  the  darkest  part  of  the 
foc'sle  and  cover  him  up.  Consequently,  when  the  custom- 
house officer  reached  the  sailors'  quarters,  where  several 
of  the  crew  were  lolling  about,  Harry  lay  hidden,  half- 
stifled  beneath  a  tarpaulin. 

"What's  this?"  asked  the  officer. 

"That!"  cried  the  ship's  mate  with  an  oath.  "That's 
Ned  Bates,  come  aboard  mad  drunk  after  a  spree.  'Tis 
the  same  every  voyage,  and  the  medicine's  a  dose  of  rope's 
end  to-morrow." 

The  officer  laughed  and  passed  on.  The  inspection  was 
soon  completed;  the  officer  accepted  a  pinch  of  the  cap- 
tain's snuff  and  left  the  vessel  with  his  crew,  watched  by 
Mr.  Berkeley  and  Captain  Aglionby  from  the  corner  of  a 
shed  on  the  wharf.  In  a  few  minutes  the  ropes  were  cast 
off,  and  with  creakings  and  heavings  the  ship  moved  into 
the  current  and  began  to  float  down  on  the  ebb-tide  to- 
wards the  sea. 

The  tarpaulin  was  pulled  off  Harry  by  a  man  who  took 
the  opportunity  to  curse  him.  The  gag  was  removed  from 
his  mouth;  then  he  was  left  to  himself.  He  thought  he 
had  reached  the  lowest  depths  of  misery.  Something  he 
had  learnt  of  the  awful  fate  in  store  for  him  in  the  Planta- 
tions. Many  such  poor  wretches  as  himself  had  sailed 
across  the  seas  in  the  hope  of  redeeming  themselves  from 
debt  by  years  of  unremitting  toil.  On  their  arrival  they 
had  become,  body  and  soul,  the  property  of  their  masters. 
Treated  as  no  better  than  convicts,  they  were  put  to  the 
most  degrading  labour,  and  their  employers  contrived  to 
keep  them,  even  as  labourers,  so  deeply  in  debt  for  clothes 
and  the  common  necessaries  of  life  that  the  day  of  redemp- 
tion never  dawned  for  them,  and  they  lived  and  died  in 
abject  slavery.  This  was  to  be  his  fate !  What  a  declen- 
sion from  the  bright  destiny  that  seemed  to  be  before  him 
but  a  few  months  ago ! 

The  foc'sle  was  dark  and  noisome.  The  smell  of  bilge 
water  and  the  reek  of  the  lamp  affixed  to  the  side  nause- 
ated Harry.  Physically  and  mentally,  he  was  desperately 

114 


In  the  Foc'sle 

wretched.  And  through  all  his  misery  he  was  overcome 
by  sheer  puzzlement.  Hitherto  he  had  surmised  that, 
being  young  and  strong,  he  had  been  marked  as  an  easy 
prey  by  the  professional  kidnappers  who  prowled  the 
streets  of  London,  trepanning  unfortunate  young  men 
likely  to  fetch  a  good  price  with  shipmasters  or  unscru- 
pulous colonial  merchants.  But  the  unexpected  sight  of 
Mr.  Berkeley  in  Captain  Aglionby's  company  on  deck  had 
startled  him  into  a  new  theory.  Many  things  recurred  to 
his  mind.  He  remembered  the  bitter  feud  that  had  sub- 
sisted between  his  father  and  the  squire;  the  disappear- 
ance of  Captain  Aglionby  after  a  quarrel,  as  village  gossip 
said,  with  Mr.  Berkeley;  the  horseman  riding  after  the 
coach ;  the  strange  warnings  he  had  received  from  Shere- 
biah.  He  could  not  but  feel  that  these  incidents  were  in 
some  way  connected;  he  began  to  be  convinced  that  his 
present  situation  was  due  ultimately  to  the  enmity  of  the 
squire — the  gaunt,  sinister  old  man  who  was  indirectly 
responsible  for  his  father's  death.  But  though  this  was 
his  conclusion,  he  was  none  the  less  puzzled.  Why  should 
the  malignity  of  the  squire  pursue  the  son,  now  that  the 
father  was  removed?  What  harm  had  he  ever  done,  or 
could  he  ever  do,  to  the  lord  of  the  manor?  Was  the 
squire  so  unrelenting,  was  his  malice  so  remorseless,  that 
he  must  bring  black  ruin  upon  a  boy  in  vengeance  for  his 
baulked  will?  It  seemed  inconceivable.  Yet  what  other 
motive  could  he  have?  The  more  he  thought  of  it,  the 
more  puzzled  Harry  became. 

The  vessel  was  slowly  threading  its  way  down  the  river 
among  the  many  vessels,  large  and  small,  that  lay  at  their 
moorings.  At  times  it  stopped  altogether,  and  from  the 
deck  resounded  shouts  and  oaths  at  the  obstacles  that 
checked  its  course.  By  and  by  some  of  the  sailors  came 
forward  for  a  spell  of  sleep,  and  Harry,  kept  wide  awake 
by  his  hunger  and  discomfort,  saw  them  tumble  into  their 
bunks  and  soon  heard  their  snores. 

It  would  take  several  hours  to  reach  the  open  sea.  Was 
there  a  chance  that,  before  the  vessel  left  the  Thames,  he 


Sailors'  Knots 

might  even  yet  escape?  To  make  the  attempt  was  mere 
instinct  with  a  high-spirited  boy.  The  odds  seemed  all 
against  him.  To  begin  with,  he  was  bound  hand  and  foot 
to  a  plank,  so  that  it  was  impossible  even  to  bend  his  body. 
Suppose  he  rid  himself  of  his  bonds,  there  would  be  many 
of  the  crew  on  deck  while  the  vessel  threaded  the  crowded 
water-way,  and  he  would  be  seen  if  he  sprang  overboard ; 
and  how  could  he  free  himself  from  the  ropes?  The  idea 
had  not  come  to  him  for  the  first  time.  When  he  was 
being  trussed  up  he  had  remembered  an  old  trick  taught 
him  by  Sherebiah,  acquired  during  his  mountebank  days, 
when  he  had  mystified  rustic  spectators  by  escaping  from 
ropes  tied  by  the  most  expert  hands  in  the  village.  He 
had  so  stiffened  his  muscles  that  he  could  wriggle  out  of 
any  ordinary  knot.  But  the  situation  was  rendered  more 
difficult  by  the  plank.  He  could  not  lift  himself,  nor  turn 
on  his  side.  Lying  on  his  back,  he  tried  to  ease  the  pres- 
sure of  the  ropes  by  the  muscular  movements  he  had  prac- 
tised with  Sherebiah  in  sport.  But  he  found,  not  to  his 
surprise,  that  sailors  were  more  skilful  than  anyone  who 
had  previously  experimented  with  him.  The  tension  was 
so  great  that  he  had  the  barest  margin  to  work  upon. 
Force  was  useless ;  it  would  only  have  the  effect  of  cutting 
into  his  flesh  and  causing  his  hands  and  wrists  to  swell. 
But  his  whole  mind  was  now  bent  upon  one  desperate 
venture,  and,  while  the  men  snored  around  him,  he  began 
to  strain  on  the  ropes. 

For  some  time  all  his  straining  was  of  no  avail.  At  last 
he  felt  the  rope  about  his  wrists  give  a  little.  Taking 
advantage  of  the  slackened  tension,  he  contrived,  after 
what  seemed  an  hour  to  him,  to  turn  his  joined  wrists  out- 
wards, and  in  a  few  more  minutes  they  were  free.  They 
ached  intolerably;  he  felt  as  if  all  power  was  gone  from 
them, — as  if  he  could  never  grip  anything  firmly  again. 
He  waited  until  the  numbing  pain  was  abated,  then  set  to 
work  to  free  his  elbows.  These  had  been  separately  tied, 
and  after  many  unsuccessful  efforts  he  almost  despaired. 
At  length,  however,  he  managed  to  shift  his  elbows  down 

nb 


An   Old  Coat 

over  the  edges  of  the  plank,  which  he  was  then  able  to 
use  as  fulcrums.  Pressing  as  hard  as  possible,  he  forced 
the  ropes  slightly  slack,  then  jerked  himself  sideways  and 
almost  on  to  his  face.  In  doing  so  he  more  than  once 
interrupted  the  snores  of  the  man  beneath  him,  and  once 
desisted  in  alarm  as  the  fellow  growled  out  an  oath.  At 
last  his  elbows  were  free,  and  he  lay  panting  with  exertion 
and  hope. 

But  now  that  the  upper  part  of  his  body  was  unbound, 
he  found  himself  confronted  by  an  unexpected  difficulty. 
The  board  to  which  he  was  strapped  extended  down  to 
his  heels,  and  the  knot  being  tied  at  the  far  end,  he  was 
unable  to  reach  it.  A  man  is  never  so  agile  with  his 
ankles  as  with  his  wrists,  and  the  plank  had  effectually 
prevented  Harry  from  making  use  of  Sherebiah's  trick  in 
regard  to  his  feet.  It  was  impossible  to  reach  the  knots 
with  his  hands,  for  the  roof  of  the  foc'sle  was  so  low  that 
he  could  not  rise  to  an  upright  posture  in  the  bunk.  He 
worked  away  at  the  upper  part  of  the  rope,  but  it  was  so 
taut  that  he  could  not  ease  it  appreciably.  He  found  him- 
self making  even  more  noise  than  before,  and  dreaded  lest 
one  of  the  crew  should  awaken  too  soon.  Breathless  with 
his  exertions,  he  lay  still  to  think.  Was  he  to  be  baffled 
after  all?  Some  hours  must  have  passed  since  the  vessel 
left  her  moorings,  and  though  her  progress  had  been 
interrupted  and  was  always  slow,  yet  she  was  drawing 
nearer  and  nearer  to  the  mouth  of  the  river,  bringing 
him  nearer  and  nearer  to  his  doom. 

A  dull  dazed  hopelessness  was  gaining  possession  of 
him.  He  lay  with  wide-open  eyes,  staring  at  nothing; 
then  caught  himself  following  the  slight  pendulous  motion 
of  a  seaman's  coat  that  hung  from  a  nail  in  one  of  the 
beams.  To  and  fro  it  swung,  with  a  regularity  that 
became  at  last  desperately  annoying.  But  all  at  once 
that  rough  stained  garment  became  to  him  the  most  in- 
teresting and  important  thing  in  the  world.  It  seemed 
to  shed  a  bright  ray  of  hope.  Never  a  seaman  but  had 
a  knife;  fervently  did  Harry  pray  that  the  owner  of  this 

117 


Odds  and  Ends 

coat  had  not  emptied  its  pockets.  Stealthily  he  bent  over. 
The  right-hand  pocket  was  easily  within  reach.  He  put 
his  hand  in,  and  drew  out  one  after  another  a  pipe,  a 
pouch,  a  flint,  a  steel,  a  tinder-box,  a  string  of  beads,  a 
corner  of  mouldy  biscuit,  a  horn  snuff-box,  a  tattered  letter, 
a  plug-  of  black  tobacco,  a  broken  comb,  a  red  handker- 
chief, and  a  nutmeg;  but  no  knife.  He  could  only  just 
touch  the  left-hand  pocket;  he  could  not  put  his  hand  in. 
He  pulled  at  the  coat,  and  held  it  with  one  hand,  bringing 
the  pocket  within  reach;  then  he  plunged  the  other  hand 
into  its  depths.  He  touched  a  metal  case ;  it  clicked  against 
something,  and  he  held  his  breath,  hoping  the  sound  had 
not  been  heard.  No  one  spoke  or  moved.  He  felt  further; 
his  heart  gave  a  great  leap  for  joy,  for  he  could  not  mistake 
the  touch  of  the  rugged  handle  of  a  clasp-knife.  Eagerly 
he  drew  it  out ;  to  cut  the  rope  was  the  work  of  an  instant ; 
he  was  free. 

But  he  was  not  yet  out  of  danger.  His  limbs  were 
loosed,  but  he  was  still  imprisoned  in  an  outward-bound 
ship.  There  was  only  one  way  of  reaching  safety :  to  gain 
the  deck,  spring  overboard,  and  swim  to  land.  He  knew 
nothing  about  ships;  he  could  row  and  swim,  but  till  he 
came  to  London  he  had  seen  no  vessel  larger  than  a  row- 
ing boat.  He  guessed  that  while  the  barque  was  still  in 
the  Thames  only  a  small  portion  of  the  crew  would  be  on 
duty ;  but  he  did  not  know  at  what  part  of  the  ship  they 
would  be,  nor  where  he  would  run  least  danger  of  detec- 
tion. It  was  still  dark;  he  might  easily  stumble  as  he 
moved  about  amid  unfamiliar  surroundings,  and  there 
.was  the  risk  that,  even  if  he  reached  the  bulwarks  safely 
and  sprang  over,  he  might  never  succeed  in  reaching  land 
alive.  He  did  not  know  the  width  of  the  stream;  he 
had  been  so  long  without  food  and  had  expended  so 
much  energy  during  the  last  few  hours  that  he  was  in 
no  condition  to  endure  long  fatigue.  It  would  perhaps  be 
better  to  rest  for  a  little,  and  seize  a  moment  as  day  was 
breaking,  when  there  would  be  light  enough  to  guide  his 
steps. 

118 


'A  Soft  Answer 

His  body  was  still  ting-ling  from  the  strain  of  the  ropes, 
but  with  the  passing  minutes  his  physical  ease  increased, 
and  he  was  able  to  think  more  and  more  calmly.  He 
heard  the  clang  of  a  bell.  Immediately  afterwards  a 
sailor  came  into  the  foc'sle,  woke  the  man  below  Harry, 
and,  when  he  had  tumbled  grumbling  out  of  his  berth, 
lay  down  in  his  place.  It  was  a  change  of  watch. 

"Where  are  we,  Bill?"  asked  the  man  who  had  been 
roused. 

"  Opening  up  Gravesend,"  was  the  reply;  "and  a  dirty 
night.  Raining  hard,  a  following  wind;  we'll  make  a 
good  run  out." 

The  man  was  asleep  as  soon  as  he  had  finished  the 
sentence,  and  Harry  was  reassured  by  his  snores.  Graves- 
end,  he  supposed,  was  a  river-side  village;  if  he  could 
make  his  dive  there  he  might  find  helping  hands  on  shore. 
He  wondered  what  the  time  was ;  the  bells  that  he  heard 
at  intervals  conveyed  no  information  to  him.  He  raised 
himself  on  his  elbow  and  glanced  round.  It  seemed  to 
him  that,  in  the  opening  to  his  left,  the  darkness  was 
thinning;  and  the  vessel  was  heaving  to.  The  time  had 
come  for  his  venture. 

He  sat  up  as  high  as  his  confined  quarters  allowed  and 
surveyed  his  position.  There  were  five  men  within  the 
narrow  space,  all  asleep,  snoring  in  various  keys.  From 
above  came  now  and  then  the  sound  of  a  voice  and  the 
tramp  of  feet ;  nothing  else  was  to  be  heard.  Slipping  his 
leg  over  the  side  of  the  bunk,  Harry  paused  for  a  moment, 
then  slid  to  the  floor.  His  knee  knocked  the  edge  of  the 
bunk  below;  the  seaman  turned  over  with  a  grunt  and 
asked  sleepily,  "Be  it  time  already?"  It  was  better  to 
answer  than  to  remain  silent,  thought  Harry.  Making 
his  voice  as  gruff  as  possible,  he  said  quickly : 

"No;  keep  still,  you  lubber." 

"  Lubber  yourself;  I'll  split  your " 

His  threat  ended  with  a  snore.  Harry  waited  a  moment 
to  assure  himself  that  all  was  quiet  again;  then,  divesting 
himself  of  his  long  coat,  which  he  knew  would  be  a  serious 

(B357)  IIQ  I 


Overboard 

encumbrance  in  the  water,  he  groped  cautiously  towards 
the  opening,  now  showing  as  a  gray  patch  in  the  gloom. 
Rain  and  sleet  beat  in  upon  him  as  he  halted  for  a  moment 
and  threw  a  quick  glance  around  before  emerging  on  to 
the  deck.  In  the  waist  of  the  vessel  on  the  port  side  two 
men  were  hauling  up  casks,  probably  belated  provisions, 
from  a  river  craft  lashed  alongside;  three  or  four  seamen 
were  high  up  in  the  rigging,  and  the  mate  was  bellowing 
to  them  hoarse  commands  in  what  to  Harry's  landsman's 
ears  was  a  foreign  tongue.  Harry  felt  that  it  was  now  or 
never;  but,  even  as  he  prepared  to  spring,  there  was  a 
heavy  footfall  above,  and  a  man  dropped  from  the  foc'sle 
deck  and  alighted  a  couple  of  yards  away.  He  swung  on 
his  heel  to  enter  the  foc'sle,  and  the  two  stood  face  to  face. 

Harry  recognized  the  broad  coarse  features  of  the  sailor 
to  whose  feigned  fit  his  easy  capture  was  due.  The  man's 
first  impression  was  evidently  that  Harry  was  one  of  the 
crew;  he  quickly  saw  his  mistake,  but  before  his  thought 
could  translate  itself  into  action  Harry,  who  had  the  advan- 
tage of  being  strung  up  for  just  such  a  meeting,  sprang 
upon  him  as  a  bolt  from  a  bow.  Reeling  under  a  deftly 
planted  blow  the  man  slipped  and  fell  heavily  to  the  deck. 
Harry  was  past  him  in  an  instant,  gained  the  side  of  the 
vessel,  and,  vaulting  lightly  on  to  the  bulwark,  had  dived 
into  the  river  before  the  astonished  seaman  could  recover 
his  breath  to  shout  an  alarm.  In  a  few  seconds  Harry  rose 
to  the  surface,  shook  the  water  from  his  face,  and  struck 
out  for  the  shore. 

Behind  him  he  heard  the  angry  shouts  of  the  sailors, 
and  afterwards  the  click  of  oars  working  in  the  row- 
locks. A  boat  was  evidently  in  pursuit.  No  doubt  the 
craft  alongside  had  been  cast  loose,  for  there  could  not 
have  been  time  to  lower  a  boat.  Could  he  reach  land  in 
time?  His  dive  had  been  so  hasty  that  he  had  not  had 
time  to  look  around  and  select  his  course.  But  now, 
through  the  pelting  rain,  he  gazed  ahead  to  find  the  nearest 
way  to  safety.  Judging  by  the  noise  of  the  oars,  the  boat 
was  rapidly  overhauling  him,  for  although  he  had  left  his 

1 20 


At   the  Last  Gasp 


A  Dead  Heat 

coat  behind,  he  made  but  slow  progress  in  his  water-logged 
clothes.  His  view  of  the  shore  was  intercepted  by  a  few 
small  one-masted  vessels  lying  at  anchor,  and  by  a  large 
brig  moored  about  a  hundred  yards  off  the  clump  of  trees 
that  formed  the  western  boundary  of  Gravesend.  If  he 
could  gain  the  other  side  of  the  brig  he  thought  he  might 
dodge  his  pursuers.  But  he  doubted  whether  his  strength 
and  speed  could  be  sustained  so  long.  The  seamen  were 
pulling  with  a  will;  the  master  himself  was  in  the  boat 
urging  them  on  with  oaths  and  execrations. 

Harry  swam  on  gamely,  changing  his  stroke  in  the 
effort  to  husband  his  strength.  But  he  had  only  had  a 
couple  of  minutes'  start,  and  looking  over  his  shoulder 
he  saw  that  with  the  best  will  in  the  world  he  must  soon 
be  overtaken.  Only  twenty  yards  separated  him  from  the 
boat ;  he  had  just  come  opposite  the  poop  of  the  stationary 
brig;  he  wondered  whether  a  shout  would  bring  anyone  to 
his  assistance,  when  a  small  skiff  appeared  from  round  the 
stern  of  the  vessel,  only  a  few  feet  distant  from  him.  It 
had  just  put  off  from  the  brig  and  was  swinging  round 
towards  the  shore.  Harry  gave  a  hail;  the  men  in  the 
boat  rested  on  their  oars ;  collecting  his  remaining  strength 
in  a  few  desperate  strokes  he  got  alongside,  and  clutched 
the  gunwale  just  as  he  felt  himself  at  his  last  gasp.  At 
the  same  moment  the  pursuing  boat  came  up,  and  the  man 
at  the  tiller  had  some  ado  to  avoid  a  collision. 

"  Back  water!"  roared  the  master. 

The  way  on  the  boat  was  checked;  it  came  to  a  stop 
a  few  yards  beyond  the  skiff  and  nearer  the  shore.  Mean- 
while Harry  had  been  dragged  on  board  the  skiff,  and  lay 
drenched,  shivering,  gasping  across  the  thwarts. 

"Cotched,  the  villain!"  cried  the  ship's  master  exult- 
antly. "Pull  alongside,  men." 

A  few  strokes  brought  the  two  boats  together. 

"  I'll  thank  ye  to  hand  un  over,"  said  the  master. 
"  Zooks!  he  shall  pay  for  this." 

He  received  no  reply,  but  instead  a  voice  which  Harry, 
half  dead  as  he  was  from  cold  and  fatigue,  recognized  with 

121 


A  Sea  Lawyer 


a  leaping-  heart,  ordered  the  crew  of  the  skiff  to  pull  back 
to  the  brig. 

"Hi!"  roared  the  master,  as  the  boats  parted,  "are  ye 
deaf  or  what?  Hand  over  that  there  runaway;  'tis  a 
deserter.  Pull  after  'em,  men." 

The  boat  started  in  pursuit,  the  master  shouting  with 
increasing  anger.  The  skift  came  below  the  brig's  stern, 
where  a  rope  ladder  was  hanging-  over  the  side. 

"  Gi'  un  up,  d'ye  hear?  Gi'  un  up,  or  'twill  be  the  worse 
for  ye." 

"  Gif  him  up!  Ja,  ja;  certainly,  but  not  now,  mine 
vrient;  not  now,  and  not  to  you.  Dat  is  not  my  way. 
We  do  not  dings  zo  in  Holland." 

"What  in  thunder  are  ye  gibbering  about?"  roared  the 
master — "you  dirty  swab  of  a  Dutchman,  you!  I  tell  you 
he  is  a  deserter.  Hand  un  over,  or  I'll  have  the  law  of  ye." 

"  De  law!  Zo,  mine  vrient.  We  will  talk  over  dis 
matter  as  g-ood  vrients." 

Grootz  sat  down,  while  the  men  on  the  brig  prepared  to 
haul  Harry,  now  limp  with  utter  exhaustion,  on  deck. 

"I,  Jan  Grootz,  find  dis  young-  man  in  de  river;  ver 
well.  He  float  in  de  river ;  well  again ;  he  is  what  de 
law  call  flotsam — dat  is  zo.  Now,  mine  vrient," — here 
Grootz's  fat  forefinger  beg-an  to  waggle — "flotsam,  say 
de  law,  belong-  to  de  sovereign,  dat  is,  to  de  lady  Queen 
Anne.  What  is  for  me  to  do  in  such  a  case — for  me,  Jan 
Grootz?  I  render  to  Caesar — who  is  de  Queen — dat  which 
is  Caesar's — dat  which  belong-  to  de  gracious  majesty  Queen 
Anne.  Derefore  I  gif  up  dis  young  man  to  de  Queen's 
officer  at  Gravesend — perhaps,  when  he  is  dry.  Zo!" 

While  this  speech  was  being  delivered  in  the  Dutchman's 
slow  drawl,  with  a  placid  persuasiveness  suited  to  a  dis- 
cussion between  friends  who  did  not  see  quite  eye  to  eye, 
the  master  had  been  growing  purple  with  rag-e.  He  was 
about  to  explode  into  invective  when  he  saw  that  Harry 
was  being  swung  up. 

"Give  way,  men!"  he  shouted.      "  Run  her  alongside." 

He  held  himself  in  readiness  to  board  the  skiff  as  soon 


Grootz  Protests 

as  he  came  within  leaping  distance.  But  Grootz,  with  an 
activity  little  to  be  expected  in  so  burly  a  frame,  seized 
an  oar  that  had  been  shipped  by  one  of  his  men  now 
lending  a  hand  in  hoisting  Harry  on  board,  and,  springing 
to  his  feet,  with  a  shrewd  thrust  sent  the  master  spinning 
over  the  side  of  his  boat  into  the  river.  He  came  up 
nearly  a  dozen  yards  away;  his  crew  pulled  towards  him, 
and  when  he  was  at  last  hauled  into  the  boat  he  was 
fifty  yards  down  the  river.  He  had  evidently  shipped  a 
good  deal  of  water,  for  Grootz's  blow  must  have  knocked 
the  breath  out  of  his  body;  the  purple  hue  of  his  cheeks 
had  given  place  to  a  mottled  sickliness.  He  gasped  and 
puffed  and  swore;  but  Harry  was  by  this  time  safe  on 
board  the  brig;  to  take  him  by  main  force  was  clearly 
impossible;  and  the  discomfited  master  had  no  alternative 
but  to  regain  his  own  vessel. 

Harry  was  carried  to  the  cabin,  his  wet  clothes  were 
taken  off,  he  was  wrapped  in  blankets  and  forced  to 
swallow  a  good  bumper  of  cordial  before  the  Dutchman 
would  allow  him  to  speak. 

"  Zo!"  exclaimed  Grootz  when  he  was  comfortable. 

"You  saved  my  life,  sir,"  said  Harry  warmly.  "I  was 
nearly  done." 

"Zo!" 

"They  were  taking  me  to  the  Plantations.  I  never  heard 
from  Lord  Marlborough.  They  trapped  me.  All  my 
money  was  gone.  I  went  to  the  Angel  and  Crown  to 
find  you,  to  ask  you  to  give  me  work;  you  had  sailed." 

"Zo!  talk  no  more.  Flotsam!  Gunst!  I  tell  you  dis, 
my  vrient ;  put  not  your  drust  in  princes :  every  man  learn 
dis  zoon  or  late :  better  zoon.  Zo!" 

The  honest  Dutchman  left  Harry  to  sleep  while  he 
resumed  his  interrupted  journey  to  the  shore.  But  he 
had  barely  reached  the  deck  when  he  heard  himself  hailed 
by  a  stentorian  voice  from  a  wherry  sweeping  by  under 
full  sail  and  the  rapid  ply  of  oars. 

"Ahoy  there!  Ha'  ye  seed  a  ship  named  the  Merry 
Maid  a-sailen  down-along  this  way?" 

123 


A  Stern  Chase 

"Ja,  ja!"  cried  Grootz,  chuckling;  "what  for  you 
ask?" 

But  the  man  gave  him  no  answer;  only  called  to  the 
two  men  rowing  the  wherry  to  pull  more  lustily. 

"Hi!"  shouted  the  Dutchman  in  his  turn;  and  though 
his  voice  was  usually  low  he  could  roar  at  need.  "  Hi ! 
you  be  too  late!" 

The  man  did  not  turn  his  head. 

"Hi!  she  is  two  mile  ahead!" 

Sherebiah  gave  no  sign.  He  was  rapidly  passing  out 
of  earshot. 

"Hi!"  shouted  Grootz  still  more  loudly.  "Sherebiah, 
stop!  Mynheer  Harry  is  here!" 

Sherebiah  jumped  up  so  violently  that,  heavy  as  the 
wherry  was,  he  almost  upset  it. 

"  Master  Harry?"  he  roared. 

"Ja!  I  tell  you." 

The  wherry  slewed  round  and  headed  toward  the  brig. 
Grootz  lit  his  pipe  and  watched,  his  little  eyes  twinkling 
with  amusement.  Sherebiah  looked  positively  aggrieved 
when  he  came  aboard. 

"Oons!  'tis  sinful  to  tear  a  poor  mortal  man's  heart 
out,  'tis  so.  Here  be  I,  a-chasen  a  villanous  creature, 
the  Merry  Maid  by  name,  thinken  as  Master  Harry  were 
a  forsaken  prisoner  aboard  on  her,  and  'tis  all  much  ado 
about  nothen,  and  he  a-laughen  in  his  sleeve  along  o' 
your  cargo!  I  wouldn'  ha'  thowt  it,  not  I.  Where 
be  the  deceiven  trickster?" 

"Asleep,"  said  Grootz,  with  a  puff  of  smoke.  "Flot- 
sam!" He  chuckled  and  guffawed;  it  was  a  joke  that 
would  last  his  lifetime. 

"What  your  meanen  may  be  I  don't  know,  Mynheer; 
but  'tis  me  as  ought  to  be  sleepen.  No  sleep  ha'  I  had, 
not  a  wink,  since  Master  Harry  played  this  trick  on  me ; 
ay,  'twas  sinful.  And  I'll  punch  Ralph  Aglionby's  costard, 
I  will  so,  first  chance  I  gets." 
"Tell  me  about  it,"  said  Grootz. 

Sherebiah    related    how,    on   returning  to   his    inn   with 
124 


Sherry's   Story 


the  money  for  which  he  had  pledged  Harry's  trinkets,  he 
was  surprised  to  find  his  young  master  absent.  As  time 
passed  on,  and  he  did  not  make  his  appearance,  Sherebiah 
became  thoroughly  alarmed.  About  seven  o'clock  in  the 
evening  he  hurried  off  to  Southwark,  and  enquired  of 
the  porter  at  the  White  Hart  whether  Captain  Aglionby 
was  within.  The  captain  had  left  a  week  before,  said  the 
porter,  in  company  with  a  tall,  bent,  shabby  old  gentle- 
man. Sherebiah's  worst  fears  were  realized.  For  weeks 
he  had  expected  the  stroke,  and  now  it  had  fallen  sud- 
denly, and  at  a  time  when  he  was  not  at  hand  to  parry 
it.  He  hastened  at  once  to  the  house  in  which,  as  he 
had  made  it  his  business  to  know,  Mr.  Berkeley  was  stay- 
ing. Neither  the  squire  nor  Captain  Aglionby  was  at 
home.  Sherebiah  thereupon  took  his  station  at  a  con- 
venient spot  near  the  house  whence  he  could  see  without 
being  seen,  and  some  time  after  midnight  was  rewarded. 
The  two  men  he  sought  returned  together.  Allowing  a 
little  time  to  elapse,  he  went  to  the  house  and  asked  to 
see  Captain  Aglionby,  giving  the  servant  a  vague  message 
which  he  believed  would  bring  the  captain  to  the  door. 
Instead  of  him,  however,  Mr.  Berkeley  himself  appeared. 
To  Sherebiah's  question  as  to  what  had  become  of  Harry, 
the  squire  replied  coldly  that  he  knew  nothing  about  him, 
and  shut  the  door  in  his  questioner's  face. 

"Ay,  I  were  a  fool  to  ask  un,"  admitted  Sherebiah 
ruefully.  ' '  I  had  ought  to  ha'  thowt  o'  poor  old  feyther 
o'  mine." 

Sherebiah  was  determined  to  have  his  question  answered 
somehow.  He  was  early  at  his  post  next  morning,  keep- 
ing a  careful  eye  upon  the  door  of  the  house.  He  saw  the 
squire  and  Captain  Aglionby  issue  forth  together  and 
visit  a  lawyer  up  four  flights  of  stairs  in  a  house  near 
Holborn  Bars.  He  followed  all  three  to  a  house  in  a 
blind  alley  farther  east,  never  suspecting  that  Harry  was 
there  confined.  He  shadowed  them  when  they  left,  saw 
them  enter  a  coffee-house,  followed  them  when  they  came 
out,  and  then  lost  sight  of  them.  Returning  to  his  own 

125 


To  the  Low  Countries 

inn  to  enquire  whether  anything  had  been  heard  of  Harry, 
he  found  that  a  man  had  called  an  hour  before  and  left 
a  message  for  him,  asking  him  to  call  without  delay  at 
an  address  in  Smithfield.  Hastening  there  at  once,  he 
learnt  from  Harry's  late  jailer  how  he  had  been  kidnapped 
and  shipped  off  to  the  Plantations.  At  full  speed  he  rushed 
to  the  wharf,  only  to  learn  that  the  Merry  Maid,  William 
Shovel  master,  had  just  taken  the  tide  and  was  now  on 
her  way  to  the  sea. 

"You  med  ha'  knocked  me  down  wi'  a  feather.  I  sat 
me  down  on  a  box  under  a  gashly  torch,  and  thinks  I, 
*  Rafe  Aglionby  be  too  much  for  'ee  this  time,  Sherebiah 
Stand-up-and-bless.'  I  stood  up,  I  did;  time  an'  tide 
waits  for  no  man;  'twas  a  sudden  thought;  I  seed  a 
sailen  wherry  alongside  wharf,  and  two  big  swabs  hangen 
round.  I  showed  'em  a  crown  a-piece,  and  said  there's 
more  to  foller,  and  mebbe  summat  out  o'  the  Queen's 
purse  too;  and  here  I  be,  all  my  poor  mortal  flesh 
a-wamblen  like  a  aspen.  Tis  tooken  a  year  off  my  life, 
ay,  'tis  so." 

Jan  Grootz  smiled. 

"  Mine  good  vrient,"  he  said,  "  I  tell  you  dis.  You 
will  come  ashore  with  me;  we  will  go  to  your  inn  and 
fetch  your  goods.  It  will  delay  us,  but  only  one  day. 
Den  my  ship  sails;  Amsterdam;  you  will  come?" 

"Sakes!     What  about  Master  Harry,  then?" 

"Healzo." 

"Oons!  Be  that  th'  order  o'  the  day?  Well,  'tis  a 
long  lane  has  no  turnen.  Will  there  be  time  for  me  to  go 
and  ha'  a  few  words  wi'  Rafe  Aglionby?" 

"No." 

"Well,  I'll  save  'em  up.  A  rod  bean't  none  the  wuss 
for  bein'  salted.  Ay,  and  I  were  not  always  a  man  o' 
peace  1" 


136 


CHAPTER   IX 

Monsieur  de  Polignac  Presses 
his  Suit 

"  HUNDERD  barrels  pork,  tousand  quarters  flour,  five 
hunderdweight  sausages,  twenty  gallon  schnapps,  for  de 
garrison  of  Breda.  Ver  well,  Monsieur  de  Tilly,  de 
order  shall  be  done." 

Mynheer  Jan  Grootz  put  down  the  paper  from  which 
he  had  been  translating,  and  pushed  a  pair  of  horn 
spectacles  up  his  brow. 

"Mynheer  Harry,"  he  continued,  "you  will  see  to  dis. 
Such  an  order  yesterday  could  not  have  been  met — no. 
But  wid  Peter  Kolp's  man  coming  from  Helmund  it  is 
to-day  anoder  ding.  In  Helmund,  wid  Peter  Kolp,  dere 
is  pork,  flour — plenty;  yes,  my  poor  vrient  Kolp  dink 
dere  is  too  much;  he  alzo  would  supply  de  army. 
'  Grootz,'  he  say,  '  ask  too  high  prices.  As  for  me, 
Kolp,  I  am  a  cheap  man.  But  Grootz,  he  is  a  sad 
rascal.'  But  I  tell  you  dis:  dey  say  my  poor  vrient 
Kolp  forget  his  measures  and  weights,  he  dink  fourteen 
ounces  weigh  one  pound,  and  sometimes,  dey  say,  he  dink 
ten  barrel  bad  pork  make  twelve  good;  so  my  poor  vrient 
is  not  now  permitted  to  contract  no  more ;  and  he  sell  me 
his  stores.  Truly,  he  is  a  cheap  man!  Zo!" 

There  was  a  chuckle  of  satisfaction  in  the  concluding 
word. 

"You  will  start  early  in  de  morning,  Mynheer  Harry," 
he  resumed,  "wid  ten  carts;  Helmund  is  twenty  mile 
beyond  Tilburg,  and  Tilburg  fifteen  beyond  Breda.  You 
will  get  de  stores  from  Kolp  at  Helmund  and  return 

127 


Scenes  in  Holland 

wid  dem  to  Breda  and  hand  dem  over  to  the  commissary 
dere.  Take  wid  you  your  man  Sherebiah,  and  Piet 
Brinker  to  show  you  de  road;  he  will  pick  drivers  for 
de  carts.  We  hear  noding  of  forayers  lately ;  zo  I  hope 
you  have  a  safe  journey,  And,  Mynheer  Harry,  never 
forget  dat  poor  Kolp  cannot  count,  and  do  not  know 
good  pork  from  bad,  and  mistake  chalk  for  flour.  You 
will  examine  dese  little  matters  wid  much  care;  zo?" 

The  merchant  replaced  his  glasses  on  his  nose  and 
proceeded  to  dictate  an  invoice  to  one  of  his  clerks.  He 
sat  at  a  desk  in  a  low-pitched  room  next  to  the  roof  of  a 
gabled  house  near  the  Gevangen  Poort  in  Bergen-op-Zoom. 
The  lower  floors  were  devoted  to  the  living  apartments; 
the  warehouse  and  offices  were  at  the  top,  goods  being 
raised  and  lowered  by  means  of  a  crane -like  apparatus 
that  projected  from  the  wall  like  a  yard-arm.  It  was  not 
Mynheer  Grootz's  home ;  that  was  at  the  Hague ;  but  Ber- 
gen-op-Zoom at  the  head  of  the  eastern  arm  of  the  Scheldt 
was  for  the  present  his  business  head-quarters,  conveni- 
ently situated  in  regard  to  the  scattered  armies  whose 
wants  he  had  to  supply. 

It  was  early  in  the  month  of  June.  For  more  than  three 
months  Harry  Rochester  had  been  engaged  with  the 
worthy  Dutchman,  who  was  kept  busy  morning,  noon,  and 
night  in  provisioning  the  allied  forces  now  entering  upon 
a  new  campaign.  He  found  his  employment  very  much 
to  his  taste,  and  his  employer  the  best  of  friends.  Grootz 
never  alluded  to  the  time  when  his  offer  of  employment 
had  been  slighted,  and  Harry  often  smiled  as  he  remem- 
bered the  pride  with  which,  in  the  days  of  his  high  expec- 
tations, he  had  refused  to  cast  in  his  lot  with  a  mere 
merchant.  The  novelty  of  the  scenes  amid  which  he 
found  himself  on  his  arrival  in  Holland  had  banished  his 
ambitions  for  the  time.  The  flat  country,  with  its  dunes 
and  dykes,  its  endless  canals  and  innumerable  windmills ; 
its  quaint  towns,  in  which  chimneys  and  steeples  and 
masts  seemed  so  curiously  jumbled;  the  stolid,  hospitable 
people — the  men  with  their  big  pipes  and  snuff-boxes,  the 

128 


R  T  H 
EA 


52° 

- 


ZU1DER         ZEE 


AMSTERDAM 


iLeyden 


(Sckevenir.gcn 
oThe  Hague 


ROTTERDAM 


Map  of 

Part  of  the 

LOW   COUNTRIES 

in   1703. 


Feeding  an  Army 


women  with  their  characteristic  head-dress,  the  girls  with 
the  riband  of  maidenhood  at  their  right  brow ;  the  strange 
customs — the  spionnen  at  the  windows,  an  arrangement  of 
mirrors  by  which  from  the  upper  rooms  all  that  passed  in 
the  street  below  could  be  seen  within;  the  placard  at  the 
door  when  a  child  was  born ;  the  incessant  scrubbing  that 
went  on  indoors  and  out ;  the  trekschuiten  and  pakschuiten 
that  conveyed  goods  and  passengers  along  the  canals, 
drawn  sometimes  by  horses,  more  often  by  a  stout  mynheer 
and  his  vrouw;  the  storks  nesting  among  the  chimney- 
pots ;  the  stiff  formal  gardens  with  their  beds  of  tulips — 
everything  interested  him;  his  low  spirits  vanished  into 
thin  air,  and  he  enjoyed  life  with  a  zest  he  had  never 
known  before. 

His  duties  had  taken  him  into  many  parts  of  the  country. 
In  March  he  was  at  the  Hague  when  the  Duke  of  Marl- 
borough  returned  to  resume  command  of  the  forces,  and 
he  did  not  even  feel  a  pang  when,  a  humble  member  of  the 
crowd,  he  saw  the  great  soldier  whose  forgetfulness  or 
insincerity  had  so  woefully  disappointed  him.  He  knew 
the  potteries  of  Delft,  and  the  cheese-factories  of  Gouda; 
he  had  heard  the  great  organ  of  Haarlem,  and  the  sweet 
carillons  of  Antwerp,  and  practised  skating  for  the  first 
time  on  a  frozen  arm  of  the  Y.  Finding  it  difficult  to  get 
on  without  a  knowledge  of  Dutch,  the  only  language 
understood  by  his  teamsters  and  the  country  people,  he 
had  thrown  himself  energetically  into  the  study  of  the 
language ;  and  he  had,  besides,  picked  up  a  smattering  of 
everyday  German  phrases  from  one  of  his  men,  a  German 
Swiss.  After  his  natural  British  diffidence  in  adventuring 
on  a  foreign  tongue  had  worn  off,  he  delighted  to  air  his 
new  accomplishment  with  the  comely  juffrouws  whom  he 
met  in  the  course  of  his  journeys.  He  dropped  into  the 
routine  of  the  business  so  rapidly  that  Mynheer  Grootz 
once  told  him  he  was  a  born  merchant  —  a  compliment 
which,  to  his  own  surprise,  did  not  give  the  least  shock 
to  his  dignity. 

His  intelligence  and  energy  completely  won  the  old 

129 


A  Tulip  Bulb 


Dutchman's  confidence,  and  more  than  once  he  had  been 
entrusted  with  the  delivery  of  supplies  to  the  army  in  the 
field.  It  was  not  always  possible  for  the  military  authori- 
ties to  furnish  convoys  for  these  consignments,  and  they 
were  therefore  usually  accompanied  by  well-armed  men  to 
guard  against  the  danger  of  surprise  by  robbers  and  free- 
booters. Many  small  bands  of  outlaws  were  abroad  in 
Holland  and  Germany,  taking  advantage  of  the  disturbed 
state  of  the  country  to  prey  upon  the  inhabitants,  under 
the  pretence  of  making  requisitions  for  one  or  other  of  the 
contending  forces.  These  marauders  terrorized  the  remoter 
districts.  Hitherto  Harry  had  been  fortunate  in  avoiding 
any  danger  of  this  character.  Grootz  was  as  phlegmatic 
and  silent  as  ever,  but  he  showed  in  his  quiet  way  that 
he  was  pleased  with  the  lad's  unvarying  diligence  and 
success. 

Harry  woke  early.  The  sun  was  bright  but  the  air  cool, 
and  he  felt  full  of  vigour,  eager  to  set  off  on  this  the 
longest  expedition  he  had  yet  taken.  Mynheer  Grootz 
was  a  bachelor,  and  his  breakfast-table  was  served  by  a 
buxom  old  housekeeper  who,  after  a  brief  season  of 
jealousy,  had  capitulated  to  Harry's  cheerfulness  and 
courtesy.  At  breakfast  the  merchant  in  his  slow,  ponder- 
ous manner  repeated  his  customary  warnings  to  Harry  to 
guard  against  surprise,  and  to  be  punctilious  about  getting 
a  formal  receipt  for  his  supplies  from  the  commissary  of  the 
force  to  which  they  were  to  be  delivered. 

"Here  is  de  paper,"  he  said,  handing  it  to  Harry. 
"Make  him  sign  it;  he  may  be  a  count  or  marquis  or 
someding  of  de  sort,  and  I  trust  none  of  dem." 

Harry  laughed.  "Put  not  your  trust  in  princes" 
seemed  to  be  the  prime  motto  of  his  host's  business 
career. 

"Very  well,  Mynheer,"  he  said. 

"And  here  is  a  packet  I  wish  you  to  deliver.  Not  for 
de  army,  dis;  no;  it  is  for  a  vrient  of  mine  dat  live  a 
few  miles  dis  side  of  Helmund.  I  promised  her  a  tulip 
bulb;  dis  is  it." 

130 


On  the  Road 

He  handed  to  Harry  a  small  packet,  on  which  the  address 
was  written. 

"The  Comtesse  de  Vaudrey,"  he  read  aloud.  "That  is 
a  French  name?" 

"Ja!  De  lady  is  French,  a  widow,  of  a  family  dat 
had  to  leave  France  because  of  the  persecutions.  She  is 
French,  but  a  vrient  alzo.  If  you  need  help,  she  will 
give  it." 

"I  hope  she  is  not  a  very  great  lady.  I  have  met  no 
lady  here  higher  in  rank  than  a  burgomaster's  vrouw,  and 
I  thought  she  rather  looked  down  on  me." 

"The  comtesse  is  mine  vrient,"  repeated  Grootz  in  a 
tone  that  implied  there  was  no  more  to  be  said. 

A  few  minutes  afterwards  they  left  the  breakfast-room. 
At  the  outer  door  ten  empty  wagons  were  already  waiting 
with  their  drivers,  and  as  Harry  prepared  to  mount  to  his 
place  on  the  foremost,  Sherebiah  came  up  with  the  remains 
of  his  breakfast  in  his  hand.  Grootz  repeated  his  warn- 
ings ;  Harry  smiled  and  waved  his  good-bye  to  Gretel  the 
housekeeper,  who  stood  at  the  door  with  her  hands  folded 
in  front  of  her  ample  person,  and  the  line  of  carts 
moved  off. 

The  Harry  Rochester  in  charge  of  the  convoy  was  a 
different  being  from  the  pale  thin  youth  who  had  left 
England  four  months  before.  His  work  had  had  the  effect 
of  hardening  his  muscles  and  developing  his  physique;  and 
constant  exposure  to  the  air  and  sun  had  browned  his 
cheeks  and  brightened  his  eye.  But  Sherebiah  presented 
a  still  greater  contrast.  From  the  moment  of  landing  on 
Dutch  soil  he  had  ceased  to  shave,  with  the  result  that  his 
lips  and  cheeks  and  chin  were  now  covered  with  a  thick 
growth  of  stiff  brown  hair.  Harry  did  not  like  the  change, 
but  when  he  asked  the  reason  of  this  departure  from  old 
habit  Sherebiah  merely  said  that  he  had  concluded  shaving 
to  be  a  waste  of  time.  The  reply  was  hardly  satisfactory, 
but  Sherebiah  was  never  communicative  unless  he  wished 
to  be  so,  and  Harry  let  the  matter  drop. 

The  roads  were  heavy,  and  the  horses  were  of  the  large- 


The  Captain's  Man 

limbed  variety  that  spell  endurance  rather  than  pace. 
Empty  as  the  wagons  were,  only  twenty  miles  were  made 
that  day,  and  Harry  decided  to  stay  for  the  night  at  the 
Crown  Inn  at  Breda.  The  town  was  garrisoned  by  four 
battalions  of  infantry,  four  regiments  of  cavalry,  and  a 
regiment  of  dragoons,  and  it  was  for  these  that  the  sup- 
plies were  required.  Harry  sought  out  the  commissary, 
and  promising  to  deliver  the  goods  within  two  days, 
went  for  a  stroll  through  the  town,  leaving  Sherebiah  to 
bespeak  supper  at  the  inn.  He  roamed  through  the  wind- 
ing streets,  one  of  which  ended  with  a  windmill;  admired 
the  warm-toned  old  house-fronts;  William  the  Third's 
chateau,  encircled  by  the  river  Merk;  and  the  fine  Her- 
vormde  Kerk,  with  its  lofty  octagon  tower  and  bulbous 
spire.  On  returning  to  the  inn  he  was  met  by  Sherebiah 
in  some  excitement. 

"What  med  'ee  think,  sir?  Who'd  'ee  believe  I  ha' 
seed?" 

"Well?" 

"John  Simmons,  sir,  large  as  life." 

"Captain  Aglionby's  man — the  man  who  got  a  crack  on 
the  head  on  the  Roman  road  ?" 

"The  very  same." 

"  I  have  often  wondered  how  he  managed  to  escape 
from  old  Nokes  the  constable.  'Twas  whispered  that  the 
captain  himself  had  a  hand  in  it.  I  suppose  he  came  to 
this  country  for  safety." 

"Ay,  not  for  riches,  so  'twould  seem,"  replied  Sherebiah 
rather  hurriedly.  "A'  was  down  at  heel,  more  like  a 
ragged  vagrom  than  the  smart  soul  as  drank  his  pint  at 
the  Berkeley  Arms.  Mother  Joplady  couldn'  abide  un." 

"  Did  he  see  you?" 

"Not  him.  Nor  I  don't  want  to  see  un,  the  mumpen 
cockney. — Supper's  ready,  sir." 

Next  morning  Harry  proceeded  with  his  convoy  along 
the  Eyndhoven  road  and  arrived  late  at  his  destination, 
Helmund.  Almost  the  whole  of  the  following  day  was 
occupied  in  loading  his  wagons  and  procuring  extra  carts 

112 


A   Break-Down 

to  carry  the  stores  collected  by  Grootz's  client,  Peter  Kolp. 
At  his  first  interview  with  that  "  poor  friend  "  of  Mynheer 
Grootz,  Harry  made  it  clear  that,  as  a  matter  of  form,  the 
provisions  would  be  carefully  tested  in  quality  and  quantity, 
with  the  result  that  they  were  found  to  be  excellent  and 
full  weight.  It  was  four  o'clock  before  he  was  ready  to 
start  for  Breda.  He  followed  a  different  route  on  his 
return  journey.  Madame  de  Vaudrey's  house,  Lindendaal, 
lay  on  the  upper  road  toward  Boxtel  —  a  safer  road  to 
travel,  as  a  report  had  come  in  that  the  French  had  made 
their  appearance  near  Turnhout,  to  the  south,  and  were 
coming  apparently  in  the  direction  of  Eyndhoven. 

Unluckily,  the  convoy  had  proceeded  only  a  few  miles 
on  its  return  to  Breda  when,  as  it  was  crossing  the  Aa 
river,  one  of  the  horses  took  fright  and  toppled  the  cart 
into  the  water.  Fortunately  the  stream  was  sluggish  and 
shallow,  but  Harry  saw  that  it  would  take  some  time  to 
extricate  the  wagon  from  the  mud  and  collect  what  part 
of  its  load  was  worth  saving.  Leaving  Piet  Brinker  in 
charge  of  the  work,  he  decided  to  push  on  himself  with 
the  remainder  of  the  convoy,  deliver  the  packet  he  carried 
for  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  and  wait  for  the  rescued  wagon 
to  overtake  him.  He  knew  that,  with  the  hospitality  uni- 
versal in  Holland,  the  countess  would  not  allow  him  to 
proceed  unrefreshed,  and  he  was  in  truth  not  a  little  glad 
of  the  opportunity  of  seeing  the  lady  whom  Grootz  had  so 
emphatically  called  his  friend.  He  therefore  drove  on. 
The  wagon  wheels  ploughed  deep  furrows  in  the  heavy 
sandy  roads,  and  the  big  Dutch  horses  plodded  on  steadily 
but  slowly.  The  road  wound  by  and  by  through  avenues 
of  elms,  pruned  of  their  branches  in  the  Dutch  way,  and 
looking  to  Harry's  English  eyes  very  starved  and  ugly. 
At  length  he  came  to  a  wall  on  the  right  that  appeared 
to  enclose  a  park  of  some  considerable  size.  A  peasant 
was  passing,  whom  he  hailed,  asking  in  Dutch  whether 
this  was  the  house  of  Madame  de  Vaudrey.  The  man 
looked  stolidly  at  him  without  replying.  Sherebiah  re- 
peated the  question,  using  a  different  phrase.  The  Hol- 

133 


Double  Dutch 

lander  answered  at  once  that  this  certainly  was  Lindendaal, 
the  chateau  of  the  French  lady.  Harry  sprang  from  his 
wagon,  ordered  the  drivers  to  draw  up  by  the  side  of  the 
road,  which  was  here  parallel  with  a  narrow  canal,  and 
entered  the  gate  accompanied  by  Sherebiah. 

"  I'll  tell  you  one  thing  that  puzzles  me,  Sherry,"  he 
remarked,  as  they  passed  up  an  avenue  bounded  on  both 
sides  by  a  breast-high  balustrade  of  stone.  "  You  and  I 
have  been  in  this  country  the  same  time,  and  seen  each  as 
much  as  the  other  of  the  people,  and  yet  you  have  beat  me 
altogether  in  picking  up  the  language,  hard  as  I  have 
worked  at  it.  I  don't  understand  it." 

"Ah  well,  Master  Harry,"  said  Sherebiah,  "'tis  like 
that  sometimes,  so  'tis.  You  be  a  scholard,  with  book 
larnen  and  all  that;  I  be,  true,  a  poor  common  mortal, 
but  mebbe  my  ear  be  quicker  'n  some." 

"  Still,  the  time  is  rather  short  for  you  to  have  learnt  to 
speak  the  language  so  well  as  you  do.  Your  knowledge 
has  grown  as  quickly  as  your  beard." 

"True  now,  mebbe  so;  Samson  in  the  Holy  Book 
growed  amazen  clever  wi'  his  locks;  but  I  never  thowt 
afore  as  how  it  med  be  the  same  in  these  days." 

Harry  laughed. 

"  It  looks  very  English,  doesn't  it?"  he  said,  pointing 
to  the  house.  It  was  square,  with  a  veranda  painted  blue, 
under  which  were  several  windows  opening  to  the  ground. 
In  front  was  an  open  semicircular  space,  around  which 
were  parterres  of  brilliant  flowers;  these  were  separated 
from  the  park  and  orchard  by  a  prolongation  of  the  balus- 
trades that  lined  the  drive.  There  were  dormer  windows 
in  the  roof,  and  at  one  angle  rose  a  kind  of  belfry  sur- 
mounted by  a  weathercock. 

"  Give  me  the  packet,  Sherry;  you  had  better  remain  at 
the  door  while  I  go  in." 

"  Ay,  or  mebbe  I  med  find  my  lone  way  to  the 
kitchen?" 

"  No,  no;  remain  at  the  door  until  I  have  seen  Madame 
de  Vaudrey.  I  can't  have  you  coquetting  with  her  maids." 

134 


The  Captain  Again 

Harry  went  to  the  door,  which  stood  open,  the  after- 
noon having  been  warm.  A  spare,  anxious-looking  man- 
servant came  in  answer  to  his  ring1. 

"  Is  Madame  de  Vaudrey  within?"  he  asked  in  Dutch. 

The  man's  accent  when  he  replied  in  the  affirmative  left 
no  doubt  that  he  was  a  Frenchman.  Harry  explained  his 
errand  in  French,  whereupon  the  man  said  in  the  same 
language  that  his  mistress  was  for  the  moment  engaged, 
but  that  if  Monsieur  would  wait  no  doubt  she  would  see 
him  shortly.  He  led  Harry  through  the  wide  hall,  up  a 
handsome  oak  staircase  into  a  little  ante -room,  where, 
begging  him  to  be  seated,  he  shut  the  door  upon  the 
visitor. 

Harry  was  immediately  aware  of  voices  engaged  in  con- 
versation on  the  other  side  of  the  folding- doors  that 
formed  one  wall  of  the  room.  At  first  the  sounds  came  to 
him  as  murmurs  in  different  tones,  but  after  a  time  they 
became  louder,  and  though  he  could  not  distinguish  the 
words  it  was  plain  that  one  at  least  of  the  speakers  was 
very  angry.  At  length  he  heard  the  fierce  clanging  of 
a  bell  below;  a  few  moments  after,  the  manservant  came 
running  into  the  ante-room  and  threw  open  the  folding- 
doors.  Harry,  looking  into  what  was  evidently  the 
drawing-room,  saw  a  group  of  four.  One  was  clearly  the 
lady  of  the  house,  short,  stout,  dressed  in  a  costume  little 
resembling  the  Dutch  housewife's  usual  attire.  She  was 
very  angry,  talking  vehemently,  and  gesticulating  with  her 
plump  white  hand.  By  her  side  stood  a  younger  lady, 
half  a  head  taller,  slim  and  graceful,  perfectly  still  and 
collected,  though  her  cheeks  were  flushed.  Opposite  to 
the  two  ladies,  their  backs  to  the  four  windows  which  lit 
the  other  end  of  the  room,  were  two  men,  one  very  tall 
and  lean,  with  thin  lips.  The  other  was  but  little  shorter 
and  a  good  deal  stouter.  Harry's  attention  had  been  at 
first  attracted  to  the  ladies;  the  burlier  of  the  two  men 
was  the  last  of  the  four  to  be  noticed;  and  it  was  with 
a  shock  of  amazement  that  he  recognized  in  his  figure  and 
blotched  red  face  no  other  than  Captain  Aglionby. 

(B357)  135  K 


A   Diversion 

"  Allez-vous-en,  allez-vous-en !"  the  elder  lady  was 
repeating.  "  Quittez  ma  maison,  tout  de  suite;  je  vous 
1'ordonne,  je  1'exige,  je  le  veux  absolument;  retirez-vous, 
messieurs,  d'ici,  et  au  plus  vite ! " 

Aglionby  laughed.  None  of  the  four  had  yet  caught 
sight  of  Harry  standing  back  in  the  darker  ante-room. 
The  lady  turned  to  the  manservant  and  ordered  him  to 
eject  the  unwelcome  visitors.  The  servant  hesitated  to 
attempt  a  task  clearly  beyond  his  strength.  Aglionby  put 
his  hand  on  his  sword,  and  then  laughed  again  brutally  as 
he  recognized  that  he  had  nothing  to  fear.  All  the  time 
the  taller  man  stood  quietly  watching  the  scene,  occasion- 
ally moistening  his  lips;  and  the  girl  remained  in  the 
same  tense  immobility,  her  eyes  never  leaving  the  face  of 
Aglionby. 

Harry  felt  it  was  time  to  intervene. 

"  Perhaps  I  may  be  allowed —  "  he  began.  At  the  first 
word  the  captain  swung  round  as  if  on  a  pivot  and  stared. 
His  puffed  crimson  face  turned  a  sea-green  as  he  saw 
advancing  towards  him,  fresh,  lithe,  confident,  the  youth 
whom  he  fondly  imagined  by  this  time  leading  a  slave's 
life  in  a  Barbados  plantation.  The  other  man  did  not  stir; 
but  the  two  ladies  looked  towards  the  speaker  with  a  sort 
of  startled  surprise.  Stepping  towards  the  elder,  Harry 
continued : 

"  Perhaps  I  may  be  allowed  to  offer  my  services.  If 
Madame  will  be  so  good  as  to  retire,  I  will — reason  with 
these  gentlemen." 

Madame  de  Vaudrey  clasped  her  hands  and  looked 
indecisively  at  the  new-comer,  as  though  doubting  the 
propriety  of  accepting  the  intervention  of  a  stranger. 
Harry  was  on  the  point  of  explaining  who  he  was,  when 
the  matter  was  settled  in  an  unexpected  way.  The  girl 
moved  to  her  mother's  side  and  took  her  by  the  hand. 
Then,  turning  to  Harry,  she  said  in  clear,  cold  tones: 

"  If  Monsieur  will  rid  the  house  of  these  two  men  he 
will  do  my  mother  a  great  service.  Come,  Mamma!" 
And  then,  without  another  glance  at  any  of  the  three, 

136 


An  Entry 


she  led  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  still  half- resisting,  from  the 
room. 

The  colour  had  been  gradually  returning-  to  Aglionby's 
face,  and  when  the  ladies  had  disappeared  his  purple  hue 
was  deeper  than  ever.  But  the  surprise  of  Harry's  pre- 
sence was  so  great  that  for  the  moment  the  doughty  cap- 
tain was  nonplussed;  his  anger  was  at  boiling-point,  but 
he  was  clearly  at  a  loss  what  course  to  take.  His  com- 
panion stood  expectant,  a  slight  smile  still  on  his  face — 
a  smile  rendered  peculiarly  disagreeable  by  a  twitching 
of  the  mouth  that  drew  one  corner  perceptibly  upwards 
towards  the  left  ear. 

The  interval  of  silence  seemed  longer  than  it  really 
was. 

"  I  am  sure,  gentlemen,"  said  Harry  with  great  ur- 
banity, "you  will  see  the  propriety  of  at  once  relieving 
Madame  de  Vaudrey  of  your  presence." 

Then  the  storm  broke.  Glaring  with  rage,  unable  to 
stand  still,  stuttering  in  his  speech,  Aglionby  roared: 

"  You  insolent  puppy,  you  low-born  cully,  you — how 
dare  you  speak  to  me!  What  are  you  doing  here?  Stap 
me,  I'll  run  you  through  the  midriff  and  rid  the  world  of 
a  bit  of  vermin!" 

"  I  shall  be  delighted  to  give  you  an  opportunity — out- 
side," said  Harry  quietly.  "  Meanwhile,  the  door  is  open, 
and  by  making  your  exit  you  will  please  not  Madame  de 
Vaudrey  only,  but  me  and,  it  appears,  yourself." 

"  Adsbud,  I'll — I'll "  stuttered  Aglionby,  half  drawing 

his  sword.  Harry  had  his  right  hand  on  the  hilt  of  his 
own  weapon,  the  third  man  was  still  watching  the  scene, 
when  an  unlooked-for  diversion  occurred.  Harry  was 
between  the  two  rooms,  the  two  men  opposite  him  with 
their  backs  to  the  drawing-room  windows,  which  were 
open.  It  happened  that  a  flight  of  steps  led  up  from  the 
garden  to  a  balcony  beneath  these  windows.  At  this 
critical  moment  a  fourth  man  came  suddenly  into  the  room 
from  the  outside.  Before  any  of  the  three  could  perceive 
what  was  happening,  the  new-comer,  with  a  long  acro- 

137 


An  Exit 

batic  spring,  simultaneously  imprisoned  in  his  arms  the 
necks  of  Aglionby  and  his  companion,  and  half-throttling 
them  dragged  them  past  Harry,  through  the  ante-room, 
into  the  corridor,  and  down  the  staircase.  Harry  followed, 
himself  somewhat  amazed  at  their  helter-skelter  progress 
— bumping  down  the  stairs,  struggling  vainly  in  Shere- 
biah's  vice-like  grip,  swaying  against  the  balusters  first  on 
one  side  then  on  the  other,  the  wood-work  creaking  and 
groaning  under  the  pressure.  Half-way  down  the  men 
lost  their  feet  altogether,  and  were  incapable  of  resisting 
the  rush  with  which  their  captor  hauled  them  across  the 
vestibule  and  through  the  open  door,  where  he  pulled  up 
with  a  sudden  jerk  and  shot  them  down  the  flight  of 
shallow  steps  on  to  the  drive  in  front.  The  whole  pro- 
ceeding scarcely  occupied  more  than  half  a  minute,  so 
sudden  had  been  the  onset,  so  helpless  were  the  two  men, 
gasping  half-strangled  in  Sherebiah's  merciless  hug. 

Harry  ran  down  the  stairs,  expecting  to  find  his  man 
engaged  in  a  battle  royal  before  the  house.  But  when  he 
reached  the  door  he  saw  Aglionby  and  the  Frenchman 
already  halfway  down  the  drive  towards  the  road.  They 
had  not  waited,  then,  to  demand  satisfaction  of  him. 
Smiling  at  his  recollection  of  their  headlong  descent,  he 
went  upstairs  again,  and  was  met  by  Madame  de  Vaudrey, 
who  had  come  from  another  room  at  the  sound  of  scuffling. 
She  was  very  pale. 

"  They  are  gone,  Madame,"  said  Harry  at  once,  to 
reassure  her. 

"Oh,  Monsieur,  I  thank  you,  I  thank  you  with  good 
heart!  Your  help  at  the  precise  moment  was  so  precious. 
I  cannot  thank  you  too  much." 

"It  was  my  servant,  Madame — a  very  useful  fellow. 
He  did  it  all  himself.  I  am  glad  we  happened  to  be  at 
hand.  This  unforeseen  incident  has  prevented  me,  Madame, 
from  explaining  my  presence  here.  I  have  called  to  leave 
a  packet  entrusted  to  me  by  Mynheer  Grootz,  a  friend  of 
yours,  I  think." 

"Oh!  it  is  my  tulip  bulb.     Mynheer  Grootz  promised  to 
138 


Hospitality 


send  it  me.  Yes,  he  is  a  friend  of  mine  indeed.  But  are 
those  men  really  gone?  Will  they  not  overpower  your 
brave  servant?  They  are  bad  men — oh,  they  are  bad!  I 
fear  them." 

"  I  saw  them  going  down  the  drive.  And  my  man  knows 
how  to  take  care  of  himself,"  said  Harry.  "  They  will  not 
trouble  you  again  at  present.  And  now,  Madame,  as  I 
have  Mynheer  Grootz's  packet  in  the  ante-room,  if  you 
will  allow  me  to  place  it  in  your  hands  I  will  take  my 
leave  and  proceed  on  my  way." 

"  Mon  Dieu,  non!"  cried  the  lady.  "You  must  allow 
me  to  give  you  some  refreshment,  and  your  brave  man  too 
— if  he  is  really  safe!  Jean,"  she  called  to  the  servant, 
"bring  wine  and  cakes  and  fruit  to  the  drawing-room. 
But  first  see  if  this  gentleman's  servant  is  safe." 

"  He  is,  Madame,"  replied  the  man  at  once.  "The  men 
from  the  stables  and  the  garden  were  coming  to  the  door: 
Mademoiselle  had  fetched  them :  and  they  were  too  many 
for  Monsieur  de  Polignac  and  the  other." 

"How  thankful  I  am!  Bring  the  brave  man  up  with 
you.  Now,  Monsieur — I  do  not  know  your  name?" 

"It  is  Harry  Rochester,  Madame;  I  am  English." 

"  Indeed!  Come  into  the  drawing-room  and  rest.  Jean 
will  bring  something  to  eat  and  drink  immediately." 

She  led  the  way  into  the  room,  gave  Harry  a  comfort- 
able chair,  and  sat  opposite  to  him,  folding  her  plump 
hands  on  her  lap,  and  heaving  a  sigh  of  satisfaction  and 
relief.  The  servant  soon  reappeared  with  a  tray,  and  when 
Madame  de  Vaudrey  had  seen  Harry  supplied  with  drink 
and  food  that  pleased  him,  she  dismissed  her  man,  read 
the  letter  Mynheer  Grootz  had  enclosed  with  his  gift,  and 
began  to  talk. 

"You  are  English?  That  is  interesting.  My  dear  hus- 
band's mother  was  English,  so  that  my  daughter  has  a 
little — a  very  little,  of  course — English  blood  in  her.  I 
cannot  tell  you  how  thankful  I  am  that  you  came  when 
you  did.  That  is  also  another  debt  I  owe  to  Mynheer 
Grootz.  He  writes  very  amiable  things  of  you.  I  was  at 


Confidences 

my  wits'  end,  Monsieur  Rochestair;  I  will  tell  you  about 
it. — Do  you  like  that  wine?" 

"Thank  you,  it  is  excellent." 

"I  am  so  glad!  You  speak  French  very  well  for  an 
Englishman.  My  daughter  wishes  to  learn  English.  She 
takes  after  her  father,  not  after  me.  I  wonder  where  she 
is?" 

Harry  followed  her  glance  to  the  door ;  he  too  had  won- 
dered what  had  become  of  the  tall  girl  who  had  shown 
so  much  decisiveness  of  character  at  an  awkward  moment. 
But  she  did  not  appear. 

"  Well,"  continued  the  amiable  hostess,  "  let  me  tell  you 
all  about  it." 

Mynheer  Grootz's  recommendation  was  clearly  a  pass- 
port to  her  favour.  She  leant  back  in  her  high  chair,  and 
in  her  clear,  well-modulated  voice  told  Harry  what  he  was, 
it  must  be  confessed,  curious  to  hear.  It  was  three  years 
since  her  husband,  the  Comte  de  Vaudrey,  died.  He  was 
a  student,  not  a  man  of  affairs;  and  his  fortune  suffered 
through  his  lack  of  business-like  qualities.  The  estate,  a 
small  one,  purchased  by  his  father  when  as  a  Huguenot  he 
fled  from  France  at  the  revocation  of  the  Edict  of  Nantes, 
was  now  much  encumbered.  Monsieur  de  Vaudrey  had 
bought  the  best  perspective  glasses  and  other  expensive 
scientific  instruments,  had  spent  large  sums  on  rare  books 
and  specimens,  and  had  so  embarrassed  himself  that  he 
had  to  apply  to  the  Amsterdam  bankers,  who  advanced 
him  money  on  a  mortgage  of  the  estate.  Not  long  after- 
wards he  died. 

"  It  is  only  a  year  ago,"  continued  Madame  de  Vaudrey, 
"that  we  learnt  that  we  were  to  have  a  neighbour.  The 
estate  adjoining  our  own  had  been  in  the  market  for  many 
years,  and  we  heard  that  it  had  at  last  been  purchased  by 
a  Monsieur  de  Polignac,  a  Frenchman,  and  a  Huguenot 
like  ourselves.  We  were  rejoiced  at  the  news;  a  neigh- 
bour of  our  own  race  and  faith  would  be  so  charming,  we 
thought.  And  so  indeed  he  was,  at  first.  I  thought  his 
visits  to  his  estate  too  few ;  he  was  so  often  at  the  Hague ; 

140 


Rejected  Addresses 

when  he  came  to  see  us  he  was  so  debonair,  so  gracious, 
that  I  liked  him  well.  With  my  daughter,  quite  the  con- 
trary. It  was  prejudice,  I  told  her ;  but  from  the  first  she 
looked  on  him  coldly.  Then  all  at  once  he  became  a  more 
frequent  visitor,  and  I  saw — yes,  a  mother's  eyes  are  keen 
— that  he  had  pretensions  to  my  daughter's  hand.  I  did 
not  oppose  him;  he  was  rich,  noble,  a  Huguenot;  but 
Adele — certes,  Monsieur  Rochestair,  no  maiden  could  ever 
have  given  less  encouragement.  The  first  time  he  was 
refused  he  smiled — he  does  not  look  well  when  he  smiles, 
think  you? — and  said  that  he  would  still  hope.  But  though 
I  thought  the  match  a  good  one,  I  would  not  persuade  my 
daughter :  she  is  all  I  have,  Monsieur,  and  so  young.  He 
went  away;  then  a  few  days  ago  I  am  astonished  to  see 
him  reappear  in  company  with  Captain  Aglionby,  who  is 
visiting  him.  Now  first  I  begin  really  to  dislike  Monsieur 
de  Polignac." 

"Did  you  know  Captain  Aglionby  before,  then?"  asked 
Harry  in  surprise. 

"Yes;  that  is  why.  I  know  him,  and  I  think  no  friend 
of  his  can  be  a  good  man.  Captain  Aglionby  stayed  for  a 
month  in  this  house  some  five  years  ago.  No,  he  was  not 
a  welcome  guest;  he  was  brought  here  to  recover  from  a 
wound  he  had  received  in  a  skirmish  near  by;  ah,  Mon- 
sieur, he  is  an  odious  man!  I  hate  his  loud  voice,  his 
turbulence,  his  rodomontade;  imagine,  three  times,  Mon- 
sieur, three  times  he  intoxicated  himself  in  my  house,  and 
excused  himself  with  the  plea  that  he  had  done  so  many 
times  with  the  Czar  of  Muscovy.  He  used  to  force  him- 
self into  my  husband's  study,  meddle  with  his  things,  spoil 
his  scientific  experiments — my  husband  was  discovering  a 
plan  to  get  gold  from  sea-water,  and  we  should  have  been 
so  rich !  But  the  odious  captain  ruined  all.  I  am  sure  he 
did,  for  the  experiments  came  to  nothing." 

"  Why  did  you  put  up  with  it?" 

"Alas!  what  could  we  do?  My  husband  was  a  man  of 
tranquil  soul  who  had  lived  so  long  with  his  books  that 
he  could  not  deal  with  men.  As  for  me — you  see  me,  a 

141 


Palmam  qui  Meruit — 

poor  helpless  woman !  and  Adele  was  then  only  eleven ! 
judge  then  my  surprise  and  alarm  when  I  see  Captain 
Aglionby  in  company  with  Monsieur  de  Polignac.  Still 
more  to-day,  when  Monsieur  de  Polignac  comes  once 
more  to  urge  his  suit.  Adele  refuses  him  with  scorn. 
And  then— oh,  the  villain! — he  tells  me  he  has  bought 
from  the  Jews  of  Amsterdam  the  mortgage  on  this  estate, 
and  if  Adele  will  not  be  his  wife,  then  he  turns  us  out — 
think  of  it,  Monsieur;  turns  two  defenceless  women  out. 
This  it  is  that  changes  m.e,  a  weak  woman,  into  a  fury,  as 
you  see." 

Harry  forbore  to  smile  at  Madame  de  Vaudrey's  placid 
impersonation  of  a  fury. 

"They  are  a  couple  of  villains  indeed,"  he  said.  "It 
was  truly  fortunate  that  I  came  with  Sherebiah  at  the 
right  moment." 

"  Yes,  indeed ;  a  thousand  thanks !  And  only  think  of  it : 
just  before  you  came  Captain  Aglionby,  odious  man,  had 
dared  to  hint  that  when  we  were  thrust  out  of  our  home  he 
would  do  me  the  honour  to  marry  me.  Truly  an  honour! 
No,  I  never  forget  my  dear  husband ;  no,  never !  Ah,  this 
is  the  dear  brave  man,  your  servant?" 

The  door  had  opened,  and  Sherebiah  came  in  awkwardly, 
turning  his  hat  between  his  hands.  Madame  de  Vaudrey 
rose  and,  smiling  upon  him,  said : 

"  I  give  you  a  thousand  thanks.  You  are  a  hero;  how 
strong!  how  bold!" 

Sherebiah  bobbed. 

"  Madame  de  Vaudrey  thanks  you,"  said  Harry. 

"'Tis  handsome  of  the  lady,  sir,  and  I'm  obleeged,  and 
axes  you  to  put  my  sarvices  into  French  lingo,  sir." 

He  bobbed  again. 

"What  about  Captain  Aglionby?"  asked  Harry. 

"Well,  sir,  I  reckon  he  be  madder  than  a  March  hare. 
Nigh  to  bust  hisself,  and  hot  as  pepper.  Would  ha' 
slashed  me,  man  o'  peace  as  I  be,  if  'tweren't  for  half 
a  dozen  Dutch  coofs  wi'  pitchforks  and  other  articles  o' 
warfare  drawn  up  below,  wi'  the  young  lady  at  their  head. 

142 


Persuaded 

Ay,  she  be  a  warrior  bold,  sure  enough :  I  never  seed  such 
a  piece  of  female  manliness  all  my  life  long-.  'Twas  with  a 
flashen  eye  and  a  pink  rose  on  each  pretty  cheek  her  stood 
and  ordered  'em  out.  Ay,  an  uncommon  upstanden  piece 
o'  womankind  her  be,  to  be  sure." 

Harry  was  glad  that  Madame  de  Vaudrey's  ignorance 
of  English  could  not  fathom  this  plain-spoken  tribute  to 
her  daughter's  charms. 

"They  are  really  gone,  then?"  he  said. 

"Why,  yes,  both  on  'em;  the  long  beetle  chap  as  well. 
He  be  a  next-door  neighbour,  it  seems,  and  a  mighty  un- 
pleasant neighbour  he  must  be. — Thank  'ee  kindly,  mum," 
he  added,  as  Madame  de  Vaudrey  offered  him  a  glass  of 
wine,  "but  if  'ee  don't  mind,  I'd  rather  wet  my  whistle 
with  a  mug  of  beer  in  the  kitchen." 

The  lady  smiled  when  this  was  interpreted. 

"You  English  are  like  the  Hollanders  in  that,"  she  said. 
"Certainly.  Jean,  take  the  brave  man  to  the  kitchen  and 
treat  him  well." 

Sherebiah  pulled  his  forelock  and  departed  with  alacrity. 

"  We  must  shortly  be  going  on  our  way,  Madame,"  said 
Harry.  "  I  have  a  convoy  of  provisions  for  the  garrison  at 
Breda,  and  my  wagoners  are  even  now  growing  impatient, 
I  doubt  not." 

"  But,  Monsieur,  I  cannot  hear  of  it.  You  cannot  reach 
Breda  to-night;  and  suppose  those  odious  men  return? 
You  must  be  tired.  Do  me  the  favour  to  stay  here  for 
the  night;  and  we  can  find  a  bed  for  your  man  also." 

"But  the  wagons?" 

"  Let  them  go  on  to  the  village;  it  is  but  half  a  league 
away.  They  can  remain  at  the  inn  there.  Monsieur,  I 
insist;  and  besides,  I  have  to  write  a  letter  of  thanks  to 
my  friend  Mynheer  Grootz." 

Harry  had  no  reason  for  refusing  an  invitation  so  cordial. 
Madame  de  Vaudrey  beamed  when  he  accepted,  and,  beg- 
ging to  be  excused,  went  off  to  make  arrangements  with 
her  servants.  Left  to  himself,  Harry  looked  round  the 
room.  It  was  richly  furnished;  the  tables,  cabinets,  and 


Adfcle 

chairs  were  of  French  make,  in  highly  polished  rose-wood ; 
chairs  and  sofas  were  covered  with  crimson  velvet,  and 
two  cabinets  were  filled  with  beautiful  porcelain  and  Dutch 
china.  The  pictures  upon  the  walls  were  all  French, 
except  one — a  portrait,  evidently  by  a  Dutch  hand  and 
of  a  comparatively  recent  date.  It  represented  a  man's 
head,  with  dark  complexion  and  wistful  melancholy  eyes. 
Harry  was  attracted  to  it  by  a  slight  resemblance  to  his 
father;  not  in  the  features,  which  were  quite  unlike,  but 
in  the  curious  sadness  of  the  expression.  His  thoughts 
were  carried  back  to  his  old  home  at  Winton  St.  Mary, 
and  the  quiet  life  with  his  father  there ;  a  mist  came  before 
his  eyes,  and  he  fell  into  a  reverie,  standing  thus  before  the 
picture. 

So  rapt  was  he  in  recollection  that  he  did  not  hear  the 
door  open  behind  him,  nor  turn  to  see  the  entrance  of 
Adele  de  Vaudrey.  For  a  moment  the  girl  stood  in  the 
doorway,  holding  the  handle.  An  onlooker  would  have 
seen  a  strange  shifting  of  expression  upon  her  face  as  she 
paused  in  hesitation  whether  to  advance  or  retire,  to  speak 
or  to  remain  silent.  It  was  but  for  a  moment;  her  lips 
softened,  her  long  lashes  drooped  down  upon  her  eyes; 
and  closing  the  door  as  noiselessly  as  she  had  opened  it 
she  slipped  away. 


144 


CHAPTER   X 

Bluff 

"  AH,  my  dear  Monsieur  Rochestair,  pardon  me  for  leaving1 
you  so  long.     I  have  been  to  prepare  your  room." 

"Thank  you  indeed,  Madame!" 

"You  were  looking  at  the  portrait?  It  is  my  dear  hus- 
band. Is  it  not  a  fine  head?  Can  you  imagine,  after 
seeing  it,  that  I  could  put  that  odious  captain  in  his  place? 
Not  that  I  should  think  every  man  bad  unless  he  resembled 
my  husband.  No,  that  would  be  unjust.  But  come  and 
see  my  garden,  Monsieur  Rochestair.  It  is  beautiful 
outside  now  that  the  sun  is  going  down." 

"  I  shall  be  delighted.  I  have  noticed  how  the  scent  of 
the  flowers  comes  to  us  here  through  the  windows." 

"Yes,  I  love  flowers.     Mynheer  Grootz  knows  that." 

Madame  conducted  Harry  through  the  grounds.  They 
were  laid  out  with  more  freedom  than  was  usual  in  Holland, 
and  reminded  him  at  many  a  turn  of  well-tended  parks  at 
home.  The  house  was  surrounded  by  its  garden;  beyond 
this  was  an  expanse  of  lawn  and  thin  park  bounded  by  a 
wall.  Beyond  this  again,  Madame  de  Vaudrey  explained, 
lay  the  orchard  belonging  to  the  far  larger  estate  now 
owned  by  Monsieur  de  Polignac.  At  a  considerable  dis- 
tance from  the  house  on  the  eastern  side  Harry  remarked 
a  large  open  stretch  of  ground,  roughly  circular  in  shape, 
covered  with  grass  that  grew  wild  and  was  left  uncropt, 
Across  the  middle  of  it  ran  a  ditch,  now  apparently  dry, 
passing  under  the  garden  wall  and  the  road,  and  evidently 
connected  with  the  canal.  Near  to  the  spot  where  the 
iditch  disappeared  beneath  the  wall  stood  a  large  dilapi- 
dated building,  like  the  storehouse  usually  attached  to  a 
Dutch  mill. 

MS 


A   Stroll 

"You  wonder  at  our  neglect  of  this  part  of  the  grounds," 
said  the  lady  with  a  smile.  "But  that  is  our  skating  pond. 
In  winter  we  open  the  sluices  at  the  canal  end  of  the  ditch; 
it  fills,  the  water  overflows,  and  thus  we  flood  the  field. 
Then  comes  the  frost,  and  we  have,  I  think,  the  finest 
skating  pond  in  Holland,  and  quite  safe.  We  used  to 
hold  tournaments,  people  came  from  miles  around ;  but 
alas !  since  this  terrible  war  has  recommenced  we  have 
almost  forgotten  those  pleasant  sports  of  winter.  I  do 
hope  it  will  soon  come  to  an  end.  I  never  could  under- 
stand what  men  are  fighting  about.  My  dear  husband 
used  to  speak  of  the  balance  of  power;  the  French  king 
wishes  to  rule  everybody,  he  told  me ;  certainly  King  Louis 
is  a  bad  man;  he  has  behaved  disgracefully  to  us  poor 
Huguenots;  and  I  dare  say  you  English  are  quite  right  in 
helping  the  Dutch  to  punish  him.  But  war  is  so  terrible. 
My  dear  husband  was  trying  to  invent  something  that 
would  enable  one  army  to  make  another  army  senseless 
without  killing  them;  I  know  nothing  about  it,  but  the 
idea  was  excellent;  and  if  the  truth  were  known  I  dare 
say  it  was  that  odious  Captain  Aglionby  who  spoilt  that 
too." 

Thus  the  good  lady  kept  chattering  to  Harry  as  she 
conducted  him  over  her  little  estate.  The  evening  was 
drawing  rapidly  in;  a  light  mist  was  rising,  and  Madame 
shivered  a  little  as  she  turned  back  towards  the  house.  A 
moment  afterwards  her  daughter  met  her. 

"Mother,"  she  said,  "you  should  not  be  out  in  the 
damp  air.  You  know  it  is  bad  for  you." 

"Yes,  my  dear,"  replied  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  submit- 
ting to  be  enwrapped  in  a  large  woollen  shawl  which  her 
daughter's  fair  hands  wound  about  her  head  and  shoulders. 
"  I  have  been  showing  Monsieur  Rpchestair  our  little 
property— alas!  soon  to  be  ours  no  more.  I  told  Monsieur 
why,  Adele." 

The  girl's  cheeks  flushed,  but  she  said  nothing. 

"I  did  not  tell  you,  Madame,"  said  Harry,  "that  I 
happen  to  know  something  of  Captain  Aglionby." 

146 


A   Fair  Cook 

"Indeed!  nothing  but  what  is  perfectly  odious,  I  am 
sure." 

"I  have  reason  to  believe  that  he  was  concerned  in  an 
attempt  to  ship  me  to  our  plantations  in  Barbados.  My 
man  tells  me " 

"  Monsieur,"  interrupted  the  girl,  "  my  mother  is  subject 
to  chills.  You  are  staying  with  us  to-night;  will  you 
hasten  to  the  house  with  my  mother  and  tell  us  the  story 
at  supper?" 

"With  pleasure,  Mademoiselle." 

Harry  felt  a  little  in  awe  of  this  very  decisive  young 
lady,  with  her  scornful  lip  and  clear  uncompromising  tones. 
She  hurried  in  advance  to  the  house,  and  was  waiting  in 
the  panelled  dining-room  when  the  others  appeared.  The 
table  looked  very  inviting  with  its  spotless  napery,  shining 
plate,  and  vases  of  flowers,  and  Harry  found  the  meal 
much  to  his  taste  after  the  plain  fare  of  Dutch  hostelries. 
Besides  such  staple  viands  as  Westphalian  ham  and  bag- 
puddings—one  variety  of  these,  filled  with  raisins  and 
spices,  was  excellent— there  were  dainty  French  dishes- 
confections  of  fruit  and  cream  which  surprised  even 
Madame  la  Comtesse. 

"Ah,  you  rogue!"  she  exclaimed;  "I  see  now  where 
you  hid  yourself  this  afternoon." 

"  Mademoiselle  likes  cooking?"  Harry  ventured  to  say. 

"By  no  means,  Monsieur,  I  dislike  it  exceedingly." 

"Oh!" 

"  I  knew  we  had  nothing  ready,  Mamma,"  added  the 
girl,  "and  you  would  not  have  liked  Monsieur  to  think 
little  of  your  hospitality." 

During  the  meal  Harry  gave  the  ladies  an  account  of 
himself,  speaking  of  his  early  hopes  and  ambitions,  his 
disappointments,  the  vain  waiting  for  a  message  from 
Marlborough,  the  strange  animus  of  the  squire,  the 
kidnapping,  the  interposition  of  Mynheer  Grootz.  His 
hearers  were  deeply  interested;  even  Mademoiselle,  though 
she  said  little,  and  seemed  to  curl  her  pretty  lip  when  her 
mother's  curiosity  or  indignation  showed  itself  in  little 

147 


Love  and  Duty 


vivacious  exclamations,— Mademoiselle  kept  her  eyes  fixed 
on  Harry  as  he  spoke,  though  whenever  he  happened  to 
glance  towards  her  she  was  looking  away  and  appeared 
unconcerned. 

"Ah,  there  now!"  cried  the  comtesse,  when  Harry  men- 
tioned, without  a  trace  of  bitterness,  Marlborough's  failure 
to  keep  his  promise;  "that  is  my  lord  duke's  character. 
He  is  mean,  he  is  selfish,  he  loves  no  one  but  himself." 

"And  the  duchess,"  put  in  Harry. 

"But  that  is  his  duty.  It  is  his  duty  to  love  his  wife. 
I  did  not  say  he  was  a  monster." 

"Did  you  love  papa  from  duty?"  asked  Adele  simply. 

"  I  never  said  that,  Adele.  Of  course  it  is  a  woman's 
duty  to  love  her  husband,  but  your  dear  father  was  so 
good,  so  kind,  so  fond  of  me  that  no  one  could  help  loving 
him." 

"Mynheer  Grootz  is  good  and  kind,  but  you  don't  love 
him." 

Madame  de  Vaudrey  flushed. 

"You  say  such  odd  things,  Adele.  I  can't  think  how  it 
is.  I  never  said  such  things  when  I  was  a  girl.  Mynheer 
Grootz  is  good,  and  kind ;  you  are  right ;  and  if  it  were 
my  duty " 

"Oh,  Mamma,"  cried  Adele,  "do  forget  the  word  duty! 
I  am  sure  none  of  us  either  loves  or  hates  from  duty. — 
Would  Monsieur  like  some  strawberries  and  cream?" 

Harry  went  to  bed  that  night  very  well  pleased  with  him- 
self, his  hostess,  and  her  daughter.  He  liked  the  little, 
simple,  talkative  countess;  he  was  piqued  by  Adele's 
reserve,  coolness,  indifference— he  hardly  knew  what  to 
call  it;  the  something  which  seemed  to  indicate  that  Harry 
Rochester  was  a  creature  far  too  insignificant  for  the  notice 
of  Mademoiselle  Adele  de  Vaudrey.  "And  she  is  clever, 
too,"  he  thought.  "  Faith,  how  she  sent  Aglionby  to  the 
right-about !  Polignac  is  a  scoundrel ;  what  will  they  do 
if  he  turns  them  out?  And  how  did  he  come  across 
Aglionby?  She  will  not  marry  him,  at  any  rate;  that's 
one  comfort." 

148 


An  Arrival 

It  is  very  unromantic,  but  the  truth  must  be  told. 
Thoughts  of  Adele  did  not  keep  Harry  one  instant  from 
sleep.  His  bed  was  a  dark  mysterious-looking'  box,  with 
brown  damask  curtains  drawn  closely  round  it.  With- 
drawing the  curtains,  he  saw  a  magnificent  quilt  of  crimson 
satin,  snowy  sheets,  a  lace-trimmed  pillow.  He  scrambled 
up,  barking  his  legs  against  the  high  boards  composing 
the  sides,  and  the  moment  he  laid  his  head  on  the  pillow 
forgot  Aglionby,  Marlborough,  Adele,  and  duty. 

When  Madame  de  Vaudrey  bade  good-night  to  her 
daughter  she  said: 

"Eh  bien,  fillette;  je  1'aime,  le  bel  Anglais.  II  est 
brave,  intelligent,  modeste,  parfaitement  aimable,  n'est-ce 
pas?" 

"Oh,  petite  maman,  que  voulez-vous?  Est-ce  que  je 
dois  1'aimer,  moi  aussi?" 

And  kissing  her  mother  on  both  cheeks  Adele  ran  off 
laughing. 

Harry  was  awakened  in  the  morning  by  the  loud  singing 
of  the  birds.  He  had  left  his  window  wide  open,  and 
the  scent  of  flowers  and  perfume  from  the  fir  wood  at  the 
extremity  of  the  estate  gave  him  fragrant  greeting.  He 
sprang  out  of  bed,  and  stood  at  the  window  inhaling  the 
luscious  odours,  listening  to  the  song  of  the  birds  and 
the  incessant  hoarse  croak  of  the  frogs,  gazing  at  the 
grass  glistening  with  dew.  "  I  should  like  a  week's 
holiday  here,"  he  thought.  "Ay  me!  it  is  breakfast,  and 
then  for  Breda!" 

But  he  had  only  just  left  his  room  when  he  heard  below 
a  violent  clanging  of  the  bell,  followed  by  a  strange  voice 
speaking  in  the  hall,  and  a  hasty  running  to  and  fro. 
Hurrying  downstairs,  he  met  Adele  de  Vaudrey  at  the 
foot  of  the  staircase. 

"Come  with  me,  Monsieur,"  she  said  the  moment  she 
saw  him.  "  Mamma  is  not  down  yet." 

She  preceded  him  through  the  hall  door,  at  which  he 
now  saw  a  light  calash  drawn  up,  and  behind  it  ten 
horses,  nine  of  them  sat  by  Dutch  dragoons,  the  tenth 

149 


General  van  Santen 

being  the  steed  of  the  soldier  who  stood  at  the  door,  and 
whose  voice  it  was  that  Harry  had  heard.  From  the 
horses,  clouds  of  vapour  rose  into  the  fresh  morning-  air; 
the  pace  had  evidently  been  forced.  In  the  calash  were 
two  men:  the  elder,  in  the  uniform  of  a  Dutch  officer  of 
high  rank,  reclined  on  the  cushions,  half-supported  by  a 
young  aide-de-camp  seated  at  his  side.  He  was  deathly 
pale;  his  eyes  were  closed. 

As  Mademoiselle  de  Vaudrey,  followed  by  Harry,  came 
to  the  door  of  the  carriage,  the  aide-de-camp  without 
changing  his  position  addressed  her  in  Dutch. 

"It  is  as  you  see,  mejjuffrouw.  It  is  General  van 
Santen ;  he  is  desperately  wounded.  We  hoped  to  reach 
Breda,  but  the  general  swooned  a  few  minutes  ago  and 
I  dare  not  drive  farther." 

"Bring  him  in  at  once,"  said  Adele.  "The  soldiers  can 
lift  him.  Never  mind  about  explanations  now.  One  of 
the  soldiers  must  ride  on  to  the  village  for  the  meester; 
it  is  only  half  a  league.  Monsieur,"  she  added,  addressing 
Harry  in  her  quick,  decisive  tones,  "assist;  I  will  warn 
Mamma." 

She  ran  back  into  the  house.  The  inanimate  general 
was  carefully  carried  into  the  hall.  He  was  a  fine 
soldierly  man,  with  a  strong  rugged  face  of  English 
rather  than  Dutch  cast.  Harry  remembered  that  Mynheer 
Grootz  had  mentioned  General  van  Santen  as  a  friend  of 
his,  and  one  of  the  ablest  and  most  trusted  of  the  lieu- 
tenants of  William  of  Orange.  Madame  de  Vaudrey 
had  by  this  time  come  from  above,  and  stood  in  pale 
expectation.  The  general  was  laid  upon  a  sofa  in  the 
reception-room,  and  Adele  had  already  provided  a  basin 
of  water  and  a  bottle  of  smelling-salts  with  which  she 
endeavoured  to  revive  the  wounded  officer. 

"What  is  it?"  cried  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  who  had  left 
these  ministrations  to  the  hands  of  her  capable  daughter. 

The  aide-de-camp  explained  that  General  van  Santen 
had  left  the  Duke  of  Marlborough's  camp  late  at  night 
on  his  way  to  the  Hague.  In  the  faint  dawn  he  had 

150 


Raiders 

suddenly  come  upon  a  French  raiding- party  which  had 
apparently  made  a  dash  from  Lierre.  It  was  known  that 
Tserclaes  had  advanced  from  the  main  French  army  in 
order  to  protect  Antwerp.  The  general  had  dashed 
through  with  his  men,  but  not  rapidly  enough  to  escape 
a  bullet  which  had  lodged  in  his  groin.  With  great 
difficulty  he  had  kept  the  saddle  as  far  as  the  next  village; 
but  there,  exhausted  by  the  effort  and  by  loss  of  blood,  he 
had  been  placed  in  a  hastily  prepared  carriage  and  driven 
on  in  the  hope  of  arriving  at  Breda  in  time  to  warn  the 
garrison.  His  wound  had  proved  even  more  serious  than 
was  supposed ;  he  had  lost  consciousness,  and  his  aide-de- 
camp had  deemed  it  necessary  to  halt  at  the  first  house 
and  ask  for  assistance. 

"In  what  direction  are  the  raiders  coming?"  asked 
Harry. 

"  In  this  direction,  Mynheer,"  replied  the  aide-de-camp. 

"And  how  far  away  were  they  when  this  happened?" 

"About  ten  miles." 

"  So  they  may  be  here  within  an  hour?" 

"  If  they  ride  on  at  once,  but  they  will  probably  stop 
to  plunder." 

"  Can  they  be  checked?" 

"  Alas,  Mynheer!  there  is  no  force  near  at  hand." 

"  Surely  they  will  raise  the  country?" 

"  But  they  are  mounted,  and  the  country  people  cannot 
cope  with  them.  Even  if  the  news  is  carried  to  Helmund 
there  are  none  but  burghers  there,  and  they  are  useless 
against  cavalry,  except  behind  their  own  walls." 

"  And  how  many  do  the  raiders  number?" 

"  More  than  a  hundred,  as  I  judge,  Mynheer." 

Madame  de  Vaudrey  stood  in  agitated  silence  while  this 
rapid  colloquy  was  in  progress.  Adele  was  still  bathing 
the  wounded  man's  temples ;  no  one  present  had  sufficient 
knowledge  to  attempt  more  than  the  roughest  of  means 
to  bind  the  wound.  In  a  few  minutes  the  general  opened 
his  eyes. 

"Where  am  I?"  he  asked,  feebly. 

(B367)  I£I  L 


A  Dozen  all  Told 

"  In  the  house  of  Madame  de  Vaudrey,"  said  that  lady. 

"  How  far  from  where  I  was  shot?" 

"Only  a  few  miles,"  replied  the  aide-de-camp. 

"Then  someone  must  ride  to  Breda  for  help,  and 
take  my  despatches.  They  must  be  at  the  Hague  to- 
night." 

"  I  will  write  a  note  to  the  commandant,"  said  the  aide- 
de-camp,  "  and  send  one  of  the  troopers." 

"No,  no,  lieutenant,  you  must  ride  yourself.  I  can't 
trust  the  despatches  to  a  trooper." 

"  But  I  do  not  care  to  leave  you,  general." 

"  It  is  my  wish.  The  enemy  can  only  capture  me,  but 
they  may  do  unheard-of  mischief  around.  Delay  no 
longer:  ride  fast." 

The  exertion  of  talking  was  too  much  for  him,  and  he 
swooned  again.  Loth  as  he  was  to  go,  the  aide-de-camp 
could  not  ignore  the  general's  express  instructions.  Before 
leaving  he  took  Harry  aside  and  asked  him  to  consider 
himself  in  command  of  the  troopers. 

"You're  not  strong  enough  to  beat  off  the  enemy,"  he 
said,  "but  it  will  be  well  for  the  men  to  have  someone  to 
look  to  in  emergency.  Don't  let  the  general  fall  into  the 
enemy's  hands  if  you  can  help  it." 

Harry  hesitated.  His  first  duty  was  undoubtedly  to 
secure  the  safety  of  the  convoy,  for  the  sake  both  of  the 
Breda  garrison  and  Mynheer  Grootz.  On  the  other  hand, 
he  scouted  the  idea  of  deserting  the  ladies  in  their  predica- 
ment. Further,  the  raiding -party  were  upon  the  road 
behind  him;  they  had  clearly  swept  round  Eyndhoven, 
avoiding  Helmund,  and  in  all  probability  were  on  the 
heels  of  the  general.  Even  if  he  got  his  convoy  safely 
away  from  the  village  it  could  only  move  at  a  walking 
pace.  In  an  hour  or  two  it  must  be  overtaken,  and  he 
would  thus  do  no  good  either  for  himself  or  the  ladies  by 
instant  flight.  He  therefore  made  up  his  mind  to  remain 
at  Lindendaal,  and  assured  the  aide-de-camp  that  he 
would  do  his  best.  But  when  the  lieutenant  had  ridden 
off,  and  Harry  reflected  on  the  position  of  the  ladies,  he 

152 


Rallying  the  Peasants 

thought  it  worth  while  to  suggest  that  they  should  start 
at  once  for  Breda  in  order  to  be  out  of  harm's  way.  Adele 
answered  at  once  for  her  mother. 

"  Impossible,  Monsieur!  We  cannot  leave  the  general; 
we  will  not  leave  the  house.  Consult  your  own  duty." 

Her  tone  was  not  to  be  gainsaid.  Harry  went  into  the 
hall,  wondering  what  he  could  do  for  the  best.  He  met 
Sherebiah  at  the  door. 

"  Eh,  sir,  'tis  a  pretty  pickle  o'  fish." 

"  What  are  we  to  do,  Sherry?" 

"  As  a  man  o'  peace,  I  say  cut  and  run." 

"Can't  we  defend  the  house?" 

"  Wi'  ten  Dutch  dragoons  and  a  gardener  and  a  maid 
or  two?  And  two  hundred  French,  so  'tis  said!" 

"But  men  will  come  in  from  the  villages  round." 

"  Ay,  on  foot,  and  with  pitchforks  and  flails.  Not  much 
good  against  swords  and  carbines." 

At  that  moment  a  man  galloped  up  from  a  village  some 
eight  miles  down  the  road,  with  news  that  the  French  were 
already  sacking  and  burning.  They  had  first  demanded 
a  ransom,  and  the  sum  required  not  being  forthcoming 
within  the  short  time  allowed,  they  had  begun  their  ruth- 
less work.  A  few  moments  afterwards  one  of  Harry's 
teamsters  rode  up  on  a  cart-horse.  He  had  heard  the 
news  from  the  aide-de-camp  as  he  passed  through  the 
village  where  the  convoy  had  put  up  for  the  night,  and 
come  back  to  ask  for  orders.  Harry  caught  at  the 
chance  of  delay.  The  French,  it  appeared,  first  demanded 
a  ransom;  could  they  be  put  off  and  time  be  gained  for 
relief  to  arrive?  The  question  suggested  a  plan  that 
might  be  tried  in  default  of  a  better. 

"Ride  back,  Piet,"  said  Harry,  "and  bring  up  the 
wagons  as  fast  as  you  can,  and  as  many  of  the  villagers 
as  you  can  muster — with  arms,  if  they  have  them." 

His  idea  was  to  barricade  the  road ;  every  minute's  delay 
was  a  minute  gained,  and  as  the  news  spread  he  believed 
that  the  Hollanders  had  courage  and  spirit  enough  to 
strike  a  blow  in  defence  of  their  homes.  In  point  of  fact, 


Desperate  Counsels 


Piet  had  hardly  departed  to  fulfil  his  errand  wnen  Dutch- 
men came  up  in  ones  and  twos  and  threes,  some  on  great 
lumbering  farm-horses,  others  on  foot,  all  hastening  to- 
wards Breda  in  the  hope  of  escaping  the  devouring  French 
behind  them.  A  few  had  firelocks,  some  had  bills,  others 
staggered  along  under  the  burden  of  household  valuables 
they  hoped  to  save  from  ruin.  Harry  set  Sherebiah  to 
intercept  them  all  as  they  came  up  and  to  bring  them 
within  the  grounds,  and  as  their  number  swelled  he  re- 
verted to  his  original  idea  of  defending  the  house. 

It  was  a  counsel  of  desperation.  The  house  had  several 
entrances,  each  one  of  which  must  be  manned;  it  was  too 
large  to  be  held  by  so  small  a  garrison.  The  outhouses 
would  afford  cover  to  an  attacking  force.  Including  the 
ten  dragoons,  there  were  only  at  present  fourteen  well- 
armed  men  among  the  ever-growing  crowd ;  he  could  not 
improvise  arms,  and  little  effective  work  was  to  be  ex- 
pected from  an  untrained  rabble,  however  courageous, 
pitted  against  regular  troops.  Further,  to  defend  the 
house  from  within  would  inevitably  lead  to  its  being  fired 
and  blown  up,  and  Madame  de  Vaudrey  would  profit  not 
a  jot.  If  the  house  was  to  be  saved  it  must  be  by  prevent- 
ing the  enemy  from  reaching  it.  What  chance  was  there 
of  effectually  barring  the  road  against  the  raiders?  He 
went  out  to  investigate. 

As  he  reached  the  park  gate  he  was  met  by  two  men 
who  had  just  come  on  foot  from  the  village.  One  was  a 
yeoman,  the  other  a  soldier  belonging  to  some  infantry 
regiment — a  man  probably  on  furlough.  Harry  was  struck 
by  the  similarity  of  their  costumes.  Their  hats  were  almost 
alike;  their  doublets  and  knee-breeches  of  similar  dark 
materials;  but  for  the  red  collar  and  the  bands  around 
the  sleeves,  there  was  very  little  at  a  distance  to  distin- 
guish the  soldier  from  the  civilian.  A  sudden  notion 
flashed  through  Harry's  mind.  It  was  a  chance  in  a 
thousand ;  the  risks  were  great ;  the  odds  were  all  against 
success;  but  on  the  other  side  there  was  the  imminent 
danger  of  destruction  to  the  house,  ruin  to  the  owners, 


The  Masqueraders 


the  capture   of  the    Dutch  general,   and   the   subsequent 
burning-  of  the  village. 

"  We'll  try  it,"  he  said  to  himself.  "  Sherry,  send  every 
man  up  to  the  house,  and  let  me  know  the  instant  our 
wagons  appear." 

"  Ay,  I  will,  sir. — 'Tis  a  pretty  ticklish  time  o'  day  for  a 
man  o'  peace,"  he  muttered  under  his  breath. 

Harry  ran  back  to  the  house.  The  doctor  from  the 
village  overtook  him  on  horseback,  and  they  entered  to- 
gether. Mademoiselle  de  Vaudrey  showed  some  surprise 
when  she  saw  Harry,  but  she  made  no  comment. 

"Mademoiselle,"  said  Harry,  "the  general  is  in  good 
hands  now.  May  I  ask  your  assistance?" 

She  gave  him  a  keen  glance,  rose  at  once  from  her  knees, 
and  followed  him  from  the  room. 

"Mademoiselle,"  continued  Harry  eagerly,  "have  you 
any  red  ribbon,  silk,  stuff,  anything,  in  the  house?" 

"  Perhaps.     Why  do  you  ask?" 

"Will  you  find  all  that  you  can,  and  with  your  maids 
sew  red  bands  round  the  collars  and  cuffs  of  the  men?" 

"To  make  them  look  like  soldiers — is  that  what  you 
mean?" 

"Yes,"  replied  Harry,  delighted  that  she  seized  his 
meaning  so  quickly. 

"  I  will  do  so  at  once.     Send  the  men  to  the  hall." 

Harry  next  called  up  old  Jean,  and  bade  him  fetch  the 
gardener.  When  the  man  appeared,  Harry  asked  him  to 
gather  as  many  sticks  as  he  could,  by  preference  wood 
with  the  bark  on,  about  five  feet  in  length,  and  stack  them 
at  the  back  door.  A  few  minutes  afterwards  a  message 
reached  him  from  Sherebiah  that  the  wagons  had  arrived. 
He  ran  upstairs  and,  regardless  of  ceremony,  called  out: 
"  Mademoiselle  de  Vaudrey!" 

Adele  came  out  of  a  room,  holding  a  strip  of  red  ribbon. 

"  Mademoiselle,"  said  Harry,  "  I  must  go  to  the  gate. 
Will  you  make  every  unarmed  man  look  as  much  like  a 
soldier  as  possible,  and  see  that  each  is  provided  with  one 
of  the  sticks  that  the  gardener  is  now  collecting?" 


Strategy 


"  Yes.     Is  there  anything  else?" 

"Is  it  possible  to  run  up  a  flag  on  the  belfry-tower?" 

"  If  you  say  it  is  to  be  done,  it  shall  be  done." 

"I  do  not  want  the  flag  hoisted  at  present;  but  if  you 
will  prepare  to  do  so 

"  Very  well,"  interrupted  the  girl. 

Harry  thanked  her  with  a  look,  and  ran  downstairs 
three  steps  at  a  time.  He  called  to  one  of  the  dragoons 
to  accompany  him,  and  hastened  again  to  the  gate,  meet- 
ing on  the  way  several  men  whom,  in  obedience  to  his 
instructions,  Sherebiah  had  sent  up  from  the  road. 

"Sherry,"  he  said,  "ask  this  fellow  if  a  cavalry  troop 
on  the  march  is  preceded  by  an  advance  guard.  He  won't 
understand  my  Dutch." 

"I  can  tell  'ee  that,"  said  Sherebiah  instantly.  "They 
do  so.  A  patrol  goos  ahead,  mebbe  a  quarter  of  a 
mile." 

"Oh!  Now,  mark  my  plan.  Mademoiselle  de  Vaudrey 
is  making  some  of  the  Dutchmen  look  like  soldiers ;  we've 
no  muskets  for  them,  but  at  a  distance  I  hope  sticks  may 
serve  as  well.  I  am  going  to  post  these  make-believe 
soldiers  around  the  wall  of  the  estate  among  the  trees ; 
it  will  look  as  if  the  orchard  and  woods  are  manned. 
They  will  remain  concealed  until  a  flag  appears  on  the 
tower;  then  their  sudden  appearance  will,  I  trust,  make 
an  impression." 

"Ay,  sir,  'tis  famous.  But  if  the  patrol  gets  much 
past  the  house,  'twill  be  labour  lost,  for  they  will  be  near 
enough  to  see  'tis  all  my  eye." 

"Yes,  that  must  be  avoided.     What  can  be  done?" 

"  I  tell  'ee,  sir.  Leave  three  o'  the  wagons  on  the  road, 
half  a  mile  or  so  towards  the  village,  where  the  road  bends; 
I  reckon  Piet  and  Hans  and  me  can  keep  any  French  patrol 
a-diddle-daddlen  until  the  flag  runs  up.  Then — do  'ee  see, 
sir? — dragoons  slip  out  of  copse  and  trounce  the  French- 
men, Piet  and  me  and  Hans  draws  the  wagons  across  the 
road:  and  there  be  a  barricade." 

"A  capital  notion!     I  will  leave  that  to  you,  then. — Ah! 


A   Ruse  de  Guerre 

here  is  a  man  from  the  other  direction.  He  may  have  news 
of  the  enemy." 

A  countryman,  with  his  wife  and  family,  had  just  driven 
up  in  a  cart.  From  him  Harry  learnt  that  the  French  were 
sacking  isolated  farms  on  the  road,  and  might  be  expected 
within  the  hour.  Harry  at  once  went  back  to  the  house, 
ran  up  the  stairs,  and  again  called  for  mademoiselle. 

"  May  I  go  up  to  the  roof  and  see  if  I  can  descry  the 
enemy?"  he  asked. 

"I  will  take  you." 

She  led  the  way  to  the  turret  stair,  and  in  a  few  moments 
Harry  stood  upon  the  roof,  whence  on  fine  days  a  clear 
prospect  for  many  miles  could  have  been  obtained.  The 
morning  was  somewhat  overcast,  and  the  haze  limited  his 
view.  But  in  one  quarter  he  seemed  to  see  a  blackness 
that  could  only  arise  from  the  smoke  of  burning  houses. 
Between  him  and  the  cloud  appeared  the  gables  of  a  house 
larger  than  Madame  de  Vaudrey's  chateau. 

"That  belongs  to  Monsieur  de  Polignac,"  said  Adele  in 
reply  to  his  question. 

"The  French  will  come  to  that  first;  that  will  gain  a 
little  time  for  us." 

At  that  moment  his  eye  caught  the  large  barn-like  build- 
ing at  the  extremity  of  the  Vaudrey  estate,  just  beyond  the 
ditch  running  into  the  canal.  In  a  flash  a  new  idea  set 
his  pulse  leaping.  Hitherto  his  only  aim  had  been  to 
delay  or  daunt  the  enemy  until  help  could  arrive  from 
Breda  or  some  nearer  point.  But  the  recollection  of  what 
he  had  seen  when  going  round  the  estate  on  the  previous 
evening  suggested  a  daring  scheme  which  made  him  tingle 
with  excitement.  Adele  looked  at  him  in  silent  curiosity 
as  he  stood  for  a  few  moments  pondering  the  situation. 
Then  he  turned  suddenly  to  her. 

"  Mademoiselle,  who  opens  the  sluices  of  the  ditch  when 
you  make  your  skating-pond?" 

"Jacques  the  gardener." 

"Thank  you!     I  will  go  to  him." 

He  turned  at  once  to  descend.     As  he  came  to  the  head 


Stage  Effects 


of  the  staircase  he  noticed  a  mass  of  coloured  stuff  lying 
at  the  foot  of  the  belfry. 

"Ah,  the  flag!"  he  said.     "Thank  you,  Mademoiselle!" 

A  glance  upward  assured  him  that  the  running-line  was 
in  order;  then  without  another  word  he  went  down.  Find- 
ing the  gardener,  he  hurried  with  him  to  the  park  entrance. 
His  wagons  v.  ere  drawn  up  outside.  He  ordered  three  of 
his  teamsters  to  drive  their  carts  into  the  thicket  beyond 
the  outbuilding  down  the  road. 

"  The  enemy  will  have  a  rearguard,"  he  said.  "  As  soon 
as  that  has  well  passed,  bring  your  wagons  into  the  road 
and  block  it  between  the  wall  and  the  canal.  I  will  send 
a  dozen  men  and  two  of  the  dragoons  to  remain  in  hiding 
with  you.  Now,  Jacques,  go  to  the  ditch  and  open  the 
sluices.  How  long  will  it  take  to  flood  the  field  to  a  depth 
of  seven  or  eight  inches?" 

"  Not  more  than  half  an  hour,  Monsieur." 

"Very  well.  Stay;  have  you  a  boat  anywhere  on  the 
estate?" 

"  A  punt,  Monsieur.     I  go  to  market  in  it  on  the  canal." 

"Where  is  it?" 

"  In  the  old  barn  yonder,  Monsieur." 

"Bring  it  out  and  float  it  in  the  ditch  half-way  across 
the  field.  Moor  it  so  that  it  doesn't  drift." 

The  man  hurried  away. 

" 'Tis  all  ready,  sir,"  said  Sherebiah,  coming  up.  "The 
road  is  blocked  towards  the  bend,  and  the  men  be  hidden 
in  the  wood.  Med  I  ask,  sir,  if  shouten  would  be  any 
use?" 

Harry  smiled. 

"We  found  it  useful  once,  eh,  Sherry?  Certainly;  when 
you  see  the  flag  go  up,  the  more  noise  you  make  the  better, 
especially  if  you  can  make  a  din  with  garden  tools,  or  any- 
thing of  steel." 

"Trust  me,  sir;  I  ha'n't  served  wi'  a  travellen  show  for 
nothen.  I'll  show  'em  the  way,  ay  sure." 

"  Mind,  not  a  movement  till  you  see  the  flag.  Now,  to 
your  places." 


Final  Touches 

He  returned  once  more  to  the  house.  Adele  met  him  at 
the  door. 

"  I  have  done  all  you  said.  Is  there  anything-  more  that 
I  can  do?" 

"Thank  you,  Mademoiselle!  nothing,  I  think.  I  wish  to 
see  Madame  de  Vaudrey  now." 

They  went  together  into  the  reception  -  room.  The 
general  had  recovered  consciousness,  and  lay  prone  on 
the  couch.  The  doctor  was  at  the  window  talking  to 
Madame  de  Vaudrey,  who  was  clearly  in  a  state  of  in- 
tense agitation. 

"  Oh,  Monsieur  Rochestair,"  she  said  as  Harry  entered, 
"  have  they  sent  help  to  us  yet?" 

"  No,  Madame,  I  fear  there  has  scarcely  been  time." 

"  What  shall  we  do?  what  shall  we  do?  I  fear  we  shall 
all  be  ruined." 

"  Pray  calm  yourself,  Madame,"  said  Harry  quietly. 
"  Doctor,  is  it  possible  to  remove  the  general  to  another 
room?" 

"  I  do  not  advise  it.  He  is  comfortable;  I  hope  he  will 
sleep." 

"  Meester,  let  us  take  him  to  the  dining-room,"  said 
Adele  in  Dutch. 

"  It  would  be  a  pity,  and " 

"  Do  you  wish  it,  Monsieur?"  she  interrupted,  turning 
to  Harry. 

"Yes,  Mademoiselle." 

"  Then  he  shall  be  removed.  Meester,  be  so  good  as  to 
have  the  general  removed  at  once.  The  men  can  lift  sofa 
and  all." 

Adele  herself  called  four  men  in  from  the  front  of  the 
house,  and  the  general  was  quickly  carried  across  the  hall 
into  the  dining-room.  Harry  was  left  with  the  two  ladies. 

"  Madame,"  he  said,  "  will  you  remain  here  with  Made- 
moiselle? Be  seated;  take  up  your  needle-work;  try  to 
look  as  though  there  were  nothing  to  fear." 

"  How  can  I?  how  can  I?  when  every  moment  I  fear  to 
see  my  house  in  flames." 

159 


In   Sight 


"  Mamma,"  said  Adele,  "it  is  necessary.  Monsieur  is 
planning-  to  save  us;  we  must  help  him.  Come,  I  will 
fetch  your  spinning-- wheel.  Monsieur,  we  will  do  our 
best,  I  give  my  promise." 

"Thank  you,  Mademoiselle!  When  the  French  arrive, 
an  officer  will  enter;  I  will  bring  him  in  here;  show  no 
concern;  leave  the  rest  to  me." 

He  went  out,  sent  into  the  woods  all  the  men  who  were 
still  about  the  house  save  two  of  the  dragoons,  whom  he 
placed  in  a  cloak-room  off  the  hall.  Then  he  ran  up  again 
to  the  roof. 

Looking  eagerly  down  the  road,  he  caught  sight  of  four 
horsemen  approaching  at  a  trot.  They  were  about  a  mile 
away.  Beyond  them  the  road  was  concealed  from  view 
by  a  clump  of  trees.  He  saw  at  a  glance  that  Jacques 
had  fulfilled  his  instructions  to  the  letter.  Where  half  an 
hour  before  had  been  a  bare  field  there  was  now  what 
appeared  to  be  a  broad  lake,  with  a  solitary  punt  floating 
at  about  the  middle  of  its  surface.  Scanning  the  boun- 
daries of  the  estate  he  failed  to  descry  a  single  human 
figure.  He  drew  a  long  breath ;  all  his  preparations  were 
complete;  what  would  be  the  outcome? 

The  four  riders  were  drawing  nearer,  and  behind  them 
he  now  saw  the  helmets  and  lances  of  the  main  body. 
They  were  as  yet  too  far  away  for  him  to  estimate  their 
number.  Taking  care  to  keep  out  of  sight  himself,  he 
watched  the  patrol  of  four,  and  saw  two  of  them  dismount 
at  the  old  barn  and  enter. 

"  They  have  left  Monsieur  de  Polignac  for  the  present," 
he  said  to  himself.  "  I  wonder  why." 

After  a  few  minutes  the  two  horsemen  emerged  from 
the  building,  remounted,  and  rode  on  with  their  com- 
panions. Then  Harry  slipped  down  the  stairs,  instructed 
old  Jean,  who  was  trembling  in  the  hall,  to  conduct  to  the 
reception-room  any  soldier  who  came  to  the  door,  and 
then  walked  quietly  in  and  rejoined  the  ladies. 

"  They  are  coming?"  said  Adele. 

"  Yes.     They  will  be  here  in  a  minute." 

1 60 


At  the  Door 

Madame  de  Vaudrey  gave  a  gasp  and  let  her  hands  fall 
to  her  sides.  Adele  jumped  up,  slipped  a  skein  of  wool 
over  her  mother's  hands,  sat  on  a  stool  opposite  her,  and 
began  to  wind  the  wool  into  a  ball.  A  few  seconds  later 
the  clatter  of  hoofs  and  the  clank  of  sabres  came  from 
without.  Then  a  heavy  tread  was  heard  in  the  hall,  and 
a  loud  voice  called  for  the  master  of  the  house.  There 
was  a  moment's  pause;  Jean  opened  the  door,  stood  on 
one  side,  and  in  a  quavering  voice  announced: 

"  Madame,  Monsieur  demande — 

His  voice  broke,  he  could  say  no  more.  The  ladies 
looked  up,  Madame  de  Vaudrey  with  pale  cheeks  and 
twitching  lips,  Adele  with  unmoved  countenance  and 
stony  stare.  After  one  glance  she  placidly  resumed  her 
winding;  Harry,  with  his  hands  in  his  pockets,  strolled 
over  from  the  window. 

"  Well,  my  man,  what  do  you  want?"  he  said. 

The  sergeant  involuntarily  saluted.  He  looked  by  no 
means  comfortable.  His  eyes  went  from  one  to  another 
of  the  silent  group. 

"Monsieur — Mesdames "  he  began;  then,  recover- 
ing his  self-possession  and  putting  on  a  swaggering  air, 
he  continued:  "To  resist  is  vain.  The  commandant  will 
decide.  I  have  warned  you,  Mesdames — Monsieur." 

"  It  is  very  good  of  you,"  said  Harry  blandly.  "  Your 
boots  are  marking  the  carpet;  perhaps  you  will  wait  out- 
side." 

The  man's  cheeks  purpled;  without  another  word  he 
abruptly  turned  and  went  out.  At  the  front  door  he 
stationed  two  of  his  companions,  and  rode  back  to  meet 
the  advancing  troop,  the  sounds  of  whose  approach  were 
now  echoed  from  the  surrounding  woods.  From  the  win- 
dow Harry  saw  the  sergeant  make  his  report  to  the  officer 
at  their  head.  The  commandant  smiled  and  rode  on. 
Two  minutes  later  his  spurs  rang  on  the  stone  steps,  and 
Jean  showed  him  into  the  room. 

"  Madame,  voila  encore  un  visiteur." 

In  obedience  to  a  hint  from  Adele,  Madame  de  Vaudrey 

161 


Ransom 

rose  and  made  a  curtsy.  Harry  smiled  as  he  saw  Adele's 
low  mocking-  obeisance.  The  officer  doffed  his  cocked  hat, 
laid  it  with  both  hands  upon  his  heart,  and  bowed. 

"  Madame — Mademoiselle — Monsieur,"  he  said. 

He  was  a  tall,  stout,  florid  man  of  some  forty  years, 
with  large  nose  and  bloated  cheeks.  His  costume  was 
very  rich,  plentifully  bedecked  with  gold  lace  and  decora- 
tions, spick  and  span  in  all  its  appointments.  "  More  like 
a  courtier  than  a  soldier,"  was  Harry's  first  impression. 
His  few  words  of  salutation  had  been  uttered  in  a  strong- 
German  accent. 

"  Madame,  Monsieur,"  he  said,  "  I  have  the  honour  to 
be  a  colonel  of  dragoons  in  the  service  of  his  highness  the 
Elector  of  Cologne,  who,  as  you  are  doubtless  aware,  is  in 
alliance  with  His  Majesty  of  France.  I  regret  exceed- 
ingly to  have  to  discommode  you;  it  is  a  painful  duty;  but 
what  would  you? — war  is  war.  My  duty,  Madame,  Mon- 
sieur, is  to  levy  contributions  on  the  enemy's  country. 
Alas!  that  I  am  obliged  to  treat  you,  Madame,  Monsieur, 
Mademoiselle,  as  enemies,  but  duty  is  duty.  Not  for  all 
the  world  would  I  render  it  more  disagreeable  than  neces- 
sary to  such  charming  ladies,  and  to  your  excellent  son, 
Madame;  but  I  must  request  you  to  hand  over  to  me  five 
thousand  florins — that,  I  am  sure,  you  will  regard  as  a 
most  modest  estimate  of  the  value  of  your  delightful 
house.  I  regret  that  I  can  allow  only  five  minutes  for 
the  completion  of  this  little  transaction ;  in  five  minutes, 
Madame,  Monsieur,  with  five  thousand  florins  I  pass  on 
with  my  men.  It  pains  me  to  say  it,  but  if  the  money, 
or  its  equivalent— in  plate  or  jewels,  Madame,  what  you 
please — is  not  forthcoming  within  five  minutes,  I  must 
with  the  very  greatest  regret  take  what  I  can  find  and 
burn  the  place.  The  notice  is  short,  it  is  true;  but 
Madame  will  understand;  we  soldiers  have  no  time  to 
spare,  and  my  orders  are  positive ;  every  house  that  is  not 
ransomed  is  to  be  burned.  Ah!"  he  ejaculated  as  he 
caught  sight  through  the  window  of  smoke  in  the  dis- 
tance, "  I  fear  my  men  have  already  set  fire  to  your  barn. 

162 


A  Turn  of  the  Screw 

It  is  an  excess  of  zeal,  but,  as  the  proverb  says,  the  appe- 
tite grows  with  eating;  we  have  had  to  light  many  such 
bonfires  of  late!" 

This  speech  had  been  delivered  with  the  greatest  defer- 
ence. At  its  conclusion  the  colonel  lugged  out  a  big 
timepiece,  and  held  it  open  in  his  left  hand. 

"  From  now  five  minutes,  Madame,  Monsieur." 

Madame  de  Vaudrey  had  listened  with  terror  in  her 
eyes.  She  was  beginning  to  speak,  but  Adele  called  sud- 
denly "  Mamma!"  in  a  warning  tone,  and  the  lady  sank 
back  in  her  chair,  looking  at  Harry  as  he  advanced  a  step 
or  two  towards  the  officer.  Harry's  throat  felt  somewhat 
dry ;  his  heart  was  thumping  unpleasantly ;  but  he  was  to 
all  appearance  perfectly  self-possessed  as  he  said : 

"  Mademoiselle,  will  you  see  what  can  be  done?"  add- 
ing in  an  undertone  the  two  words,  "the  flag!" 

Adele  nodded. 

"  Pardon,  Monsieur."  She  curtsied  to  the  officer  as  she 
went  past  him  into  the  hall. 

"  Before  discussing  the  amount  of  our  contribution, 
Monsieur  le  Colonel,"  said  Harry,  "  may  I  enquire  by 
what  right  you  make  this  demand?" 

The  officer  looked  him  up  and  down. 

"Certainly,  you  may  enquire,  Monsieur.  I  answer:  by 
the  right  of  a  hundred  sabres,  and  the  practice  of  war. 
In  my  turn,  may  I  beg  of  you  to  let  this  explanation 
suffice.  Time  presses.  But  for  the  presence  of  Madame  " 
—  he  bowed  to  Madame  de  Vaudrey — "  I  should  have 
regarded  your  question  as  a  mere  impertinence,  and 
treated  it — and  you — accordingly." 

Madame  de  Vaudrey  looked  anxiously  from  one  to  the 
other,  and  heaved  a  sigh  of  relief  as  Adele  returned  and 
resumed  her  seat  by  her  mother's  side. 

"  I  marvel,  Monsieur,"  said  Harry,  after  a  quick  ex- 
change of  glances  with  the  younger  lady,  "  that  a  soldier 
of  your  rank  and  experience,  acquainted  with  the  practice 
of  war,  should,  in  your  unfortunate  position,  permit  him- 
self such  language." 

163 


Phantom   Forces 

"  Comment!  My  unfortunate  position  !"  The  big  man 
swelled,  his  red  cheeks  empurpled.  Turning  to  the  ladies 
he  said:  "  Is  the  young  man  mad?" 

"  You  shall  judge,  Monsieur,"  said  Harry  quietly. 
"Do  me  the  favour  to  place  yourself  at  the  window." 

He  had  just  caught  sight  of  one  of  the  colonel's  dragoons 
galloping  up  the  drive  towards  the  house. 

"That  is  one  of  your  hundred  sabres,  I  presume.  He 
is  hastening  to  inform  you  that  he  has  met  Dutch  troops 
belonging  to  General  van  Santen  half  a  mile  up  the  road. 
In  the  other  direction — this  way,  Monsieur — you  can  just 
see  our  men  barring  your  retreat.  You  observed,  no 
doubt,  a  canal  on  your  left  as  you  rode  along ;  it  is  twenty 
feet  deep ;  and  if  you  will  condescend  to  come  to  the  back 
windows" — the  captain  followed  him  as  in  a  daze — "you 
will  see  a  large  Dutch  force  occupying  yonder  woods, 
which,  save  the  lake  on  our  right,  are  your  only  line  of 
retreat. " 

The  colonel's  astonishment  was  no  greater  than  Madame 
de  Vaudrey's.  She  rose  from  her  chair  and  moved  towards 
the  window,  but  was  checked  by  Adele's  restraining  hand. 
The  girl's  eyes  were  shining,  a  spot  of  red  burned  on  either 
cheek.  The  colonel  stared  and  stared  at  Harry,  who  stood 
with  a  slight  smile  upon  his  lips,  at  the  ladies,  at  the 
figures  which  appeared  among  the  trees  beyond  the  wall — 
heads  and  shoulders,  with  cocked  hats  and  red  collars,  and 
at  every  shoulder  a  musket. 

"Comment!  comment!"  he  spluttered;  then  without 
another  word  he  hurried  from  the  room,  followed  by 
Harry,  just  in  time  to  meet  the  dragoon  at  the  outer  door. 
The  man  saluted. 

"  Mon  Colonel,"  he  said  in  a  fluster,  "there  is  a  barri- 
cade at  the  bend  in  the  road  half  a  mile  beyond  us  held  by 
Dutch  troops.  My  comrade  Gustave  was  knocked  off  his 
horse  by 

"  Donnerwetter!"  cried  the  colonel,  relapsing  into  his 
native  language.  He  sprang  heavily  into  his  saddle  on 
the  charger  held  in  waiting  by  one  of  his  troopers. 

164 


Mon   Colonel,  we  are  surrounded!" 


Dilemma 

"  I  suppose,  Monsieur  le  Colonel,"  said  Harry  carelessly 
at  his  elbow,  "you  are  counting"  the  cost  of  resistance?" 

The  officer  was  looking-  anxiously  and  indecisively  about 
him,  clearly  at  a  loss  what  course  to  take,  but  as  clearly 
eager  to  make  a  fight  of  it. 

"  I  must  warn  you,  Monsieur,"  added  Harry,  "that  the 
least  resistance  will  rob  you  of  all  chance  of  quarter.  The 
whole  countryside  is  roused  to  fury  by  the  news  of  your 
exploits.  My  general  has  with  him  not  only  his  own  men 
but  a  large  force  of  peasants  from  the  villages.  If  it  comes 
to  a  fight,  he  may  not  have  the  power,  even  if  he  had  the 
inclination,  to  protect  you  from  their  vengeance.  They 
are  barbarous  in  their  methods,  these  peasants ;  but  then, 
as  you  know,  Monsieur,  they  have  been  provoked." 

At  this  moment  there  was  a  sharp  report.  A  cornet 
of  the  French  horse,  seeing  the  barricade  of  carts  suddenly 
run  across  the  road  by  the  barn,  had  sent  a  party  of  his 
men  back  to  investigate.  One  of  the  troopers  as  they 
approached  was  shot  from  behind  the  barricade  and  fell 
from  his  horse.  The  echo  of  the  shot  had  hardly  died 
away  when  there  came  two  reports  from  the  barricade  up 
the  road,  accompanied  by  a  faint  shout.  The  colonel 
gathered  up  the  reins;  a  dragoon  came  galloping  up 
the  drive  crying : 

"  Mon  Colonel,  we  are  surrounded!" 

"You  see,  Monsieur,"  continued  Harry,  "you  are  in  a 
ring  fence.  It  is  for  you  to  make  your  choice,  and  at  once, 
between  surrender  and — annihilation." 

Harry  had  not  misjudged  his  man.  Utterly  bewildered, 
the  colonel  gazed,  like  a  caged  animal,  helplessly  around 
him.  At  the  end  of  the  drive  his  men  could  be  seen 
rigid  and  expectant.  Behind  him,  beyond  the  wall,  he 
saw  the  figures  as  he  supposed  of  Dutch  troops  armed, 
and  with  all  the  advantage  of  position.  The  sun,  break- 
ing through  the  clouds,  glinted  upon  steel  which,  at  the 
distance,  he  could  not  be  expected  to  recognize  as  bill- 
hooks, pruning-knives,  and  whatever  other  implements 
the  premises  had  afforded.  At  a  little  distance  down  the 

165 


Discretion 

road  he  saw,  through  gaps  between  the  trees  that  lined 
the  wall,  his  patrol  galloping  back  to  the  main  body. 
Trying  to  collect  himself,  he  at  length  set  off  at  a  slow 
trot  towards  the  gate.  Harry  at  once  signed  to  the  two 
Dutch  soldiers  hidden  in  the  cloak-room  to  come  out,  and 
ordered  them  to  stand  at  attention  one  on  either  side  of 
the  door.  The  leader  of  the  French  patrol  pulled  his  horse 
up  on  its  haunches  at  the  road  end  of  the  drive. 

"The  road  is  blocked,  mon  Colonel,"  he  said,  "with 
a  barricade  of  carts  and  beams  held  by  a  strong  force 
of  the  enemy.  We  cannot  estimate  their  numbers;  they 
keep  under  cover;  but  one  of  the  men  is  killed  by  their 
fire,  and  by  their  shouts  there  must  be  at  least  a  hundred." 

Without  a  word  the  colonel  rode  across  to  the  brink 
of  the  canal.  The  lowness  of  the  water  and  the  height 
of  the  bank  showed  at  a  glance  that  any  attempt  to  swim 
his  horses  across  would  be  disastrous;  they  could  never 
scramble  up  the  opposite  side.  The  men  might  cross  and 
crawl  up,  but  a  moment's  reflection  showed  what  the  fate 
of  a  small  body  of  men  would  be,  retreating  on  foot  through 
a  hostile  country.  The  colonel  looked  down  the  road; 
the  blazing  barn  inspired  uncomfortable  thoughts.  He 
had  seen  many  such  conflagrations  of  late,  and  knew  well 
that  the  peasants  would  take  a  full  toll  of  revenge  if  he  fell 
into  their  power.  Wheeling  round,  he  for  the  first  time 
caught  sight  of  the  two  Dutch  soldiers  standing  behind 
Harry  on  the  steps  of  the  house.  This  seemed  to  bring 
home  to  him  the  hopelessness  of  his  position ;  muttering  a 
curse  he  walked  his  horse  slowly  up  the  avenue.  Harry 
came  forward  to  meet  the  scowling  officer. 

"It  is  the  fortune  of  war,  Monsieur.  I  see  you  have 
chosen  the  wiser  course.  You  surrender  to  superior 
numbers.  I  am  authorized  by  my  general  to  accept  your 
surrender.  You  will  receive  honourable  treatment;  he 
knows  how  to  appreciate  a  gallant  warrior;  but  the 
peasants " 

The  colonel  tried  to  smile. 

"  I  am  concerned — I  say  it  frankly — for  the  safety  of  my 

1 66 


Courtesies 

» 

men.  With  your  troops," — he  shrugged — "we  might 
take  our  chance ;  but  your  peasants,  your  burghers — 
parbleu!  we  know  them;  they  are  savages,  they  are  tigers. 
To  whom,  Monsieur,  have  I  the  honour  of  yielding  my 
sword?" 

"Immediately,  Monsieur,  to  me;  my  name  is  Harry 
Rochester,  an  Englishman  at  present  in  the — in  the 
Dutch  service;  ultimately  to  General  van  Santen,  to 
whom  I  shall  have  the  honour  to  introduce  you  in  a  few 
minutes.  Now,  Monsieur  le  Colonel,  you  will  direct  your 
men  to  ride  up  the  avenue,  dismount,  stack  their  arms  in 
front  of  the  house,  and  fasten  their  horses  to  the  garden 
palings  behind.  Sergeant,"  he  added,  turning  to  one  of 
the  sentinel  dragoons,  "  ride  at  once  to  the  general  and 
acquaint  him  that  Monsieur  le  Colonel " 

"Baron  von  Schummelpincken." 

"  That  the  Baron  von  Schummelpincken  has  surrendered. 
Send  a  dozen  men  to  take  charge  of  the  horses.  In  twenty 
minutes  we  shall  be  in  camp." 


(B8UT)  167 


CHAPTER   XI 

The  Battle  of  Lindendaal 

To  his  credit,  Colonel  the  Baron  von  Schummelpincken  did 
his  best  to  put  a  good  face  on  the  predicament  in  which  he 
found  himself.  He  rode  back  to  his  men  to  inform  them 
of  the  arrangement.  The  moment  he  had  gone,  Adele  de 
Vaudrey  came  out,  her  face  aglow  with  excitement. 

"Monsieur,"  she  said,  "General  van  Santen  asks  what 
the  uproar,  the  firing,  means;  shall  I  tell  him?" 

"As  you  please,  Mademoiselle." 

"  It  is  as  you  please,  Monsieur." 

"The  day  is  not  ended  yet,  Mademoiselle." 

"I  will  say  nothing,  Monsieur."  She  went  into  the 
house. 

The  sergeant  had  spurred  across  the  meadow  behind, 
through  a  gate  in  the  wall,  into  the  orchard  and  wood. 
In  a  few  minutes  he  reappeared  with  his  comrades,  who 
came  at  a  trot  towards  the  house.  Their  pace  was 
leisurely,  but  a  keener  observer  than  the  colonel,  who  at 
this  moment  was  half-way  up  the  avenue  at  the  head  of  his 
troops,  might  have  noticed  that  the  horses'  flanks  were 
heaving  violently.  The  men  had  in  fact  galloped  at  full 
speed  from  the  horns  of  the  position  in  obedience  to  the 
sergeant's  signals,  and  only  checked  the  pace  in  response 
to  a  suggestion  of  Sherebiah,  who  had  made  the  best  of  his 
way  after  them.  Harry  ordered  the  ten  dragoons  to  draw 
up  in  line  at  right  angles  to  the  house. 

"  Sherry,"  he  said,  as  the  man  came  up  puffing,  "bring 
me  one  of  the  dragoons1  horses." 

He  mounted  just  as  the  colonel  emerged  from  the 
avenue.  Sherry  stood  by  his  side  at  the  nearer  end  of 
the  line  of  dragoons. 

1 68 


A  Hitch 

The  colonel,  some  dozen  yards  ahead  of  his  men,  came 
to  Harry  and  handed  him  his  sword.  Harry  politely 
returned  it,  a  compliment  which  the  officer  courteously 
acknowledged. 

"Monsieur,"  said  Harry,  "we  understand  the  arrange- 
ment? Your  men  will  pile  arms  in  front  of  the  house,  file 
off  to  right  and  left,  tie  their  horses  to  the  palings,  then 
pass  round  on  foot  to  the  rear  of  the  house." 

"Certainly,  Monsieur." 

Harry  watched  eagerly  as  the  troopers  came  two  by  two 
up  the  drive  and  did  his  bidding  with  the  precision  of  auto- 
mata. Events  had  crowded  so  thickly  that  he  had  scarcely 
had  time  to  think ;  but  now  he  could  hardly  sit  still  on  his 
horse,  so  intense  was  his  anxiety  to  get  the  whole  scene 
over.  Everything  appeared  to  be  answering  to  his  wishes; 
his  arrangement  for  the  French  dragoons  to  file  off  in  oppo- 
site directions  was  a  precaution  to  divide  the  force;  they 
began  to  pass  behind  the  house  one  by  one.  About  half 
of  the  troop  had  thus  piled  their  arms  and  fastened  their 
horses ;  the  clock  in  the  belfry-tower  struck  the  first  note 
of  noon,  and  Harry  was  already  congratulating  himself 
that  almost  by  the  time  the  last  of  the  leisurely  Dutch 
chimes  was  ended  his  ruse  would  have  been  completely 
successful,  when  a  loud  voice  was  heard  from  the  road. 

"  Mon  Colonel!  mon  Colonel!  they  are  only  peasants 
and  burghers.  It  is  a  trick,  a  trick!" 

There  was  an  instant  halt.  Harry's  heart  was  in  his 
mouth;  Sherebiah  muttered,  "Zooks!  'tis  hot  'taties 
now!"  The  colonel,  his  face  aflame,  spurred  his  horse 
from  the  pillar  at  the  end  of  the  avenue,  and,  drawing  his 
sword,  vociferated: 

"  A  moi!  a  moi !" 

For  a  moment  Harry  felt  that  all  was  lost.  But  only 
for  a  moment,  for  in  that  instant  he  saw  that  with  his 
handful  of  men  in  line  he  had  the  advantage  of  the  troopers 
debouching  two  by  two  from  the  balustraded  drive. 
Turning  to  the  dragoons  at  his  side  he  shouted  "Charge!" 
and  dashed  straight  at  the  enemy.  It  was  in  the  nick  of 

169 


A  Charge  in   Flank 

time.  A  few  seconds  later  they  would  have  been  ready; 
at  this  precise  moment  they  were  awkwardly  placed.  Half 
a  dozen  men  of  the  nearer  file  were  leading-  their  horses 
towards  the  palings;  beyond  them  the  armed  and  mounted 
men  were  approaching-  from  the  drive,  and  eight  files  pre- 
sented their  flank  to  Harry's  little  force  of  ten.  As  he 
charged,  the  dismounted  men  scattered  like  hares  before 
him,  and  the  sixteen  armed  troopers  had  barely  time  to 
wheel  round  to  meet  the  onslaught  b  -fore  Harry  and  his 
Dutchmen  were  upon  them.  All  the  advantage  of  impetus 
and  direct  attack  was  with  ihe  Dutch.  Harry,  grasping 
his  sword,  came  full  tilt  upon  a  burly  Alsatian.  Almost 
before  he  had  realized  it  he  had  passed  over  the  dragoon 
and  his  horse,  and,  parrying  a  swingeing  cut  from  the 
man  behind,  had  shortened  his  arm  and  thrust  him  through 
the  shoulder.  The  man  dropped  his  sabre  and  fell  from 
his  horse,  which  wheeled  round  and  plung-ed  madly  through 
the  dismounted  men  on  the  farther  side. 

In  a  trice  Harry  was  through  the  mellay,  and  bringing 
his  horse  up  on  its  haunches,  wrenched  it  round  so  that  he 
might  take  stock  of  the  new  situation.  He  found  that 
the  majority  of  his  Dutch  troopers  had  stuck  close  to  him, 
and  with  the  readiness  of  old  campaigners  were  already 
wheeling  round  to  face  the  discomfited  enemy.  A  dozen 
men  were  on  the  ground,  including-  the  portly  colonel ; 
several  horses  were  careering-  wildly  through  the  small 
open  space,  impeding  the  movements  of  the  dismounted 
men  who  had  made  a  dash  for  the  piles  of  arms  in  front  of 
the  porch.  The  French  troopers  were  still  filing  up  the 
drive,  but  the  sudden  uproar  had  startled  the  horses.  The 
riders  were  too  much  occupied  with  their  steeds  and  too 
closely  packed  to  make  effective  use  of  their  pistols;  the 
one  or  two  who  fired  aimed  erratically,  and  no  one  was  hurt. 
But  Harry  saw  that  the  only  course  open  to  him  was  to 
charge  again  and  again  until  the  peasants,  summoned  by 
the  noise  of  the  fray,  could  come  to  his  assistance.  It  was 
fortunate  that  the  remainder  of  the  enemy's  troop  could 
only  debouch  two  by  two  from  the  drive ;  the  stone  balus- 

170 


[rregular  Warfare 


trade  on  each  side  of  it  prevented  them  from  deploying 
until  they  entered  the  open  space  in  front  of  the  house. 
Two  horses  that  had  been  rolled  over  near  the  entrance  to 
the  drive  were  plunging-  and  kicking,  hindering  the  advance 
of  the  leading  troopers,  who  were  now  being  pressed  by 
the  men  behind.  Once  more  the  little  band  of  Dutchmen 
hurled  themselves  at  the  head  of  the  enemy's  force,  and 
with  the  same  result,  though  Harry  was  instinctively 
aware,  when  he  again  emerged  from  the  mellay,  that  his 
followers  were  fewer  in  number.  Among  them,  however, 
he  noticed  Sherebiah,  who  had  possessed  himself  of  a 
sword  and  pistol  from  the  stand  of  arms  and  a  horse  from 
the  palings,  and  was  comporting  himself  as  though,  so  far 
from  being  a  man  of  peace,  he  had  as  much  experience  of 
warfare  as  any  trooper  present.  Two  of  Madame  de 
Vaudrey's  gardeners  also  had  appropriated  weapons,  and 
were  holding  at  bay  a  group  of  the  disarmed  enemy  who 
hovered  round,  trying  to  dash  in  and  recover  their  arms. 
Harry  saw  little  of  this,  however.  He  wheeled  his  horse 
once  more  to  repeat  the  charge.  He  was  followed  now  by 
only  six  men  ;  at  least  a  dozen  fresh  troopers  had  debouched 
from  the  drive,  but,  like  their  comrades,  they  had  not  time 
to  form  before  the  dauntless  seven  were  upon  them.  The 
odds  were  heavier  now ;  only  two  succeeded  in  getting 
through ;  the  rest  were  checked.  Then  ensued  a  series  of 
fierce  duels,  the  little  group  of  Dutch  being  broken  up  and 
driven  back  by  the  weight  of  the  files  pressing  through  as 
rapidly  as  they  might  into  the  open  space.  Harry,  engaged 
with  a  stout  trooper,  felt  with  a  sinking  heart  that  the 
game  was  up;  his  arm  was  wrung  with  hacking  and 
thrusting;  his  opponent,  fresh  to  the  fight,  closed  with 
him,  leant  over  his  saddle,  and  tried  to  grip  him  by  the 
throat.  At  this  moment  there  was  a  fierce  shout,  followed 
by  a  perfect  babel  of  cries.  The  trooper  fell  from  his 
horse,  transfixed  in  the  nick  of  time  by  Sherebiah's  sword; 
and  when  Harry  after  a  few  seconds  was  able  once  more 
to  take  in  what  was  happening,  he  saw  the  place  thick 
with  burghers  and  peasants  who  were  falling  upon  the 

171 


Called  Off 

enemy  from  both  balustrades.  Some  had  leapt  on  to  the 
coping  and  were  dealing  heavy  blows  at  the  dragoons  and 
their  horses  with  sticks,  hooks,  scythes,  and  all  kinds  of 
strange  implements;  others  were  jabbing  through  the 
interstices  of  the  balustrades ;  all  were  shouting,  smiting, 
felling  with  a  fierce  vehemence  that  brooked  no  resistance. 
A  panic  seized  upon  the  enemy ;  the  unarmed  men  bolted 
to  the  stables  behind  the  house  and  barricaded  themselves 
there;  the  last  files  of  the  dragoons  threw  down  their  arms 
and  begged  for  quarter ;  and,  turning  to  Sherebiah,  Harry 
bade  him  cry  to  the  peasants,  with  the  full  force  of  his 
lungs,  to  hold  their  hands. 

A  lull  succeeded  the  turmoil.  A  crowd  of  the  Dutch 
were  hastening  towards  the  stables  to  burst  open  the 
doors  and  make  short  work  of  the  men  sheltered  there. 
To  them  Harry  galloped  up. 

"Men,"  he  said,  "halt!  in  the  name  of  General  van 
Santen.  The  victory  is  ours.  We  must  await  the  general's 
orders." 

The  mob  hesitated,  then,  with  obedience  compelled  by 
their  young  leader's  mien,  stood  in  sullen  silence.  Harry 
rode  back  to  the  opening  of  the  drive,  stationed  two  of 
the  Dutch  dragoons  there,  and  addressed  the  colonel,  who, 
with  a  lacerated  cheek  and  contused  shoulder,  leant  against 
the  palings,  a  picture  of  chagrin,  pain,  and  baffled  rage. 

"  Monsieur,  'twas  not  well  done.  Your  parole  was  given. 
But  you  are  hurt;  go  to  the  house — you  will  find  tendance 
there." 

At  this  moment  another  horseman  suddenly  appeared  on 
the  scene,  galloping  up  from  behind  the  house.  Wheeling 
his  horse  in  some  surprise,  Harry  found  himself  face  to 
face  with  Madame  de  Vaudrey's  neighbour,  Monsieur  de 
Polignac.  He  looked  greatly  perturbed;  his  mouth  was 
twitching;  the  air  of  cynical  detachment  he  had  worn  in 
Madame  de  Vaudrey's  drawing-room  had  quite  dis- 
appeared. 

"  Monsieur,  what  is  this,  what  is  this?"  he  cried. 

"As   you   see,    Monsieur— a   skirmish,"   replied   Harry. 
172 


A  Suggestion 


"  We  have  captured  a  raiding-party — and  doubtless  saved 
your  house  from  the  flames." 

"  But — but — do  you  not  see  your  peril?  You  are  not  a 
soldier ;  these  men  are  not  soldiers,  the  most  of  them ;  to 
wage  war  is  for  you  quite  irregular;  if  caught  by  the 
French  —  and  I  hear,  Monsieur,  rumours  of  a  general 
advance  in  this  direction — you  will  all  be  hanged." 

"  I  will  take  my  chance  of  that,"  said  Harry.  "  I  thank 
you,  nevertheless,  for  your  warning,  Monsieur." 

"  Bah!  I  counsel  you  to  release  your  prisoners — without 
arms,  it  is  understood — and  send  them  back  to  their  lines." 

"That  is  a  matter  for  General  van  Santen,  Monsieur. 
Would  you  care  to  repeat  your  advice  to  him?" 

Polignac  gave  him  a  savage  look,  opened  his  mouth  to 
speak,  thought  better  of  it,  and,  setting  spurs  to  his  horse, 
galloped  away. 

The  scene  of  this  tempestuous  little  fight  differed  greatly 
from  its  appearance  a  short  half-hour  before.  Thirty  men, 
of  whom  twenty-four  were  French,  lay  killed  or  wounded, 
with  a  few  horses.  The  stone  balustrades  were  broken  in 
several  places ;  the  flower-beds  were  trampled ;  the  gravel 
was  ploughed  up;  shattered  muskets,  swords,  scabbards, 
pistols,  hats,  cloaks,  strewed  the  ground. 

"  Carry  the  dead  to  the  garden,"  said  Harry.  "  Take  the 
wounded  to  the  outbuildings  and  attend  to  them ;  there  is 
a  doctor  in  the  house.  A  dozen  of  you  take  arms  from 
the  pile  there  and  guard  the  prisoners;  lock  them  up  in 
the  stables.  Sherebiah,  I  leave  you  in  charge." 

Then,  hot,  weary,  hatless,  his  coat  showing  several  rents, 
Harry  followed  the  wounded  colonel  into  the  house. 

"Monsieur,"  said  Adele,  meeting  him,  "the  general 
insists  on  seeing  you.  He  was  with  difficulty  restrained 
from  rising  and  taking  part  in  the  fray.  You  are  weary ; 
a  cup  of  wine  will  refresh  you." 

Harry  gladly  quaffed  at  the  cup  she  presented  to  him. 
Then  he  followed  her  into  the  dining-room.  The  general 
frowned  when  he  saw  him. 

"  I  want  to  see  the  leader,"  he  exclaimed  testily. 


Compliments 


"This  is  he,  Monsieur,"  said  Adele. 

"You,  Monsieur!  —  Mademoiselle,  a  youth,  a  boy — 
absurd ! " 

"  It  has  been  my  good  fortune,  Monsieur,"  said  Harry. 

The  general  looked  blank  with  astonishment.  He  half- 
raised  himself  on  his  cushions,  sinking  back  with  a  groan. 

"  They  would  tell  me  nothing,  save  that  the  French  were 
discomfited.  Explain,  from  the  beginning." 

Harry  gave  a  rapid  narrative  of  the  late  events.  He 
spoke  always  of  ''we",  seeming  to  include  Adele,  the 
general  himself,  and  even  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  who  had 
joined  them,  among  those  who  had  planned  the  ruse. 
Every  now  and  then  the  general  broke  into  his  story  with 
exclamations  of  surprise  and  pleasure  and  praise. 

"A  daring,  a  clever  scheme,"  he  said  as  Harry  con- 
cluded. "You  are  an  Englishman,  they  tell  me;  a  soldier, 
I  presume?" 

"  No,  Monsieur  le  Gdndral,  I  have  not  that  honour." 

"That  is  the  army's  loss.  You  have  shown  great 
quickness,  great  skill,  and  no  less  courage.  I  compliment 
you,  Monsieur." 

"  I  did  what  I  could,  of  course,  Monsieur;  but  things 
would  have  ended  very  differently  but  for  the  peasants' 
bold  attack  at  the  last." 

"Bah!  I  know  them;  they  would  have  done  nothing 
without  a  leader,  but  with  a  leader  they  will  fight — yes, 
and  well.  I  doubt  whether,  in  point  of  military  honour, 
the  French  colonel  —  whom  I  will  tax  on  the  subject 
presently — did  right  to  reassume  command  after  he  had 
yielded  his  sword ;  still,  much  may  be  forgiven  him ; 
naturally  he  was  chagrined  and  perturbed;  and  he  is 
moreover  wounded,  as  I  hear." 

The  general  spoke  with  difficulty ;  he  was  very  weak. 

"You  have  saved  your  convoy;  that  is  well.  You  will 
wish  to  take  it  to  Breda.  I  fear  I  cannot  move.  Madame 
la  Comtesse,  I  shall  be  your  patient  for  a  time — 

"Monsieur,  I  am  honoured,"  said  the  lady. 

"But  the  prisoners  must  be  carried  to  Breda  also. 

174 


Thanks 

Monsieur,  that  duty — that  honour — must  be  yours.  You 
have  laid  many  under  an  obligation :  Mynheer  Grootz, 
your  excellent  employer;  the  garrison  at  Breda;  Madame 
la  Comtesse,  whose  house  you  have  saved ;  and  myself — 
especially  myself,  for  without  doubt  you  preserved  me 
from  capture,  and  in  my  wounded  state  capture  might 
very  well  have  finished  me." 

"  I  hope  for  your  speedy  recovery,  Monsieur." 

"  I  thank  you.  Now,  you  will  take  six  of  my  troopers 
with  you ;  armed  burghers  will  serve  for  the  remainder  of 
your  escort.  I  marvel  that  help  has  not  ere  this  reached 
us  from  Breda;  you  will  report  to  my  aide-de-camp,  whom 
you  will  doubtless  meet  there  or  on  the  road.  Your  name, 
Monsieur,  is — 

"  Harry  Rochester,  Monsieur." 

"Mademoiselle  will  note  it  down  for  me.  My  friend 
Mynheer  Grootz  will  have  a  visit  from  me.  I  am 
fatigued;  Mademoiselle,  a  little  cordial  from  your  fair 
hand.  Monsieur,  I  bid  you  farewell." 

Harry  bowed  and  left  the  room,  tingling  with  pleasure 
at  the  general's  praise.  He  went  to  the  reception-room 
and  gladly  stretched  his  weary  limbs  on  a  low  couch  there. 
Madame  de  Vaudrey  followed  him. 

"  How  can  I  thank  you!"  she  exclaimed.  "  I  do  thank 
you,  from  my  heart,  a  thousand  times.  How  brave!  I 
trembled,  I  wept  when  I  heard  the  horrid  sounds;  I  could 
not  look;  Adele  looked  and  told  me;  I  thought  you 
would  be  killed ;  I  was  overcome,  I  could  only  pray.  Oh  ! 
Monsieur,  what  can  I  say?  I  can  say  nothing;  I  can  only 
— yes;  tiens!  I  kiss  you." 

At  another  time  Harry  might  have  been  embarrassed; 
he  was  now  so  tired  that  he  could  but  accept  passively  all 
the  motherly  cares  lavished  on  him  by  the  comtesse.  She 
brought  him  food  with  her  own  hands,  smoothed  his  hair, 
begged  him  vainly  to  accept  a  ring  as  a  token  of  her 
admiration  and  gratitude;  offered  to  give  him  a  coat  of 
her  late  husband's  to  replace  his  own  torn  garment. 
Harry  stood  it  all  as  long  as  he  could;  at  last,  parrying 


Adieux 

another  kiss,  he  sprang  up  and  declared  it  was  time  he 
set  off  with  his  prisoners  and  the  convoy. 

The  prisoners  capable  of  marching  numbered  eighty- 
five.  The  remainder  were  too  badly  wounded  to  be 
moved.  Gathering  his  escort,  he  had  the  stable  door 
unlocked  and  the  prisoners  paraded,  and  sent  Sherebiah 
to  marshal  the  convoy.  All  was  at  length  ready.  It  was 
half-past  one  when  he  stood  at  the  door  to  take  leave  of 
Madame  de  Vaudrey. 

"Adieu,  Monsieur  Harry!"  she  said.  "  Au  revoir! — 
that  is  what  I  mean.  You  will  come  and  see  us  again?" 

"  Nothing  would  delight  me  more,  Madame." 

"And  stay;  convey  my  thanks  to  Mynheer  Grootz  for 
the  tulip  bulb;  you  will  remember  that?  and  yourself  take 
the  thanks  of  a  mother  and  daughter.  Adele!"  she 
called,  "Monsieur  Rochestair  is  departing.  Come  and 
bid  him  farewell." 

"Adieu,  Monsieur!"  said  Adele,  coming  forward.  "I 
add  my  thanks  to  Mamma's  for  the  great  service  you  have 
done  us." 

"  I  could  have  done  little,  Mademoiselle,  without  your 
aid." 

A  flicker  of  pleasure  passed  over  the  girl's  face;  then, 
with  a  return  to  her  wonted  coldness,  she  said : 

"You  are  pleased  to  flatter,  Monsieur.  But  I  see  there 
are  still  knights-errant  in  the  world.  Adieu!" 

There  were  tears  in  Madame  de  Vaudrey's  eyes  as  she 
put  her  arms  up  and  kissed  Harry  on  the  cheek.  He 
bowed  over  her  hand,  then  sprang  on  to  the  horse  of  one 
of  the  captured  dragoons,  and  cantered  after  the  line  of 
wagons  and  men  already  moving  up  the  road.  As  he 
reached  them  he  had  the  impulse  to  turn  for  a  last  look 
at  the  chateau.  The  turret  was  just  visible  above  the 
tree-tops,  and  upon  it  he  saw  a  female  figure  motionless. 

"One  of  the  maids  hauling  down  the  flag,  I  suppose," 
he  thought. 

Then  he  set  his  face  towards  Breda;  it  was  Adele  who 
stood  there  watching  until  he  was  out  of  sight. 

176 


Luck 

"What  a  lucky  dog  I  am,  Sherry!"  he  remarked  to  his 
sturdy  henchman  as  they  rode  side  by  side. 

"  Ay  sure,  Master  Harry,  'tis  better  to  be  born  lucky 
nor  rich.  But  speaken  for  myself,  I  doan't  zackly  see 
there  be  much  luck  about  it." 

"Oh  yes!  there  is.  'Twas  merely  luck  that  Mynheer 
Grootz  had  to  send  me  this  way;  mere  luck  that  he  had 
promised  Madame  de  Vaudrey  a  tulip ;  mere  luck  that  the 
French  chose  that  very  day  to  come  raiding;  mere  luck 
that  the  place  lent  itself  so  easily  to  a  trick " 

"Ay,  and  mere  luck  that  'ee  happened  to  be  born  wi'  a 
headpiece;  mere  luck  that  'ee  can  handle  a  sword  and  sit 
a  horse;  mere  luck  that  'ee've  got  sojer's  blood  a-rompen 
through  your  veins.  Daze  me,  if  all  that  be  luck — well, 
Them  above  med  as  well  ha'  no  finger  in  poor  mortal 
pies  at  all." 

"Well,  well,  Sherry!  But  confess,  'twas  odd  to  come 
upon  Captain  Aglionby  again,  and  in  that  house ;  what  do 
you  say  to  that?" 

' '  Say !  I  say  'tis  old  Satan  hisself  playen  pranks,  and 
we'll  ha'  to  keep  an  eye  on  the  villain." 

"I  laughed  to  see  their  heads  in  chancery;  'twas 
well  done,  Sherry,  to  haul  them  down  the  stairs  as 
you  did.  What  has  become  of  the  captain  to-day,  I 
wonder?" 

"Trust  me,  he  be  doen  mischief  somewheres.  I  knows 
Cap'n,  ay,  I  do." 

From  the  stout  Baron  von  Schummelpincken  down- 
wards the  prisoners  wore  a  crest-fallen  air.  Save  for  the 
colonel  and  his  subalterns  they  all  marched  on  foot,  the 
horses  being  tied  head  to  tail  as  Harry  had  often  seen  at 
English  country  fairs.  They  had  been  marching  for  about 
an  hour  when  the  head  of  the  convoy  met  General  van 
Santen's  aide-de-camp  galloping  at  breakneck  speed. 
He  reined  up  when  he  noticed  soldiers  among  the  men. 
Harry  cantered  to  his  side.  Explanations  were  rapidly 
exchanged.  The  Dutchman  laughed  heartily  when  he 
heard  how  the  enemy  had  been  fooled. 

177 


After  the  Fair 

"To  tell  the  truth,"  he  said,  "  I  should  never  have 
thought  the  general  capable  of  such  a  stratagem." 

"  Indeed!"  said  Harry. 

"  I  wish  I  had  been  there.  It  would  have  been  more 
fitting  that  I  should  take  the  prisoners  to  Breda  than  you, 
a  sutler,  I  suppose  you  call  yourself." 

"  I  don't  think  it  necessary  to  call  anybody  names, 
Mynheer,  myself  least  of  all.  The  general  expected  assist- 
ance; why  has  it  not  accompanied  you,  Mynheer?" 

The  officer  explained  that  on  reaching  Breda  he  had 
found  that  practically  the  whole  garrison  was  engaged  in 
a  reconnaissance  in  force  towards  Antwerp,  where  General 
de  Bedmar  was  showing  signs  of  activity  that  gave  the 
confederate  generals  some  concern.  Only  two  troops  of 
horse  had  been  retained  in  the  town,  and  these  had  strict 
orders  not  to  leave  the  place.  Infantry  would  be  of  little 
use  against  the  French  raiders,  and  indeed  it  was  im- 
possible that  they  should  reach  Madame  de  Vaudrey's 
house  in  time.  The  aide-de-camp  had  been  accordingly 
provided  with  a  fresh  mount  and  sent  on  to  the  main 
body,  from  which  a  squadron  had  at  once  been  detached. 
But  the  corps,  when  he  overtook  it,  was  a  good  ten  miles 
beyond  Breda,  and  the  relief  squadron  could  not  start  for 
the  Helmund  road  until  the  afternoon.  It  was  now  some 
twenty  minutes  behind  the  aide-de-camp,  who  had  ridden 
forward  to  convey  to  the  general  the  news  of  the  coming 
reinforcement. 

He  continued  his  journey,  and  Harry  cantered  on  to 
overtake  the  convoy,  which  had  moved  on  while  the  con- 
versation took  place.  Some  minutes  later  a  cloud  of  dust 
in  the  distance  heralded  the  approaching  force.  When  the 
two  bodies  met,  Harry  had  reluctantly  to  tell  his  story  over 
again.  The  commander  of  the  squadron  pressed  him  for 
more  details  than  the  general's  aide-de-camp  had  done, 
and  being  a  shrewd  man  he  soon  put  two  and  two  together. 

"The  honour  of  the  day  is  yours,  my  friend,"  he  said 
to  Harry,  "and  by  my  soul  you  shall  ride  into  Breda  at 
the  head  of  the  column." 

178 


A   Triumph 


Harry  protested;  he  did  not  relish  the  idea  of  heading 
a  sort  of  circus  procession.  But  the  Dutchman  insisted ; 
General  van  Santen  had  laid  the  duty  upon  Harry,  and  he 
saw  no  reason  to  relieve  him  of  it.  He  sent  a  couple  of 
his  troopers  on  in  advance  to  announce  the  event.  Thus  it 
happened  that  when,  in  the  dusk,  Harry  headed  his  convoy 
through  the  gates,  he  was  met  by  a  great  concourse  of  the 
populace,  men,  women,  and  children  huzzaing  and  waving 
hats  and  kerchiefs  with  vast  enthusiasm.  All  the  pretty 
girls  of  the  town,  in  their  quaint  bonnets  and  short  skirts, 
pressed  around  the  horse  to  see  the  young  Englishman, 
and  a  comical  little  Dutch  boy,  with  a  toy  drum  slung 
over  his  shoulder,  placed  himself  in  front  of  Harry's  horse 
and  proudly  tattooed  him  through  the  streets  to  the  burgo- 
master's house.  The  burgomaster  himself  made  a  very 
flowery  speech  of  congratulation,  to  which  Harry  returned 
the  best  acknowledgment  he  could;  and  he  was  heartily 
glad  when  the  tide  of  compliments  ebbed  and  he  had 
leisure  to  make  formal  delivery  of  his  prisoners. 

He  had  not  yet  escaped,  however.  He  was  resting 
in  his  inn  when  a  messenger  entered  with  an  invitation 
to  an  impromptu  banquet  organized  at  the  burgomaster's. 
In  vain  Harry  pleaded  that  he  was  in  no  trim  for  fine 
company.  The  burgomaster's  own  tailor  undertook  to 
make  him  presentable;  he  had  to  sit  through  a  long  Dutch 
feast  and  respond  to  the  toast  of  his  health.  Even  then  his 
labours  were  not  ended.  After  the  banquet  the  company 
adjourned  to  the  council  chamber,  where  all  the  beauty 
of  the  town  was  assembled.  Harry  had  to  lead  off  the 
dance  with  the  burgomaster's  wife,  a  stout  vrouw  of  forty- 
five  years  and  fifteen  stone.  He  did  his  duty  manfully, 
dancing  the  stately  dances  of  the  day  with  unflagging 
spirit,  and  winning  universal  praise  by  the  modesty  with 
which  he  wore  his  honours.  The  assembly  broke  up  at 
a  late  hour;  Harry  was  dog-tired,  and  went  to  bed  con- 
vinced that  it  was  mighty  hard  work  to  be  a  popular 
hero. 


179 


CHAPTER  XII 

Harry  is  Discharged 

"ATCHEW! — confusion!  This  pestilent  country — atchew! 
— will  be  the  death  of  me.  'Tis  one  eternal — atchew! — 
rheum!  Stap  my  vitals!  I  wish  I  were  dead.  Atchew! 
atchew ! " 

Captain  Aglionby  sat  in  the  topmost  room  of  a  high 
house  in  one  of  the  less  savoury  quarters  of  the  Hague. 
His  nose  was  redder  than  ever ;  his  cheeks  more  puffed ; 
his  eyes  looked  like  boiled  oysters.  A  thick  woollen  com- 
forter swathed  his  neck.  Though  it  was  the  height  of 
summer,  a  big  log  fire  blazed  in  the  hearth ;  window  and 
door  were  fast  shut ;  and  in  a  temperature  of  something 
over  eighty  degrees  the  captain  was  doing  his  best,  accord- 
ing to  his  lights,  to  cure  a  cold. 

He  was  seated  at  a  table  drawn  close  to  the  fire.  Upon 
the  table  stood  a  bottle  nearly  empty,  a  beaker,  a  basin  of 
sugar,  an  inkhorn,  a  table-book  of  writing-paper,  and  a 
sheath  containing  quills.  A  kettle  sang  on  the  fire.  When 
his  sneezing  fit  was  over,  the  captain  poured  the  last  of 
his  rum  into  the  beaker,  sugared  it,  filled  up  with  boiling 
water,  and  gulped  half  of  the  mixture  into  a  throat  inured 
to  fiery  passengers.  Water  streamed  from  his  eyes,  and 
his  blotched  brow  broke  into  a  profuse  perspiration.  He 
wiped  his  face  with  a  large  red  handkerchief,  smacked  his 
lips,  and,  bending  over  the  table,  selected  a  quill. 

"  Hang  writing!"  he  muttered.  "  I  never  writ  a  letter 
but  I  rued  it.  Atchew!  And  with  this  cursed  cold! 
Well,  the  sooner  begun,  the  sooner  done ;  so  here's  to  it. 
Atchew!" 

He  cut  his  quill,  dipped  it  in  the  ink,  and  began: 

1 80 


Rheum  and  Rum 

"Mr.  BARKLEY.     Sir." 

It  would  have  been  quite  evident  to  an  onlooker  that 
the  captain  was  not  a  practised  penman.  He  wrote  very 
laboriously,  frowning-  at  every  stroke,  and  licking  his  lips 
often.  Like  most  illiterate  people,  he  repeated  half  aloud 
the  words  as  he  wrote  them,  and  being"  so  unused  to 
giving  visible  expression  to  his  thoughts,  he  commented 
as  he  went  along.  He  was  never  at  a  loss  how  to  spell 
a  word,  for  in  those  days  men  spelt  as  they  pleased,  and 
bad  spelling  might  almost  have  been  regarded  as  one  of 
the  marks  of  a  gentleman. 

"Sir.  This  will,  I  hope,  finde  you  well.  For  myself,  I  am 
afflicted  [atchew!]  with  a  voilent  Rheum,  the  wch  I  feare  will 
turne  to  an  inflamatn  of  the  Longs.  [Egad !  that'll  please  the 
old  niggard !]  I  command  the  sarvices  of  the  best  Potticary 
in  the  place,  but  finding  his  nostrums  vain,  for  three  dayes  have 
eate  nought  but  Water  Gruel.  'Tis  said  that  Rumm  is  a  speedie 
Cure,  but  that  I  eschew.  [Atchew!]  My  Hande  shakes  with 
the  feaver,  &  I  shd  not  rite  to  you  now  had  I  not  Surprizing 
Nuse  to  give.  You  must  knowe  that,  visitting  at  the  house  of 
Mme  de  Vodray,  where  your  he  sarvant  is  ever  an  honour'd 
guest,  [that's  worth  fifty  guineas  to  me!]  what  was  my  vaste 

Amazement  to  finde  there  that  yonge  Cockerell  H R 

swaggering  it  as  one  of  the  beste.  It  passes  my  wit  to  divine 
how  he  escap'd  from  the  Merrie  Maide,  &  hope  y  may  recover 
the  Passage  Money,  the  wch  methinks  will  be  difficult.  [Atchew! 
He  won't  get  a  penny  o't.]  'Tis  passing  strange  the  boy  is 
here,  not  lesse  that  he  is  acquaint  with  the  Vodrays ;  &  moreover 
with  him  is  my  pestilent  cozn  S M ,  of  whom  more  here- 
after, 'twill  be  easie  to  deal  with  him,  whereto  I  have  already 

things  in  Traine.     H R is  employ'd  with  one  Grootz, 

a  merchant  of  Substance,  &  one  that  hath  large  Contracks  with 
the  confederate  armies.  The  boy  being  out  of  yr  way,  y  have 
belike  no  further  cause  against  him,  &  wd  wish  no  further"stepps 
taken,  comming  &  going  is  like  at  any  time  to  Cooke  his  Goose, 
but  if  I  mistake  in  this  'twould  be  well  to  sende  100  Guineas  by 
the  same  Hande  as  wont,  &  I  wd  endevour  to  bring  the  matter  to 
a  safe  and  speedie  End,  in  wch  case  I  wd  make  bold  to  aske  for  a 
further  Summe  of  200  Guineas  for  to  requite  my  Zeale  in  the 
sarvice  of  my  honour'd  Frende  &  Patron." 

181 


Gall 

"  Atchew!    Writing  is  plaguily  dry  work,"  he  muttered, 
breaking  off  at  this  point,  "and  the  bottle's  empty." 
He  tugged  at  a  bell-pull,  and  resumed  his  letter. 

"  'Twill  be  no  light  Taske,  seeing  the  yonge  man  hath  captured 
of  late  a  Partie  of  above  100  French  in  an  Affaire  near  Breda,  the 
wch  I  doubte  not  will  give  him  some  Consekence  with  the  Dutch 
no  less  than  himselfe,  of  the  wch  Affaire  'tis  like  an  Account  will 
be  printed  in  the  Courant.  [Sure  'twill  give  Nick  a  start.] 
I  must  add  that  Living  is  verie  Deare  here.  For  my  Creditt  sake 
and  the  furtherance  of  youre  Ends,  I  have  hired  a  Magnifficent 
Appartment,  for  the  wch  I  have  to  paye  a  sweete  Rent.  Hence  it 
is  verie  nessessarie  I  have  the  Guineas  without  delai.  Waiting 
yr  commands  &  so  subscribe  myself  yr  ever  humble  and  obediant 

RALPH  AGLIONBY,  Captain." 

"Atchew!  There,  'tis  done,  and  writ  fair."  He  flung 
his  pen  on  the  table.  "  And  I'd  fain  know  what  the  squire 
has  against  the  knave;  'tis  more  than  pique,  I  promise 
you.  Where's  Simmons,  confound  him!" 

He  sanded  the  wet  paper,  folded  it,  sealed  it  with  yellow 
wax,  and  wrote  the  superscription : 

For  Nicolas  Barkley  Es(fe 
at  his  house 

Winton  St.  Mary 

nr  Salisbury,  England 

This  done,  he  tugged  again  at  the  bell-pull,  blew  his  nose 
with  sounding  ferocity,  and  stuck  his  legs  into  the  hearth 
with  the  air  of  a  man  who  had  successfully  achieved  a 
stupendous  task. 

The  door  opened,  and  John  Simmons  entered. 

"Hang  you,  sirrah!  why  don't  you  answer  my  bell  at 
the  very  moment,  sir?  Go  get  me  a  bottle  of  rum." 

Simmons,  pallid,  frowsy,  scared-looking,  stood  hesitat- 
ing in  the  doorway. 

"Are  you  deaf,  clodpoll?"  roared  the  captain.  "A 
bottle  of  rum,  and  instantly!" 

"Yes,  Captain,  and  the — and  the  money,  sir?" 
182 


Without  Ceremony 

"The  money,  you  dog!  Where  is  the  crown-piece  I 
gave  you  this  morning?" 

"  I  had  to  buy  the  dinner,  sir,  and " 

"Zounds!  You'll  answer  me,  will  you?  You're  the 
most  pestilent  knave  man  ever  had  to  serve  him.  'Tis 
money,  money,  all  day  with  you.  Would  that  Sherry 
Minshull  had  left  you  to  the  hangman!  Begone,  sirrah! 
and " 

"Pardon!"  said  a  voice  in  French  from  the  door.  "  If 
I  am  in  the  way " 

"Come  in,  Monsieur,"  said  Aglionby,  springing  to  his 
feet.  "And  you,  booby,  be  off  and  do  my  bidding." 

Simmons  vanished  precipitately.  Monsieur  de  Polignac 
gasped  as  he  entered  the  overheated  room. 

"  Phew!     It  would  roast  an  ox." 

"  Shut  the  door.      I  am  nursing  a  pestilent  rheum." 

"So  it  appears.  You  are  in  an  ill  humour,  my  friend; 
I  fear  my  news  will  not  cheer  you." 

"  Spit  it  out  and  have  done  with  it,  then." 

"Well,  this  is  it.  A  commission  has  been  made  out, 
I  hear,  appointing  your  young  Englishman  a  cornet  in  the 
Anspach  dragoons." 

"What  young  Englishman?" 

"The  young  man  whom  we  met  at  Madame  de  Vau- 
drey's." 

The  captain  swore  a  hearty  British  oath. 

"  Where  learnt  you  that?" 

"  A  la  bonne  heure!  It  is  true.  I  have  it  on  authority 
I  cannot  doubt.  Van  Santen  pressed  it;  his  influence  pre- 
vailed. There  were  several  vacancies  in  the  regiment;  it 
lost  heavily  in  the  action  at  Eckeren  a  few  weeks  ago. 
This  boy  gets  the  senior  cornetcy.  We  owe  it  to  our- 
selves, Monsieur  le  Capitaine,  that  the  junior  cornets  get 
an  early  step." 

"  Peste!  We  do  owe  it  to  ourselves;  or,  I  should  rather 
say,  we  owe  it  to  yourself.  For  me,  I  have  knocked  about 
the  world  too  long  to  take  umbrage  easily ;  and  look  you, 
Monsieur,  my  family,  although  gentle,  indeed  I  may  say 

(B357)  183  N 


A  Question  of  Precedence 

noble,  cannot  compare  with  yours  in  quartering^;  and  such 
fal-lals.  I  understand  your  sentiments;  as  you  say,  some- 
thing must  be  done." 

"And  at  once,  for  which  end  I  have  come  to  see  you. 
My  position,  as  you  perceive,  is  delicate;  for  myself,  I 
would  seek  a  quarrel  with  the  bantling  and  spit  him  on 
my  rapier  without  remorse.  But  affairs  of  state — you 
understand  me;  that  alters  the  case.  I  must  not  appear. 
I  propose  to  you  this :  to  affront  the  boy,  provoke  him  to 
a  duel;  you  a  veteran,  he  a  tyro;  it  will  be  a  matter  of 
seconds.  Voili ! " 

The  captain  gazed  steadily  at  Polignac  for  a  few 
moments,  then  said : 

"  Look  you,  Polignac,  no  man  ever  accused  Ralph 
Aglionby,  late  captain  in  the  Preobrashenski  Grenadiers,  of 
lack  of  courage — no  man,  that  is  to  say,  that  lived  to  tell 
of  it.  Had  you  made  the  proposition  twenty  years  ago, 
I  should  by  this  time  have  been  half-way  down  the  stairs 
on  the  way  to  kill  this  young  springald.  But  twenty 
years  make  a  difference.  My  courage  is  the  same,  look 
you ;  but  the  years  have  enlarged  my  girth — and  my  dis- 
cretion. On  the  point  of  honour  I  am  as  sensitive  as  ever 
I  was,  but  I  have  learnt  to  have  patience — and  considera- 
tion. Say  I  engage  this  peddling  fool;  what  happens?  I 
kill  him  and  baulk  you  of  your  revenge.  Where  are  you, 
my  friend?  Or  suppose,  by  some  vile  contrivance,  he  kills 
me;  where  am  I?  No,  no,  Monsieur;  the  right  of  place 
belongs  to  you.  Who  am  I,  a  broken  soldier,  a  poor 
unnecessary  captain  of  grenadiers,  to  take  precedence  of 
you?" 

"You  have  most  admirable  patience,"  sneered  Polignac, 
"and  I  am  overwhelmed  by  your  consideration.  I  thank 
you,  Monsieur  le  Capitaine,  and  bid  you  adieu." 

"Stay,  my  friend;  why  this  haste?  I  have  considera- 
tion, as  you  say.  Would  the  world  be  better  for  the  loss 
of  you  or  me?  are  there  not  more  ways  of  getting  even 
with  a  man  than  making  one's  self  a  target  for  his  pistol 
or  a  sheath  for  his  sword?  You  remember  Marillier,  and 

184 


Res  Angustae 


Aubin,  eh?  Sit  down,  and  let  us  talk  this  over  like  reason- 
able men." 

Polignac  sat  on  one  of  the  rickety  chairs  in  silence. 

"  Your  memory  is  jogged,  eh?  You  remember  the  dark 
lane,  and  the  light  in  the  window,  and — 

"Enough!"  exclaimed  the  other  impatiently.  "My 
memory  is  as  good  as  yours.  This  is  different.  I  must 
be  circumspect.  Were  we  in  Paris — then!  But  here  at 
the  Hague,  I  am  not  my  own  master;  I  have  weightier 
interests  to  consider.  An  incautious  step,  even  a  chance 
word,  may  ruin  a  dynasty.  My  own  life — I  do  not  consider 
it;  but  when  one  is  playing  for  a  crown  one  has  duties, 
responsibilities.  If  you  see  your  way — well,  I  am  not 
one  to  dissuade  you;  and  if  a  few  guilders " 

Aglionby's  red  eyes  gleamed. 

"  Well,  Monsieur,  as  you  put  it  so,  I  own  'tis  in  a 
measure  a  question  of  money.  In  truth  'tis  desperate  hard 
lines  that  I,  who  have  ruffled  it  with  the  best  and  got  drunk 
with  the  Czar  of  Muscovy  himself,  should  be  so  hard 
driven  as  that  I  cannot  offer  due  hospitality  to  a  friend. 
Look  at  this  wretched  lodging;  was  ever  gentleman,  by 
no  fault  of  his  own,  mark  you,  reduced  to  such  straits!" 

Polignac,  glancing  at  the  mean  furniture  and  the  empty 
bottle,  agreeably  assented,  but  concealed  a  smile. 

"  Well,"  he  said,  "  might  I  ask  leave  to  send  out  for 
a  bottle  of  wine?" 

Aglionby  jumped  up  with  alacrity. 

"You  say  so?  'Tis  the  mark  of  a  true  friend."  He  pulled 
hard  at  the  bell-rope.  "My  man  will  be  here  instantly; 
and,  Monsieur,  let  it  be  sack — sack,  as  you  love  me." 

Simmons  reappeared  without  delay,  and  was  despatched 
for  a  bottle  of  sack.  With  the  energy  of  pleasurable 
anticipation  the  captain  pursued: 

"  Now,  my  dear  Polignac,  mark — before  attempting  the 
house  'tis  well  to  poison  the  dog;  aha!  that  is  only  my 
way  of  putting  it,  eh?" 

"  Of  course.     A  figure  of  speech  ;  but  from  the  life !" 

Aglionby  flung  him  a  suspicious  glance ;  at  times  he  had 

185 


The  Raw 

an  uneasy  feeling  that  Polignac  was  quizzing  him.     But 
after  a  momentary  pause  he  went  on  as  before. 

"  The  dog  in  this  case — and  a  low  cur  it  is — is  the 
young  cockerel's  servant — the  same  that  embraced  you  so 
cordially  at  Madame  de  Vaudrey's.  Ha!  ha!  I  can  relish 
the  comical  side  of  it  e'en  though  he  embraced  me  also ! — 
and  before  the  charming  mademoiselle  too ! " 

He  guffawed  uproariously.  He  felt  that  he  was  now  get- 
ting tit  for  tat  for  Polignac's  covert  sneers,  often  rather 
suspected  than  understood.  But  he  was  not  a  little  startled 
by  the  effect  of  his  words  and  laughter.  Polignac  flushed 
purple  with  rage;  his  mouth  took  a  very  decided  twist 
towards  his  left  eye.  Springing  up  suddenly  he  cried : 

"  Morbleu,  Monsieur,  a  truce  to  your  pleasantries!  and 
keep  the  lady's  name  out  of  it,  or  by  the — 

"  No  offence,  no  offence,  my  dear  fellow,"  interposed 
the  captain  hastily.  "  I'm  but  a  plain  soldier — just  an 
honest,  bluff,  outspoken  old  campaigner;  we  blades  don't 
pick  and  choose  our  words  like  you  fine  gentlemen  of  the 
courts;  though  in  truth  when  I  was  in  Russia  my  manners 
were  as  good  as  the  best." 

Polignac  resumed  his  seat  reluctantly  without  a  word. 
After  a  short,  strained  silence  Aglionby  went  on : 

"The  first  thing,  as  I  was  saying,  is  to  get  this  dog 
out  of  the  way.  Burn  him!  he  follows  his  master  like  a 
shadow.  The  man  removed,  the  rest  is  easy.  A  week 
from  now,  and  he  shall  lie  his  length  in  six  feet  of  good 
Dutch  soil,  or  my  name  isn't  Ralph  Montacute  Aglionby. 
Leave  it  to  me,  Monsieur;  there  will  be  necessary 
expenses;  say  fifty  guilders,  a  small  sum,  and  at  one 
time " 

"Send  to  my  chambers;  you  shall  have  the  money. 
And  by  the  way,  here  is  a  packet  for  Captain  Rudge  of 
the  Skylark.  He  sails  with  this  evening's  tide.  Bid  him 
have  the  greatest  care  of  it ;  should  he  run  into  danger  he 
must  destroy  it. — It  is  arranged,  then?  I  shall  hear  from 
you?" 

"  Within  a  week,  on  the  word  of  a  gentleman." 
1 86 


To  Scheveningen 


' '  Then  for  the  time,  adieu ! " 

When  Polignac  had  gone,  Aglionby  looked  curiously  at 
the  packet  entrusted  to  him.  The  address  ran: 

For  Mistress  Consterdine 

to  be  left  at  the  coffee-house, 

by  the  Cockpitt,    Whitehall,  London. 

It  was  carefully  but  not  conspicuously  sealed.  The  cap- 
tain turned  it  over  and  over  in  his  dirty  hands ;  they  itched 
to  open  it.  "To  judge  by  his  rage,"  he  muttered,  "he's 
certainly  smit  with  Mademoiselle  de  Vaudrey.  'Tis  not 
merely  his  interest  is  engaged."  He  sat  musing  for  a 
moment.  Then  his  eye  fell  on  a  broadsheet,  marked  with 
many  circular  stains,  that  lay  on  one  of  the  chairs.  He 
took  it  up  and  searched  for  a  passage  which  he  had  clearly 
already  read.  Lighting  upon  it,  he  read : 

"The  report  goes  that  Coy's  Horse  embark  at  Harwich  for 
Ostend  on  Friday  the  i6th  current.  They  will  join  the  forces 
now  operating  under  General  Lumley  in  Dutch  Flanders." 

"  With  a  fair  wind  they'll  make  port  to-morrow.  Then, 
Sherebiah  Minshull,  my  sweet  coz,  we  shall  begin  to 
square  accounts, — you  and  I." 

Stuffing  the  two  packets  into  his  capacious  pocket,  he 
clapped  on  his  hat,  flung  a  cloak  over  his  shoulders, 
wound  the  comforter  more  tightly  about  his  neck,  and 
made  his  way  out,  sneezing  half  a  dozen  times  as  he 
met  the  cooler  air  of  the  street.  He  walked  along  the 
Lange  Pooten,  the  chief  business  thoroughfare,  into  an 
open  space  known  as  the  Plein.  As  he  was  crossing  this 
he  caught  sight  of  a  figure  hastening  into  one  of  the 
larger  houses,  and  almost  involuntarily  he  stepped  aside 
into  a  doorway  until  all  danger  of  being  seen  was  past. 

"  What  is  the  puppy  doing  here?"  he  muttered,  passing 
on  his  way  to  the  old  road  to  Scheveningen.  After  a 
pleasant  woodland  walk  of  two  miles  he  reached  that  little 
fishing  village,  and  found,  as  he  expected,  Captain  Rudge, 
owner  and  skipper  of  the  sloop  Skylark,  a  fast  sailer  which 

187 


Punctuality  and  Despatch 

ran  to  and  fro  between  Scheveningen  and  Harwich.  To 
him  Aglionby  confided  his  own  letter  and  Polignac's. 
Then  he  retraced  his  steps,  and  at  the  Hague  took  horse 
for  Rotterdam.  It  was  near  midnight  when  he  returned 
and  wearily  climbed  the  lofty  stair  to  his  attic  room ;  but 
though  he  was  fatigued,  and  his  cold  perceptibly  worse, 
he  seemed  well  satisfied  with  himself,  and  chuckled  many 
a  time  before  he  had  drained  to  the  dregs  the  bottle  of 
sack  he  had  broached  with  Monsieur  de  Polignac. 

The  person  from  whose  sight  he  had  shrunk  in  the 
afternoon  was  Harry  Rochester  himself,  who  had  just 
returned  from  a  visit  to  Marlborough's  camp  at  Hanneff. 
Mynheer  Grootz  was  up  to  his  eyes  in  business,  and  the 
wide  area  over  which  the  confederate  forces  were  spread 
taxed  his  resources  to  the  utmost.  He  had  now  come  to 
the  Hague  to  confer  with  a  committee  of  the  States 
General  and  arrange  further  contracts,  and  had  instructed 
Harry  to  meet  him  there  on  the  completion  of  his  own 
errand. 

"  Well,  my  boy,"  said  Grootz  on  his  arrival,  "  I  did  not 
expect  you  zo  zoon."  They  were  now  on  such  friendly 
and  familiar  terms  that  the  Dutchman  had  dropped  the 
formal  address.  "  How  have  you  fared?" 

"  Excellently,  Mynheer,"  replied  Harry.  "  The  com- 
missary was  well  content  with  your  arrangements,  and 
said — 'tis  no  harm  to  repeat  it — that  were  all  Dutchmen 
like  Jan  Grootz  he  would  be  spared  a  peck  of  trouble." 

"  Dat  is  goot,"  said  Grootz,  evidently  well  pleased. 
"  Dat  is  how  I  do  my  business;  always  in  time,  always 
ready,  always  sure." 

"  I  had  hoped  to  catch  a  glimpse  of  my  lord  Marl- 
borough  himself,  but  'twas  not  to  be.  Whatever  may  be 
said  of  his  meanness  and  selfishness,  Mynheer,  'tis  certain 
he  is  adored  by  his  army.  The  soldiers  are  full  of  courage, 
confident  in  my  lord's  genius,  and  all  afire  to  meet  the 
French.  They  say,  indeed,  that  if  my  lord  were  but  free 
of  restraint,  not  bound  to  take  counsel  with  your  poli- 
ticians here,  one  campaign  would  see  the  end  of  the  war." 

1 88 


From  the  Dutch   Side 

"  Dey  zay! — Yes,  well,  it  may  be  zo.  My  lord  is  a  fine 
soldier — none  would  deny  it — for  all  he  dink  little  of  de 
rules  of  war.  But  as  for  de  field  deputies — my  countrymen 
— dey  alzo  have  reason.  To  Lord  Marlborough  and  you 
English,  my  boy,  a  defeat  mean  much;  dat  is  zo;  but 
to  my  country — ah!  much  more.  To  us  it  mean  ruin, 
every  village  and  town  overrun,  our  polders  spoiled,  our 
homes  destroyed,  everywhere  black  misery.  Dis  poor 
country  know  it  all  too  well;  we  have  suffered — ah  yes! 
we  have  suffered  before  too  often.  For  my  lord,  it  is  a 
game  wherein  he  can  noding  lose  but  glory;  for  us  it  is 
a  struggle  of  life  and  death.  True,  for  myself,  I  zay  in 
war,  as  in  business,  to  follow  a  bold  course  is  best ;  but  I 
do  not  derefore  blame  our  statesmen  dat  dey  move  zlowly; 
no,  I  do  not  blame  dem." 

Harry  had  seen  more  than  once  lately  that  beneath  the 
stolid  exterior  of  the  merchant  beat  a  heart  warm  toward 
his  fatherland  and  his  friends.  He  could  not  but  recognize 
much  to  sympathize  with  in  the  Dutch  point  of  view,  and 
began  to  realize  what  it  meant  to  the  Hollanders  to  have 
their  country  turned  into  a  cockpit  for  the  political  con- 
tentions of  rival  monarchs. 

A  slight  pause  followed  Grootz's  earnest  speech;  then 
suddenly,  with  a  change  of  tone,  he  said : 

"  Now,  Mynheer  Harry,  I  have  a  ding  to  zay.  Dere  are 
reasons  why  I  find  it  now  necessary  to  discharge  you  from 
my  business." 

Harry  gasped  and  looked  very  blank.  The  merchant 
nodded  solemnly;  up  came  his  fat  forefinger;  and  he  con- 
tinued with  even  more  deliberation  than  usual : 

"Dat  is  zo.  I  tell  you  dis;  I.  find  no  fault  wid  you; 
none  in  de  world;  but  all  de  same,  I  zay  dat  it  is  necessary 
you  go." 

Harry  was  so  much  taken  aback  that  he  found  it  difficult 
to  speak. 

"Why — 'tis  sudden — what  can — surely —  "  his  tongue 
stumbled  over  half  a  dozen  questions  before,  with  an  effort 
to  command  himself,  he  said:  "Of  course,  Mynheer,  if 

i8g 


Temptation 


there  is  nothing  more  for  me  to  do,  I  must  perforce  seek 
other  work.  You  have  been  very  kind  to  me ;  'tis  but  poor 
thanks  I  can  give  you  for  what  you  have  done." 

"What  I  have  done!  Gunst!  it  is  noding.  And  you: 
it  needs  not  to  zeek  oder  work;  it  is  found.  Hearken 
to  dis." 

He  took  up  an  official-looking  paper  that  lay  at  his  hand 
and  read  in  Dutch : 

"  Mynheer  Henry  Rochester  is  appointed  to  a  cornetcy  in  the 
Anspach  dragoons  in  succession  to  Mynheer  Lodewyk  van 
Monnen  deceased." 

Harry  flushed  to  the  eyes. 

"Tis  a  mistake,  Mynheer,  surely.  I  have  not  sought 
this;  I  know  nothing  of  it." 

"A  mistake!  Not  at  all.  General  van  Santen  come 
to  me  and  zay,  '  Grootz,  you  have  in  your  business  a 
young  man  dat  has  no  business  to  be  in  your  business ;  he 
is  a  soldier,  noding  less,  and  we  have  need  of  such;'  dat 
is  what  he  zay,  and  more,  and  he  go  straight  off  to  put 
down  your  name  for  a  commission.  And  here  it  is,  in  de 
gazette.  Dat  is  why  I  discharge  you,  before — "  (Mynheer 
Grootz  made  a  brave  attempt  to  be  jocular) — "before  you 
discharge  yourself." 

Harry  was  silent.  His  nerves  were  tingling,  his  blood 
sang  in  his  veins.  Here  was  the  opening  to  a  career  after 
his  own  heart.  All  his  earlier  longings  came  back  to  him ; 
the  inward  struggle  with  which  he  had  acquiesced  in  his 
father's  desire  that  he  should  enter  the  Church;  the  light 
of  hope  that  shone  on  him  at  his  interview  with  Marl- 
borough  ;  the  agonizing  dissolution  of  his  castle  in  the  air. 
And  now,  unsought,  what  he  had  sought  in  vain  had  come 
to  him,  the  aspiration  of  his  boyhood  was  about  to  be  ful- 
filled. All  this  flashed  through  his  mind  in  a  moment  of 
time, — and  there  was  Jan  Grootz,  smiling  out  of  his  kindly 
little  eyes.  Jan  Grootz!— what  he  owed  to  him!  But  for 
Jan  Grootz  he  might  now  be  a  hapless  slave  in  the  Planta- 
tions, with  no  ray  of  light  upon  the  endless  vista  of  the 

190 


Renunciation 

years.  To  Jan  Grootz  he  owed  his  health  and  freedom, 
his  training  in  dealing-  with  men;  more  than  all,  he  had 
met  in  Jan  Grootz  a  man  whose  character  compelled  his 
respect  and  admiration,  and  whom  indeed  he  had  begun  to 
love.  Would  it  not  be  the  worst  of  ingratitude  to  leave 
him  now? 

The  temptation  was  strong,  the  inward  struggle  sharp. 
But  it  was  only  a  few  moments  after  the  staggering  an- 
nouncement when  he  bent  forward  and  said : 

"Mynheer,  I  cannot  accept  this  offer — this  splendid 
offer.  'Tis  exceeding  kind  of  General  van  Santen ;  I  owe 
him  my  hearty  thanks ;  but  'tis  not  to  be  thought  of,  save 
you  yourself  wish  to  be  rid  of  me,  and  that  I  must  doubt, 
since  'tis  but  a  week  since  you  told  me  I  was  useful  to  you. 
I  will  see  the  general,  and  explain  to  him  the  reason  why  I 
decline  this  commission;  I  must  do  so  at  once." 

He  made  towards  the  door,  as  though  eager  to  avoid 
dalliance.  Grootz's  broad  plain  face  was  transfigured  by 
delight  and  pride  and  gratification.  Catching  Harry  by 
the  arm,  he  drew  him  back,  laid  his  hand  on  his  shoulder, 
and  said : 

"  No,  Harry,  my  dear  lad,  I  tell  you  dis;  you  must  not 
do  dis  ding.  I  do  not  zay  I  shall  not  feel  your  loss  " — 
there  was  an  unusual  note  of  tenderness  in  his  voice — 
"true,  it  is  not  long  dat  we  have  worked  togeder,  but 
already  I  regard  you — jawohl,  regard  you  as  a  son,  and  to 

miss  your  bright  face,  your  willing  service hoot!  by 

den  donder,  I  am  not  myself  to-day." 

"Tis  too  kind  of  you,  Mynheer." 

"Nay,  nay;  I  am  not  zo  weak.  I  am  at  one  wid 
General  van  Santen :  you  are  made  for  a  soldier.  'Tis 
de  work  you  yourself  would  have  chosen;  now  'tis  de 
tide  of  fortune,  dat  you  dare  not  miss.  I  tell  you  dis;  I 
am  made  up  in  my  mind,  fixed,  noding  can  move  me. 
I  salute  you,  Mynheer  Rochester,  cornet  in  de  Anspach 
dragoons." 

"  Indeed,  'tis  too  good  of  you,  Mynheer." 

"Not  zo.     And  dis  I  tell  you  alzo.     You  know  me,  Jan 


Gretel 

Grootz;  I  prosper — God  prospers  me.  I  regard  you  as 
my  son:  well,  'tis  a  fader's  pleasure  to  provide  for  his  son 
at  de  beginning  of  dings,  just  as  'tis  a  skipper's  pleasure 
to  zee  his  ship  sail  taut  and  trim.  You  will  have  heavy 
charges:  clothes,  equipment,  a  horse  to  buy.  Dose 
charges,  you  will  permit  me,  zall  be  mine.  Tis  but 
right  you  should  take  your  place  wid  de  best.  I  have 
no  kith  nor  kin,  nor  like  to  have ;  de  pay  for  dragoons 
is  little  enough;  I  add  a  hundred  guilders  a  month;  dat 
will  suffice,  dink  you?" 

"But,  Mynheer — 

"Poof!  no  buts.  I  zall  do  as  please  me.  Now,  I  am 
hungry :  let  us  go  to  de  parlour.  And  dere  is  your  man 
to  tell;  he  will,  no  doubt,  continue  to  be  your  servant." 

They  went  from  the  room,  Grootz  keeping  his  hand 
affectionately  on  Harry's  shoulder.  The  table  in  the 
parlour  was  already  laid,  and  in  answer  to  the  bell  old 
Gretel  appeared  with  a  tureen  of  soup. 

"Gretel,"  said  the  merchant,  "Mynheer  Harry  is  about 
to  leave  us." 

"There!  Something  inside  told  me,  Mynheer,  you 
would  not  keep  him  long." 

"  'Tis  not  of  my  own  will,  Gretel,"  said  Harry  at  once. 

"  No,"  added  Grootz.  "The  lad  was  not  eager.  He  is 
to  be  an  officer  of  dragoons." 

The  old  woman  curtsied  and  grunted. 

"A  rare  exchange!"  she  said.  "To  my  mind  'tis  better 
to  sell  corn  than  to  stand  up  to  be  shot  at,  and  a  deal  safer. 
But  I  wish  you  good  luck,  Mynheer." 

"Thanks,  Gretel,  for  that  and  for  all  your  kindness  to 
me.  Is  Sherry  downstairs?" 

"Ja,  Mynheer." 

"Send  him  up,  if  you  please.  I  must  tell  him  the 
news." 

"  Oh !  he  will  not  be  pleased.  He  has  a  scorn  of  soldiers, 
never  a  good  word  to  say  for  them.  He  is  in  the  right." 

Harry  smiled  as  the  privileged  o'd  housekeeper  hobbled 
out.  Sherebiah  soon  appeared. 

IQ2 


Misgivings 


"Sherry,"  said  Harry,  "I  have  a  thing  to  tell  you. 
General  van  Santen  has  recommended  me  to  the  heads  of 
the  Dutch  army,  and  I  am  made  an  officer  of  dragoons." 

"  Zooks!"  was  the  man's  astonished  exclamation. 

"  We  shall  still  be  together,  you  and  I.  I  shall  want  a 
man,  of  course;  and  you  will  not  object  to  the  place?" 

"Well,  sir,"  said  Sherebiah  slowly,  looking  down  at  his 
boots,  "  'tis  an  awk'ard  matter  for  a  man  o'  peace.  'Tis  a 
line  o'  life  I  ha'  no  love  for.  To  be  sarvant  to  a  man  o' 
war  is  next  to  bein'  a  man  o'  war  yourself.  Not  but  what 
I'd  be  proud  to  sarve  'ee,  Master  Harry;  no  man  more;  but 
them  as  take  the  sword  shall  fall  by  the  sword,  as  the 
Book  says,  and  I  take  that  for  a  warnen  to  have  none 
on  't." 

"  A  lame  argument,  Sherry." 

"True,  sir,  haven  no  larnen  I  feel  it  so.  And  will  'ee 
go  shoulder  to  shoulder  with  our  English  sojers?" 

There  was  a  note  of  anxiety  in  his  voice. 

"That  I  can't  say.  I  hope  that  my  regiment  won't  be 
left  out  in  the  cold." 

"Well,  sir,  there's  a  providence  in't.  Them  above 
knows  what  they're  about,  to  be  sure,  in  a  general  way, 
and  I  bean't  agwine  to  set  up  for  knowen  better.  I'll 
sarve  'ee,  sir,  polish  your  breastplate,  currycomb  your 
horse,  oil  your  boots,  clean  your  pistols,  keep  an  eye  on 
the  sutlers,  and " 

"  You  seem  to  have  a  good  notion  of  your  new  duties," 
said  Harry,  laughing. 

"Pretty  good,  sir,  for  a  man  o'  peace,"  said  Sherebiah 
imperturbably.  "  And  when  do  'ee  mount  your  horse  as  a 
sojer,  Master  Harry?" 

"Zoon,"  put  in  Grootz.  "General  van  Santen  himself 
will  introduce  him  to  his  broder  officers;  he  tell  me  zo." 

"Ay,  so.  Well,  'tis  a  world  o'  changes.  For  you,  sir, 
'tis  a  change  for  the  better,  barren  'ee  bean't  killed;  for 
me, — well,  the  truth  on't  is,  I  fear  'tis  the  beginnen  o'  the 
end  for  Sherebiah  Stand-up-and-Bless." 


193 


CHAPTER  XIII 

Concerning  Sherebiah 

ONE  evening,  a  few  days  after  he  had  received  news  of  his 
commission,  Harry  returned  home  somewhat  later  than 
usual  from  his  customary  stroll.  He  was  fond  of  walking- 
through  the  pleasant  woods  to  Scheveningen,  and  watch- 
ing the  herring  -  boats  as  they  sailed  out  for  the  night's 
work.  He  would  chat  with  the  fishermen,  and  had  indeed 
by  his  frank  manner,  and  perhaps  an  occasional  gift  of 
tobacco,  established  himself  as  a  favourite  with  them. 

On  this  evening,  feeling  a  little  tired,  he  threw  himself 
into  a  chair  in  the  parlour,  and  sat  musing,  gazing  into  the 
glowing  sky  as  the  sun  went  down.  By  and  by  old  Gretel 
entered  and  began  to  lay  the  supper.  She  had  gone  in 
and  out  two  or  three  times  in  silence  before  Harry  be- 
thought himself  and  said: 

"Why,  Gretel,  how  is  it  Sherry  is  not  helping  you 
to-night?" 

"By  den  donder,  Mynheer,  you  may  well  ask!  He 
seems  bewitched  since  the  great  news.  Not  half  so  helpful 
to  my  poor  old  bones  as  he  was." 

"  But  where  is  he?" 

"  He  has  not  returned  yet." 

"  Returned  from  where?" 

"Why,  Mynheer,  he  went  put  at  once  after  receiving 
your  message,  and " 

"  My  message!" 

"Ja,  Mynheer,  the  message  sent  by  the  boy." 

"What  boy?  Come,  Gretel,  I  sent  no  message.  I 
know  nothing  about  a  boy.  Tell  me  all  you  know." 

"  It  was  about  four  o'clock,  Mynheer,  a  boy  of  twelve  or 
so  came  to  the  door  —  a  stranger  to  me.  He  asked  for 

194 


A  Summons 

Sherry  Minshull — no  mynheer  to  his  tongue.  I  called  to 
Sherry,  and  heard  the  boy  say,  '  Mynheer  Rochester  wishes 

you  to  come '  then  the  big  bell  of  the  Groote  Kerk 

tolled,  and  I  heard  no  more.  But  Sherry  reached  down 
his  hat  and  said  he  was  going-  to  you,  and  he  and  the 
boy  went  away  together." 

Harry  was  puzzled,  and  a  little  uneasy.  He  rose  from 
his  chair. 

"Are  you  sure  you  heard  the  boy  mention  my  name?" 

"  Quite  sure.  And  Sherry  must  have  thought  there  was 
need  for  haste,  for  he  left  his  dish  of  coffee  half  full,  and 
he  is  too  fond  of  mocha  to  do  that  without  a  reason." 

Just  then  Mynheer  Grootz  came  in  to  supper.  When 
Harry  had  informed  him  of  the  strange  message  and 
Sherebiah's  continued  absence,  he  was  at  first  disposed  to 
make  light  of  the  matter. 

"  Gretel  is  growing  hard  of  hearing,"  he  said.  "  Maybe 
she  mistook  de  name." 

"Don't  you  think,  Mynheer,  'twould  be  well  to  make 
enquiry  before  it  is  dark?  I  am  strangely  uneasy  about 
Sherry." 

The  merchant  consented  to  accompany  Harry  into  the 
streets.  Everybody  knew  him  and  answered  his  questions 
readily  enough;  but  none  of  the  porters  of  the  neighbouring 
houses,  or  the  watchmen  who  patrolled  the  streets,  had 
seen  Sherebiah  or  the  boy,  though  some  of  them  owned 
that  they  knew  the  former  well  by  sight.  By  and  by,  how- 
ever, they  came  upon  an  old  soldier  smoking  his  evening 
pipe  outside  his  cottage— the  lodge  to  one  of  the  larger 
houses  in  Gedempte  Spui.  Grootz  put  the  usual  question. 

'•*  Did  you  see  an  Englishman — stout,  with  a  beard,  and 
his  hat  on  one  side,  pass  by  a  few  hours  ago  with  a  boy  of 
twelve  or  thereabouts?" 

The  soldier  removed  his  long  pipe,  spat,  and  appeared  to 
meditate  before  replying. 

"Yes — now  I  think  of  it;  I  believe  I  did  see  a  man  of 
that  cut,  though  I  would  not  be  sure.  He  might  not  have 
been  an  Englishman.  He  was  stout,  certainly,  and  had  a 

195 


Coy's  Horse 


beard ;  as  for  his  hat,  I  didn't  notice  it,  for  the  truth  is,  I 
had  been  looking  at  some  other  Englishmen,  a  party  of 
Coy's  Horse ;  my  old  corps  served  side  by  side  with  them  in 
'97.  Yes,  and  there  was  a  man  among  them  I  knew  too ; 
a  paymaster — Robins,  I  mind,  was  his  name — donder! 
what  a  temper  he  had!  It  was  a  curse  and  a  blow  with 
him.  Ay,  it  is  a  hard  life,  the  soldier's.  They  halted  at 
the  inn  over  by  there,  and  I  was  just  going  over  to  drink 
a  glass  with  them  for  old  times'  sake  when  the  Baron's 
coach  came  up  and  I  had  to  open  the  gates.  A  lodge- 
keeper,  see  you,  is  a  sentry  with  no  change  of  guard." 

"Ja,  ja!  But  the  Englishman  and  the  boy — which  way 
did  they  go?" 

"Which  way?  Let  me  see.  They  might  have  gone 
down  the  road :  no,  now  I  bethink  me,  I  believe  they  went 
up  the  road ;  but  there,  I  can't  be  sure.  The  sight  of  the 
English  horse,  men  I  fought  side  by  side  with  in  '97,  before 
I  got  my  wound — 

"Ja,  ja!     Thank  you!" 

They  escaped  his  further  reminiscences  by  walking  on, 
past  the  inn,  past  a  row  of  cottages  with  the  inevitable 
bright  green  shutters,  until  they  came  to  the  watch-house 
at  the  cross-roads.  Grootz  put  the  same  question  to  the 
watchman. 

"No,"  he  replied.  "I  saw  no  Englishman  with  a  boy. 
But  I  saw  a  party  of  English  horse;  they  had  come  in 
from  Rotterdam,  and  I  heard  afterwards  at  the  inn  they 
were  on  the  track  of  a  deserter." 

It  was  now  almost  dark ;  to  continue  the  search  further 
would  be  vain.  They  returned  home  to  their  belated  supper, 
Grootz  promising  to  set  exhaustive  enquiries  on  foot  in  the 
morning. 

That  night,  for  the  first  time  for  many  months,  Harry 
was  unable  to  sleep.  He  was  oppressed  by  perplexity  and 
uneasiness.  From  whatever  point  of  view  he  looked  at 
Sherebiah's  disappearance  it  seemed  equally  inexplicable. 
He  could  divine  no  motive  for  a  message  sent  to  Sherebiah 
in  his  name;  the  man  appeared  to  be  on  very  good  terms 

196 


Vain   Search 

with  Dutchmen  and  was  unlikely  to  have  private  enemies. 
Harry  was  almost  forced  to  the  conclusion  that  Gretel  had 
been  mistaken,  after  all,  and  that  Sherebiah  would  by  and 
by  return  with  a  simple  explanation  of  his  absence.  He 
might  have  met  "a  friend,  and  be  spending  a  convivial 
evening  with  him.  Perhaps  —  the  thought  came  like  an 
illumination — one  of  the  English  troopers  from  Rotterdam 
was  a  friend  of  his  —  a  Wiltshire  man,  possibly.  The 
suggestion  allayed  his  uneasiness,  and  he  fell  asleep  half 
expecting  to  be  called  by  Sherebiah  as  usual  next  morning. 

But  Sherebiah  did  not  return  that  night.  It  happened 
next  day  that  Mynheer  Grootz  was  early  summoned  to  a 
conference  with  a  committee  of  the  States  General,  and 
when  after  a  prolonged  discussion  he  was  released  he  had 
to  start  at  once  for  Leyden  on  important  business.  It  was 
late  before  he  returned.  Harry  meanwhile  had  lost  no 
time  in  pursuing  enquiries  in  every  likely  quarter,  but  in 
vain.  Sherebiah  had  not  returned;  nothing  had  been 
heard  of  him;  and  there  was  nothing  for  it  but  to  wait 
yet  another  day. 

He  was  again  wakeful,  and  his  thoughts  turned  to  the 
errand  on  which  the  party  of  English  horse  had  come.  He 
pitied  the  unfortunate  wretch  for  whom  they  were  in 
search — some  poor  fellow,  perhaps,  who  had  escaped  in 
the  hope  that  he  would  be  less  easily  tracked  in  a  foreign 
land.  The  punishment  for  desertion  had  become  much  more 
stringent  and  summary  of  late  owing  to  the  prevalence  of 
the  offence.  Harry  himself  remembered  one  bleak  morn- 
ing in  London  when,  having  gone  early  into  Hyde  Park,  he 
had  been  the  unwilling  spectator  of  the  shooting  of  a 
deserter.  Had  they  caught  the  man?  he  wondered.  "  I 

hope "  he  thought,  then  suddenly  a  strange  suspicion 

flashed  upon  him.  Surely  it  was  impossible;  yet In  a 

moment  slumbering  recollections  awoke.  He  remembered 
that  many  times,  when  approaching  English  soldiers  in 
London,  Sherebiah  had  sidled  away  and  disappeared.  He 
remembered  how,  more  than  once,  Sherry  had  shown  a 
knowledge  of  military  matters  singularly  intimate  for  a 

197 


A  Clue 

civilian ;  how  insistently  he  had  always  proclaimed  himself 
a  man  of  peace ;  how  hardily  he  had  behaved  in  the  fight 
at  Lindendaal.  These  facts,  and  many  a  slight  hint 
scarcely  regarded  before,  combined  to  convert  a  chance 
surmise,  almost  dismissed  as  absurd,  into  a  strong  pre- 
sumption little  short  of  certainty. 

He  sprang  out  of  bed,  dressed  quickly,  ran  downstairs 
with  his  slippers  in  his  hands,  and,  noiselessly  drawing  the 
bolts,  hurried  along  the  silent  street  towards  the  inn  on  the 
Rotterdam  Road  at  which  the  patrol  had  halted.  Though 
it  was  late,  the  people  of  the  inn  were  still  up.  He  asked 
for  the  landlord,  and  had  not  conversed  with  him  for  more 
than  a  minute  before  he  was  convinced,  from  what  was 
said  of  the  prisoner,  that  it  was  indeed  Sherebiah.  The 
troopers  had  brought  with  them  a  led  horse;  on  this  they 
had  mounted  the  deserter,  strapping  him  on  each  side  to 
a  dragoon,  and  then  ridden  off  at  once  towards  Rotterdam, 
en  route  for  Breda.  Returning  to  the  house,  Harry  woke 
Mynheer  Grootz,  told  him  of  what  he  had  learnt,  and 
proposed  to  start  at  once  for  Breda  to  allay  or  confirm  his 
suspicion.  From  this  the  merchant  dissuaded  him.  A 
night  ride  would  be  attended  with  difficulty  and  danger; 
if  he  started  early  in  the  morning,  he  might  still  overtake 
the  dragoons  before  they  reached  Breda.  Accordingly  he 
went  back  to  bed  for  a  few  hours.  At  dawn  he  rose, 
and  by  five  o'clock  was  galloping  towards  Rotterdam  on 
the  best  horse  in  Grootz's  stables. 

At  Rotterdam  he  learnt  that  a  body  of  English  horse, 
consisting  of  units  of  several  regiments,  had  left  for  Breda 
on  the  previous  afternoon.  Waiting  for  an  hour  to  rest 
and  bait  his  horse  he  pushed  on  to  Breda,  arriving  there 
about  one  o'clock  in  the  afternoon.  Without  delay  he 
sought  out  the  officer  to  whom  he  had  delivered  his  convoy 
of  provisions  a  few  weeks  before,  and  enquired  whether  he 
knew  of  the  arrest  of  an  English  deserter. 

"Ay,  and  a  notorious  character,  it  appears.  'Twas  not 
merely  desertion  they  had  against  him,  but  mutiny,  and 
a  murderous  attack  on  an  officer.  He  fought  like  a  cat 

198 


Sentenced 

when  he  was  arrested;  'twas  a  foolish  trick,  for  they  were 
ten  to  one,  and  in  a  little  he  was  overpowered.  He  was 
tried  by  court-martial  this  morning  at  nine,  and  the  trial 
was  short." 

"Was  sentence  pronounced?" 

' '  Of  course ;  he  had  no  defence ;  he  was  sentenced  to  be 
shot." 

"There  is  no  appeal?" 

"  None.  The  sentence  will  be  laid  before  my  lord  Marl- 
borough  for  confirmation ;  a  matter  of  form.  But  pray 
why  do  you  take  so  much  interest  in  the  man?" 

"  He  is  my  servant,  comes  from  my  village,  has  done 
me  right  faithful  service.  Good  God!  to  think  that  he 
should  come  to  this  end!" 

The  officer  shrugged. 

"  Unhappy  chance  indeed.  'Tis  seven  years  or  more 
since  he  deserted;  doubtless  he  felt  secure.  I  am  sorry 
for  you.  He'll  get  no  more  than  he  deserves." 

"Could  I  see  him?" 

"Certainly;  he  is  confined  in  the  town -house;  I  will 
take  you  to  him  myself." 

In  a  few  minutes  Harry  was  ushered  into  a  dark  room 
in  the  basement  of  the  town-house.  A  candle  was  lit;  he 
was  left  alone  with  the  prisoner,  and  the  door  was  locked 
behind  him. 

"Oh,  Sherry,  my  poor  fellow,  who  would  have  thought 
you  would  come  to  this!" 

"  Master  Harry,  'tis  good  of  'ee  to  come  and  see  me. 
Ay ;  poor  feller !  you  med  well  say  so ;  but  to  tell  'ee  the 
truth,  'tis  a  load  off  my  back." 

"Yes,  I  understand.  I  know  now  why  you  always 
scouted  the  soldiers  in  London.  Why  didn't  you  tell  me? 
I  would  never  have  brought  you  to  this  country,  with  our 
soldiers  here,  there,  and  everywhere." 

"Tell  'ee!  Not  me.  Why,  you  and  me  would  'a  had 
to  part  company  that  minute.  Besides,  'twarn't  zackly  a 
thing  to  be  proud  on,  look  at  it  how  'ee  will.  'Twas  ill- 
luck  I  were  nabbed,  to  be  sure;  but  I've  had  nigh  eight 
(B357)  199  0 


Confession 

year  as  a  man  o'  peace,  and  I  s'pose  'twas  time  the  lid 
were  putt  on  the  copper." 

"And  they'll  shoot  you!" 

"Bless  'ee,  I  bean't  afeard  o'  that.  I've  been  shot  at; 
ay,  many's  the  time:  at  Sedgemoor,  and  Walcourt,  and 
other  cities  o'  destruction.  I  can  stand  fire  wi'  any  man. 
Nay,  the  one  thing-  as  troubles  me  is  how  poor  old  feyther 
o'  mine'll  take  it.  The  poor  ancient  soul  never  dreams  I 
desarted ;  and  zooks !  'tis  that'll  hurt  un  more'n  my 
bein'  a  corpse;  his  boy  a  desarter,  and  him  a  trooper  of 
old  Noll's!  Ay,  that'll  hurt  un,  'twill  so.  And  then 
there's  you,  sir;  how  be  I  agwine  to  leave  'ee,  wi'  old 
Squire  and  Rafe  Aglionby  a-seeken  whom  they  may 
devour,  and  no  one  you  can  trust  to  polish  your  breast- 
plate and  oil  your  boots?  Ay,  the  way  o'  transgressors 
is  hard;  the  wages  o'  sin  is  death;  many's  the  time  I've 
yeard  they  holy  words  from  the  lips  of  pa'son  your  good 
feyther,  never  thinken  in  my  feeble  mind  he  were  aimen  at 
me." 

Harry  was  at  a  loss  for  words.  Sherebiah  was  so  per- 
fectly resigned  to  his  fate  that  any  attempt  at  consolation 
would  seem  an  impertinence. 

"  How  came  you  to  desert?"  he  asked,  to  gain  time. 

"Why,  I'll  tell  'ee  about  it.  I  was  a  corporal  in  Coy's 
horse;  med  ha'  been  a  sergeant  long  agoo,  indeed.  But 
there  was  a  paymaster  o'  that  regiment,  Robins  by  name ; 
a  good  sojer,  true,  but  with  his  faults,  like  any  other 
mortal  man.  He  was  hot  in  his  temper,  and  crooked  in 
his  dealens.  Us  men  was  bein'  cheated,  right  and  left; 
our  pay  was  small  enough,  but  we  never  got  it :  a  penny 
here  and  a  ha'penny  there  bein'  took  off  for  this  or  that. 
Ay,  and  he  was  a  knowen  one,  he  was.  All  done  so  soft 
and  quiet-like.  We  stood  it  a  long  time;  at  long  last, 
'twas  more'n  Minshull  blood  could  stomach,  and  one 
mornen  I  up  and  spoke  out;  you  see,  I  warn't  a  man  o' 
peace  then.  Well,  Robins  bein'  fiery  by  nature,  he  got 
nettled;  I  should  myself;  but  'tis  one  thing  to  get  nettled, 
and  another  to  use  yer  fist.  Robins  he  used  his  fist,  and 


A  Quiet  Mind 

not  bein'  zackly  meek  as  Moses,  I  used  mine,  and  he 
fell  under.  Two  or  three  of  my  mates  standen  by  saw  it 
all.  Robins  he  raved  and  called  on  'em  to  arrest  me,  but 
they  wouldn't.  But  'twas  all  up  wi'  me;  I  knowed  that 
well  enough;  if  Robins  took  a  spite  agen  a  man  he  med 
as  well  be  a  dead  dog.  I  had  no  mind  to  be  a  dead  dog 
just  then,  so  I  bolted;  and  that's  how  I  come  to  be  such 
a  man  o'  peace." 

"But  surely  if  you  explained  that,  your  punishment 
wouldn't  be  so  heavy." 

"  Explain!  Bless  'ee,  'twould  be  no  good  in  the  world. 
To  strike  a  officer  be  mortal  sin.  Nay,  I've  nowt  to  say 
for  myself;  I  must  just  take  my  wages." 

"  How  did  you  manage  to  elude  them  so  long?" 

"  Oh!  the  regiment  was  out  o'  my  way:  been  quartered 
this  many  year  in  Ireland.  'Twas  just  my  bad  luck  that 
they  should  ha'  been  sent  for  on  this  campaign.  Ah,  well! 
a  man  can  die  but  once;  I've  kep'  the  commandments,  and 
that's  more'n  Robins  can  say;  and  there's  no  command- 
ment '  Thee  shall  let  a  man  hit  'ee  and  say  thank  'ee '. 
I  bean't  afeard  o'  Them  above,  and  I'll  meet  'em  with 
head  up  and  eye  clear,  like  a  English  sojer." 

"When  is  it  to  be?" 

"  They  didn't  tell  me  that.  'Twill  not  be  long,  you  may 
be  sure.  My  lord  Marlborough  has  only  got  to  scribble 
his  name  on  the  paper,  and  he'll  never  remember  'twas 
me  as  held  his  horse  at  Salisbury  in  '88  and  got  nowt  but 
a  smile. — Master  Harry,  belike  I  sha'n't  see  'ee  again  in 
this  world.  When  you  go  home-along,  you'll  say  a  word  o' 
comfort  to  the  old  ancient  gaffer,  won't  'ee?  Tell  un  all 
the  truth;  tell  un  I  be  main  sorry  to  vex  his  old  gray 
hairs, — though  not  for  punchen  Robins.  Gi'  him  my  dear 
love:  his  boy,  he  calls  me,  poor  soul:  and  say  as  how  I 
were  quite  easy  in  mind  and  not  a  bit  afeard.  He's  a 
trooper  of  old  Noll's,  you  see." 

"  I'll  give  him  your  messages,"  said  Harry  with  a  gulp, 
— "if  ever  I  get  back  alive." 

"  Ay  true,  ye  med  not.  The  corn-dealen  was  a  safer  line 

201 


A   Friend  in  Camp 

o'  iife. — What!  time's  up." — A  sentry  had  thrown  open  the 
door. — "Good-bye,  Master  Harry;  God  bless  'ee!  and  I 
hope  you'll  get  a  man  as'll  polish  your  'coutrements  to 
your  mind.  This  time  to-morrow,  belike,  I  shall  be  a 
true  man  o'  peace." 

Harry  shook  his  hand  in  silence;  he  could  not  trust 
himself  to  speak.  He  was  angry  at  what  he  thought  the 
essential  injustice  of  the  sentence.  Sherebiah  had  only 
struck  the  paymaster  in  self-defence,  and  in  the  original 
cause  of  dissension  had  right  on  his  side.  But  Harry 
knew  what  military  discipline  meant ;  it  was  rigid  as  iron. 
Still,  he  could  not  help  asking  himself  whether  even  now 
it  was  impossible  to  get  the  whole  circumstances  con- 
sidered and  the  sentence  revised.  He  thought  of  making 
a  personal  appeal  to  Marlborough,  but  soon  dismissed 
the  idea,  for  Marlborough  had  doubtless  forgotten  him, 
and  he  had  no  force  of  persuasion  to  bring  to  bear. 
Suddenly,  as  he  walked  slowly  along  the  street,  he  re- 
membered Godfrey  Fanshawe;  he  was  an  officer  in  a 
companion  regiment,  Schomberg's  Horse;  he  would  ask 
his  advice.  He  enquired  for  the  quarters  of  the  regiment, 
found  that  it  was  encamped  a  short  distance  out  on  the 
Tilburg  road,  and  hastened  thither  with  an  anxious  heart. 

The  troops  were  under  canvas,  and  Harry  found  Fan- 
shawe joint  occupant  of  a  tent  with  a  fellow  subaltern. 

"Hullo!" 'he  cried  when  he  saw  Harry.  "I  wondered 
when  I  should  run  up  against  you.  I  have  heard  all  about 
your  feat — rescuing  beauty  and  all  that.  What  in  the 
world  brought  you  to  this  country?" 

"'Twould  be  long  in  the  telling.  You  shall  know  all 
in  season.  I  am  here  on  a  very  special  errand.  You  re- 
member Sherry  Minshull?" 

"As  well  as  I  do  you.  Many's  the  trout  we've  caught 
together.  A  right  good  fellow!" 

"  At  this  moment  he  is  lying  under  sentence  of  death  in 
the  town-house  at  Breda.  Unknown  to  me,  he  had  been 
a  soldier,  and  deserted  after  thrashing  an  officer " 

"  D'ye  know  him,  then?"  interposed  the  other  lieutenant. 
202 


The  Informer 

"  He  is  my  man." 

"Oh!  Sorry  for  you  both.  I  had  heard  about  it  from 
an  officer  of  Coy's — Cadogan's,  I  should  say;  their  name's 
changed." 

"  Do  you  know,,  sir,  how  he  came  to  be  smoked?" 

"  'Twas  an  Englishman  peached — a  soldier  of  fortune, 
as  it  appears,  who  wished  to  be  nameless.  He  met  the 
men  of  Cadogan's  when  they  landed  at  Rotterdam,  and 
arranged  a  trick  by  which  they  got  him  alone  on  the  open 
road.  'Twas  rather  cleverly  managed." 

"And  a  dirty  mean  thing  to  do,"  said  Fanshawe  warmly. 

"Can't  something  be  done  for  him?"  asked  Harry. 

"'Tis  hopeless,"  was  Lieutenant  Tettefall's  reply. 
"Robins  was  very  vindictive;  he  painted  the  man  in  the 
blackest  colours  in  his  evidence  before  the  court-martial, 
and  not  one  of  the  officers  of  the  court  knew  your  man. 
He  has  a  double  offence  to  answer  for;  'tis  certain  he'll 
be  shot  as  soon  as  the  forms  are  completed." 

Harry's  face  was  then  the  picture  of  blank  despair. 

"On  my  life,  'tis  a  thousand  pities!"  said  Fanshawe. 
"  I  fear  there  is  not  the  ghost  of  a  chance  for  him."  His 
face  gloomed  for  a  moment;  then  his  high  spirits  asserted 
themselves.  "But  come,  Harry,  'tis  no  good  taking  on 
about  it;  come  and  forget  it  over  a  bottle.  I  want  to 
hear  your  story." 

"No,  I'm  in  no  humour  for  racketing.  Would  to  God 
I  could  do  something  for  the  poor  fellow!  Would  the 
colonel  intercede  if  we  asked  him?" 

"  Not  he.  He  would  laugh  and  crack  a  joke.  If  Sherry 
were  a  Dutchman,  now!  The  duke  is  very  sweet  to  the 
Hollanders  at  this  time,  and  a  word  from  one  of  the  States 
might  turn  him." 

"  General  van  Santen!"  exclaimed  Harry.  "I  had  not 
thought  of  him.  'Twas  he  I  happened  to  be  of  use  to, 
and  Sherry  did  his  share  too.  Yes,  'twould  be  no  harm 
to  try  him.  Do  you  know  where  he  is?" 

"At  Lillo,"  said  Tettefall,   "full  thirty  miles  away." 

"I'll  ride  there.  Fanshawe,  can  you  lend  me  a  horse? 

203 


Intercession 

Mine  brought  me  from  the  Hague,  forty  miles  and  more, 
and  is  done  up." 

"  I'll  lend  you  mine.  I'd  like  to  save  Sherry,  but  'tis  a 
poor  chance.  Leave  your  horse;  I'll  send  him  and  another 
to  meet  you  on  the  way  back,  in  case  you  have  to  ride  for 
it." 

" 'Tis  good  of  you.     Do  you  know  the  road?" 

"The  easiest  for  you  is  by  Bergen-op-Zoom.  You  are 
less  likely  to  be  interrupted  that  way  than  by  the  Antwerp 
road ;  our  forces  are  camped  at  Calmpthout  on  that  road, 
and  you  might  be  delayed  in  passing  through  the  lines,  to 
say  nothing  of  falling  in  with  the  French  beyond." 

"Thanks  and  thanks  again!" 

"You'll  have  to  ride  hard,"  added  Tettefall.  "The 
duke's  at  Thielen,  twenty  miles  east  of  Lillo ;  and  there's 
no  time  to  lose." 

"No,  I  will  start  at  once." 

"And  good  luck  go  with  you!" 

Harry  was  soon  riding  at  a  smart  pace  along  the  road 
to  Bergen-op-Zoom,  whence  he  made  due  south  for  Lillo, 
reaching  that  small  fortified  place  about  seven  o'clock  in 
the  evening.  To  his  intense  disappointment  he  found  that 
General  van  Santen  was  at  the  British  head-quarters  at 
Thielen.  He  had  been  absent  all  day,  but  was  expected 
to  return  before  night.  Had  it  not  been  so  late  Harry 
would  have  started  to  meet  him  on  the  road,  but  he  did 
not  care  to  risk  missing  him.  He  waited  impatiently;  the 
general  arrived  soon  after  nine,  and  when  he  had  heard 
Harry's  story  he  consented  at  once  to  write  to  Marl- 
borough,  mentioning  that  the  bearer  of  the  letter  had 
earned  some  consideration  by  his  excellent  stratagem  at 
Lindendaal,  where  the  condemned  man  also  had  done 
good  service.  Armed  with  the  letter,  Harry  set  off  at  ten, 
hoping  to  cover  the  twenty  miles  to  Thielen  before  the  duke 
had  retired  to  rest. 

Before  starting,  General  van  Santen  warned  him  that 
parties  of  French  horse  were  out  observing  the  movements 
of  the  confederate  army.  Finding  that  he  was  not  familiar 

204 


Who  Goes  There? 

with  the  road,  the  general  sent  one  of  his  own  orderlies 
with  him,  warmly  wishing  him  success. 

The  two  riders  struck  across  the  fields  and  by  narrow 
bridle  paths  almost  due  east,  and  passing  through  one  or 
two  ruined  villages — among  them  Eckeren,  the  scene  of 
the  Dutch  defeat  on  June  3Oth — came  to  the  site  of  the 
French  camp,  vacated  and  burnt  on  the  approach  of  Marl- 
borough  some  ten  days  before.  The  air  was  murky,  the 
sky  dark,  and  Harry  was  glad  of  his  companion.  He  was 
oppressed  by  the  louring  prospect  of  Sherebiah's  fate,  and 
the  heaviness  of  the  night  was  not  apt  to  lighten  his  care. 
They  had  ridden  for  about  a  third  of  the  distance,  and  had 
just  left  the  highway  for  a  cross-road  that  saved  a  mile, 
when  all  at  once,  from  behind  a  hedge,  there  came  a  sharp 
challenge  in  French. 

"Who  goes  there?" 

"A  friend,"  said  Harry,  and,  pulling  up,  walked  his 
horse  slowly  forward. 

"Halt,  and  give  the  countersign!"  said  the  voice  per- 
emptorily, and  dimly,  a  few  yards  before  him,  Harry  saw 
a  horseman  come  into  the  road. 

"  Now  for  a  dash;  keep  close!"  whispered  Harry  to  the 
orderly. 

Setting  spurs  to  his  horse,  he  rode  straight  at  the  piquet, 
hoping  that  when  the  inevitable  shot  was  fired  it  would 
miss  him  in  the  darkness.  As  the  horse  sprang  forward 
there  was  a  report  and  a  blinding  flash,  and  a  choking  sob 
behind.  Harry  closed  with  the  Frenchman.  There  was 
no  time  to  draw  his  sword,  and  he  did  not  wish  to  raise 
a  further  alarm  by  discharging  his  pistols.  Forcing  his 
horse  against  the  flank  of  the  enemy's,  he  struck  the  man 
with  all  the  weight  of  his  fist,  and,  taking  him  by  surprise, 
knocked  him  from  his  saddle.  He  turned  to  look  for  his 
companion ;  he  was  prone  on  the  ground,  and  his  startled 
steed  had  taken  flight.  Dismounting  in  haste,  Harry 
found  in  a  moment  that  the  man  was  dead,  killed  by  the 
shot  intended  for  himself.  At  the  same  instant  he  heard 
a  sound  of  hoofs  from  behind  on  his  right.  Springing  on 

205 


Hit 

to  his  horse  he  set  him  at  the  gallop  across  a  flat  grassy 
plain,  bearing,  as  nearly  as  he  could  judge,  due  east. 
Suddenly  he  heard  the  thud  of  more  hoofs,  still  on  his 
right,  but  this  time  in  front  of  him.  Evidently  he  was 
being  headed  off  by  another  party  approaching  from  the 
south-east.  He  swerved  to  the  left,  intending  to  make 
a  detour;  as  he  did  so,  there  was  the  report  of  a  carbine 
from  behind  a  hedge  a  few  yards  away.  He  felt  his  horse 
quiver,  but  it  galloped  on,  the  man  who  had  fired  plung- 
ing through  the  hedge  in  hot  pursuit. 

Harry's  nerves  were  now  at  high  tension.  It  was  clear 
that  he  had  stumbled  upon  a  piquet  or  patrol,  or  even  a 
more  numerous  party  of  the  enemy,  and  the  odds  were 
in  favour  of  his  meeting  the  same  fate  as  the  poor  fellow 
his  guide.  Unhappily  his  horse  was  beginning  to  flag. 
Bending  forward  to  encourage  it,  and  patting  its  neck, 
he  felt  that  his  hand  was  covered  with  blood.  The  horse 
had  been  struck.  Harry  remembered  how  it  had  quivered. 
The  wound  accounted  for  its  laboured  breathing ;  it  was  a 
good  horse,  and,  not  having  as  yet  been  seriously  pressed, 
could  have  held  its  own  with  those  of  the  troopers  behind. 
But  it  was  plain  to  Harry  that,  with  the  horse  severely 
wounded,  the  race  must  now  be  short,  and  the  result 
inevitable.  The  distance  between  himself  and  his  pursuers 
was  already  lessening;  a  glance  behind  showed  him  four 
dark  figures  close  upon  his  heels ;  a  few  seconds  would 
decide  his  fate. 

At  the  moment  of  danger,  some  men  lose  their  heads, 
others  are  braced  to  the  quickest  exercise  of  their  faculties. 
Harry,  fortunately  for  himself,  was  of  the  latter  class.  He 
saw  that  to  ride  on  must  mean  speedy  capture ;  the  only 
chance  of  escape  was  to  dismount  and  slip  away  on  foot. 
But  the  country  here  was  quite  open,  he  would  instantly 
be  seen.  He  peered  anxiously  ahead;  yes,  there,  against 
the  indigo  sky,  was  a  dense  mass  of  black ;  it  was  a  plan- 
tation of  some  kind;  could  he  but  gain  that,  there  was  a 
bare  possibility.  He  dug  his  spurs  into  his  panting  steed, 
with  pity  for  the  poor  wounded  beast  carrying  him  so 

206 


The  Mantle  of  Night 

gallantly;  but  he  dared  not  spare  it;  apart  from  his  own 
fate,  another  life  hung  in  the  balance.  A  brief  effort  was 
needed;  the  horse  nobly  responded,  and  by  the  time  it 
reached  the  edge  of  the  wood  had  slightly  increased  the 
gap  between  pursuer  and  pursued.  Pulling  up  suddenly, 
Harry  sprang  from  the  saddle,  struck  the  trembling  animal 
with  his  scabbard,  and  as  he  slipped  among  the  trees  heard 
it  dash  forward. 

Being  wounded,  Harry  argued,  the  horse  would  certainly 
slacken  its  pace  when  no  longer  urged  by  the  voice  and 
spur  of  its  rider,  and  must  soon  be  overtaken.  The  enemy 
would  immediately  guess  his  device,  and  if  the  wood  should 
be  of  no  great  extent,  they  would  probably  surround  it,  wait 
till  morning,  and  capture  him  at  their  leisure.  He  waited 
breathlessly  for  the  coming  of  the  enemy;  he  saw  them 
sweep  past,  bending  low  in  their  saddles,  two  men  abreast, 
like  phantom  horsemen,  so  quietly  did  they  ride  on  the 
turf.  His  heart  gave  a  jump  when  he  estimated  them  as 
at  least  half  a  troop.  When  they  were  past  he  left  the 
wood,  and  ran  across  the  open  plain  at  right  angles  to  his 
previous  line  of  flight. 

As  he  expected,  his  manoeuvre  was  soon  discovered. 
He  heard  the  Frenchmen  call  to  one  another;  then  the 
thud  of  returning  hoofs  on  his  right,  and  in  a  few  minutes 
he  saw  several  dark  forms  approaching.  They  were 
spreading  out  fanvvise.  Only  the  men  at  the  right  of  the 
line  were  directly  approaching  him  at  a  trot,  searching  the 
ground  as  they  rode.  The  sky  was  lightening  behind  them; 
the  moon  was  rising;  fortunately,  Harry  being  on  foot,  the 
pursuers  could  not  see  him  so  clearly  as  he  saw  them. 

In  a  moment  he  perceived  that  it  was  a  race  between 
him  and  the  man  at  the  end  of  the  line.  If  he  could  get 
beyond  the  point  at  which  the  trooper's  present  line  of 
march  would  intersect  his  own  path,  he  had  a  reasonable 
chance  of  safety.  To  his  dismay  he  noticed  that  the  man 
was  edging  still  farther  from  his  comrades,  as  though  sus- 
pecting that  he  was  not  taking  a  sufficiently  wide  sweep. 
Harry  was  now  panting  with  his  exertions,  and  in  a  bath 

207 


In  a  Ditch 

of  sweat;  he  could  run  no  faster  over  the  heavy  ground; 
he  felt  that  the  game  was  up,  wondering  indeed  that  the 
"view  halloo!-"  had  not  already  been  given.  Plunging 
blindly,  despairingly,  on,  he  was  almost  at  his  last  gasp 
when  he  suddenly  fell  headlong.  He  had  stumbled  into  an 
irrigation  ditch.  It  was  overgrown  with  weeds;  in  the 
stress  of  war  the  culture  of  the  fields  had  been  neglected ; 
the  bottom  was  dry.  The  weeds  grew  high  on  either  side ; 
Harry  scrambled  on  hands  and  knees  into  the  rank  vege- 
tation, and  lay  still,  his  flanks  heaving,  his  breath  coming 
and  going  in  quick  pants  which  he  felt  must  be  audible 
yards  away. 

For  some  seconds  he  heard  nothing  but  his  deep  breath- 
ing and  the  thumping  of  his  heart;  then  the  beat  beat  of 
hoofs  drawing  nearer.  A  horseman  passed  within  a  few 
yards  of  him,  luckily  on  the  right.  Another  few  seconds, 
and  the  Frenchman  ejaculated  an  angry  "  Nom  d'un  ton- 
nerre!"  as  his  horse  struck  the  ditch  and  stumbled.  He 
called  to  his  left-hand  man,  and  Harry,  cautiously  peering 
through  the  enveloping  weeds,  saw  him  alight  and  begin 
to  examine  the  ditch.  But  he  moved  away  from  the  fugi- 
tive. As  soon  as  he  was  at  a  safe  distance,  Harry,  who  had 
by  this  time  recovered  his  breath,  crept  out  and  stealthily 
crawled  along  the  watercourse  on  hands  and  knees.  For 
some  minutes  he  continued  this  arduous  progress,  rejoicing 
to  hear  the  men's  voices  receding  moment  by  moment. 
Then,  judging  it  safe,  he  rose  and  broke  into  a  trot,  left 
the  ditch  by  and  by,  and  continued  to  pound  over  fields  and 
paths,  through  hedges  and  over  ditches,  for  what  seemed 
to  him  miles.  Then  he  stopped.  All  sounds  had  now 
ceased  save  the  chirp  of  crickets,  the  raucous  cry  of  the 
corn-crake,  and  the  croak  of  frogs.  He  had  lost  his  way ; 
he  knew  not  whether  he  was  near  a  highway ;  he  was  dead 
tired,  his  knees  trembling  under  him.  But  he  remembered 
Sherebiah  spending  his  lonely  vigil  in  the  town-house  ot 
Breda,  waiting  for  the  dawn  of  his  last  day,  and  he  set 
his  lips  and  breathed  a  vow  that  the  faithful  fellow  should 
not  die  if  the  last  ounce  of  energy  would  save  him. 

208 


"  CHAPTER  XIV 

Harry  Rides  for  a  Life 

YEARS  afterwards,  when  Harry  was  a  father  and  a  grand- 
father, and  the  children  came  about  his  knees  clamouring1 
for  a  story,  nothing-  held  them  more  entranced,  nothing- 
caused  them  such  delicious  creepiness,  as  his  account  of 
the  hours  that  followed  his  escape  from  the  French. 

"There  was  I,"  he  would  say,  "in  the  dead  of  night,  a 
white  mist  rising  from  the  fields,  growing  thicker  moment 
by  moment — and  I  knew  not  where  I  was,  knew  not  but 
an  unlucky  step  might  bring  me  again  among  the  enemy. 
My  knees  were  trembling  under  me;  my  mouth  was 
parched;  my  breast  like  to  burst  with  the  striving-  of 
my  breath ;  I  was  ready  to  drop  and  sleep  as  I  fell.  But 
the  thought  of  my  faithful  servant  in  that  prison ;  of  his 
being  led  out  and  blindfolded,  and  standing  up  helpless 
to  be  the  mark  of  bullets ;  of  his  poor  old  father  that  doted 
on  him — ah !  my  boys,  those  thoughts  were  like  a  goad  to 
me ;  'twas  as  if  I  was  urged  on  by  some  unseen  power. 

"I  could  not  now  see  the  stars,  so  thick  was  the  mist. 
I  could  not  choose  my  way.  I  could  but  go  forward  at  a 
venture,  praying  that  my  steps  might  be  directed  aright. 
I  staggered  into  slimy  ditches;  forced  my  way  through 
quickset  hedges,  waded  weedy  streams;  once  I  came  full 
upon  a  river  that  I  must  needs  swim.  There  was  never 
a  cottage  light  to  guide  me,  for  though  I  crossed  many  a 
field  of  corn  and  flax,  many  a  broad  space  of  pasture  land, 
I  came  nowhere  near  a  house  or  farm,  and  durst  not  turn 
aside,  feeling  as  if  some  strange  power  bade  me  go  on  and 
on.  I  know  not  for  how  many  hours  I  struggled  on  thus, 
taking  no  count  of  time;  nor  did  I  feel  conscious  of  my 

209 


The  Hour  before  Dawn 

great  fatigue,  but  moved  on  as  though  I  was  a  soul  with- 
out body. 

"  It  grew  darker  and  darker.  The  night  seemed  to 
press  upon  me,  the  mist  was  like  cold  clammy  hands 
seizing  me  to  hold  me  back.  Then  all  at  once,  going 
blindly  as  I  did,  I  well-nigh  struck  my  head  against  a 
low  wall,  and  was  immediately  conscious  of  the  smell  of 
tobacco.  'Twas  like  a  breath  of  heaven  to  me,  boys.  I 
cried  aloud,  and  the  echo  of  my  voice  seemed  that  of  a 
startled  ghost.  A  rough  voice  answered  me;  I  stood 
still,  my  heart  thumping  against  my  ribs.  Footsteps 
drew  near,  and  I  saw  the  blessed  light  of  a  lantern,  and 
in  a  moment  a  man  had  me  by  the  sleeve,  and  drew  back 
his  hand  with  a  cry,  for  my  garments  were  cold  and  wet, 
and  the  light  was  flashed  in  my  face,  and  I  saw  a  big 
Dutch  farmer,  who  took  his  pipe  from  his  mouth  and  bade 
me  tell  whence  I  had  come  and  what  was  my  business. 

"What  I  said  I  know  not  now,  boys,  but  soon  I  was 
wrapped  in  a  cloak,  lying  upon  hay  in  the  bottom  of  a 
jolting  wain,  and  my  new-found  friend  driving  through 
the  dawn  towards  Thielen.  I  fell  asleep,  and  when  the 
farmer's  heavy  hand  stirred  me,  I  was  in  Thielen,  and  all 
around  me  were  soldiers  and  horses  and  wagons;  'twas 
the  great  duke's  camp.  The  village  clock  was  striking 
four;  the  sky  was  already  bright;  the  camp  was  astir,  for 
the  duke  purposed  that  day  to  bridge  the  Nette. 

"What  figure  I  cut  you  may  imagine.  Wet,  cold,  di- 
shevelled, my  face  and  hands  and  clothes  all  bemired,  I 
crawled  as  best  I  might  from  the  cart,  and  staggered  to 
the  house  where  the  duke  was  quartered.  There  was  a 
sentry  at  the  door:  when  I  said  I  wished  to  see  the  duke 
he  flouted  me,  laughed  in  my  face,  and  was  for  turning 
me  away.  But  I  was  in  no  mood  to  be  delayed.  I  took 
from  my  tunic  the  sodden  letter  of  General  van  Santen, 
and  showed  it  to  the  fellow,  bidding  him  on  peril  of  his 
life  to  stay  me.  'Twas  enough:  he  called  to  a  servant; 
they  talked  together,  eyeing  me  as  though  I  were  some 
sorry  cur :  then  the  man  roughly  bade  me  follow  him,  and 


A  Trivial   Interruption 

within  a  little  I  stood  in  a  small  chamber,  looking  with 
dazed  eyes  at  the  man  seated  at  a  table  there:  'twas  my 
lord  Marlborough  himself." 

"A  letter  from  General  van  Santen,  my  lord." 

Marlborough  looked  up  as  the  servant  spoke,  but  did  not 
straighten  himself  from  his  bent  position  at  the  table,  nor 
remove  his  hands  from  the  pair  of  compasses  that  were 
stretched  on  the  map  there  outspread.  Several  officers 
were  grouped  about  him ;  at  a  smaller  table  sat  a  gentle- 
man dealing  with  a  mass  of  correspondence. 

"Mr.  Cardonnel,"  said  the  duke  briefly;  then  resumed 
his  discussion  with  the  officers. 

The  secretary  turned  sideways  and  took  the  letter.  He 
broke  the  seal,  ran  his  eye  hurriedly  over  the  paper,  then 
laid  it  on  the  table. 

"It  shall  be  looked  to,"  he  said,  and  bent  again  to  his 
writing. 

Harry  stood  for  a  moment;  all  his  blood  seemed  to  run 
cold.  Then,  his  whole  body  a-tingle,  he  stepped  forward. 

"Pardon  me,  sir,  the  matter  is  most  urgent;  'tis  a  case 
of  life  or  death.  If  you  would  be  so  good  as  to  lay  the 
letter  at  once  before  my  lord 

Mr.  Cardonnel  turned  and  stared  with  a  sort  of  scorn- 
ful wonder  at  the  dishevelled,  bedraggled  object  who 
addressed  him  in  an  English  and  a  cultivated  accent. 

"'Tis  too  late.  My  lord's  despatch  left  last  night;  the 
man  will  be  shot  in  a  few  hours;  the  matter  must  e'en 
take  its  course." 

"Sir,  may  I  beg  of  you Harry's  voice,  unknown 

to  himself,  was  raised  to  a  tone  of  passionate  entreaty. 
"My  lord " 

"What  is  it,  Mr.  Cardonnel?"  asked  Marlborough. 

"General  van  Santen,  my  lord,  asks  the  pardon  of  the 
deserter  Minshull,  sentenced  by  court-martial  to  be  shot. 
'Tis  too  late." 

"  Write  and  tell  the  general  so,  and  be  done  with  it." 

"  My  lord,"  broke  in  Harry,  "do  but  read  the  general's 

211 


Recollections 

letter.  I  have  rid  and  run  all  night  to  deliver  it;  the 
execution  will  not  yet  have  taken  place,  and  I  know 
well " 

"  Who  are  you,  sir?" 

The  duke  looked  puzzled  at  the  discrepancy  between 
the  tone  of  voice  and  the  disreputable  appearance  of  the 
youth  before  him. 

"  My  name  is  Rochester,  my  lord,  the  letter — I  entreat 
your  lordship  to  read  it — will  tell  the  rest." 

Marlborough  signed  to  the  secretary,  received  the  letter 
from  his  hand,  and  read  it  quickly.  It  was  not  long,  and 
the  last  paragraph  read  as  follows : — 

"  Perchance,  my  lord,  you  may  feel  that  the  man's  gallantry 
in  the  affair  at  the  Comtesse  de  Vaudrey's  may  be  set  against 
his  offence,  which  though  heinous  was  not  unprovoked  and  is 
now  some  years  old.  If  your  lordship  can  reconcile  it  with  the 
demands  of  discipline  to  pardon  this  unfortunate  man,  you  will 
I  trust  find  that  your  clemency  is  not  ill-bestowed." 

Marlborough  fixed  his  eyes  upon  Harry.  "  I  understand 
from  this  letter  that  the  man  is  your  servant?" 

He  spoke  in  the  low  pleasant  tone  that  never  varied, 
whether  he  addressed  peer  or  peasant. 

"Yes,  my  lord,  a  very  true  and  faithful  servant." 

"And  your  name  is  Rochester?  Have  I  not  met  you 
before?" 

"Yes,  my  lord,  well-nigh  a  year  ago." 

"Where?" 

"At  my  lord  Godolphin's." 

"At  my  lord  Godolphin's?"  A  slight  ruffle  marked  his 
broad  white  brow.  He  looked  keenly  at  Harry.  All  at 
once  his  expression  changed.  "  I  remember.  I  had  clean 
forgotten  it.  You  are  the  young  fellow  who  intervened  in 
my  lord's  roadside  adventure?  Ah!  and  now  I  bethink 
me,  'twas  your  man  that  did  the  shouting.  The  same 
man?" 

"Yes,  my  lord." 

"That  is  enough. — Mr.  Cardonnel,  make  out  at  once  an 

212 


Another  Memorandum 

order  pardoning  the  man — what  is  his  name? — and  dis- 
charging- him  from  the  army. — The  man  whose  lungs 
saved  the  Lord  Treasurer  has  decidedly  a  claim  to  indul- 
gence. But  I  fear,  Mr.  Rochester,  you  are  late.  These 
little  matters  are  'usually  determined  by  eight  o'clock  in  the 
morning.  It  is  near  five :  'twill  be  some  little  time  before 
I  can  despatch  an  orderly,  and  there  are  fifty  odd  miles 
to  ride." 

"With  your  leave,  my  lord,  I  will  go  myself." 

"So  be  it.  Mr.  Cardonnel  will  give  you  the  pardon 
and  discharge.  It  rests  with  you.  I  hope  you  will  be  in 
time.  Don't  spare  your  horses." 

"  I  thank  you,  my  lord,  from  the  bottom  of  my  heart." 

"There,  no  more:  get  to  horse.  Yet  one  moment:  did 
I  not — I  seem  to  remember  it — did  I  not  promise  to  do 
something  for  you?" 

"  'Twas  not  a  promise,  my  lord." 

Marlborough  smiled,  and  looked  at  the  boy  with 
approval. 

"But  I  intended  it  as  such.  I  wrote  your  name,  I 
recollect ;  papers  have  a  trick  of  losing  themselves :  I 
should  have  done  something  for  you  but  for  sheer  forget- 
fulness. — Mr.  Cardonnel,  will  you  please  make  a  note? 
Mr. — your  full  name,  sir!" 

"  Henry  Winterborne  Rochester." 

"  Mr.  Henry  Winterborne  Rochester  for  an  ensigncy. 
— I  had  heard  of  the  ruse  at  the  Comtesse  de  Vaudrey's: 
naturally  I  did  not  connect  it  with  you.  You  are  with 
Grootz  the  contractor,  I  believe?" 

"I  was,  my  lord,  but  I  have  just  been  commissioned 
cornet  in  the  Anspach  dragoons." 

Marlborough  and  the  group  of  officers  laughed  outright. 

"  Begad,  my  lord,  you're  behind  the  fair,"  cried  Colonel 
Cadogan,  a  big  burly  Irishman  of  twenty-eight,  Marl- 
borough's  quartermaster-general. 

"Ay,  indeed,  an  angel  has  stirred  the  pool.  But  I  am 
delaying  you,  Mr.  Rochester;  you  must  ride  hard.  Good- 
bye!" 

213 


The  Road  to  Breda 

Harry  had  been  itching  to  g-et  away.  Every  moment 
was  of  importance.  Bowing  himself  out,  he  hurried  to 
the  inn  where  Fanshawe  had  promised  to  stable  a  horse. 
It  was  there  ready  saddled,  in  charge  of  a  trooper  of 
Fanshawe's  regiment,  who  said  that  Harry's  own  charger 
Orange  was  awaiting  him  half-way  to  Breda.  Harry 
leapt  to  the  saddle,  flung  a  coin  to  the  man,  and  in  less 
than  two  minutes  was  making  his  way  at  a  sharp  trot 
among  the  press  of  villagers  and  soldiers  thronging  the 
street.  Clear  of  the  village  he  went  at  a  canter  through 
the  camp,  where  all  was  bustle  in  preparation  for  the  day's 
march :  then,  gaining  the  free  highroad,  he  set  his  steed 
to  the  gallop.  Some  minutes  later  he  heard  a  village 
clock  strike  five. 

Two  hours  after  Harry  started  on  his  ride,  Godfrey 
Fanshawe  left  his  tent  in  company  with  Lieutenant  Tette- 
fall,  and  mounted  his  horse  to  ride  into  Breda.  He  had 
passed  a  sleepless  and  anxious  night,  his  mind  haunted 
by  the  impending  fate  of  Sherebiah,  with  whom  he  had 
spent  many  a  pleasant  day  on  the  banks  of  the  Avon,  or 
in  the  coverts  of  his  father's  estate.  The  execution  had 
been  fixed  for  eight  by  the  clock  of  the  Hervormde  Kerk 
near  the  market-place,  Marlborough's  despatch  confirm- 
ing the  sentence  having  arrived  late  on  the  previous 
evening.  Fanshawe  had  seen  the  major  in  command, 
explaining  that  Harry  had  gone  to  see  the  duke  with  a 
view  to  a  remission  of  the  sentence.  The  major  had 
laughed  at  the  idea,  swearing  that  he  would  not  delay  the 
execution  a  moment. 

Galloping  into  Breda,  Fanshawe's  first  care  was  to 
enquire  whether  Harry  had  arrived,  or  whether  any  mes- 
sage had  come  from  Marlborough  countermanding  the 
execution.  But  nothing  had  been  heard  of  the  one  or  the 
other.  Fanshawe  made  a  last  appeal  to  the  major,  but 
Robins  had  that  officer's  ear,  and  had  convinced  him  that 
the  condemned  prisoner  was  a  rascal  of  whom  the  army 
would  be  well  rid. 

At  a  quarter  after  seven  the  regiment  was  paraded  and 

214 


.  The  Town  Clock 

marched  to  the  castle  park,  where  the  execution  was  to 
take  place.  Fanshawe  meanwhile  paced  moodily  up  and 
down,  watching  the  inexorable  clock.  Suddenly,  as  he 
looked  at  its  face  for  the  tenth  time,  he  remembered  a 
legend  of  the  Civil  War,  which  his  father  had  told  him: 
the  story  of  a  Royalist  trooper  who,  condemned  to  die 
at  the  ringing  of  the  curfew,  had  been  saved  by  the 
heroism  of  his  sweetheart,  who  climbed  the  belfry  tower, 
caught  the  clapper  of  the  bell,  and  with  her  delicate  hands 
had  prevented  the  fatal  sound.  His  recollection  suggested 
an  idea.  There  was  still  forty  minutes  to  spare. 

At  the  park  gate  a  knot  of  idlers  had  gathered  to  see 
the  condemned  man  pass  to  his  doom.  Singling  out  from 
among  these  a  likely  youth,  Fanshawe  held  with  him  a 
rapid  conversation  in  whispers ;  and  the  two  hurried  away. 

They  went  straight  to  the  sacristan  of  the  Hervormde 
Kerk,  whose  cottage  was  known  to  the  Dutch  youth.  By 
the  aid  of  this  interpreter  Fanshawe  explained  to  the  old 
man  that,  being  much  interested  in  church  clocks,  he  would 
like  to  climb  the  tower  and  see  the  mechanism,  at  the  same 
time  slipping  a  coin  into  the  man's  hand.  The  sacristan 
was  a  feeble,  tottering  old  fellow,  and  was  persuaded  with- 
out difficulty  to  hand  over  the  key  of  the  tower,  on  the 
promise  of  the  English  officer  to  return  it  within  an  hour. 
Armed  with  the  key,  Fanshawe  then  hurried  under  the 
boy's  guidance  to  the  chief  clock-maker's  in  the  town. 
His  shop  was  not  yet  open  for  business,  but  when  he 
learnt  that  a  clock  was  in  urgent  need  of  attention  he 
agreed  to  send  a  ypung  apprentice  to  oblige  the  English- 
man. At  twenty  minutes  to  eight  Fanshawe  with  the 
young  clock-maker  ascended  the  church  tower.  The  boy 
remained  at  the  door. 

The  clock  chimed  the  three-quarters. 

"Pray  God  Harry  arrive  in  time!"  was  Fanshawe's 
thought  as  he  returned  to  the  park  gate. 

The  clock  was  too  far  off  for  any  movement  of  the  hands 
to  be  noted.  Had  it  been  nearer,  a  close  observer  compar- 
ing with  his  own  watch  might  have  seen  that  from  this 

(B357)  21$  f 


Seven  Minutes 

time  the  long  hand  of  the  clock  advanced  one  minute  for 
every  two. 

It  still  marked  ten  minutes  to  eight  when  Sherebiah, 
with  bound  wrists,  came  up  under  guard.  He  smiled 
serenely  when,  entering  the  park,  he  saw  Fanshawe, 
whose  pale  anxious  looks  betrayed  his  suffering. 

"  Don't  'ee  take  on,  now,  Master  Godfrey,"  he  said. 
"  Let  'em  aim  well  and  ha'  done  wi't.  Bless  'ee,  I  bean't 
afeard.  But,  Master  Godfrey,  where  be  Master  Harry? 
To  say  good-bye,  I  mean." 

"  He — he  couldn't  come,  Sherry." 

"Ah!  Well,  'tis  no  sight  for  a  man  o'  peace,  and  he 
ha'n't  donned  the  breastplate  yet.  Gi'  un  my  love  and 
respect,  an  'ee  please,  sir;  and  axe  un  to  remember  the  old 
gaffer."  Fanshawe  gripped  his  hand,  and  he  passed  into 
the  park.  "  Nay,  I  won't  ha'  my  eyes  tied  up,"  he  said  to 
one  of  the  firing  squad  who  approached  to  bandage  him. 
"  Must,  must  I?  Well,  I'm  not  one  to  go  agen  the  law  at 
the  last.  Got  a  clean  firelock,  mate?  Ah!  there's  the 
bell  a-dingen.  Tell  Robins — nay,  I  was  gwine  to  forgive 
un,  but  I  won't;  I'll  leave  that  for  Them  above." 

By  this  time  he  was  standing,  with  eyes  bandaged, 
against  the  wall.  He  ceased  to  speak ;  the  last  stroke  of 
eight  had  already  sounded  from  several  steeples;  but  the 
clock  of  the  Hervormde  Kerk  still  wanted  seven  minutes 
of  the  hour.  Fanshawe's  eyes  were  riveted  on  the  hands; 
the  soldiers  stood  at  ease,  waiting. 

Meanwhile,  what  of  Harry? 

The  road  through  Turnhout  to  Breda  passes  through 
a  wide  moorland  region  and  crosses  the  river  Merk.  It 
was  a  somewhat  heavy  road  at  the  best,  and  the  recent 
passage  of  troops  and  baggage  wagons  had  made  it 
rutty  and  uneven.  Harry  had  started  at  a  stiff  gallop;  his 
horse  was  fresh,  and  seemed  to  catch  the  infection  of  his 
eagerness.  On  he  went,  scarcely  varying  his  pace,  his 
head  low,  his  ears  bent  back  for  his  rider's  encouraging 
words.  At  that  hour  the  road  was  free;  Harry  met  with 

216 


Against  Time 


no  obstruction.  He  dashed  through  Turnhout,  crossed 
the  river  to  Hoogstraaten,  and  there  found  his  own  black 
charger  awaiting  him.  He  was  not  quite  half-way  to 
Breda. 

"  Orange,  my  beauty,  you  must  go  as  you  never  went 
before,"  he  cried,  as  he  set  the  animal  at  a  gallop.  The 
horse  pricked  his  ears  in  response.  He  galloped  on  for 
mile  after  mile,  scattering  dust  around  him,  getting  many 
a  stare  of  wonderment  from  the  peasants  at  work  in  the 
fields.  As  the  miles  slipped  by,  Harry  anxiously  watched 
his  gallant  steed.  Great  flakes  of  foam  fell  from  the 
animal's  quivering  lips;  his  nostrils  were  distended  wide; 
his  white  eye-sockets  were  rimmed  with  red ;  and  still  he 
galloped,  panting,  striving  nobly  to  respond  to  the  caress- 
ing pats  and  cheering  words  of  his  master. 

''Twenty  minutes  more,  old  fellow!"  whispered  Harry 
in  the  beast's  ear.  "Twenty  minutes;  if  you  can  only 
hold  out!" 

He  was  nearing  the  end  of  his  ride,  but  the  poor  horse 
was  in  distress.  Spots  of  blood  crimsoned  the  white 
foam;  Harry  fancied  that  he  saw  despair  in  the  animal's 
starting  eyes;  and  when,  still  a  mile  on  the  wrong  side  of 
Ginneken,  he  heard  the  little  church  clock  strike  eight,  his 
heart  sank  within  him.  He  dared  not  press  the  horse 
further;  he  might  urge  it  to  a  short  spurt,  but  the  effort 
would  probably  be  its  last;  and  he  had  still  three  miles 
to  go! 

"  Well  done,  Orange,  my  beauty!"  he  cried,  patting  its 
ear.  "Good  horse!  Near  home  now;  a  few  minutes 
more,  old  fellow,  and  then " 

Thus  he  rode  on,  inspiriting  words  on  his  lips,  black 
despair  at  his  elbow.  He  knew  what  military  punctuality 
meant ;  his  ears  were  strained  to  catch  the  sharp  rattle  of 
musketry.  How  far  could  a  volley  be  heard?  He  could 
not  pause  to  speculate  on  the  question ;  all  he  could  hear 
was  the  ringing  of  his  flagging  steed's  hoofs. 

He  was  a  mile  from  Breda.  He  saw  the  whole  of  the 
little  town  before  him,  smoke  rising  from  the  chimneys; 

217 


Orange  Wins 


he  overtook  a  few  carts  slowly  wending"  towards  the 
market,  and  heard  the  wondering  exclamations  of  the 
wagoners  as  his  blood-flecked  steed  flashed  by.  His  eyes 
were  straining  towards  the  church  tower;  pray  God  the 
Ginneken  clock  was  fast !  But  he  was  too  far  away  to  see 
the  hands.  On  he  rode ;  he  came  to  the  open  gate ;  the 
sentry  challenged  him,  but  he  was  gone  before  the  man 
had  finished  the  phrase.  Now  he  dug  his  spurs  into  the 
horse's  heaving  flanks  for  a  last  spurt;  he  clattered 
through  the  ill-paved  street,  shouting  to  the  pedestrians 
to  make  way;  into  the  busy  little  market-place,  cumbered 
with  the  stalls  of  apple-women,  poulterers,  and  other  pur- 
veyors. Boys  scurried  like  rabbits  out  of  his  path ;  women 
raised  shrill  cries  as  stalls  were  thrown  down  and  apples 
rolled  wide;  dogs  barked  and  girls  shrieked;  but  he  was 
past ;  the  church  clock  said  one  minute  to  eight !  Out 
of  the  market-square,  round  the  corner, — and  there  was 
Tettefall,  hastening  to  meet  him. 

"To  the  park!"  cried  the  lieutenant. 

Harry  shouted  in  the  horse's  ear.  In  half  a  minute  he 
was  in  at  the  park  gate,  and  saw  as  in  a  mist  the  red 
uniforms  of  the  firing-party,  the  solitary  figure  of  the  con- 
demned man,  and  the  officer  in  advance  of  the  line  with  his 
eyes  on  the  clock. 

"Saved!"  he  cried,  flinging  the  duke's  order  into  the 
air.  In  a  moment  he  was  off  the  horse,  which  sank  a 
trembling,  heaving  heap  upon  the  ground. 

"Just  in  time — thank  God!"  gasped  Harry,  as  he  sat 
with  the  horse's  head  between  his  knees. 

And  upon  his  dazed  ear  there  fell  the  first  chimes  of  the 
beneficent  clock,  mingled  with  the  loud  curt  tones  of  the 
officer  in  command  as  he  gave  his  squad  the  order  to 
march. 


218 


The  Stroke  of  Eight 


CHAPTER  XV 

The  Water  of  Affliction 

BY  his  famous  ride  from  Thielen  to  Breda  Harry  became 
doubly  a  popular  hero.  Neither  citizens  nor  soldiers, 
Dutch  or  English,  felt  any  particular  concern  with  Shere- 
biah ;  but  Harry's  feat,  coming-  before  the  memory  of  his 
former  exploit  at  Lindendaal  had  died  out,  raised  him  to 
a  pitch  of  estimation  that  might  well  have  made  him  vain, 
but  which  in  truth  he  found  only  embarrassing.  Fanshawe, 
on  the  other  hand,  whose  ready  device  with  the  clock  had, 
as  Harry  was  the  first  to  acknowledge,  really  been  the 
means  of  saving  Sherebiah,  was  regarded  with  cold  un- 
friendliness and  even  dislike  by  the  townsfolk.  To  tamper 
with  the  town  clock  they  regarded  as  a  monstrous  and 
unpardonable  offence,  and  there  was  some  talk  of  laying 
a  formal  complaint  before  the  Duke  of  Marlborough.  The 
proposal  was  warmly  debated  in  the  borough  council,  and 
the  burgomaster  had  to  exercise  all  his  tact  to  prevent  the 
hotter  heads  from  carrying  the  day. 

As  for  Sherebiah,  he  was  a  different  man.  By  his  formal 
discharge  from  the  army  the  cloud  that  had  pressed  upon 
him  for  nearly  nine  years  was  dissolved ;  and  now  that  he 
had  become  by  official  licence,  as  it  were,  a  man  of  peace 
in  good  earnest,  he  developed,  not  merely  an  unexpected 
lightness  of  spirits,  but  a  surprising  partiality  for  the 
company  of  soldiers.  Every  leisure  moment  he  now  spent 
in  camp  or  barrack,  retailing  endless  anecdotes  of  his 
former  experiences  as  a  man  of  war,  and  basing  on  these 
a  right  to  criticise  and  instruct  which  younger  men  admitted 
with  humility,  to  the  immense  disgust  and  chagrin  of 
Robins. 

219 


The  New  Cornet 

A  few  days  after  the  incident,  Harry's  regiment  marched 
into  quarters  at  Breda,  and  General  van  Santen  himself  paid 
a  flying-  visit  to  the  town  in  order  to  introduce  the  new 
cornet  to  his  messmates.  Harry  was  welcomed  with  open 
arms,  less  through  the  general's  sponsorship  than  through 
the  fame  of  his  own  exploits  and  the  proof  he  had  given  of 
courage  and  daring.  One  little  fact  also,  which  leaked 
out  in  course  of  time,  did  much  to  consolidate  Harry's 
reputation  as  a  thoroughly  good  fellow.  He  made  it  his 
business  to  find  out  the  relatives  of  the  man  who  had  been 
killed  during  the  night  ride  from  Lillo.  The  poor  fellow 
had  left  a  wife  and  six  children,  the  eldest  a  boy  of  sixteen — 
a  slow,  earnest,  dogged  youth  who  was  overcome  with  shy- 
ness when  Harry,  at  the  interview  with  his  tearful  mother, 
asked  to  see  him.  Harry  liked  the  look  of  the  boy,  and 
offered  to  apprentice  him  to  an  armourer.  The  mother 
gladly  accepted ;  and  Mynheer  Grootz  further  undertook, 
at  Harry's  persuasion,  to  provide  employment  for  the 
widow  and  those  of  her  children  who  were  of  age  to  work. 
This  solicitude  of  Harry  for  the  family  of  a  man  who  after 
all  had  only  been  killed  by  the  fortune  of  war,  and  had 
no  claim  upon  him,  made  an  impression  on  the  officers  of 
his  regiment;  and  though  it  was  never  mentioned  in  his 
presence  at  mess,  it  doubtless  accounted  in  large  measure 
for  his  popularity  with  officers  and  men. 

For  some  weeks  Harry  was  fully  occupied  in  learning  his 
new  duties,  practising  with  sword  and  rapier,  and  improv- 
ing his  knowledge  of  Dutch :  Sherebiah's  command  of  the 
language  was  of  course  no  longer  a  mystery.  Schom- 
berg's  Horse,  to  which  Fanshawe  belonged,  being  likewise 
quartered  outside  Breda,  Harry  often  had  opportunities 
of  conversation  with  his  friend.  Naturally  Fanshawe  was 
amazed  to  hear  of  the  strange  enmity  of  Mr.  Berkeley, 
and  shrewdly  guessed  that  the  soldier  of  fortune  who  had 
informed  on  Sherebiah  was  Captain  Aglionby. 

"And  mark  my  words,"  he  said,  "'twas  another  move 
against  you.  Sherry  seems  to  have  been  a  sort  of  watch- 
dog to  you ;  him  out  of  the  way,  so  much  the  less  difficulty 


A  Visit  to  Lindendaal 

in  aiming-  at  you.  Though  what  cause  the  squire  has  to 
wish  you  ill  it  passes  my  wit  to  divine." 

"And  mine  too.  'Tis  a  desperate  revenge  on  me  for 
being-  my  father's  son." 

"  Have  a  care,  Harry.  Having  gone  so  far  they  will 
not  easily  be  baulked,  and  in  these  cut-and-thrust  times 
a  blow  in  the  dark,  eh? — exit  Harry  Rochester." 

"I'll  be  on  my  guard,  never  fear;  and  I  still  have 
Sherry." 

Harry  had  not  forgotten  his  friends  at  Lindendaal.  He 
rode  over  one  free  afternoon  some  three  weeks  after  join- 
ing his  regiment,  and  found  that  the  ladies  had  heard  of 
his  promotion,  and  of  his  ride,  from  Mynheer  Grootz. 
Madame  de  Vaudrey  was  ecstatic  in  her  congratulations, 
and  only  deplored  that  his  new  coat  was  not  more  brilliant. 

"  It  suits  you  well,  mon  ami,"  she  said,  "  but  for  myself 
I  should  like  better  the  red  than  the  blue." 

"  Indeed,  Madame,"  replied  Harry  with  a  laugh,  "  I 
hadn't  given  it  a  thought.  There's  one  advantage  in  a  dull 
garb:  it  presents  a  less  conspicuous  mark  to  the  enemy." 

"A  point,  Monsieur,  to  which  also  you  had  not  given 
a  thought  till  this  moment,"  said  Adele. 

Harry  laughed;  then,  changing  the  subject,  he  added: 
"  Have  you  heard  or  seen  anything  more  of  Monsieur  de 
Polignac  and  his  friend?" 

"  Nothing,  Monsieur  Harry,"  said  the  comtesse.  "And 
indeed  we  do  not  wish  to.  I  only  fear  lest  his  silence 
augurs  no  good  for  us.  As  for  his  friend,  that  odious 
captain prrrut ! " 

Madame's  indignation  was  too  great  for  articulate  ex- 
pression. The  idea  of  Aglionby  daring  to  pay  his  addresses 
to  her  was  too  monstrous.  As  was  her  wont  in  this  mood, 
she  prattled  away  about  her  late  husband,  Harry  listening 
sympathetically  and  wondering  at  the  half-smile  on  Adele's 
face.  When  taking  his  leave,  he  said : 

"An  old  friend  of  mine,  an  English  officer,  is  in  camp  at 
Breda.  May  I  bring  him,  Madame,  to  call  on  you  one 
day?" 

221 


Fanshawe  is  Presented 

"  I  shall  be  charmed,  mon  cher  ami." 

"  Fanshawe  speaks  little  French,  I  fear,  but- 


"Ah  bah!"  interrupted  the  lady,  "that  matters  nothing 
at  all.  Adele  shall  teach  him." 

"  I  shall  be  charmed,  as  Mamma  says,"  said  Adele. 

Harry  smiled;  nevertheless  the  suggestion  set  him 
thinking  as  he  rode  back,  and  he  felt  a  shade  of  annoy- 
ance when  Fanshawe,  to  whom  he  mentioned  the  circum- 
stance, laughed  heartily  and  quoted : 

"  '  Amo,  amas,  I  love  a  lass'.  Is  she  pretty,  Harry? 
By  George!  I  like  the  notion." 

The  two  rode  out  together  in  the  following  week ;  Fan- 
shawe made  a  good  impression  on  Madame  de  Vaudrey, 
and  his  stammering  French  and  good-humoured  laughter 
at  his  own  mistakes  appeared  to  form  a  bond  of  union 
between  him  and  Adele,  for  she  was  soon  chatting  and 
smiling  with  a  friendliness  and  freedom  quite  different 
from  her  reserved  attitude  towards  Harry.  Fanshawe 
talked  and  laughed  gaily  all  the  way  back ;  Harry  on 
the  contrary  was  decidedly  glum ;  and  when  Sherebiah 
came  to  him  at  night  as  usual  for  orders  his  master's 
unaccustomed  moodiness  did  not  escape  him. 

"  What  med  be  the  meanen  o'  this?"  he  muttered  as  he 
went  away. 

"  '  Yanker  didee  dudel  down 
Dida  dudel  launter ' 

I  must  ride  out-along  to  Lindendaal  one  o'  these  fine  days, 
and  putt  a  question  to  Katrinka — ay  sure." 

One  afternoon  in  the  second  week  of  September  Harry, 
having  finished  his  duties  for  the  day,  paid  a  visit  by  him- 
self to  Madame  de  Vaudrey.  He  found  the  good  lady  in 
tears,  and  Adele  with  very  pale  cheeks  and  a  suspicious 
redness  about  her  eyes. 

"Oh,  Monsieur  Harry!"  cried  the  comtesse  as  he  was 
shown  in,  "  how  glad  I  am  to  see  you !  This  is  a  moment 
when  I  need  a  friend.  Look  at  this  letter  from  that  odious 
Monsieur  de  Polignac.  My  poor  dear  husband!  I  am 

222 


The   Family  Skeleton 

glad — it  is  horrible  to  say  it — but  yes,  I  am  glad  he  did 
not  live  to  see  this  terrible  day.      Read  it,  cher  ami." 

Harry  looked  at  the  letter.  It  was  a  curt  and  formal 
note  from  Polignac  intimating-  that,  failing  compliance 
with  his  suit,  he  was  resolved  to  foreclose  his  mortgage 
on  the  estate  one  month  from  the  date  of  the  letter,  as  the 
terms  of  the  deed  provided.  He  still  offered  Mademoiselle 
his  hand  and  heart ;  did  she  accept  him  as  a  husband  he 
would  immediately  destroy  the  mortgage;  he  gave  her  a 
week  to  decide. 

"The  villain  !"  ejaculated  Harry. 

"  He  is  within  his  right,  Monsieur,"  said  Adele. 

"  Right!  Legal  right,  yes;  no  doubt  it  is  so;  but  who 
but  a  villain  would  put  the  matter  in  this  way!" 

"What  I  do  not  understand,"  said  Madame  de  Vaudrey, 
"  is  his  motive.  If  Adele  were  a  great  heiress,  I  can  under- 
stand that  he  should  press  his  suit;  but  she  is  not;  this 
poor  little  estate  would  not  tempt  an  ambitious  man;  and 
as  for  herself,  she  has  shown  her  aversion  so  plainly " 

"I  hate  him!"  cried  the  girl,  with  a  vehemence  that 
surprised  Harry,  so  unlike  was  it  to  her  usual  cold  self- 
contained  air. 

"It  is  wrong  to  hate,"  said  her  mother;  "but  the  dear 
girl  has  no  liking  for  him,  and  how  should  a  man  desire  for 
a  wife  one  to  whom  he  is  so  indifferent?" 

"Tell  me,"  said  Harry,  "is  the  mortgage  for  a  large 
sum?" 

"Alas!  yes,  for  several  thousand  guilders;  that  is  for 
the  estate  alone:  the  house  is  separately  mortgaged,  and 
the  mortgagee  in  that  case  is  content  to  receive  his 
interest." 

"Have  you  no  relatives  who  would  advance  the  money?" 

"  Not  one.  We  are  poor  exiles,  and  have  not,  I  believe, 
one  relative  in  the  wide  world." 

Harry  was  greatly  distressed.  It  was  clear  that  Adele 
would  never  consent  to  marry  Polignac,  even  if  her  mother 
wished  it ;  and  there  was  no  escape  from  the  dilemma  save 
by  raising  the  money. 

223 


Madame  Protests 

"Are  you  quite  sure  you  are  so  fully  in  the  man's 
power?"  he  asked. 

"  I  know  it  too  well.  There  is  no  flaw  in  the  documents; 
my  dear  husband's  lawyer  is  a  good  man;  we  have  no 
way  of  escape." 

"  Of  course  you  have  consulted  him?" 

"Yes;  he  can  do  nothing".  It  is  law,  he  tells  me;  we 
have  no  other  property  the  sale  of  which  might  pay  off  the 
mortgage ;  I  have  nothing  but  my  jewels,  the  gifts  of  my 
dear  comte,  and  they  would  not  bring  one-tenth  of  the  sum 
we  need.  The  income  from  the  estate  would  enable  us  to 
pay  off  the  mortgage  in  ten  years  if  we  were  given  time." 

A  ray  of  light  struck  suddenly  upon  Harry. 

"  Does  Mynheer  Grootz  know?"  he  asked. 

"Oh  no!  Mynheer  Grootz  is  indeed  a  friend,  but  he 
could  do  nothing — nothing." 

"  I  am  not  sure  of  that.  I  think  he  should  be  told.  It 
is  a  matter  of  business ;  he  is  a  shrewd  man  of  business ; 
he  may  be  able  to  see  a  way  out  of  the  difficulty  that  we 
are  ignorant  of;  with  your  leave  I  will  put  the  case  to 
him." 

"  No,  Monsieur  Harry,  I  forbid  it.  I  prefer  that  Myn- 
heer Grootz  should  not  know.  He  has  enough  to  do, 
I  am  sure,  without  being  troubled  with  a  poor  woman's 
affairs.  I  do  not  say  he  has  not  a  good  heart;  he  has; 
he  knows  how  fond  I  am  of  rare  tulips,  and  has  so  kindly 
given  me  bulbs ;  but  no,  I  could  not  seek  other  favours 
from  him,  I  could  not  indeed.  Besides,  the  lawyer  has 
said,  nothing  can  be  done ;  Mynheer  Grootz  can  do 
nothing  against  the  law." 

"True,  Madame;  and  yet — it  is  a  chance;  it  can  surely 
do  no  harm " 

"You  do  not  understand,  Monsieur;  it  may  do  the  very 
greatest  harm." 

Harry  was  mystified,  especially  as  he  fancied  he  detected 
the  glimmer  of  a  smile  on  Adele's  face. 

"  I  do  not  understand "  he  began. 

"  Mother  cannot  explain,"  said  Adele  quietly.  "  I  do 
224 


Mademoiselle  Insists 

not  agree  with  her;  I  think  she  is  quite  mistaken;  cer- 
tainly Mynheer  Grootz  should  be  told." 

"  Adele,  you  are  a  child;  one  cannot  expect  you  to 
understand." 

"  Maman  che"rie,  do  you  think  so?  You  are  a  goose, 
petite  Maman.  Monsieur,  believe  me,  it  will  be  the  very 
best  thing-  in  the  world  to  consult  Mynheer  Grootz." 

"Adele!" 

"  It  will,  Mamma.  It  is  a  poor  chance,  I  fear,  but 
ought  we  to  neglect  even  the  least?  and  you  do  not  wish 
me  to  marry  Monsieur  de  Polignac?" 

"  Mon  Dieu,  non!  A  thousand  times  no!  The  odious 
man ! " 

"  Then,  Madame,"  said  Harry,  "  I  will  venture  to  see 
Mynheer  Grootz  as  soon  as  I  can, — or  perhaps  write  to 
him." 

"  Eh  bien!  it  is  against  my  will.  I  protest;  I  can  do  no 
more.  You  will  tell  him  I  protested?" 

"  Certainly,  I  shall  not  forget.  I  will  let  you  know 
what  he  says ;  perhaps  he  will  come  himself.  Madame, 
have  a  good  heart ;  why,  if  all  else  fails,  there  is  my  man 
Sherry;  you  remember  how  he  embraced  the  gentlemen?" 

Adele  laughed,  but  the  comtesse  was  too  much  distressed 
to  see  any  humour  in  the  situation.  Harry  was  surprised 
at  the  flutter  into  which  his  simple  suggestion  had  thrown 
her,  and  rode  away  feeling  puzzled  at  the  strange  ways  of 
women. 

He  was  spared  the  necessity  of  writing  to  Mynheer 
Grootz,  for  on  reaching  his  quarters  he  learnt  that  the 
merchant  had  called  during  the  evening,  and  had  left  word 
that  he  might  be  seen  next  afternoon  after  his  business 
with  the  commissary  was  concluded.  He  heard  Harry's 
story  quietly. 

"  Leave  it  to  me,  Harry,"  he  said,  his  little  eyes  twink- 
ling. "  I  will  promise  dis  Monsieur  de  Polignac  a  little 
surprise.  He  is  a  noble;  zo  I  guess  by  de  name.  Dey 
are  all  de  same,  dese  nobles;  and  I  promise  Monsieur  de 
Polignac  zall  be  made  to  know  dat  dis  is  Holland,  not 

225 


Mynheer  is  Mysterious 

France,  and  moreover  dat  one  honest  Dutchman  is  match 
for  a  score  of  rascal  French.  Dis  man  dink  he  have  only 
a  woman  to  deal  wid;  well,  he  zall  be  undeceive." 

"  Will  you  see  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  then,  or  write  to 
her?" 

"  No,  neider  will  I  zee  her,  nor  write  to  her.  But  you 
— you  will  tell  her  by  no  means  to  answer  dis  Monsieur  de 
Polignac.  He  will  foreclose  in  a  month,  you  zay?  Very 
well.  He  zall  meet  wid  a  surprise.  Now  tell  me  one 
ding.  Madame  la  Comtesse — did  she  ask  you  to  come  to 
me?" 

"Quite  the  contrary,  Mynheer;  she  did  not  wish  it,  I 
did  not  understand  why ;  the  reasons  she  gave  were  some- 
what lame." 

Then  for  the  first  time  in  Harry's  knowledge  of  the 
Dutch  merchant  he  saw  him  excited. 

"By  den  donder!"  he  exclaimed,  slapping  his  thigh. 
Noting  Harry's  glance  of  astonishment  he  chuckled  again, 
adding:  "I  tell  you  dis;  you  alzo  zall  zee  someding." 
He  wagged  his  forefinger  knowingly. 

"  You  have  told  me  nothing,"  said  Harry  with  a  smile. 

"  No,  dat  is  true.  In  good  time.  You  do  not  yet  know 
me,  Jan  Grootz." 

Harry  gave  Madame  de  Vaudrey  the  Dutchman's  mes- 
sage, and  after  that  found  only  one  opportunity  of  visiting 
her  for  nearly  a  month.  On  that  occasion  she  showed  him 
a  final  letter  from  Polignac,  announcing  that  on  a  specified 
day  he  would  attend  at  the  house  to  receive  payment  of 
his  mortgage,  or,  in  default,  possession  of  the  property. 
The  comtesse  had  heard  nothing  from  Grootz,  and  was 
in  great  distress,  refusing  to  be  comforted  when  Harry 
assured  her  that  all  would  be  well.  On  his  return  to 
Breda  he  wrote  to  Grootz  informing  him  of  Polignac's 
letter,  and  next  day  received  a  reply  asking  him  to  arrange 
if  possible  to  keep  the  day  named  free. 

Early  on  the  morning  of  that  September  day,  Grootz 
with  Harry,  Sherebiah,  and  two  men  with  large  bags 
slung  at  their  saddles,  rode  out  from  Breda  to  Lindendaal. 

226 


A  Silent  House 

When  the  door  was  opened  by  old  Jean,  and  they  had 
entered,  Grootz  bade  him  close  it  and  slip  one  of  the  bolts 
half-way  into  its  socket.  After  a  short  conversation  with 
the  servant  he  went  into  the  reception-room,  had  the  bags 
laid  on  the  table,  threw  himself  into  the  biggest  chair,  and 
calmly  lit  his  pipe. 

"  Madame  abhors  tobacco,  Mynheer,"  Harry  ventured 
to  say. 

"  Huh!  Zo  I  now  remember.  It  is  a  pity;  I  must  put 
out  my  pipe,  even  though  she  be  not  here." 

"  She  is  gone  from  home,  then?  I  fancied  so  by  the 
manner  of  your  entering." 

"Ja!  At  dis  moment  she  and  de  juffrouw  are,  as  I 
suppose,  fast  asleep  in  Breda.  Dey  come  dere  last  night." 

"  Oh!     And  we  receive  Monsieur  de  Polignac?" 

"  Dat  is  zo;  toe  receive  Monsieur  de  Polignac." 

Deprived  of  the  solace  of  his  pipe,  Grootz  settled  himself 
to  sleep  in  his  chair.  An  hour  or  more  later  he  was 
wakened  by  Harry. 

"  Here  they  are,  Mynheer!" 

"Zo!" 

He  was  up  in  a  moment,  and  from  the  window  saw 
Polignac,  accompanied  by  Aglionby  and  two  sturdy  hench- 
men, walking  up  the  drive  towards  the  house. 

"  Zooks!"  exclaimed  Sherebiah,  "  here  be  Rafe  Aglionby 
again.  'Twill  be  no  cuddle  this  time  if  I  lay  hands  on 
him.  No  thanks  to  he  I  be  not  a  dead  corpse  to-day." 

"  Sherebiah,  it  is  my  turn,"  said  Grootz  solemnly. 

"  Zackly,  Mynheer,  all  fair  and  no  favour." 

The  four  men  came  to  the  door,  and  the  bell  gave  forth 
a  resounding  clang.  All  was  silent  within  the  house,  and 
Jean  at  Grootz's  orders  paid  no  heed  to  the  appeal. 
Again  the  bell  sounded ;  again  there  was  no  response. 
Then  Aglionby  with  an  oath  began  to  hammer  on  the 
door  with  his  riding-whip.  Even  this  noisy  summons 
being  disregarded,  after  a  moment's  consultation  Polignac 
ordered  one  of  his  men  to  burst  in  the  door.  It  yielded 
easily  to  his  force,  and  the  four  trooped  in — to  find  them- 

227 


The  Law  Allows  It 

selves  confronted  by  Grootz,  with  Harry  and  Sherebiah 
behind  him.  At  the  same  moment  six  of  the  men  about 
the  estate  came  quietly  from  behind  the  house  and  arranged 
themselves  in  two  parties  on  both  sides  of  the  entrance, 
outside,  and  out  of  view  from  within.  Jean  had  fulfilled 
his  instructions. 

Polignac  halted  in  some  embarrassment  when  he  saw 
Grootz,  and  Aglionby  looked  far  from  comfortable  at  this 
unexpected  meeting  with  the  two  men  he  had  injured. 

"  Messieurs,  I  ask  you,"  began  Grootz  in  slow,  halting 
French,  "  what  is  the  meaning  of  this  forcible  entry?" 

"  Pardon,  Monsieur,"  replied  Polignac,  recovering  his 
sang-froid  instantly.  "  I  have  not  the  pleasure.  I  came 
to  see  Madame  la  Comtesse  de  Vaudrey." 

"  Zo?  And  permit  me  to  ask,  what  is  your  business 
with  Madame  la  Comtesse  de  Vaudrey?" 

"  Before  I  reply,  permit  me  to  ask  by  what  right  you 
question  me,  and  what  you  are  doing  here?" 

"Decidedly,  Monsieur.  My  name  is  Jan  Grootz;  I  am 
here  by  the  power  of  attorney  I  hold  from  Madame  de 
Vaudrey.  I  beg  you  see  it  is  in  due  form." 

He  exhibited  a  roll  of  parchment  which  Polignac  glanced 
at;  he  was  patently  annoyed;  his  mouth  twitched  towards 
his  left  ear.  Aglionby  meanwhile  had  edged  towards  him, 
evidently  with  the  intention  of  whispering  something; 
but  Sherebiah  noted  the  movement  and  exclaimed : 

"  Keep  a  still  tongue,  Rafe  Aglionby,  'ee  were  best,  I 
tell  'ee." 

"  You  are  aware,  then,  Monsieur,"  said  Polignac,  "that 
I  come  according  to  due  notice  as  required  by  law  to 
demand  payment  of  a  bond,  or  possession  of  this  estate, 
as  provided  in  the  deed?" 

"Yes;  I  know  it;  what  is  the  amount  payable  under 
the  bond?" 

"  Fourteen  thousand  guilders,  Monsieur." 

Grootz  pointed  through  the  open  doorway  of  the 
reception-room  to  the  bags  upon  the  table. 

"There  is  the  money,  Monsieur.  You  will  please  to 
228 


Not  in  the  Bond 

count  it,  and  give  me  a  quittance,  and  hand  the  bond  to 
me  to  be  destroyed." 

With  disappointment  and  rage  written  upon  his  face, 
Polignac  proceeded  to  count  the  money  with  Aglionby's 
assistance.  It  was  a  longish  process,  and  neither  of  the 
men  felt  quite  at  ease  under  the  gaze  of  the  onlookers. 
At  last  it  was  finished ;  Polignac  wrote  a  receipt,  and  gave 
the  cancelled  bond  to  Grootz.  Not  a  word  was  spoken 
while  these  formalities  were  complied  with.  Harry  noticed 
that  Sherebiah  had  placed  himself  between  Aglionby  and 
the  door. 

"Zo!"  said  Grootz.  "Wait  one  minute,  Monsieur." 
He  unrolled  the  deed,  ran  his  eye  over  it,  then  looked  up 
and  said  with  deliberate  gravity:  "Permit  me  to  draw 
your  attention  to  the  fact  that  the  property  named  in  this 
document  is  the  land  belonging  to  the  estate.  It  does  not 
include  the  house  and  its  appurtenances.  Wherefore  it 
appears,  Monsieur,  that  you,  with  a  band  of  ruffian  hire- 
lings, have  violently  broken  into  the  private  house  of  a 
lady  who  enjoys  the  protection  of  the  Dutch  flag.  That 
is,  permit  me  to  observe,  Monsieur,  a  breach  of  the  law, 
and  subjects  you  to  a  penalty — heavy,  no  doubt;  I  do  not 
know  the  law.  But  for  the  present,  since  the  law  moves 
somewhat  slowly,  it  would  not  surprise  me  if  the  servants 
of  Madame  la  Comtesse,  who  are  devoted  to  their  mis- 
tress, should  prefer  to  anticipate  the  sentence.  They  may 
be  disposed  to  do  what  every  honest  and  indignant  Hol- 
lander would  certainly  do  in  the  circumstances." 

At  a  signal  the  half-dozen  Dutch  servants  moved  to  the 
door  and  blocked  the  entrance. 

"Men,"  said  Grootz  to  them,  "these  gentlemen,  who 
are  not  Hollanders,  have  broken  into  your  mistress's 
house.  I  do  not  give  you  any  advice ;  but  for  myself  I  do 
not  think  it  would  be  a  breach  of  the  law  if  you  should 
throw  these  gentlemen  into  the  canal  yonder. — Do  not  be 
alarmed,  gentlemen;  it  is  cold,  I  fear,  and  dirty,  but  as 
honest  Hollanders  Madame  de  Vaudrey's  servants  will  not 
allow  you  to  drown,  for  all  their  indignation." 

22Q 


In  the  Canal 

Half- way  through  this  speech  Polignac  and  Aglionby 
had  both  made  to  draw  their  swords;  but  the  six  Hol- 
landers seized  upon  them;  in  a  trice  they  were  over- 
powered. Their  two  men  looked  on,  trembling-.  Polignac, 
white  to  the  lips,  held  his  peace;  but  Aglionby,  after 
wriggling  vainly  in  the  hands  of  his  captors,  turned  his 
head  towards  Sherebiah  and  cried: 

"Zounds,  Sherry,  you  will  not  stand  by  and  see  your 
own  cousin  so  misused.  Tis  a  vile  plot.  I  have  done 
nothing;  what  are  the  ladies  to  me?  what  is  Polignac  to 
me?  Sherry,  unhand  these  boors;  I  shall  catch  my  death 
of  cold ;  Sherry,  I  say,  blood  is  thicker  than  water " 

"Ay  sure,  but  it  bean't  so  cold." 

"  Od  rat  you!"  shouted  the  enraged  captain  as  he  was 
hauled  with  Polignac  out  of  the  house.  He  kept  up  his 
clamorous  entreaties  and  oaths  until  the  very  moment 
when,  with  a  sounding  splash,  he  was  heaved  into  the 
canal,  and  with  spluttering  breathlessness  struck  out  with 
Polignac  for  the  other  side.  A  moment's  observation 
sufficed  to  show  the  Hollanders  that  their  victims  could 
swim ;  they  watched  the  scene  with  Dutch  stolidity,  Grootz 
placidly  smoking  his  long-deferred  pipe. 

"Ay,  'tis  the  water  of  affliction,  as  the  Book  says," 
remarked  Sherebiah  sententiously  as  he  watched  the 
swimmers  gain  the  farther  bank,  clamber  up,  and  slink 
away,  Aglionby  obviously  pouring  out  the  vials  of  his 
wrath  upon  the  miserable  Frenchman.  "  'Tis  the  fust 
time  for  many  a  day  cold  water  have  gone  down  Rafe's 
throat,  and  mebbe  he's  changed  his  mind  by  now  about 
blood  bein'  thicker  'n  this  water." 

"  I  admire  your  strategy,  Mynheer,"  said  Harry  to 
Grootz. 

"  Zo!  We  must  send  dis  money  to  Polignac;  his  house 
is  near  at  hand.  Dere  is  one  ding  to  zay:  de  house  is 
mine,  after  all.  I  paid  off  de  mortgage  last  week — let  us 
zay,  for  a  friend.  Dat  is  all  dat  Madame  need  know: 
Grootz  has  paid  de  bonds — both  bonds,  house  and  land—- 
for a  friend:  a  matter  of  business;  you  understand." 

230 


Sherebiah  Owns   Up 

"Very  well,  Mynheer;  I  will  be  diplomatic  if  she  asks 
for  more  information." 

But  Harry  was  as  much  puzzled  by  Grootz's  attitude  as 
he  had  been  by  the  lady's. 

"So  Captain  Aglionby  is  your  cousin?"  he  said  to 
Sherebiah  later  in  the  day. 

' '  Ay,  to  be  sure :  old  feyther's  sister's  son.  A  fine 
loven  feller  for  a  coz,  bean't  he,  sir?" 

"  He  has  got  off  too  lightly,  Sherry." 

"  Mebbe,  but  he'll  come  to  his  reckonen  some  day.  You 
mind  seein'  me  trounce  un  the  day  arter  I  shouted  for  the 
noble  lord?" 

"Yes,  and  you  would  not  tell  me  the  reason." 

"  Nay,  I  was  'shamed  for  my  blood.  Folks  thowt  'twas 
Rafe  as  loosed  John  Simmons.  'Twarn't  him;  'twas  me." 

"You!" 

' '  Ay.  I  knowed  as  the  highway  business  were  a  trick  o' 
Rafe's,  and  I  knowed  as  how  Simmons  would  split  on  un. 
Fat'll  be  in  fire  then,  thinks  I.  Rafe'll  go  to  hangman, 
and  poor  old  feyther  o'  mine'll  die  o'  shame  at  such  a 
kicken  end  for  his  own  sister's  child.  I  couldn't  stand 
that,  sir,  so  when  Willum  Nokes  was  a-snoren  I  took 
down  keys  from  the  nail  and  had  Simmons  out  in  a 
twink." 

"  But  that  doesn't  explain  why  you  fought  the  captain." 

"  Ay,  but  it  do.  Here  was  I,  goen  agen  the  law,  diddlen 
Sir  Godfrey  and  other  high  justices,  cheaten  hangman  and 
all — and  what  for,  I  axe  'ee?  'Cos  Minshull  blood  was 
cussed  wi'  mixen  wi'  Aglionby's.  Aglionby  blood  had  got 
to  pay,  someways,  and  so  it  did,  to  be  sure,  for  I  took  a 
half-pint  or  so  out  of  Rafe  that  mornen." 


(BUT)  231 


CHAPTER  XVI 

Knaves  all  Three 

CAPTAIN  AGLIONBY  sanded  the  paper  he  had  just  written 
upon,  and  leant  back  in  his  chair  with  a  sigh  of  satis- 
faction. He  heard  the  sound  of  footsteps  on  the  stairs. 

"  Here,  Mynheer,"  said  the  voice  of  his  landlord. 

With  an  instinctive  movement  he  covered  the  letter,  and 
turned  on  his  chair,  in  time  to  see  the  door  open  and  a 
visitor  enter.  He  stared  for  a  moment  in  speechless  amaze- 
ment ;  then,  attempting"  clumsily  to  shove  the  letter  entirely 
out  of  sight  beneath  a  plate  containing  the  crumbs  of  a  fish 
pat£,  he  got  up  and  said : 

"Why,  Mr.  Berkeley;  adzooks!  'tis  the  last  man  I 
could  have  expected  to  see,  the  last  man  —  though  a 
pleasant  surprise,  an  uncommonly  pleasant  surprise." 

"Humph!"  grunted  the  old  man,  with  a  glance  round 
the  mean  room.  "  I  feared  you  would  resent  my  too 
abrupt  entry.  After  what  I  had  learnt  in  your  letters  about 
your  magnificent,  expensive,  modish  apartment,  I  could 
not  suppose  I  was  walking  straight  into  your  parlour — 
h'm!  study;  h'm!  bedroom  and — pantry,  h'm!" 

"No  apologies,  my  friend,  I  beg.  You  take  me  at 
a  disadvantage,  having  but  just  consumed  my  modest 
repast " 

"Fish!  My  nose  informs  me.  'Tis  the  fortieth  smell 
that  has  offended  my  senses  within  a  quarter  of  an  hour. 
'Twas  somewhat  difficult  to  discover  your — mansion.  You 
are  not,  it  appears,  so  well  known  at  the  Hague  as  you 
give  out;  and  when  I  named  you  at  my  inn,  with  your 
address,  I  was  advised  to  bring  an  escort.  I  came 

alone " 

333 


Labour  Lost 

"Ah!  Nicolas  Berkeley  knows  how  to  take  care  of 
himself — eh,  Squire?" 

"  But  had  I  known  to  what  an  ordeal,  to  what  a  series 
of  ordeals,  my  nostrils  would  be  exposed,  I  doubt  I  could 
not  have  plucked  up  the  courage." 

"'Twas  ill  done  to  come  upon  me  so  suddenly.  The 
smells — hang  me,  Squire,  I  have  smelt  worse  when  I  was 
the  guest  of  the  Czar  of  Muscovy.  But  had  you  given  me 
a  week's,  a  day's  notice,  I  would  have  made  ready  an 
entertainment  worthy  of  you,  my  old  friend." 

"  No  doubt,  no  doubt " 

"And  indeed  I  was  on  the  point  of  writing  you  when 
you  entered." 

"Ay,  on  the  point  of;  you  write  to  me  twice  a  day,  do 
you?  for  unless  I  mistake,  you  have  already  writ  once 
to-day.  Under  the  plate,  Captain  Aglionby — surely  I  see 
writ  on  the  paper  there  some  semblance  of  my  name." 

"  'Tis  so ;  what  eyes  you  have  for  your  age,  Squire !  I  was 
just  trying  a  new  pen,  and  so  full  were  my  thoughts  of  my 
generous  friend  and  patron  that  the  pen  ran  of  its  own  accord, 
mark  you,  into  the  familiar  curves.  And  as  I  know  how 
you  abhor  a  letter,  I  will  e'en  tear  up  the  paper  and 

"Stay!"  cried  the  old  man,  taking  a  sudden  step  for- 
ward; "knowing  the  pains  you  take  in  writing,  'tis  pity 
they  should  be  wasted.  I  set  out  designing  to  conduct 
my  son  to  the  army:  I  find  I  am  embarked  on  a  voyage 
of  discovery;  give  me  the  paper." 

The  command  was  uttered  in  a  tone  that  broke  down 
Aglionby's  bravado.  He  drew  the  letter  from  below  the 
plate,  and  handed  it  in  sullen  silence  to  the  squire.  The 
old  man  pressed  his  lips  grimly  together  as  he  unfolded 
the  yet  unsealed  paper.  Aglionby  stuck  out  his  legs  wide 
apart,  thrust  his  hands  into  his  breeches  pockets,  and 
hung  his  head  in  moody  dudgeon. 

"'Tis  excellent  pen-work;  your  hand  grows  fluent.  '/ 
thank  you  for  the  hundred  guineas  received"  — Mr.  Berkeley 
read  aloud  with  deliberation  and  a  dry  emphasis  that  made 
Aglionby  winoe — "  '  and  trust  the  two  hundred  for  which  I 

233 


.Elegant  Extracts 


beseeched you  in  my  last  will  not  tarry.'  To  pay  your  land- 
lord, I  take  it,  for  this — magnificent  apartment." 

"A  man  must  live,"  said  the  captain  sullenly. 

"  Ay,  eat  and  drink,  and  sponge  upon  his  betters  for  his 
cakes  and  ale." 

"Oons!  Squire,  'tis  rum." 

"A  foul-smelling  liquor. — What  is  this? — 'do  violence  to 
natural  affection  in  the  service  of  a  munificent  patron — 
inform  on  a  cousin — Sherebiah  Minshull  condemned  to  be 
shot — my  lord  Marlborough — young  Mr,  Rochester — rid  up 
in  the  nick  of  time  '  "—Mr.  Berkeley's  brow  darkened  as  he 
read. — "Let  me  come  to  the  end  of  it.  'A  visit  to  the 
Comtesse  de  Vaudrey  in  the  interest  of  my  patron — violent 
assault — in  the  mellay  stumbled  into  a  canal — costume  totally 
ruined  and  cannot  be  replaced  under  ten  guineas ' — I  ob- 
serve 'tis  shrunk  at  the  sleeve;  I  thought  maybe  you  had 
grown,  to  match  your  magnificent  apartment !  Now,  sirrah, 
how  much  of  this  precious  epistle  do  you  expect  me  to 
believe?  A  fine  story,  in  truth,  of  the  ills  you  suffer  in 
your  constant  zeal  for  your  '  munificent  patron ' :  is  it  all 
of  a  piece  with  ydur  '  magnificent  apartment'?  What  have 
you  done  with,  and  for,  my  hundred  guineas? — what, 
sirrah,  your  answer!" 

Aglionby  felt  that  he  was  being  wronged;  he  had,  in 
fact,  done  all  in  his  power;  it  was  not  his  fault  that  failure 
had  dogged  him.  Undoubtedly  appearances  were  against 
him,  and  the  biting  emphasis  of  the  old  man's  delivery,  the 
cold  sneer  that  lurked  in  every  repetition  of  his  pet  phrases, 
robbed  him  of  speech.  He  writhed  under  the  lash.  Stand- 
ing over  him,  the  squire  gave  rein  to  his  temper. 

"You  take  me  for  a  fool,  do  you,  with  your  cock-and- 
bull  stories! — you  flam  me  off,  rat  me!  with  your  'mag- 
nificent apartment',  your  'munificent  patron',  your  'con- 
stant zeal ',  which  I — I,  you  swashbuckling  villain — am  to 
pay  for !  Where  are  the  two  hundred  guineas  paid  to  the 
captain  of  the  Merry  Maid? — the  fifty  guineas  to  your  foot- 
pad friends  in  Wapping?  —  the  hundred  sent  you  but  a 
few  weeks  past  ?  How  has  your  zeal  furthered  my  interest? 

234 


Fire  and   Fury!"   shouted   Aglionby 


Hard  Hit 

Zeal,  forsooth !  there's  a  many  of  your  cut-throat  gossips 
would  sink  you  as  a  disgrace  to  the  craft,  for  at  least  they 
hold  to  their  bargains  and  are  not  swindlers  as  well  as " 

"Fire  and  fury!"  shouted  Aglionby,  springing  to  his 
feet  and  drawing  Iris  sword.  "  Tis  not  to  be  borne!  Clap 
a  bridle  on  your  canting  tongue  or  I'll  run  your  bloodless 
carcass  through! — as  I've  done  with  many  a  better  man. 
D'ye  hear,  you  old  Pharisee !  Your  white  hairs  under  your 
wig  sha'n't  preserve  you  if  Rafe  Aglionby  is  roused.  And 
where  would  you  be,  rot  you — Squire  Berkeley  of  Winton 
Hall — you  and  your  guineas — if  I  told  what  I  know?" 

Mr.  Berkeley  had  drawn  at  the  same  moment,  and  the 
two  stood  glaring  at  each  other  over  the  chair.  The  old 
man,  his  face  livid  with  passion,  was  in  nowise  daunted  by 
the  other's  threats;  Aglionby's  cheeks  were  purple,  and 
the  veins  on  his  brow  stood  up  like  whipcord.  For  some 
moments  both  stood  tense,  each  leaning  towards  the 
other;  then  the  squire  dropped  his  sword  back  into  the 
sheath,  gulped,  and  said: 

"  Well,  well,  maybe  I  was  hasty.  But  you  have  a  great 
deal  to  explain,  Aglionby — a  very  great  deal  to  explain." 

"As  I  could  have  done,  had  you  but  given  me  time 
instead  of  treating  me  as  you  would  a  common  pickpocket. 
By  George!  Mr.  Berkeley,  Rafe  Aglionby  is  not  the  man 
to  stand  that  mode  of  dealing,  as  you  well  know,  for  all 
the  luck  has  been  against  me  these  late  years.  Who 
could  have  supposed  that  young  Rochester,  sink  him! 
would  escape  from  the  Merry  Maid?  Was  that  my  fault, 
pray?  By  what  I  can  make  out  he  jumped  overboard 
off  Gravesend  and  got  aboard  a  Dutch  biig,  and  the 
rascally  Hollander — one  Grootz,  a  smug  corn-dealer — 
refused  to  give  him  up.  Could  I  help  that  ?  Then,  when 
I  had  my  snivelling  cousin  Sherebiah  fast  in  the  net,  could 
I  prevent  my  lord  Marlborough  from  signing  his  discharge 
and  undoing  all  my  work?  Could  I?  I've  had  the  worst 
of  luck  all  through ;  and  foul  words  won't  mend  matters. 
And,  beshrew  me,  you  were  not  over  successful  yourself 
with  the  cockerel's  father,  for  all  your  guineas.  The 

235 


A  New  Departure 


youngster's  a  chip  of  the  old  block,  and  a  precious  hard 
chip  too,  rot  him!  But  I've  vowed  to  carry  the  thing- 
through;  besides  your  affair,  I've  now  one  or  two  private 
accounts  to  square  with  him;  and  if  you  have  patience 
and  a  trifle  more  courtesy — by  George!  you'll  have  no 
cause  to  complain  of  Rafe  Aglionby." 

The  words  came  from  him  in  a  torrent.  He  felt  that  he 
had  a  real  grievance,  and,  as  often  with  rogues,  the 
possession  of  a  grievance  lent  him  words  if  not  eloquence. 
But  the  squire  still  looking  doubtful,  Aglionby  picked  up 
a  stained  copy  of  the  Amsterdam  Courier  that  lay  on  a 
chair,  and  pointed  to  a  paragraph  giving  in  French  an 
account,  somewhat  distorted  but  substantially  accurate,  of 
Harry's  exploit  on  behalf  of  Sherebiah.  As  the  old  man 
read  it  he  pressed  his  thin  lips  together  in  vindictive  rage. 

"There  for  you!"  pursued  the  captain.  "  'Tis  the  talk 
of  the  town.  The  youngster  is  making  friends  on  all 
sides;  he  owns  a  commission  in  the  Dutch  army " 

"What!" 

"'Tis  true;  a  booby  general  got  him  the  commission, 
and  the  lubber  Grootz  pays.  'Tis  becoming  more  and 
more  difficult  to  get  at  him ;  but  I  have  a  scheme — a 
pretty  scheme,  egad! — that  can  scarcely  fail  this  time. 
All  I  need  is  a  small  sum  to  go  on  with— rat  me,  Squire, 
will  you  still  sneer?  On  my  soul,  I 

"Tut,  Captain,  your  skin  is  surely  thinner  than  it  was." 

"And  yours  would  be  thin  had  ye  not  your  guineas  to 
line  it  with.  Hang  me,  Berkeley,  a  word  from  me ' 

"Come,  come,"  said  the  squire  quickly,  "'tis  not  for 
old  friends  to  fall  out.  You  were  talking  of  your  scheme." 

"  I  was  saying  that  all  I  need  is  a  small  sum  in  advance 
— the  rest  may  wait  till  the  thing  is  done." 

"And  what  is  your  scheme?  You  do  not  expect  me — 
no  offence,  Aglionby — to  buy  a  pig  in  a  poke  this  time." 

"  'Twere  better,  maybe "Aglionby  was  beginning,  but 

just  then  a  footstep  was  heard  on  the  stairs.  He  evidently 
recognized  it.  Hesitating  for  a  second  he  lowered  his  voice 
and  continued  hurriedly:  "'Tis  one  of  the  men  engaged 

236 


Fishing 


in  the  job.     I  will  call  on  you  later  at  your  inn.     'Twould 
be  amiss  were  he  to  know  you  had  any  concern  in  it." 

Berkeley  looked  suspiciously  at  the  captain,  but,  unable 
to  fathom  his  embarrassment,  he  picked  up  his  hat  and 
slowly  moved  towards  the  door.  It  opened  in  his  face, 
and  Polignac  appeared.  He  stepped  back  courteously  to 
allow  the  older  man  to  pass.  They  bowed  to  each  other, 
with  a  mutual  glance  of  keen  scrutiny.  The  squire  bade 
Aglionby  good-day,  refusing"  his  attendance ;  and  as  he 
passed  down  the  stairs  Polignac  entered  the  room. 

"Who  is  your  visitor,  captain?"  he  asked.  "An  Eng- 
lish milord,  by  his  appearance." 

"Yes;  a  friend  from  England — an  old  friend  of  my 
family:  a  neighbour:  in  fact,  our  estates  join — or  all  but, 
for  'tis  but  a  narrow  trout-stream  divides  'em." 

Aglionby's  manner  was  still  a  little  flurried.  His  mind 
was  not  very  quick,  and  took  time  to  adjust  itself. 
Polignac  threw  his  hat  upon  the  table,  sat  astride  of  a 
chair,  and  went  on  with  admirable  gravity: 

"And  the  fishing — it  is  often,  without  doubt,  what  we 
Frenchmen  call  an  apple  of  discord.  I  have  known  so 
many  disputes." 

"The  fishing!  oh! — yes! — well,  that  arranges  itself.  It 
is  quite  simple:  we  take  one  day,  he  takes  the  next." 

"Tour  a  tour.  Admirable!  You  English  are  the 
people  for  transactions!  I  must  make  the  acquaintance 
of  your  so  accommodating  friend  and  neighbour.  Is  he — 
how  shall  I  say  it? — one  of  us?" 

"No.  He  takes  no  part  in  affairs.  He  cultivates  his 
estate.  His  call  now  is  merely  in  way  of  friendship." 

"Ah!  that  is  indeed  amiable.  Parbleu,  he  has  the 
look!  And  what  is  he  doing  in  this  country?" 

Aglionby  was  growing  restive  under  the  cross-examina- 
tion. He  had  the  air  of  a  witness  who  fears  that  he  may 
be  enticed  into  an  admission  against  his  will.  But  he  had 
not  the  wit  to  fence  with  his  visitor. 

"Nothing,"  he  replied  curtly.  "He  comes  with  his 
son,  that  is  in  the  army,  and  now  joins  his  regiment." 

237 


County  Families 


"He  has  a  son  in  the  army?  My  dear  friend,  certainly 
you  shall  present  me.  I  desire  of  all  things  to  extend  my 
acquaintance  among  your  countrymen— in  furtherance,  it 
is  understood,  of  my  cause — of  our  cause,  pardon  me." 

"  I  fear  you  will  find  little  encouragement  with  him. 
He  hates  your  countrymen  as  one  hates  a  toad." 

"  The  amiable  man ! " 

Aglionby's  constrained  manner  had  betrayed  him  to  his 
astute  visitor,  whose  curiosity  was  now  effectually  aroused. 

"Then,  my  good  captain,"  he  continued,  "it  shall 
be  my  pleasing  task  to  convert  him.  Indeed,  you  must 
present  me.  He  shall  be  a  recruit — a  little  aged,  perhaps, 
but  what  matters  that?  In  truth,  it  is  an  advantage,  if  his 
estates  are  as  large  as  you  say." 

"  I  did  not  say  his  estates  were  large." 

"  But  they  march  with  your  family's — is  it  not  so?  And 
unless  I  deceive  myself,  the  D'Aglionbys  are — how  do  you 
say  it? — milords  of  the  manor  of  half  the  comt£  of  Viltshire. 
You  remark,  my  dear  captain,  what  a  memory  I  have, 
even  for  your  barbarous  English  geography." 

The  captain,  more  and  more  restive,  fidgeted  on  his  chair. 

"Parbleu,  monsieur,"  he  said  doggedly,  "you  must 
allow  me  to  be  the  judge  who  among  my  friends  is  likely 
to  be  of  use  to  us.  This  one,  I  say,  is  not ;  you  must  be 
content  with  that." 

Polignac,  seeing  that  nothing  was  to  be  gained  by  press- 
ing the  matter  in  the  captain's  present  mood,  adroitly 
changed  the  conversation. 

"Eh  bien!  As  you  will,  my  good  captain.  You  know 
my  zeal  in  the  cause,  and  Tout  fait  nombre,  as  we  say  in 
France.  Now,  my  friend,  how  goes  our  affair — yours  and 
mine,  I  mean?" 

Aglionby's  face  cleared.     He  was  now  on  surer  ground. 

"Admirably,  admirably,  monsieur.  Look  you,  I  have 
arranged  with  some  six  stout  fellows— every  one  to  be 
depended  on.  Nothing  remains  but  to  choose  the  hour 
and  the  place.  And  besides,  I  have  set  Simmons  on  the 
watch:  he  comes  here  to  report  at  five  o'clock." 

218 


Sack 

"And  it  is  now  half-past  two.  If  it  pleases  you,  mon 
brave, — there  is  time — we  will  have  in  a  bottle  of  sack 
and  drink  success  to  our  enterprise." 

"If  it  pleases  me!  Parbleu,  Polignac,  I've  drunk 

nothing  but  rum  since  Berk since  the  last  remittance 

from  my  agent  was  spent.  A  bottle  of  sack !  Many  I've 
emptied  with  the  Czar  of  Muscovy,  whose  head,  mark  you, 
is  not  as  strong  as  mine.  Certainly,  a  bottle  of  sack — the 
money,  my  friend?" 

Some  two  hours  later,  Aglionby  left  the  inn  at  which 
Mr.  Berkeley  was  putting  up.  His  mood  and  mien  were 
jovial;  his  rubicund  cheeks  even  more  ruddy  than  usual. 
He  was  too  old  and  tough  a  campaigner,  and  too  well 
seasoned  by  his  experiences  in  Russia,  to  allow  himself  to 
be  overtaken  in  liquor;  but  he  was  certainly  in  an  unusu- 
ally buoyant  humour,  and  trod  the  street  with  a  confident 
swing.  As  he  passed  along,  he  jingled  the  money  in  his 
pocket,  and  appeared  to  take  an  uncommon  pleasure  in 
the  sound.  His  brow  was  clear,  his  eye  bright,  and  he 
held  half-audible  communion  with  his  thoughts. 

"'Tis  a  hard  world,  Rafe  my  boy;  odso,  'tis  a  hard 
world.  'Tis  not  often  a  man  gets  paid  for  doing  what  he 
would  gladly  do  for  nothing.  Ay,  and  'tis  less  often  he 
gets  paid  twice,  begad!  Rafe,  my  bully  boy,  you're  in 
luck.  Stap  me,  we'll  break  another  bottle  of  sack  and 
drink  to  your  success.  Nay,  nay ;  hold  a  little :  business 
before  pleasure.  A  draft  from  our  Hebrew  friend — egad, 
they're  the  one  good  thing  I  know  in  Amsterdam;  that  is 
easily  got ;  then  a  letter  to  the  Elector's  chamberlain ; 
oons!  'tis  more  difficult,  but  to  be  faced;  I'm  no  scholard, 
hang  it,  but  I  can  pay  some  poor  scrivener  that  is,  whether 
'tis  to  be  Latin  or  French  ;  and  to  be  Captain  Rafe  once 
more's  worth  a  dollar  or  two  for  pen-work.  Then  for  a 
bottle  at  the  Goudenhoof'd.  And  to-morrow,  my  friend 
Rochester  and  my  excellent  coz  with  the  scripture  name — 
to-morrow,  by  the  lord  Harry,  our  final  reckoning!" 

239 


CHAPTER    XVII 

In  the  Dusk 

HARRY  had  for  some  time  been  itching  foi  an  opportunity 
of  active  service  in  his  new  calling.  Garri  ,on  life,  with  its 
drilling  and  exercising,  was  all  very  well,  and  he  had  much 
to  learn ;  but  the  business  of  a  soldier  was  to  fight,  and  he 
was  eager  to  take  his  share  in  the  campaign,  on  the  issue 
of  which  so  many  important  interests  depended.  His 
chance  came  at  last,  and  though  the  result  was  too  tame 
for  his  active  spirit,  he  felt  that  it  was  at  least  a  begin- 
ning. 

At  the  end  of  the  first  week  in  September  his  regiment 
received  orders  to  join  a  corps  forming  under  General 
Brulau  to  begin  the  investment  of  Limburg,  a  little  hill- 
town  south-east  of  Breda.  On  the  loth  the  force  of  twenty- 
four  squadrons  encamped  before  the  town,  cutting  off  all 
access,  and  occupying  the  approaches  and  the  lower  town 
without  resistance.  Some  ten  days  later  the  Duke  of 
Maryborough  arrived  with  his  main  force ;  batteries  played 
night  and  day  on  the  upper  town,  and  made  so  wide  a 
breach  that  orders  were  given  for  a  grand  assault.  At 
this  point,  however,  the  French  commander,  seeing  the 
futility  of  resistance  and  the  hopelessness  of  relief  from  the 
outside,  beat  a  parley,  and  in  less  than  twenty-four  hours 
agreed  to  surrender.  On  the  28th  the  garrison  of  1400 
men  laid  down  their  arms  and  marched  out.  The  duke, 
having  taken  possession  of  the  place,  announced  that  the 
campaign  was  closed,  and  the  army  would  at  once  go  into 
winter  quarters.  Harry  therefore  returned  to  Breda  with- 
out having  drawn  his  sword,  and  had  to  reconcile  himself 
to  the  thought  of  a  long  winter  of  inaction. 

One  morning  a  messenger  came  to  him  from  Mynheer 

240 


Katrinka 

Grootz,  bearing  a  present  of  tea  and  Japanese  ware  from 
the  merchant  to  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  part  of  a  cargo 
from  the  east  which  had  eluded  the  French  warships  and 
privateers  that  scoured  the  narrow  seas.  Since  the  inci- 
dent of  Polignac's  discomfiture  at  Lindendaal,  Grootz  had 
been  assiduous  in  paying-  little  attentions  of  this  kind  to 
the  ladies,  and  often  sought  Harry's  aid  in  conveying  his 
presents.  Harry  was  somewhat  amused  at  this  amiable 
side  of  his  former  employer's  character;  Grootz  was  not 
on  the  surface  a  likely  squire  of  dames.  No  doubt,  Harry 
thought,  he  was  anxious  about  the  welfare  of  the  ladies 
in  their  solitary  position,  with  no  master  of  the  house,  but 
only  a  number  of  faithful  though  not  too  intelligent  ser- 
vants. He  was  nothing  loth  to  be  the  medium  through 
whom  these  gifts  reached  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  and  he 
found  that  Fanshawe  was  always  very  ready  to  accompany 
him  on  these  and  other  occasions. 

It  happened  that  on  this  day  Harry  was  on  duty,  and 
saw  no  opportunity  of  getting  away  until  the  evening. 
Having  been  absent  from  Breda  for  nearly  three  weeks, 
he  was  anxious  to  learn  how  things  were  at  Lindendaal. 
The  proximity  of  Polignac  always  gave  him  some  uneasi- 
ness, and  though  that  gentleman's  hold  on  the  ladies  had 
been  effectually  snapped,  Harry  felt  by  no  means  sure  that 
he  would  accept  his  rebuffs  as  final.  He  therefore  sent  for 
Sherebiah,  and  ordered  him  to  ride  over  with  Mynheer 
Grootz's  parcel.  Sherebiah's  eagerness  to  set  off  amused 
his  master. 

"  You  want  to  see  Katrinka — is  that  it?"  he  said. 

"Well,  sir,  her  do  have  a  good  hand  at  griddle-cakes, 
and  I  ha'n't  tasted  ne'er  a  one  for  three  weeks." 

"  Tis  cupboard  love,  eh,  Sherry?" 

"The  truth  on't  is,  Master  Harry,  I  be  a-thinken  o'  old 
gaffer  at  home.  He's  had  a  deal  of  trouble  wi'  maids  and 
housekeepers;  can't  get  ne'er  a  one  to  cook  his  bacon 
to  his  mind,  and  besides  has  a  sweet  tooth  for  griddle- 
cakes.  Katrinka  be  a  rare  buxom  wench;  not  a  beauty, 
sure,  though  handsome  is  as  handsome  doos;  and  when 

241 


Filial 

I  found  out  her  tidy  ways  and  light  hand  wi'  the  kick- 
shawses — well,  says  I,  she  be  the  right  maid  to  keep  old 
feyther  o'  mine  above-ground  for  another  ten  year." 

"  Oh!  and  have  you  put  the  matter  to  Katrinka?" 

"There's  the  rub,  sir.  Her  be  in  the  main  willen,  but 
there's  a  worm  in  th'  apple.  The  truth  on't  is,  sir,  her 
have  high  notions." 

"Indeed!  She  wants  to  be  something  better  than  a 
nurse-cook,  eh?" 

"Not  zackly  that,  sir;  her  notions  be  husband  high, 
sir;  her  won't  make  griddle-cakes  for  feyther  o'  mine  not 
unless  her  be  his  darter,  which  is  a  backward  way  o' 
sayen,  marry  me." 

"That's  terrible,  Sherry." 

"  It  med  be  wuss,  Master  Harry.  I  ha'n't  no  fears 
myself,  but  'tis  old  feyther  I  be  thinken  on.  'Ee  see,  I'm 
his  boy;  though  I  be  forty-five  by  nature,  to  his  old  aged 
life  I  be  but  a  younker  yet ;  and  I  be  afeard  he'd  think  me 
a  forrard  youth  did  I  venture  a  word  about  marryen." 

Harry  laughed  outright. 

"Take  my  advice,  Sherry,"  he  said.  "If  Katrinka's  a 
good  girl,  get  the  knot  tied;  we  sha'n't  be  home  again 
for  a  year  at  least;  you  can  break  it  gently  to  the  old  man, 
and  sing  the  praises  of  your  wife  in  respect  of  bacon  and 
girdle-cakes  and  other  housewifely  virtues." 

"Thank  'ee,  sir;  and  'ee  won't  mind  if  I  be  a  bit  late 
back,  'cos  'twill  take  a  good  time  to  talk  over  all  that  wi' 
Katrinka;  her  be  terrible  slow  wi'  her  mind,  sir." 

"All  right!  Get  along;  and  you  may  give  her  a  kiss 
from  me.  'Tis  the  chubby  one,  isn't  it?" 

"True,  sir;  a  apple  face,  wi'  a  dimple  in  the  chin,  and 
eyes  as  blue  as  her  chiney,  and  hair  this  side  o'  red, 
and " 

"There,  there.  You're  in  a  bad  way,  Sherry;  go  and 
get  it  over,  man." 

Not  long  after  Sherebiah's  departure,  Fanshawe  came  in. 

"What  do  you  think?"  shouted  Harry.  "That  old 
oddity  Sherry  is  in  love  with  Katrinka,  one  of  the  maids 

242 


Fine   Feathers 

at  Lindendaal,  but  was  afraid  to  pop  the  question  lest  his 
father  thought  him  too  young".  He  has  gone  over  to  Lin- 
dendaal to-day;  I  fancy  'twill  be  a  settled  thing  by  the 
time  he  returns." 

"Oh!"  Fanshawe  appeared  somewhat  constrained. 
"The  fact  is,  Harry,  I  am  riding  to  Lindendaal  myself, 
and  I  came  to  see — to  ask — that  is,  have  you  any  message 
for  the  ladies?" 

"  No;  as  it  happens,  Sherry  is  taking  them  a  parcel  from 
Mynheer  Grootz. — You've  got  a  new  coat,  surely?" 

' '  Ay ;  you  see  my  old  one  was  faded ;  things  bleach  soon 
in  this  country — 

"  And  a  new  hat,  I  declare!" 

"The  old  one  was  too  vexatious  shabby.  Then  you 
have  no  message? 

"  No;  Sherry  conveys  my  regards.  You'll  have  his  com- 
pany back ;  I  suppose  you  will  be  rather  late,  and  'twill  be 
no  bad  thing  to  have  a  companion;  there  have  been  one 
or  two  robberies  by  night  on  the  Helmund  road." 

Until  the  evening  Harry  was  fully  occupied.  The  regi- 
mental riding-master  had  begged  his  assistance  in  train- 
ing a  number  of  recruits,  and,  since  example  is  better 
than  precept,  he  had  been  for  several  hours  on  horse- 
back, showing  the  Dutch  youths  the  manage  of  their 
steeds.  When  this  was  finished  he  had  a  turn  at  the 
foils  with  the  quarter-master,  who  had  taken  a  fancy  to 
him,  and  was  wont  to  declare  him  one  of  the  best  swords- 
men in  the  army.  After  his  evening  meal  he  felt  he  should 
like  to  stretch  his  legs,  and,  guessing  that  Fanshawe  and 
Sherebiah  would  soon  be  on  the  way  home,  decided  to 
walk  out  and  meet  them.  It  was  a  fine  still  evening,  the 
road  was  dry,  and  a  spin  of  a  couple  of  miles,  as  far  as  a 
big  chestnut-tree  that  marked  the  limit  of  the  Sunday  pro- 
menaders,  would  pleasantly  end  the  day. 

The  sun  was  going  down  as  he  left  the  walls  of  Breda 
behind  him,  throwing  a  long  shadow  on  the  road.  He  did 
not  hurry  his  pace,  but  ambled  easily  along,  musing  as  a 
walker  will,  and  paying  little  heed  to  things  around  him. 

243 


A  Practical  Joke 


His  thoughts  were  bright  and  clear,  for  he  was  in  the  pink 
of  physical  health,  and  he  felt  that  Providence  was  very 
good  to  him.  It  was  just  a  year  ago  that  his  father  had 
died,  and  all  the  prospect  looked  black.  How  strangely 
things  had  turned  out!  The  very  event  that  had  seemed 
to  fling  a  pall  over  his  life  had  really  proved  the  entrance 
to  the  career  nearest  to  his  heart.  He  was  already  im- 
patient for  the  winter  to  be  over;  surely  with  the  next 
spring  the  war  would  be  prosecuted  more  vigorously,  and 
the  Dutch  authorities  would  not  hang  like  a  drag  upon 
the  wheels  of  Marlborough's  plans !  He  was  ambitious, 
as  every  young  officer  must  be,  to  distinguish  himself; 
and  in  his  ambition  there  was  a  spice  of  amour  propre\ 
he  felt  that  he  should  dearly  like  to  prove  to  the  great 
duke  himself  that  he  would  have  done  no  discredit  to  his 
sponsor  if  his  commission  had  been  an  English  one.  But 
a  Dutch  cornet,  he  thought,  would  have  little  chance  of 
coming  under  Marlborough's  personal  notice;  and,  after 
all,  what  did  it  matter?  Duty  was  duty,  wherever  and 
for  whomsoever  it  was  done. 

Thus  weaving  a  chain  of  imaginings,  he  came  to  the 
big  solitary  tree  before  he  was  aware  of  it.  He  halted ; 
Fanshawe  and  Sherebiah  were  not  in  sight;  the  dusk 
was  thickening,  and  he  did  not  care  to  walk  farther;  yet, 
having  come  so  far,  he  was  loth  to  go  back  without  them. 
Surely  they  could  not  be  long  now !  Opposite  the  tree 
there  was  a  gate  into  a  field.  He  climbed  on  to  that,  and 
sat  with  his  feet  tucked  below  one  of  its  bars,  intending 
to  wait  their  arrival.  From  his  higher  position  he  now 
descried  two  figures  in  the  distance;  in  another  moment 
he  saw  that  they  were  horsemen.  "Here  they  are  at 
last!"  he  thought. 

A  whimsical  idea  flashed  into  his  head.  They  would  not 
expect  to  see  him ;  he  felt  sportive,  the  boyish  instinct  for 
fun  asserting  itself.  What  if  he  could  surprise  the  two — 
dart  out  on  them  unawares  and  make  them  jump?  The 
tree  opposite  overhung  the  road  for  several  yards,  its 
foliage  was  still  fairly  thick,  for  the  season  had  been 

244 


Up  a  Tree 


mild ;  the  autumn  frosts  and  gales  had  not  yet  begun ; 
and  it  would  provide  ample  shelter.  He  sprang  off  the 
gate,  ran  across  the  road,  leapt  the  ditch  at  the  side, 
scaled  the  trunk  with  an  agility  bred  of  long  practice  in 
Wiltshire,  and  was  soon  hidden  among  the  leaves,  some 
fourteen  feet  above  the  road.  He  filled  his  pocket  with 
burrs  he  found  still  clinging  to  the  branches,  laughing 
inwardly  as  he  pictured  Fanshawe's  consternation  when  he 
should  receive  one  of  those  prickly  missiles  on  his  head. 

Soon  he  heard  the  measured  beat  of  the  approaching 
horses.  Peering  between  the  leaves,  he  was  disappointed 
to  notice  that  the  riders  were  not  Fanshawe  and  Shere- 
biah  after  all.  One  of  them,  a  bulky  man,  had  a  familiar 
appearance,  the  other  was  masked ;  but  in  the  first  Harry 
recognized  Captain  Aglionby,  and  the  second  in  figure 
and  bearing  unmistakably  recalled  Monsieur  de  Polignac. 
Harry  wondered  what  was  the  meaning  of  the  mask; 
knowing  his  men,  he  had  little  doubt  that  some  villainy 
was  afoot.  His  wonder  gave  way  to  uneasiness  when 
he  found  that,  instead  of  passing  the  tree,  they  dis- 
mounted and  stood  exactly  beneath  him.  They  opened 
the  gate  on  which  he  had  been  seated  a  few  minutes 
before,  and  led  their  horses  through  into  the  field,  along 
the  stone  dike  at  the  edge,  and  at  some  distance  from 
the  gate,  as  Harry  could  just  see  in  the  gathering  dark- 
ness, secured  them  to  the  wall,  after  some  difficulty  in 
finding  anything  to  hitch  them  to.  Then  they  returned 
to  the  road,  talking  in  low  tones,  and  looking  expectantly 
up  and  down. 

"'Sdeath!"  muttered  Aglionby,  "what  has  become  of 
them?" 

"  Rat6  encore  une  fois?"  sneered  Polignac,  inferring  the 
other's  meaning  from  his  tone. 

"Parbleu!"  growled  Aglionby,  adding  in  French: 
''They  ought  to  have  been  here  a  quarter  of  an  hour 
ago.  They  cannot  be  long  now." 

Harry's  curiosity  was  growing.  The  two  men  were 
clearly  expecting  somebody;  for  a  moment  he  wondered 

245 


A  Trap 


whether  Aglionby  was  meditating  another  attempt  on 
Sherebiah,  but  it  could  hardly  be  that,  for  the  captain 
had  looked  towards  Breda  as  he  spoke,  not  in  the  other 
direction.  He  listened  with  all  his  ears. 

"They  may  as  well  stay  away  altogether  if  the  others 
are  here  before  them.  We  are  only  ten  minutes  ahead." 

"Nearer  twenty,  if  you  believe  me.  They  were  riding 
slowly  when  we  saw  them — a  mile  behind ;  and  we  saved 
several  minutes  by  the  short  cut  through  the  wood.  There 
is  time  yet." 

As  he  spoke,  three  figures  could  be  dimly  seen  coming 
along  the  road  from  the  direction  of  Breda.  Aglionby  and 
his  friend  at  once  shrank  back  behind  the  dike,  but  after  a 
moment's  scrutiny,  being  apparently  satisfied,  came  out 
again  and  stood  waiting  by  the  side  of  the  road.  The 
three  men  approaching  caught  sight  of  them  and  hastened 
their  steps,  to  be  received  with  curses  when  they  reached 
the  spot.  One  of  the  men,  an  Englishman,  sullenly  de- 
fended himself. 

"  It  is  all  due  to  that  confounded  church  clock.  It  has 
never  gone  right  since  Mr.  Fanshawe  tampered  with  it. 
But  we  are  in  time,  Captain." 

"No  thanks  to  you,"  growled  Aglionby.  "Where  is 
the  rope?" 

One  of  the  other  men  opened  a  sack  he  carried,  and 
produced  a  stout  rope  some  thirty  feet  long. 

"  Take  one  end,"  said  Aglionby,  "  and  fix  it  to  the  gate- 
post; at  the  top,  fool,  not  the  bottom.  You,  Simmons, 
take  the  other  end  and  loop  it  once  round  the  tree.  And 
quickly,  do  you  hear?" 

While  the  men  were  obeying  his  order,  Aglionby  put  on 
a  mask,  not,  as  in  Polignac's  case,  as  a  precaution  against 
recognition  by  the  hirelings,  but  by  the  victims. 

By  this  time  Harry's  uneasiness  had  become  real  alarm. 
Motionless  in  the  tree,  he  durst  not  rustle  the  leaves  to 
make  a  peep-hole ;  he  could  only  judge  of  what  was  going 
on  below  by  the  words  he  heard.  It  was  clear  that  a  care- 
fully planned  attack  was  to  be  made  upon  someone;  he 

246 


In  Waiting 


could  not  doubt  that  the  someone  was  Sherebiah;  both 
Polignac  and  the  captain  had  heavy  scores  to  pay  off. 
Fanshawe  would  be  involved  in  the  same  peril.  His 
notion  of  playing-  a  trick  was  forgotten ;  there  was  serious 
work  for  him  to  do. 

"  Let  the  rope  lie  on  the  road,"  he  heard  Aglionby  say, 
"and  you  men  remain  at  the  tree  ready  to  raise  it  and 
draw  it  taut  at  my  signal." 

Harry  saw  through  the  scheme  in  a  flash.  The  rope 
was  to  be  pulled  taut  across  the  road  to  stop  the  progress 
of  the  horsemen,  and  in  the  confusion  the  victim  was 
doubtless  to  be  attacked,  every  advantage  being  on  the 
side  of  the  ambuscaders.  And  at  this  moment  his  ears 
distinguished  the  faint  distant  beat  of  hoofs  on  the  road. 

"Captain,"  said  one  of  the  men,  "what  if  I  were  to 
climb  the  tree  and  pick  them  off  from  above?" 

Crouching  against  the  stem  Harry  felt  his  heart-beats 
quicken.  The  suggestion  if  promptly  acted  on  would  be 
fatal  to  the  project  he  had  already  formed  to  turn  the 
tables  upon  the  unsuspecting  party  beneath. 

There  was  a  moment's  pause.  Then  another  voice  in 
low  tones  interjected : 

"  I  hear  horses  on  the  road." 

"No,"  interposed  Polignac,  replying  rapidly  to  the 
man's  proposal.  "We  must  have  two  men  at  the  rope 
if  they  are  riding  abreast;  that  leaves  only  three  when 
we  stop  them;  it  is  easy  to  miss  in  this  dark  night,  and 
they  are  both  ready  with  their  weapons.  Remember, 
there  must  be  no  noise;  one  volley,  then  cold  steel,  lest 
we  have  the  Breda  garrison  upon  us." 

Harry  wore  his  sword,  and  had  with  him  the  pistol 
without  which  he  never  stirred  abroad.  He  had  been 
rapidly  deciding  upon  his  course.  If  he  was  to  be  of  any 
use,  he  must  warn  his  friends  before  they  came  within 
range  of  the  ambuscade;  yet  he  durst  not  fire  too  soon, 
for  the  only  result  would  be  to  bring  them  up  at  a  gallop, 
and  they  would  then  almost  certainly  fall  victims.  Now 
that  almost  complete  darkness  had  fallen,  he  ventured  to 

(B357)  247  B 


The  Last  Minute 

make  an  opening  in  the  foliage  and  to  peer  cautiously 
down. 

He  saw  Aglionby  and  Polignac  on  the  other  side  of  the 
road  crouching  behind  the  gate-posts.  Two  men  had  con- 
cealed themselves  behind  the  tree's  thick  trunk,  holding 
the  slack  end  of  the  rope;  the  third  waited  near  them, 
pistol  in  hand.  Though  Harry  could  not  see  weapons 
in  the  hands  of  Polignac  and  Aglionby,  he  had  no  doubt 
that  they  too  had  pistols,  ready  to  be  used  as  soon  as  the 
riders  were  brought  to  a  stand-still.  On  the  side  over- 
hanging the  road,  the  tree  had  been  lopped  of  one  or  two 
lower  branches,  but  a  fairly  thick  bough  ran  out  on  the 
other  side  just  above  the  man  holding  the  pistol.  Quickly, 
for  time  pressed,  yet  with  great  caution  in  order  to  avoid 
the  slightest  noise,  Harry  crept  from  his  perch  over  the 
road,  sliding  backward  down  the  branch  until  he  reached 
the  trunk.  Then,  holding  his  sword  lest  it  clinked  against 
the  tree,  he  straightened  himself  and  turned  round,  steady- 
ing himself  with  his  free  hand.  One  careful  step  brought 
him  to  the  fork  of  the  horizontal  stem  and  the  parent  trunk. 
He  heard  the  hoof-beats  coming  very  near;  the  riders  could 
be  but  a  few  hundred  yards  away;  fortunately  the  growing 
sound  was  loud  enough  to  drown  the  slight  rustle  he  could 
not  avoid ;  and  besides,  the  men  below  were  too  much  pre- 
occupied with  their  stratagem  to  have  wits  for  anything  but 
their  advancing  victims. 

Harry's  feet  were  now  wedged  somewhat  awkwardly ; 
he  felt  by  no  means  secure,  and  was  for  an  instant  per- 
plexed how  to  dispose  of  his  sword,  for  in  drawing  his 
pistol  with  the  right  hand  he  would  need  the  left  to  main- 
tain his  equilibrium.  He  hit  on  a  solution.  Grasping  the 
lower  part  of  the  scabbard  with  his  knees  he  prevented  it 
from  rattling  against  the  tree  trunk;  then,  resting  on  his 
left  hand,  he  bent  over  to  get  as  clear  a  view  as  the  circum- 
stances afforded  of  the  man  immediately  beneath.  For 
a  second  he  hesitated.  It  went  against  the  grain  to  fire 
at  the  unsuspecting  wretch ;  but  the  sound  of  the  hoof- 
beats  now  certainly  within  musket  -  shot  banished  his 

248 


A   Bolt  from  the  Blue 

hesitation  and  clinched  his  resolve.  It  was  life  against 
life :  the  lives  of  Fanshawe  and  Sherebiah  against  those 
of  the  villains  ambushing'  them.  Taking  careful  aim  he 
fired.  The  cry  of  the  wounded  man  was  smothered  by  his 
own  shout : 

"Stop,  Fanshawe!  Jump  the  ditch  and  make  for  the 
tree ! " 

Without  waiting  to  learn  the  result  of  his  warning,  he 
sprang  round,  heedless  now  of  what  noise  he  made,  and, 
swinging  by  a  branch  to  his  right,  dropped  to  the  ground 
just  behind  the  two  other  men,  who  had  let  go  of  the  rope 
in  their  alarm  and  were  transfixed  with  terror  and  amaze- 
ment, staring  into  the  black  depths  of  the  tree  above 
them.  One  of  them  faced  round  as  he  heard  the  thud  of 
Harry's  descent.  Without  pausing  to  draw  his  sword 
Harry  hurled  himself  at  the  man,  hit  out  at  him  with  all 
his  strength,  and  felled  him  to  the  ground.  The  other, 
the  first  moment  of  paralysis  past,  whipped  out  a  pistol 
and  snapped  it  before  Harry  had  time  to  recover  himself. 
It  missed  fire;  Harry  closed  with  the  man.  There  was  a 
brief,  sharp  struggle ;  in  the  midst  came  Sherebiah's  voice : 

"Where  bist,  sir,  where  bist?" 

"  Here;  by  the  tree;  get  a  grip  of  this  knave!" 

At  the  sound  of  Sherebiah's  voice  Harry  felt  his  oppo- 
nent's efforts  relax;  the  man  tried  to  free  himself;  but 
Sherebiah  had  ridden  his  horse  up  to  the  tree,  and  bending 
low  from  the  saddle  to  distinguish  between  the  combatants, 
he  brought  the  butt  of  his  pistol  down  on  the  man's  head. 
He  fell  without  a  groan. 

Now  Fanshawe  dashed  up.  His  horse  had  slipped  at 
the  ditch,  thus  giving  Sherebiah  a  slight  start. 

"Two  men  on  the  other  side  of  the  road,"  panted  Harry 
"Follow  me!" 

Springing  across  the  ditch  he  gained  the  other  side  of 
the  road,  and  vaulted  the  gate.  Fanshawe  and  Sherebiah 
had  to  dismount  to  follow  him,  for  the  road  was  too  narrow 
to  allow  of  their  leaping  the  gate.  Aglionby  and  his  com- 
panion had  not  waited;  discovering  that  their  plan  had 

249 


Ad  Misericordiam 

failed,  they  had  hurried  away  towards  their  horses.  But 
they  had  not  gone  far.  Harry  heard  a  noise  ahead ;  there 
was  a  chance  of  overtaking-  them  before  they  gained  their 
saddles.  He  dashed  on  over  the  stubble,  and  soon  descried 
a  broad  figure  lumbering  along;  from  its  stertorous  breath- 
ing he  guessed  it  to  be  Aglionby,  an  opinion  confirmed 
immediately  by  the  mingled  oaths  and  entreaties  which  the 
captain  sent  after  Polignac,  who  being  lighter  of  foot  had 
far  outstripped  his  fellow-conspirator.  Hearing  Harry's 
step  just  behind  him,  Aglionby  at  length  halted,  swung 
round,  and  fired  his  pistol.  But  hard  running  and  breath- 
lessness  flurried  him  and  spoilt  his  aim ;  the  ball  whistled 
harmlessly  past.  So  impetuous  had  been  Harry  in  pursuit 
that  he  had  had  no  time  to  draw  his  sword.  He  struck  out 
at  Aglionby,  who  only  half  warded  the  blow,  staggering 
backward  and  endeavouring  to  parry  this  lively  attack. 
Seeing  his  opportunity,  Harry  closed  and  tripped  the  big 
man  up  with  a  favourite  fall  taught  him  by  Sherebiah ; 
and  Fanshawe  coming  up  with  Sherebiah  at  this  moment, 
Aglionby  was  secured  in  a  trice. 

"That  cursed  coward!"  he  spluttered,  as  they  led  him 
back  to  the  road.  "Odsnigs!  I'll  be  even  with  him  for 
this." 

"Nay,"  said  Sherebiah,  who  had  him  grimly  by  the 
collar,  "  'ee'll  never  be  even  wi'  un,  Rafe  Aglionby.  Your 
carcass '11  need  a  longer  rope." 

" 'Tis  all  a  mistake,  coz,  on  my  honour,"  pleaded  the 
captain. 

"Don't  'ee  coz  me,  I  disown  'ee.  I'll  see  a  villain  hung; 
and  that'll  be  no  mistake." 

"Leave  him  to  me,  Sherry,"  said  Harry,  "and  go  and 
see  to  the  man  we  hit." 

A  short  examination  proved  that  the  man  Harry  had 
shot  was  less  seriously  wounded  than  he  who  had  fallen 
to  Sherebiah's  pistol-butt.  The  third  man  whom  Harry 
had  knocked  down  had  escaped  in  the  darkness.  The 
other  two,  injured  as  they  were,  were  unable  to  walk,  so 
Harry  had  them  hoisted  on  to  the  horses,  where  they 

250 


A  Theory 


were  held  up  by  Fanshawe  and  Sherebiah.  With  Aglionby 
in  his  own  keeping  Harry  led  the  march  to  Breda.  On 
arriving  there,  all  three  prisoners  were  handed  over  to  the 
Dutch  authorities,  and  Harry  asked  Fanshawe  to  his  rooms 
to  talk  over  this  adventure  of  the  road. 

"  Faith,"  said  Fanshawe,  when  Harry  had  explained  his 
presence  on  the  spot,  "'twas  a  mercy  you  had  the  thought 
to  walk  out.  But  it  passes  my  understanding  why  that 
fellow  Aglionby  should  have  been  minded  to  waylay  me." 

"  'Twas  not  you,  'twas  Sherry  that  was  the  intended 
victim.  I  told  you  of  the  neat  way  he  bundled  the  captain 
out  of  Madame  de  Vaudrey's  house ;  that  was  only  one  of 
several  affronts  the  bully  has  had  to  suffer.  And  I  rather 
suspect  that  you  were  mistaken  for  me." 

"How  so?" 

"  'Twas  part  of  the  scheme  of  old  Berkeley's  to  get  rid 
of  me;  of  that  I  am  sure.  And  the  other  fellow,  the 
Frenchman,  must  be  pretty  sore  at  his  two  discomfitures." 

"You  will,  of  course,  inform  against  him." 

" 'T would  be  little  use,  I  fear.  He  was  masked;  I  knew 
him  only  by  his  voice,  and  my  testimony  would  not  suffice 
to  convict  him  on  that  ground  alone." 

"Did  Aglionby  say  nothing  as  you  walked  into  the  town?" 

"Nothing.  I  plied  him  with  questions,  but  he  held  an 
obstinate  silence;  scarce  opened  his  mouth  except  to  say 
'twas  all  a  mistake." 

"  I  am  not  sure  you  are  right.  Don't  you  think  it  may 
have  been  the  Frenchman's  plan — to  get  rid  of  me?" 

"Why  of  you?" 

"Well,  you  told  me  he  is  a  suitor  for  Mademoiselle's 
hand " 

"What  then?" 

"  He  may  have  looked  on  me  as  a  rival." 

"  Come,  that's  a  good  joke.  You've  known  Mademoiselle 
for  little  better  than  a  month." 

"Ah!  One  can  see  you're  young,  Harry,  and  fancy 
free;  I  wish  I  were.  But  your  Monsieur  de  Polignac 
might  have  spared  his  pains." 

251 


With  Thanks 

"You're  talking  in  riddles,  Fanshawe;  speak  plain 
English,  man." 

"Well,  'twas  true." 

"What  was  true?" 

"  She  wouldn't  have  me." 

Harry  stared  in  puzzlement.  Then  a  light  dawned,  and 
he  smiled. 

"You  don't  mean  to  say  you've  been  on  your  knees  to 
Mademoiselle  Adele?" 

"  Indeed  I  have!  By  George,  Harry!  isn't  she  a  splen- 
did creature?  But  she  wouldn't  have  me:  that's  all  over; 
life  isn't  worth  living  now :  I  don't  care  how  soon  a  bullet 
puts  an  end  to  my  miserable  existence." 

Fanshawe  sighed  lugubriously;  Harry  laughed. 

"Poor  fellow!  is  it  so  bad  as  that?  She  didn't  fall  a 
victim  to  your  new  coat,  then?" 

"  'Tis  all  very  well  for  you  to  laugh.  Wait  till  you 
suffer  just  such  a  rebuff." 

"Tell  me  what  you  said." 

"  How  do  I  know  what  I  said?  I  only  know  what  she 
said.  She  dropt  me  a  curtsy,  the  hussy,  and  thanked  me 
for  the  honour,  and  said  she  had  no  mind  to  a  husband 
and  would  never  wed,  but  stay  with  her  mother.  And 
then  she  opened  the  harpsichord  and  said :  '  Don't  let  us 
be  children,  Monsieur.  Sing  me  that  amusing  song  of 
yours  and  be  amiable.'  And  'pon  my  word,  Harry,  I 
couldn't  resist;  she  has  a  masterful  way;  and  when  her 
mother  came  in  there  was  I  trolling  '  Widdicombe  Fair '  as 
if  there'd  been  never  a  word  of  love  betwixt  us." 

"Cheer  up!  you  were  too  sudden.  Wait  a  few  months 
and  then  try  your  luck  again." 

"Never!  I  know  she  won't  look  at  me.  And  take  my 
advice,  Harry.  If  ever  you  fall  in  love  with  a  girl,  don't 
make  yourself  cheap  and  sing  cheerful  songs.  Egad,  if 
I'd  sung  dying  ditties  and  sighed  like  a  furnace  I  might 
have  had  a  different  tale  to  tell.  I'll  go  to  quarters; 
but  I  sha'n't  sleep;  I  know  I  sha'n't;  good-night!" 

252 


CHAPTER    XVIII 

A  Little  Plot 

ONE  afternoon  Squire  Berkeley  sat  solitary  in  his  inn  at 
the  Hague,  warming  his  lean,  withered  hands  in  the  blaze 
of  a  log  fire.  The  air  was  cold,  and  it  had  been  raining 
heavily  for  hours.  The  old  man  had  laid  aside  his  wig;  a 
black  velvet  skull-cap  covered  his  white  hair  to  the  ears; 
and,  clad  in  the  long  cassock-like  garment  of  rusty  black 
that  he  always  wore  indoors,  he  might  have  passed,  with 
his  thin  haggard  cheeks,  for  an  ascetic  dignitary  of  the 
Church  rather  than  the  prosperous  lord  of  an  English 
manor. 

He  sat  in  a  high-backed  chair,  staring  into  the  fire. 
His  lips  moved  as  he  communed  with  himself,  and  the 
expression  of  his  face  showed  that  his  thoughts  were  none 
too  pleasant.  Once  or  twice  he  clenched  his  teeth  and 
brought  his  closed  fist  heavily  down  upon  the  arm  of  the 
chair;  he  sighed  often,  and  looked  the  very  image  of  a 
sad,  anxious,  embittered  man. 

Presently  the  door  opened  noisily  and,  with  a  gust  of 
keen  air  that  made  the  squire  shiver,  a  young  man  entered 
the  room.  It  was  Piers  Berkeley,  the  squire's  son.  He 
was  dressed  as  usual  in  the  height  of  fashion,  but  pre- 
sented a  bedraggled  woebegone  aspect  now,  his  finery 
effectually  ruined  by  the  rain. 

"Split  me,  father,"  he  cried  in  a  peculiarly  high  and 
affected  tone  of  voice,  "I'm  verily  the  most  wretched  man 
on  earth." 

"What  is  the  matter?"  said  the  old  man,  turning  half 
round.  "  Why  have  you  left  your  regiment?" 

"  Why!  Stap  my  vitals,  'tis  what  I  wish  to  know.  I've 
rid  post  from  Breda  through  the  most  villainous  rain  ever 

253 


I  saw.  Look,  I'm  splashed  to  the  eyes;  my  third  best 
wig  is  utterly  ruined ;  the  colour  of  my  waistcoat  has  run ; 
'twas  a  heavenly  puce,  and  I'll  be  even  with  the  tailor, 
hang  him!  that  swore  the  colour  was  fast.  As  for  my 
new  jack-boots — look  'ee,  they're  not  fit  for  a  ploughman. 
And  why!  You  may  well  ask." 

"  Well,  you  have  a  reason,  I  suppose.  You  want  more 
money  for  your  drunken  orgies — is  that  it?" 

"  Hark  to  that,  now!  Was  ever  poor  .wretch  so  scurvily 
used  by  his  own  father!  Why " 

"Come,  a  truce  to  your  prating.  Your  reason,  sir,  and 
at  once." 

"A  warm  welcome,  egad!  Well,  sir,  I've  a  something 
for  you,  a  billet-doux ;  ha!  ha!" 

The  squire  sprang  up  with  an  agility  surprising  in  a 
man  of  his  years.  There  was  a  look  of  expectancy,  almost 
of  joy,  in  his  eyes,  and  he  held  forth  his  hand  eagerly. 

"  Give  it  me,"  he  said. 

"You  will  deal  handsomely  by  me,"  said  the  youth; 
"consider,  'tis  not  every  son  would  ride  through  pelting 
rain  and  spoil  his  garments  withal  for 

"Give  it  me,  I  say,"  cried  the  old  man  passionately. 

Piers  took  from  an  inner  pocket  a  letter,  sealed  with 
a  big  red  seal.  The  squire's  eyes  gleamed  as  he  took  it 
and  saw  the  handwriting  of  the  address ;  his  hand  trembled 
as  he  tore  away  the  seal  and  unfolded  the  paper.  Then 
came  a  sudden  change.  The  pallor  of  his  cheeks  became 
a  deathly  white,  his  features  were  distorted  with  rage,  he 
muttered  a  curse  and  flung  the  letter  to  the  floor. 

"  Gadzooks,  'tis  not  a  billet-doux,  then,"  piped  his  son, 
stooping  to  pick  up  the  paper. 

"  Let  it  lie!"  shouted  the  old  man.  "  Lay  not  a  finger 
on  it,  you — you  puppy!" 

"Why,  there  now,"  said  the  youth  in  an  aggrieved 
tone.  "That  is  all  the  thanks  I  get  for  adventuring  my- 
self in  the  fury  of  the  elements,  and  ruining  past  cure  as 
fine  a  coat  as  ever  was  seen  in  Spring  Garden." 

"  Silence!  Hold  your  foolish  tongue!  You're  a  useless 

254 


A  Message  from  Breda 

fool!  You're  a  scented  fop,  the  mock  of  every  farthing 
playwright  in  the  kingdom.  Heavens !  what  have  I  done 
that  I  should  be  cursed  with  a  brainless,  senseless  cox- 
comb that  can  do  nothing  but  squander  good  money  in 
fal-lals  and  worse!" 

' '  Odsnigs !  'tis  most  villainous  injustice.  I  can  do 
many  things,  egad.  I  can  make  a  good  leg,  and  trounce 
a  watchman,  and  pink  a  cit,  and " 

"  Out  of  my  sight,  out  of  my  sight!"  cried  the  exasper- 
ated father,  stepping  forward  with  uplifted  hand  as  though 
to  strike  the  poor  fool. 

"  Zoons!     I  protest  this " 

But  he  left  the  sentence  perforce  unfinished,  for  the 
squire  caught  him  by  the  shoulders  and  exerting  all  his 
strength  thrust  him  from  the  room,  turning  the  key,  and 
standing  for  a  moment  with  hand  on  heart  to  recover  his 
breath.  Then  he  suddenly  opened  the  door  again,  caught 
the  young  man  before  he  had  gone  three  steps,  swung  him 
round,  and  holding  him  in  a  firm  grip  said : 

"  See  that  you  say  nothing  of  this.  You  know  nothing 
of  that  man,  that  Aglionby,  except  that  you  met  him  on 
the  packet-boat;  you  hear  me?  Presuming  on  that 
acquaintance  he  sought  your  assistance;  you  have  wit 
enough  to  remember  that?  And  you  are  not  to  go  near 
him  again." 

"Egad,  I've  no  wish  to.  Once  is  enough.  A  prison 
cell  is  no  place  for  me.  I  had  to  hold  my  nose ;  and  egad, 
to  use  a  whole  bottle  of  scent  afterwards." 

The  old  man  pushed  him  contemptuously  away,  returned 
to  his  room,  and  again  locked  the  door.  He  picked  up 
the  letter,  sat  down  in  his  chair,  and,  crouching  there, 
seemed  to  have  shrunk  even  to  less  than  his  former 
meagre  bulk.  He  read  the  letter  again.  It  ran: — 

"SIR, 

"  Fate  is  against  me.  In  pursuit  of  the  Businesse  you 
wot  of,  I  am  at  this  present  layd  by  the  heels,  in  Jail,  under 
sentence  to  be  Hang'd.  Young  Rochester  &  my  Cozen  have 
done  it.  'Tis  nessessarie  for  you  to  pulle  me  out  of  this  Hole,  & 

2SS 


An  Afternoon  Call 

Speedilie,  or  /'//  tell  All  I  kno-we.  The  Meanes  I  leave  to  you ;  1 
advize  to  comunicate  with  Mr  de  Poliniac  at  his  house  in  the 
Plein;  he  will  helper  he  has  Goode  Reasone,  for  at  a  Worde  from 
me  he'll  swing  too.  No  more  at  this  Present  from  yr  humble 

"  RALPH  AGLIONBY. 
"  P.  S. — I  knew  your  Sonne  was  in  Breda.    He  knotves  Nothing. " 

The  squire  tore  up  the  paper  and  flung  the  pieces  on  the 
fire.  For  a  few  moments  he  sat  in  thought ;  then  he  rose 
and  went  into  an  ante-room,  returning  soon  in  his  out- 
door attire — wig,  cocked  hat,  and  long  cloak.  A  few 
minutes  later  he  was  walking  at  a  brisk  pace  through  the 
rain  towards  the  house  mentioned  in  Aglionby's  letter. 
He  knocked  at  the  door;  there  was  no  answer;  the  green 
shutters  were  closed,  the  house  had  the  appearance  of 
being  shut  up  for  the  season.  He  knocked  again,  and  yet 
again,  with  growing  vehemence,  attracting  the  attention 
of  passers-by.  At  length  the  door  was  opened  for  a  few 
inches.  Mr.  Berkeley  pushed  it,  but  it  was  on  the  chain. 

"  Qu'est-ce  que  Monsieur  demande?"  said  a  voice. 

"  Monsieur  de  Polignac." 

"Monsieur  is  not  within,"  said  the  same  voice  in  Eng- 
lish, the  speaker  having  detected  the  squire's  nationality 
by  his  accent. 

"Where  is  he?" 

"Pardon,  Monsieur,  I  am  not  sure  where  my  master  is 
at  this  moment;  but  if  Monsieur  will  leave  a  message 

Something  in  the  man's  manner  assured  Mr.  Berkeley 
that  he  was  lying. 

"Look  'ee,  my  man,"  he  said  sternly,  "I  counsel  you 
to  bethink  yourself.  I  will  walk  for  five  minutes,  in  the 
rain;  you  will  have  time  to  acquaint  your  master  that  an 
English  gentleman  whose  name  is  probably  unknown  to 
him  desires  to  see  him  on  a  very  urgent  matter — in  the 
interest,  mark  you,  of  himself.  An  urgent  matter,  mark 
you.  In  five  minutes  I  will  return." 

On  returning  Mr.  Berkeley  was  instantly  admitted. 
The  manservant,  cowering  beneath  his  stern  look,  led  him 

256 


When  Greek  meets  Greek 

meekly  to  a  room  off  the  hall,  where  he  found  Polignac  in 
long  cloak  and  jack-boots,  evidently  on  the  point  of  de- 
parting- on  a  journey.  The  squire  gave  him  a  keen  glance, 
and  was  not  surprised  to  find  that  it  was  the  same  man 
whom  he  had  met  at  the  door  of  Aglionby's  attic  some 
months  before. 

"  Monsieur  de  Polignac?"  he  said. 

"That  is  my  name,  Monsieur." 

"My  name  is  Berkeley.  I  met  you  at  Aglionby's.  It 
is  for  him  I  come.  I  desire  a  word  with  you." 

"  I  am  at  your  service,  Monsieur.     Shall  we  be  private?" 

"  It  will  doubtless  be  better  so." 

Polignac  shut  the  door,  and  offered  Mr.  Berkeley  a  seat. 

"Thank  you,  I  will  stand;  I  need  not  detain  you  long." 

"As  you  please,  Monsieur." 

"You  have  heard,  Monsieur,  of  the  plight  into  which 
our  friend  Captain  Aglionby  has  fallen? — I  say  our  friend." 

"  I  will  not  dispute  the  phrase,  Monsieur.  I  had  heard, 
as  you  surmise." 

' '  Pardon  me — as  he  is  our  friend — am  I  right  in  assum- 
ing that  the  news  may  have  some  little  connection  with 
your  purposed  journey?" 

"Since,  as  you  say,  he  is  our  friend,  I  do  not  deny  it, 
Monsieur." 

"  So  that  it  will  be,  let  us  say,  not  disagreeable  to  you 
if  some  means  of — -of  cheating  the  hangman — I  am  a  plain 
blunt  man,  Monsieur — should  be  discovered?" 

"  Pardon  me,  Monsieur,  I  do  not  follow  you." 

Mr.  Berkeley  looked  at  him  keenly. 

"  I  have  had  a  letter  from  our  friend,"  he  said  slowly. 

"And  I  also,  Monsieur." 

"  He  solicits  my  assistance." 

"And  mine." 

"  I  came  at  once  to  see  you." 

"And  I,  Monsieur,  leave  at  once  for  Paris." 

"Ah!" 

Polignac,  leaning  against  the  window  -  frame,  had  an 
inscrutable  smile  upon  his  face. 

2S7 


The  Tug  of  War 


"I  will  sit  down,"  said  Mr.  Berkeley,  placing  a  chair 
with  its  back  to  the  door;  "  I  find  our  interview  will  last  a 
little  longer  than  I  looked  for." 

"  As  you  please,  Monsieur.     You  will  permit  me?" 

Polignac  seated  himself  at  the  table. 

"It  appears,  Monsieur,"  said  the  squire,  "that  I  should 
have  said  my  friend." 

"Again,  Monsieur,  I  will  not  dispute  the  phrase.  His 
family  estates  join  yours,  I  understand?" 

"What?" 

"  I  do  not  know;  I  only  repeat  what  your  friend  told 
me." 

"Yes,  I  understand,"  said  Mr.  Berkeley  hurriedly, 
feeling  that  by  his  unguarded  exclamation  he  had  lost 
one  point  in  the  game.  "Not  precisely  adjoin,  but  the 
phrase  is  sufficiently  exact:  we  are  neighbours." 

"And  naturally  you  are  concerned  at  the  hapless  situa- 
tion into  which  your  neighbour's  evil  star  has  brought 
him." 

"That  is  so,  Monsieur." 

"  Especially  seeing  that  his  evil  star's  influence  extends 
also  to  you;  is  it  not  so?" 

"As  a  neighbour  and  friend,  you  mean,  Monsieur?" 

"No,  I  do  not  mean  that.  I  cannot  say,  like  you, 
Monsieur,  that  I  am  a  plain  blunt  man,  but  I  think  with 
small  effort  you  will  understand  my  meaning.  I  put  myself 
in  your  place.  Suppose,  I  tell  myself,  a  neighbour  of  mine, 
whom  I  had  found  useful,  had  in  the  course  of  some  enter- 
prise on  my  behalf  been  so  unlucky  as  to  come  into  the 
grip  of  the  law;  naturally  I  should  feel  deeply  concerned 
in  his  fate,  and  certainly  I  should  do  all  in  my  power  to 
save  him,  especially  if  I  knew  that  the  said  enterprise  was 
one  that  the  law  would  look  unkindly  on.  Such  would  be 
my  sentiments,  Monsieur,  and  I  do  not  suppose  myself 
different  from  other  men." 

"The  case  is  so  well  put,  Monsieur,  that  it  would  seem 
to  fit  your  situation  to  a  nicety." 

"Appearances  are  then  deceitful,  Monsieur.  Strange 

258 


Pourparlers 


to  say,  I  had  the  same  thought  with  regard  to  you.  Your 
friend  the  captain  is  not  a  hero,  certainly  not  a  martyr, 
and  even  though  a  few  vindictive  words  at  the  last  would 
not  save  his  neck,  yet  to  a  man  of  his  disposition  it  would 
sweeten  his  end  to  know  that  another  shared  his  fate." 

Mr.  Berkeley  had  been  growing  visibly  restive.  How 
much  did  this  suavely  malicious  Frenchman  know?  He 
dared  not  question  him  plainly. 

"You  speak,  Monsieur,  of  a  few  vindictive  words.  It 
is  clear  to  me  that  Aglionby  has  threatened  you " 

"And  I  care  not  a  jot  for  his  threats,"  interrupted 
Polignac.  "As  you  are  aware,  I  am  about  to  depart  fbr 
Paris;  eh  bien!  Monsieur  le  Capitaine's  threats  will  not 
reach  me  there." 

"  But  if  I  save  him,  Monsieur?" 

Polignac's  mouth  twitched. 

"  He  is  a  vengeful  man,"  pursued  the  squire.  "  I  should 
have  no  object  in  concealing  from  him  your  notions  of 
the  obligations  of  friendship;  and  since  it  appears  that 
you,  on  your  side,  permit  yourself  to  talk  of  an  '  enter- 
prise '  and  '  the  grip  of  the  law ',  does  it  not  occur  to  you 
that  the  captain,  and  I  myself  as  his  friend,  might  make 
things — well,  very  unpleasant  for  you?  And  remember, 
you  are  not  in  Paris  yet." 

There  was  a  moment's  silence,  taking  advantage  of 
which  Mr.  Berkeley  leant  forward  and,  tapping  Polignac's 
knee,  added: 

"  Come,  Monsieur,  let  us  understand  one  another.  It  is 
to  my  interest  that  Captain  Aglionby  should  not  die — by 
the  hangman;  it  is  to  your  interest — correct  me  if  I  am 
wrong  —  that  he  should  not  live,  or  you  will  find  this 
country  shut  to  you.  Our  interests  appear  to  clash;  but 
is  it  not  possible — I  throw  out  the  suggestion — to  reconcile 
them — to  gain  both  our  ends?" 

Polignac  smiled. 

"  Let  us  talk  as  friends,  Monsieur,"  he  said. 

An  hour  passed  before  Mr.  Berkeley  left  the  house.  It 
was  still  raining,  but  his  gloomy  expression  had  given 

259 


The  Merk 

place  to  one  of  fierce  satisfaction.  Poligfnac  bade  him  a 
cordial  adieu  at  the  door,  and  as  soon  as  he  was  gone 
called  his  servant. 

"  Antoine,"  he  said,  "unsaddle  my  horse.  I  do  not  ride 
to-day." 

One  evening-,  at  dusk,  Harry  Rochester,  whom  no  ex- 
perience could  cure  of  his  habit  of  taking  solitary  strolls, 
was  seated  on  a  bridge  spanning  the  Merk  at  a  short 
distance  outside  Breda.  His  thoughts  were  anything  but 
pleasant.  Aglionby  and  his  associates,  though  defended 
by  the  sharpest  criminal  lawyer  in  Holland,  had  been  con- 
demned to  death,  and  the  execution  had  been  fixed  for  the 
morrow.  Harry  knew  that  the  captain  richly  deserved  his 
fate;  his  action  in  betraying  his  cousin  Sherebiah  in  itself 
put  him  beyond  the  pale  of  pity,  to  say  nothing  of  his  per- 
sistent offences  against  Sherebiah's  master,  which  Harry 
was  more'  ready  to  forgive.  But  despicable  as  the  man 
was,  Harry,  'almost  in  spite  of  himself,  felt  a  certain  com- 
passion for  him.  He  had  learnt  from  Sherebiah  something 
of  his  history.  His  mother,  old  Gaffer  Minshull's  sister, 
had  died  when  Ralph  was  very  young,  heart-broken  by 
her  husband,  one  of  Cromwell's  Ironsides,  yet  a  hypocrite 
of  the  most  brutal  type.  Aglionby  had  received  a  fair 
education,  but  had  run  wild  from  boyhood,  and  as  a  mere 
youth  had  decamped  or  been  driven  from  his  father's  house 
and  gone  out  into  the  world  to  seek  his  fortune.  Shere- 
biah had  lost  sight  of  him  for  years;  suddenly  he  had 
reappeared  at  Winton  St.  Mary,  seared  with  travel  and 
hard  faring,  and  full  of  stories  of  adventure  and  prowess 
in  all  parts  of  Europe,  especially  in  the  service  of  the 
Czar  of  Muscovy.  Harry  knew  as  much  as  Sherebiah 
of  his  subsequent  career,  and  shared  the  surprise  of  the 
whole  village  at  the  strangely  close  acquaintanceship 
between  the  captain  and  the  squire. 

This  was  the  man  who  was  to  die  next  day,  and  Harry, 
sitting  on  the  bridge,  one  hand  clasping  his  knee,  almost 
wished  that  he  had  let  the  villain  go.  He  had  been  brought 

260 


Two  Men  and  a  Sack 

up  in  the  worst  school;  all  his  life  long-  he  had  been  an 
Ishmael,  his  hand  against  every  man,  every  man's  hand 
against  him.  His  mother  had  been  a  Minshull:  surely 
there  was  some  seed  of  good  in  him ;  mayhap  his  villainies 
were  only  the  desperate  expedients  of  a  man  who  had  no 
means  of  livelihood;  certainly  he  could  have  no  cause  of 
enmity  against  Harry,  and  his  machinations  must  be  put 
down  to  the  man  who  employed  him.  His  approaching 
fate  weighed  also  upon  Sherebiah,  who  had  for  days  gone 
about  with  restlessness  and  anxiety  printed  upon  his 
usually  jocund  face.  Certainly  the  good  fellow  had  no 
reason  to  love  Aglionby,  but  after  all  they  were  of  the 
same  blood,  and  Sherry  appeared  to  fear  keenly  the 
shame  and  disgrace. 

Looking  over  the  glooming  river,  idly  watching-  the  roll- 
ing water  and  the  scattered  buildings  upon  the  bank,  Harry 
suddenly  perceived  a  small  door  open  in  the  face  of  a  store 
or  warehouse  some  few  yards  to  his  left.  The  door  was 
some  thirty  feet  above  the  river,  and  gave  upon  a  narrow 
platform  to  which  goods  were  hoisted  by  a  crane  from 
barges  below.  As  the  door  opened,  inwards,  a  head  ap- 
peared. The  owner  looked  for  some  time  up  and  down 
the  river,  over  which  darkness  was  fast  falling.  All  was 
quiet;  no  traffic  was  passing;  no  craft  indeed  was  to  be 
seen  save  one  small  boat,  moored  to  a  post  on  the  bank 
some  yards  on  the  other  side  of  the  bridge. 

The  head  disappeared,  but  immediately  afterwards  two 
men  emerged  from  the  doorway,  coming  sideways  through 
the  narrow  opening.  Between  them  they  carried  a  large 
sack  which  their  exertions  showed  to  be  heavy.  They 
came  to  the  edge  of  the  platform;  they  laid  their  burden 
down;  then,  giving  a  quick  look  around,  with  one  push 
they  toppled  it  over,  and  it  fell  with  a  sounding  plump 
into  the  water.  It  disappeared  below  the  surface ;  after  a 
moment  the  two  men  returned  into  the  warehouse,  and  the 
door  was  shut. 

The  rivers  were  such  common  receptacles  of  rubbish 
that  Harry  would  not  have  given  a  second  thought  to  this 

261 


Snatched  from  the   River 

incident  but  for  a  certain  furtiveness  in  the  manner  of  the 
two  men.  He  wondered  what  the  sack  contained.  All 
at  once  he  saw  it  reappear  on  the  surface,  several  yards 
nearer  to  him ;  the  stream  was  flowing-  fast  in  his  direction. 

"'Tis  maybe  a  superfluous  dog-,"  he  thought,  for  only 
an  animal  was  likely  to  rise  after  such  an  immersion.  Yet 
it  was  larg-e  for  a  dog. 

The  sack  came  steadily  towards  him:  it  was  about  to 
pass  under  the  single  arch  of  the  bridge :  he  leant  over 
to  watch  it:  and  with  a  start  of  amazement  saw  dimly  a 
white  human  face.  At  that  same  moment  the  bundle 
sank  again.  Harry  could  not  know  whether  it  was  man 
or  woman,  whether  alive  or  dead,  but  without  an  instant's 
hesitation  he  ran  to  the  other  parapet,  sprang  on  it,  and 
dived  into  the  river.  A  drowning-  man  rises  three  times, 
he  had  heard;  perhaps  there  was  a  chance  to  save  this  poor 
wretch,  whoever  it  might  be,  and  foil  his  murderers. 

Coming  to  the  surface  with  a  g"asp,  he  looked  around 
for  any  sign  of  the  dark  bundle,  fearing  lest  in  the  black- 
ness of  the  encroaching  night  he  might  lose  it  altogether. 
For  some  seconds  he  saw  nothing;  then,  a  few  yards 
away,  it  bobbed  up.  Three  or  four  vigorous  strokes 
brought  the  swimmer  to  it  just  as  it  was  going  down 
once  more.  He  seized  it  with  his  left  hand  and,  sup- 
porting the  head  above  the  water,  made  for  the  bank, 
luckily  no  more  than  seven  or  eight  yards  distant.  He 
hauled  the  heavy  object  up  the  sodden  slope,  stooped  down 
to  examine  it,  and  saw  that  it  was  a  man  tied  up  to  the 
•  neck,  and  with  a  gag  about  his  mouth.  It  was  the  work 
of  a  moment  to  tear  away  the  gag.  He  placed  his  hand 
over  the  man's  heart:  did  it  still  beat?  He  could  not  tell; 
all  feeling  seemed  to  be  deadened  within  him  by  his  ex- 
citement and  strain.  The  man  made  no  sound  or  move- 
ment. Harry  shivered  and  thought  he  must  be  dead;  of  the 
means  to  resuscitate  a  half-drowned  man  he  knew  nothing. 

A  few  seconds  passed;  then  he  heard  hasty  footsteps 
behind  him,  and  turned  just  as  Sherebiah  sprang  down 
the  slope.  The  faithful  fellow  had  been  again  playing  his 

262 


Cousin   Rafe 

part  of  watch-dog;  he  had  seen  Harry's  plunge  into  the 
river,  and  raced  round  the  embankment  in  alarm. 

"  Fecks,  you  give  me  a  jump,  sir,"  he  panted. 
"What's  amiss?" 

"Ah!  Sherry,  look;  'tis  a  man,  in  a  sack;  the  poor 
wretch  is  drowned,  I  fear." 

"  'Tis  murder  then.     Let's  see,  sir." 

He  stooped  down,  cut  the  fastenings  of  the  sack,  and 
pulled  it  off  the  body. 

"Now  sir,  lend  a  hand.  Fust  thing  is  to  pour  the 
water  out  of  un." 

"  He  was  gagged,  Sherry." 

"Then  that  saves  our  time.  A  gagged  man  can't  ship 
many  gallons  o'  water.  Leave  un  to  me,  sir." 

He  quickly  opened  the  man's  coat  and  vest,  bent  over 
him,  and  pressed  heavily  beneath  his  lower  ribs.  Then  he 
sprang  back,  and  again  bent  forward  and  pressed.  After 
repeating  these  movements  several  times,  he  went  to  the 
man's  head,  took  his  arms  and  pulled  them  back  till  they 
met  behind,  then  jerked  them  forward  upon  his  breast. 
A  gurgling  sound  came  from  the  man's  lips. 

"He  be  alive,  sir,"  cried  Sherebiah.  "Another  minute 
or  two  and  we'll  have  un  on  his  feet." 

A  great  sigh  escaped  from  the  prostrate  form. 

"Well  done,  master,"  said  Sherebiah,  ceasing  from  his 
exertions.  "You've  got  your  breath  again,  thanks  be. 
Now,  take  your  time,  and  don't  get  up  till  'ee  feel  dis- 
posed :  only  bein'  drippen  wet  the  sooner  you  be  dry  the 

better,  so Sakes  alive!  Master  Harry,  'tis  my  good- 

for-nothen  cousin  Rafe  Aglionby,  and  no  one  else." 

"  Good  heavens!" 

"  Rafe,  man,  can  'ee  open  your  eyes?  'Tis  me  and 
Mr.  Rochester;  you  be  safe." 

Both  Harry  and  Sherebiah  were  now  stooping  over  the 
captain.  His  eyes  opened;  the  same  choking  sound  came 
from  his  lips.  For  some  minutes  he  lay  gasping,  wrig- 
gling, endeavouring  vainly  to  rise,  the  others  watching 
him  the  while  with  mixed  feelings.  His  recovery  of 
(  B  357 )  263  a. 


Scant  Gratitude 

consciousness  was  slow:  at  last  his  movements  ceased, 
he  heaved  a  great  sigh  and  looked  up  with  intelligence. 

"  How  be'st  come  to  this?"  asked  Sherebiah.  "Thowt 
'ee  was  ripe  for  hangman  this  time,  coz." 

"Rot  you!"  spluttered  the  captain,  struggling  to  his 
feet.  ''Hands  off!  Shall  I  never  be  quit  of  you!" 

"Zooks!  That's  your  thanks!  Come,  Rafe,  blood's 
thicker  nor  water,  as  'ee  said  yourself:  you've  broke  prison 
sure  enough,  but  they'll  be  after  'ee  afore  mornen.  Mr. 
Rochester  ha'  saved  'ee  from  drownen,  but  you  must  put 
a  few  miles  betwixt  'ee  and  hangman  afore  you  can  rest 
easy.  How  be'st  come  to  this,  man?" 

"  Let  me  go,  I  tell  you." 

"But  you  be  drippen  wet,  Rafe;  you'll  cotch  your  death 
o'  cold ; — and  faith,  so  will  Master  Harry.  Better  get 
home,  sir,  and  change  your  things." 

"No  hurry,  Sherry.  Captain  Aglionby,  believe  me,  you 
must  make  yourself  scarce.  You've  done  me  many  an 
ill  turn,  for  what  reason  I  know  not.  But  that's  past 
now ;  I  have  no  wish  to  give  you  up  to  the  hangman. 
There's  a  boat  moored  to  the  bank  a  few  yards  down : 
you  had  better  take  that,  and  row  through  the  night. 
Sherry,  you're  dry;  change  clothes  with  the  captain." 

"  I'll  have  none  of  his  clothes.  I'll  take  the  boat.  Out 
of  my  way ! " 

Escaping  from  Sherebiah's  grasp,  Aglionby  stumbled 
away  in  the  direction  of  the  boat,  the  other  two  watch- 
ing him  in  silence  until  the  darkness  swallowed  him. 

"  Unthankful  viper!"  muttered  Sherebiah. 

"To  save  a  foe's  life  is  an  injury  never  forgiven,"  said 
Harry  with  a  shrug.  "I'm  shivering,  Sherry:  let  us  get 
back." 

"Ay  sure.  But  I'd  like  to  know  what  be  the  true  meanen 
o'  this.  To  be  saved  out  o'  jail  and  then  chucked  into  river — 
why,  in  a  manner  o'  speaken  'tis  out  o'  fryen-pan  into  fire. 
One  thing  'tis  sure:  my  coz  Rafe  bean't  born  to  be  hanged  nor 
drownded  neither:  question  is,  will  it  be  pison  or  a  dagger- 
end?  But  you  be  mortal  cold,  true;  we'll  home-along,  sir." 

264 


A  Ray  of  Light 


They  returned  to  the  city,  and  were  passing-  a  large 
inn  in  the  market-place  when  Harry  suddenly  touched 
Sherebiah  on  the  arm. 

' '  Sherry,  you  see  that  man  at  the  door  of  the  coach 
there?  'Tis  one  of  the  men  I  saw  fling  Aglionby  into  the 
river.  I  know  him  by  his  cap." 

"I'  feck,  we'll  have  a  nearer  sight  on  un,  and  see  who 
he  be  speaken  to  in  coach.  Keep  close,  sir,  and  we'll  take 
a  peep  at  'em  unbeknown." 

Crossing  to  the  other  side  of  the  street,  and  keeping 
well  in  the  darkness,  they  quickly  made  their  way  towards 
the  coach,  and  reached  a  position  whence,  by  the  light  of 
the  inn  lamp,  they  could  see  into  it  without  being  seen. 
Each  turned  to  the  other  in  silence,  astonishment  and  con- 
viction in  their  eyes.  The  occupants  of  the  coach  were 
two :  Mr.  Berkeley  and  Monsieur  de  Polignac.  It  was  to 
the  latter  that  the  man  at  the  door  was  speaking.  They 
were  clearly  at  the  end  of  their  conversation;  the  man 
touched  his  cap  and  withdrew,  and  as  the  coach  drove  off, 
a  look  of  gratification  shone  in  the  faces  of  its  two 
occupants. 

"  What  do  you  make  of  that,  Sherry?" 

' '  Make  on't !  'tis  plain  as  a  pikestaff.  Dead  men  tells  no 
tales ;  that's  what  I  make  on't,  sir.  Rafe  Aglionby  knows 
a  mort  too  much  for  they  two  high-liven  villains;  that's 
where  't  is :  they  got  un  out  o'  jail  to  stop  his  tongue  at 
scaffold  foot,  and  then  pitched  un  in  the  river  to  cool  it 
for  ever.  'Tis  a  mortal  pity  we  let  un  go,  sir,  for't  seems 
to  me  we  ought  to  know  what  he  knows,  and  get  to  the 
bottom  o'  the  squire's  desperate  work  agen  you.  But  you 
always  was  a  tender-hearted  Christian,  like  your  feyther 
afore  'ee." 

' '  I  couldn't  let  neurder  be  done  before  my  very  eyes, 
Sherry." 

' '  Ah,  you'll  have  to  see  wuss  now  you  be  a  man  o' 
war,  sir.  Well,  'tis  heapen  coals  of  fire  on  his  yead,  as 
the  Book  says,  and  mebbe  Them  above'll  reward  'ee 
for't;  ay,  so." 

265 


CHAPTER   XIX 

Marlborough's  March  to   the   Danube 

No  soldier  worth  his  salt  ever  endured  the  long  idleness 
of  winter  quarters  patiently,  and  Harry  Rochester  was  not 
an  exception  to  the  rule.  As  the  weary  months  passed 
slowly  by,  he  grew  tired  of  the  endless  drilling  and  exer- 
cising, varied  by  marching  and  sham  fights.  He  was  very 
popular  with  his  captain,  Willem  van  der  Werff,  and  the 
other  officers  of  the  regiment,  but  found  himself  unable 
to  take  much  interest  in  their  amusements.  Beer-drinking 
was  not  to  his  taste ;  the  Dutch  comedies  performed  at  the 
theatres  were  dull,  and  the  paternal  government  prohibited 
the  performance  of  lighter  French  pieces.  As  the  winter 
drew  on  he  had  opportunities  of  skating,  and  became 
so  proficient  as  to  win  a  prize  at  a  regimental  match ; 
but  the  frost  was  not  of  long  duration.  He  was  not  a 
fellow  to  allow  time  to  hang  on  his  hands.  He  practised 
broadsword  and  sabre  with  Sherebiah,  read  a  great  deal 
of  Dutch,  studied  all  the  military  histories  on  which  he 
could  lay  hands,  and  spent  many  an  hour  poring  over 
maps  until  he  had  the  geography  of  all  central  Europe 
at  his  finger-ends. 

No  great  news  came  from  the  outside  world.  In 
November  the  Netherlands  suffered  in  some  degree  from 
the  fierce  storm  that  swept  through  the  Channel,  strewing 
the  English  shores  with  wrecks,  ripping  off  trees  at  the 
roots,  blowing  down  churches  and  houses.  In  the  same 
month  also  the  Archduke  Charles  passed  through  Holland 
en  route  for  England  and  Spain,  to  assume  in  the  latter 
country  the  sovereignty  which  was  the  bone  of  contention 
between  his  father  the  Emperor  and  King  Louis  of  France. 

Almost  the  only  relaxations  in  Harry's  life  were  his  visits 

266 


A   Foreigner  at  the  Hall 

to  Madame  de  Vaudrey's  house,  where  both  he  and  Fan- 
shawe  were  always  welcome  guests.  They  formed  with 
Mynheer  Grootz  a  little  house-party  there  during  the  New 
Year  week.  It  happened  that  on  the  last  day  of  the  year 
1703  Sherebiah  received  a  letter  from  his  father:  a  rare 
event.  One  piece  of  news  it  contained  was  much  discussed 
at  Madame  de  Vaudrey's  table. 

"And  now  I  must  tell  you,"  wrote  old  Minshull,  "as  Squire 
hev  had  a  Visiter  for  a  matter  of  munths.  Tis  a  tall  blacke 
Frenchman  by  his  looks  and  Spache,  a  tarrible  fine  gentleman, 
with  a  Smile  &  a  twitching  Mouthe.  Squire  &  he  be  alwaies 
together,  moste  particler  Frendes  it  do  seeme.  None  of  us  soules 
can't  abide  him,  nor  the  Qualitie  neither.  For  myself,  I  don't 
like  his  Lookes,  not  me,  &  'tis  luckie  he  can't  understand  Eng- 
lish, for  being  a  Man  to  speake  my  Minde  I  say  things  nowe 
and  again  as  would  turne  his  blacke  Hair  white." 

Harry  had  already  mentioned  having  seen  Polignac  drive 
away  from  Breda  in  company  with  the  squire. 

"The  odious  man!"  cried  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  when 
Harry  translated  the  gaffer's  letter.  "  I  only  wonder  that 
the  other  man,  that  insolent  captain,  is  not  with  them. 
I  wonder  where  he  is?" 

"I  don't  know,"  said  Harry,  who  had  kept  his  own 
counsel  regarding  the  last  he  had  seen  of  Aglionby. 

"I  hope  he  will  never  cross  my  path,"  said  Mynheer 
Grootz.  "He  is  truly  a  villain,  a  dastard:  to  inform  on 
his  cousin,  and  to  plan  the  attack  on  Harry,  and  to  have 
the  insolence  to  pay  court  to  Madame  la  Comtesse!" 

"Yes,  indeed,"  said  the  lady,  "and  my  dear  husband 
not  four  years  dead!  Who  is  the  squire  that  your  old 
friend  writes  of,  Harry?" 

"He  is  lord  of  the  manor  at  my  old  home,  Madame. 
His  son  is  in  one  of  our  foot  regiments,  and  Mr.  Berkeley 
came  over  to  Holland  with  him :  it  was  then  he  met  Mon- 
sieur de  Polignac." 

"  Qui  se  ressemble  s'assemble.  What  is  the  name  of 
the  bad  old  man,  Harry?" 

"Berkeley." 

267 


War  Again 


"Berkeley!"  Madame  de  Vaudrey  puckered  her  brow 
and  appeared  to  be  reflecting. 

"  How  ugly  your  English  names  are!"  exclaimed  Adele, 
' '  and  how  difficult  to  say !  I  cannot  even  yet  say  Roches- 
tair  properly." 

"You  say  it  better  than  you  say  my  name,"  said  Fan- 
shawe  gloomily. 

"But  then  I  have  known  Monsieur  Rochestair  longer," 
returned  Adele.  "Shall  we  go  into  the  drawing-room, 
Mamma?  I  do  so  want  to  hear  Monsieur  Fanshawe  sing 
that  amusing  song  of  his  again." 

Fanshawe  glowered.  He  knew  that  Adele  was  teasing 
him,  and  wished  with  all  his  heart  that  he  could  recall  the 
luckless  moment  when  he  had  first  amused  her  with  the 
song  of  "  Widdicombe  Fair  ".  Harry's  eyes  twinkled. 

"Yes,"  said  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  "you  young  people 
can  precede  us  to  the  drawing-room.  I  have  a  little  matter 
of  business  to  talk  over  with  our  good  friend  Mynheer 
Grootz." 

Then  Adele's  eyes  caught  Harry's,  and  they  both  smiled 
as  at  some  secret  known  to  them  alone. 

Time  passed  away,  and  at  length,  when  the  winter  was 
gone,  and  the  gray  Dutch  sky  was  rifted  with  the  blue  of 
spring,  came  the  welcome  news  that  Marlborough  had 
arrived  at  the  Hague  and  that  a  great  campaign  was  to 
open.  No  one  knew  what  the  duke's  plans  were,  but  there 
was  a  general  feeling  that  stirring  events  were  preparing, 
and  a  universal  hope  that  the  long  series  of  small  engage- 
ments, sieges,  marches  and  counter- marches  would  be 
brought  to  an  end  by  a  decisive  pitched  battle.  Mynheer 
Grootz  was  working  night  and  day  at  commissariat  busi- 
ness, and  for  weeks  there  was  a  continual  bustle  of  pre- 
paration: the  cleaning  of  arms,  the  testing  of  harness,  a 
thousand-and-one  details  that  employed  countless  people 
beside  the  soldiers. 

At  length  a  day  came  when,  all  preparations  completed, 
the  eager  troops  were  ready  to  march  out.  Harry  and 
Fanshawe,  accompanied  by  Sherebiah,  rode  over  to  Lin- 

268 


Good-bye ! 


dendaal  one  evening  to  take  farewell  of  the  ladies.  Fan- 
shawe  was  in  the  dolefullest  of  dumps.  Notwithstanding 
Adele's  refusal  of  him,  he  had  still  nursed  a  hope  that  time 
might  prove  on  his  side,  but  found  every  hint  of  a  senti- 
mental nature  adroitly  parried,  and  now  feared  that  with 
his  absence  his  last  chance  would  disappear.  His  spirits 
were  raised  a  little  by  the  warmth,  and  indeed  effusiveness, 
with  which  she  bade  him  good-bye. 

"  I  shall  hope  to  hear  great  things  of  you,  Monsieur," 
she  said,  "and  to  learn  that  you  have  come  through  the 
campaign  unscathed." 

"Your  good  wishes  shall  be  my  talisman,  Mademoi- 
selle," said  Fanshawe  gallantly,  bowing  over  her  hand. 

Harry  meanwhile  had  taken  leave  of  Madame  de  Vaudrey, 
who  held  both  his  hands  and  spoke  to  him  with  a  quite 
motherly  tenderness.  Then  he  turned  to  say  good-bye  to 
Adele.  She  had  disappeared.  Fanshawe  had  already  gone 
out  to  the  front  of  the  house  to  see  that  his  horse's  girth 
was  rightly  strapped,  and  Harry  followed,  thinking  that 
Mademoiselle  had  perhaps  accompanied  him  to  the  door. 
But  as  he  passed  through  the  hall,  he  saw  through  the 
open  door  of  the  dining-room  that  Adele  was  there,  stand- 
ing at  the  window  with  her  back  to  him. 

"There  you  are,  Mademoiselle,"  he  said,  entering  the 
room;  "  I  was  looking  for  you.  It  is  a  longer  good-bye 
this  time." 

She  turned  round  slowly,  and  her  back  being  to  the 
sunset  glow  he  could  scarcely  see  her  features.  She  held 
out  her  hand,  and  said  slowly,  with  perhaps  a  little  less 
cordiality  than  he  had  unconsciously  expected : 

"Adieu,  Monsieur  Harry!" 

He  took  her  hand,  hesitated  for  a  moment,  and  then 
was  gone. 

As  he  left  the  porch  he  saw  Sherebiah  coming  round 
from  the  garden  with  his  arm  unblushingly  about  the  waist 
of  Katrinka,  the  prettiest  maidservant  of  the  house.  The 
honest  fellow  led  the  girl  up  to  his  master. 

"  I've  done  it,  sir,"  he  said.  "  Her've  said  it.  Feyther 

269 


Comparisons 


o'  mine  may  think  what  a'  will,  but,  an't  please  Them  above 
to  bring  me  through,  by  next  winter  there'll  be  a  Mistress 
Minshull  once  more  to  comfort  his  old  aged  soul.  Eh, 
Katrinka,  lass?" 

The  girl  looked  shyly  up  and  dropt  a  curtsy. 

" 'Pon  my  soul,  Sherry,  you're  a  lucky  fellow,"  said 
Harry.  "  My  old  friend  will  be  pleased,  I  promise  you. 
And  look  'ee,  I'll  give  you  five  minutes  to  say  good-bye 
to  Katrinka  while  Mr.  Fanshawe  and  I  ride  on." 

"Thank  'ee,  sir!  I'll  catch  'ee  up,  soon  as  her  be 
done." 

"Sherry  has  had  better  luck  than  you,  Fanshawe,"  said 
Harry  with  a  smile,  as  they  rode  off. 

"Yes,  confound  him!  But  hang  it,  Harry,  I'll  not  give 
up  hope  yet.  She  was  very  kind  to  me  when  she  said 
good-bye,  and,  by  George !  if  I  only  escape  a  Frenchman's 
bullet  and  can  manage  to  come  off  with  flying  colours  and 
a  neat  little  sabre-cut — who  knows?  she  may  be  Mistress 
Godfrey  Fanshawe  yet." 

Harry  was  silent.  He  felt  a  little  surprised,  perhaps 
a  little  hurt,  that  Adele  should  have  shown  more  warmth 
to  Fanshawe,  a  friend  of  later  date.  He  did  not  know 
what  he  had  expected ;  he  could  not,  indeed,  have  put  his 
thoughts  into  words;  but  the  coldness  of  Mademoiselle's 
farewell,  so  strongly  contrasting  with  Madame's  affection- 
ate manner,  had  left  him  vaguely  dissatisfied  and  made 
him  disinclined  to  talk.  Fanshawe,  however,  was  in  high 
spirits,  and  chattered  freely  as  they  went  side  by  side  at 
a  walking  pace  along  the  road  to  Breda.  Sherebiah  by 
and  by  overtook  them,  and  kept  a  few  yards  behind.  He 
too  was  in  capital  spirits,  and,  having  no  one  to  converse 
with,  was  humming  as  he  rode : 

"  So  Tom  Pearce  he  got  to  the  top  o'  the  hill, 

All  along,  down  along,  out  along  lee ; 
And  he  seed  his  old  mare  a-maken  her  will, 

Wi'  Bill  Brewer,  Jan  Stewer,  Peter  Gurney,  Peter  Davy,  Dan 
Whiddon,  Harry  Hawk,  old  Uncle  Tom  CoBleigh  and  all, 
Old  Uncle  Tom  Cobleigh  and  all. 
270 


Up  the  Rhine 


"  So  Tom  Pearce's  old  mare,  her  took  sick  an'  died, 

All  along,  down  along,  out  along  lee, 
And  Tom,  he  sat  down  on  a  stone,  an'  he  cried, 

Wi'  Bill  Brewer,  Jan  Stewer,  Peter  Gurney,  Peter — — ** 

"Confound  you,  Sherry!"  cried  Fanshawe,  who  had 
been  so  busy  talking-  that  not  till  this  moment  had  he 
recognized  the  song-.  "Hanged  if  you  are  not  always 
singing  that  wretched  '  Widdicombe  Fair ' ! " 

1 '  Beg  pardon,  sir.  No  offence.  'Tis  a  favourite  ditty 
o'  mine,  and,  axin'  your  pardon,  I  thowt  'twas  one  o' 
yourn  too." 

"  Nay;  anything  else,  anything  else,  my  good  fellow,  not 
that,  as  you  love  me." 

"Very  good,  sir.  I  be  in  a  mind  to  troll  a  ditty,  'tis 
true,  and  if  my  tenor  tones  don't  offend  'ee,  I'll  try  a  stave 
o'  '  Turmut-hoein'." 

Next  morning,  under  a  bright  May  sun,  the  troops  in 
Breda  marched  out  to  join  the  Duke  of  Marlborough  at 
Ruremond.  As  Harry's  troop  passed  Lindendaal,  and 
he  caught  a  glimpse  of  fluttering  handkerchiefs  at  the 
windows,  he  could  not  help  wondering  whether  he  should 
see  those  kind  friends  again. 

At  Ruremond  the  troops  were  reviewed  by  the  duke 
himself;  thence  they  marched  to  Juliers  and  Coblentz, 
where  they  halted  for  two  days  to  allow  the  Prussian 
and  Hanoverian  levies  in  British  pay  to  unite  with  them. 
Everybody  had  expected  that  the  march  would  be  con- 
tinued up  the  Moselle,  with  the  purpose  of  coming  to  grips 
with  the  French  army  under  Marshal  Villeroy.  But  to  the 
general  astonishment  orders  were  given  to  cross  that  river 
by  the  stone  bridge,  and  then  the  Rhine  by  two  bridges  of 
boats,  and  to  proceed  through  the  principality  of  Hesse- 
Cassel.  The  new  orders  were  eagerly  discussed  by  the 
officers  of  all  the  corps,  but  Marlborough  had  kept  his  own 
counsel,  and  indeed  at  this  time  his  plan  was  known  to 
scarcely  anyone  but  Lord  Godolphin,  with  whom  he  had 
talked  it  over  in  outline  before  leaving  England,  and 

271 


A  Bold  Stroke 

Prince  Eugene  of  Savoy,  to  whom  he  had  entrusted  it  in 
correspondence. 

The  plan  must  have  seemed  hazardous,  even  reckless,  to 
soldiers  who  held  by  the  old  traditions;  but  it  was  one  that 
displayed  Marlborough's  military  genius  to  the  full.  He 
had  divined  the  true  meaning  of  the  recent  movements  of 
the  French  armies,  and  determined  on  a  great  effort  to 
defeat  the  aim  of  King  Louis  so  shrewdly  guessed  at. 
Relying  on  his  ally,  the  Elector  of  Bavaria,  the  French 
king  had  resolved  to  make  a  strenuous  attack  upon  the 
Emperor  in  the  heart  of  his  own  dominions,  Vienna.  If 
Austria  were  crushed  in  one  great  battle,  Louis  had  reason 
to  expect  a  general  rising  of  the  Hungarians,  by  which 
the  empire  would  be  so  much  weakened  that  he  could 
enforce  peace  and  secure  the  triumph  of  his  policy  on  his 
own  terms.  Already  a  French  army  under  Marshal  Marsin 
had  joined  forces  with  the  Elector  of  Bavaria;  other  armies 
were  rapidly  advancing  to  reinforce  them,  and  the  com- 
bined host  would  be  more  than  a  match  for  any  army  that 
the  emperor  could  put  in  the  field  against  it. 

Marlborough  saw  only  one  way  to  save  the  empire:  he 
must  prevent  if  possible  the  junction  of  the  several  French 
armies,  or,  if  that  were  impossible,  defeat  them  in  a  pitched 
battle.  But  he  knew  that  the  States  of  Holland  would 
shrink  from  the  risk  of  an  expedition  so  far  from  their 
own  borders ;  he  therefore  gave  out  that  his  campaign 
was  to  be  conducted  along  the  Moselle,  and  only  when 
he  was  well  on  his  way,  and  it  was  too  late  to  oppose 
him,  did  he  reveal  his  full  design.  Fortunately  the  Dutch 
Government  rose  to  the  opportunity;  they  sent  him  the 
reinforcements  and  supplies  he  asked  for,  and  were  satis- 
fied with  the  detachment  of  one  or  two  small  forces  to 
keep  watch  on  Villeroy,  who  had  crossed  the  Meuse  and 
was  threatening  Huy.  For  himself,  Marlborough  intended 
to  press  forward  with  all  speed  towards  the  Danube,  join 
Prince  Louis  of  Baden  and  Prince  Eugene  of  Savoy,  and 
give  battle  to  the  combined  French  and  Bavarians  on 
ground  of  his  own  choosing. 

272 


Marlborough's  Way 

For  Harry  this  famous  march  was  attended  with  endless 
novelty  and  excitement.  Every  morning-  at  dawn  camp 
was  struck,  and  for  five  or  six  hours,  with  occasional 
halts,  the  troops  marched,  covering1  twelve  or  fifteen 
miles,  and  bivouacking-  about  nine  o'clock,  thus  com- 
pleting the  day's  work  before  the  sun  grew  hot.  All 
along-  the  route  supplies  for  man  and  beast  were  furnished 
by  commissaries,  whose  duties  were  so  well  organized  that 
everything  was  on  the  ground  before  the  troops  arrived, 
and  they  had  nothing  to  do  but  pitch  their  tents,  boil  their 
kettles,  and  lie  down  to  rest.  Everything  was  arranged 
and  carried  -out  with  matchless  regularity  and  order ;  Marl- 
borough  himself  had  a  thorough  grasp  of  the  details,  and 
showed  such  consideration  for  his  men  that  on  personal 
grounds  he  won  their  admiration  and  confidence.  The 
passage  of  so  large  and  miscellaneous  a  force,  consisting 
of  English,  Dutch,  Prussians,  Danes,  and  levies  from  several 
of  the  minor  German  states,  might  well  have  been  attended 
by  many  disorders;  but  Marlborough  always  displayed 
great  humanity  in  his  dealings  with  the  people  of  the 
country  through  which  he  passed,  and  in  these  matters 
an  army  takes  its  cue  from  the  commander-in-chief. 

After  quitting  Coblentz,  the  duke  went  forward  a  day's 
march  with  the  cavalry,  leaving  the  artillery  and  foot  to 
follow  under  the  command  of  his  brother,  General  Charles 
Churchill.  Unfortunately  rainy  weather  set  in  towards  the 
end  of  May,  and  the  roads  were  rendered  so  difficult  that 
Churchill's  force  lost  ground,  and  by  the  time  Marlborough 
reached  Ladenburg,  on  June  2,  was  four  or  five  days  behind. 
This  delay  gave  the  duke  some  little  cause  for  anxiety,  for 
he  had  learnt  that  Prince  Louis  of  Baden,  a  brave  but  slug- 
gish general  of  the  old  school,  had  allowed  reinforcements 
to  reach  the  Elector  of  Bavaria,  and  failed  to  seize  an 
excellent  opportunity  of  defeating  the  combined  force. 
Marlborough,  wishing  on  this  account  to  hurry  his  ad- 
vance, sent  back  two  troops  of  Dutch  horse  to  assist  his 
brother  with  the  cannon.  One  of  these  happened  to  be 
Harry's.  The  heavy  Flemish  horses  were  serviceable  in 

273 


Despatches 


dragging1  the  guns,  but  the  rains  were  so  persistent  and  the 
soft  roads  so  cut  up  that  when  Churchill  reached  Maintz 
he  was  still  some  five  days'  march  behind  the  duke. 

Late  on  the  night  of  June  3,  when  the  camp  was  silent, 
a  courier  reached  Maintz  with  the  following  despatch  from 
Marlborough  at  Ladenburg: — 

"  I  send  this  by  express  on  purpose  to  be  informed  of  the  con- 
dition you  are  in,  both  as  to  the  troops  and  the  artillery,  and  to 
advise  you  to  take  your  march  with  the  whole  directly  to  Heidel- 
berg, since  the  route  we  have  taken  by  Ladenburg  will  be  too 
difficult  for  you.  Pray  send  back  the  messenger  immediately, 
and  let  me  know  by  him  where  you  design  to  camp  each  night, 
and  what  day  you  propose  to  be  at  Heidelberg,  that  I  may  take 
my  measures  accordingly." 

General  Churchill  was  roused  from  sleep  to  receive  the 
despatch.  He  at  once  wrote  his  reply,  but  on  sending  it 
out  to  the  messenger  learnt  that  he  had  been  suddenly 
seized  with  illness,  and  was  unable  to  ride.  Churchill  then 
sent  for  Captain  van  der  Werff,  and  asked  him,  since  he 
had  already  ridden  the  Ladenburg  road  with  his  troop, 
to  despatch  the  letter  by  one  of  his  subalterns.  The 
captain,  who  knew  of  Harry's  relations  with  Marlborough, 
pleased  himself  with  the  thought  of  bringing  the  two  to- 
gether again,  and,  to  Harry's  unbounded  delight,  ordered 
him  to  ride  at  once  to  Ladenburg.  Before  he  went  he 
was  summoned  to  the  bedside  of  General  Churchill,  and 
saw  the  tall,  thin,  battered  form  of  that  excellent  soldier 
in  the  unheroic  attire  of  night-shirt  and  cap.  From  him 
he  learnt,  in  case  of  accident,  the  gist  of  the  message, 
which  was  that  Churchill  undertook  to  arrive  at  Heidel- 
berg on  June  7.  Harry  started  before  dawn,  and  reached 
the  camp  at  Ladenburg  early.  He  had  crossed  the  Neckar 
by  the  bridge  of  boats  used  by  Marlborough's  troops  on 
the  previous  day,  and  found  the  army  encamped  along  the 
river-side  opposite  the  town.  The  usual  daily  march  had 
been  pretermitted,  in  order  to  allow  time  for  the  infantry 
to  make  up  something  of  the  ground  it  had  lost. 

274 


A  Mission  to  Eugene 

When  Harry  was  taken  into  the  presence  of  the  com- 
mander-in-chief,  Marlborough  was  engaged  in  conversa- 
tion with  Count  Wratislaw,  the  emperor's  agent,  Colonel 
Cadogan,  his  quartermaster-general,  and  other  officers  of 
his  staff.  The  duke  had  learnt  that  Prince  Eugene  of 
Savoy  was  on  his  way  to  join  him,  and  was  anxious  that 
the  meeting  should  take  place  as  soon  as  possible,  so  that 
the  plan  outlined  in  their  correspondence  might  be  dis- 
cussed in  full  detail.  He  had  sent  two  messengers  with 
letters  to  meet  Prince  Eugene,  informing  him  of  his  where- 
abouts and  urging  him  to  hasten  his  coming;  but  neither 
had  returned,  and  he  could  not  but  fear  that  some  mis- 
chance had  befallen  them.  But  it  was  a  characteristic  of 
Marlborough's  that,  whatever  his  difficulties  and  anxieties, 
he  preserved  always  the  same  outward  appearance  of 
settled  calm — a  great  factor  in  his  power  over  men. 

He  received  General  Churchill's  letter  from  Harry's 
hand  with  a  pleasant  smile  and  word  of  thanks,  and  bade 
him  wait,  to  see  if  it  demanded  an  answer.  Then  he  re- 
sumed his  conversation,  which  was  conducted  in  French. 
Before  long  Harry,  though  he  remained  at  a  distance  too 
great  to  allow  of  his  hearing  what  passed,  judged  from 
the  glances  thrown  occasionally  in  his  direction  that  some- 
thing was  being  said  about  him.  Presently  Marlborough 
beckoned  him  forward. 

"Mr.  Rochester,"  he  said,  "I  have  an  errand  for  you. 
I  wish  to  communicate  with  Prince  Eugene  of  Savoy;  two 
of  my  officers  whom  I  sent  to  him  have  apparently  mis- 
carried ;  I  wish  to  try  a  third.  You  have  had  experience 
in  getting  about  the  country,  and  I  know  from  one  or  two 
incidents  in  your  late  career  that  you  have  your  wits  about 
you  and  can  make  good  speed.  You  will  carry  a  letter 
from  me  to  Prince  Eugene.  I  will  inform  your  colonel 
that  I  have  employed  you  on  special  duty. — Mr.  Cardonnel, 
be  good  enough  to  write  from  my  dictation." 

He  dictated  a  short  note  to  his  secretary. 

"You  understand  French,  of  course,  Mr.  Rochester?" 

"Yes,  my  lord." 

27S 


Fanshawe  Missing 


"Then  I  need  not  repeat  my  message.  You  will  keep 
it  in  mind  in  case  circumstances  should  require  you  to 
destroy  the  letter.  You  may  meet  with  danger  on  the 
road;  otherwise  I  am  at  a  loss  to  know  why  I  am  with- 
out a  reply  to  my  two  former  letters.  You  must  therefore 
be  on  your  guard.  You  will  use  all  dispatch,  hiring  fresh 
horses  wherever  it  may  be  necessary — without,  of  course, 
incurring  needless  expense.  I  opine  that  you  may  meet 
Prince  Eugene  at  Innspriick;  Colonel  Cadogan  will  furnish 
you  with  a  map;  your  best  road  will  lie  through  Heidel- 
berg, Wisloch,  and  the  Swabian  Alb.  When  you  reach 
the  prince  you  will  doubtless  be  fatigued;  his  reply  may 
be  sent  by  another  messenger,  to  whom  you  will  give  such 
hints  for  his  guidance  as  your  own  journey  may  suggest. 
In  that  case  you  need  not  unduly  hurry  your  own  return, 
and  on  your  way  back  you  may  find  it  possible  to  make 
enquiries  regarding  the  fate  of  my  missing  messengers: 
they  were  Lieutenant  Fanshawe  of  the  Duke  of  Schom- 
berg's  Horse,  and  Lieutenant  Buckley  of  Colonel  Cado- 
gan's.  Do  you  know  either  of  them?" 

"Lieutenant  Fanshawe  is  an  old  friend  of  mine,  my 
lord,"  said  Harry,  "but  I  don't  know  Lieutenant 
Buckley." 

"Very  well.  His  Excellency  Count  Wratislaw  here 
will,  I  doubt  not,  favour  you  with  a  letter  of  safety  which 
will  avail  you  with  any  of  the  civil  authorities  whose 
assistance  you  may  need  en  route',  but  since  'tis  advisable 
to  attract  as  little  attention  as  possible,  I  counsel  you  to 
make  no  use  of  the  letter  except  on  emergency.  'Twill 
be  common  knowledge  along  the  road  whether  the  prince 
has  passed  on  his  way  to  the  army,  so  that  you  should  meet 
with  no  difficulty  in  finding  him.  Perhaps,  the  two  lieu- 
tenants having  apparently  come  to  grief,  'twould  be  well 
for  you  to  ride  incognito.  What  is  your  opinion,  Colonel 
Cadogan?" 

"  Faith,  my  lord,  let  him  go  as  a  young  English  milord 
making  the  grand  tour." 

"  But  he  would  then  need  a  servant  and  baggage." 
276 


The   Road  to  Innspriick 

"Give  out  that  his  servant  has  broken  his  leg-  or  is  laid 
up  with  the  colic,  and  he  is  riding-  post  to  Venice ;  his  wits 
will  invent  a  reason." 

"  I  think,  sir,  I  would  rather  go  as  I  am,"  said  Harry. 
"  My  errand  would  not  then  be  complicated." 

"The  simpler  way  is  often  the  best,"  said  the  duke. 
"Very  well.  Here  is  the  letter;  I  will  send  you  Count 
Wratislaw's  shortly;  you  will  then  set  off  at  once." 

Harry  bowed  and  withdrew,  feeling  highly  elated  at 
being  entrusted  with  this  mission.  It  was  an  expedition 
on  which  he  would  gladly  have  had  the  company  of  Shere- 
biah ;  but  there  was  no  time  to  send  for  him ;  besides,  one 
might  go  more  safely  than  two.  An  hour  later,  furnished 
with  a  supply  of  money  by  Colonel  Cadogan,  he  rode  off 
on  a  fresh  horse,  passed  through  Heidelberg  without  delay, 
by  favour  of  Count  Wratislaw's  safe-conduct,  and  struck 
into  the  long  straight  road  that  led  due  south  through 
Leimen  and  Wisloch. 

What  had  become  of  Fanshawe,  he  wondered.  It  was 
a  friendly  country;  the  enemy  were,  so  far  as  he  could 
gather,  no  nearer  than  Ulm  on  the  Danube,  so  that  it 
was  little  likely  that  Fanshawe  had  fallen  in  with  French 
or  Bavarian  troops.  On  the  other  hand,  the  country  was 
infested  with  spies,  and  here  and  there  in  out-of-the-way 
spots  bands  of  outlaws  were  said  to  have  fixed  their 
haunts,  whence  they  made  depredations  on  neighbouring 
villages.  But  it  was  useless  to  speculate  on  what  might 
have  happened,  and  Harry  took  care  not  to  awaken 
curiosity  or  suspicion  by  any  premature  enquiries.  Stop- 
ping merely  to  change  horses  at  posting  inns  and  to 
snatch  a  light  meal,  he  reached  Stuttgart  about  six 
o'clock  in  the  afternoon,  having  ridden  sixty  miles  since 
he  left  Ladenburg.  This,  with  his  previous  ride  from 
Maintz,  had  made  him  stiff  and  sore ;  but,  tired  as  he  was, 
he  determined  to  push  on  after  a  short  rest,  and  reach,  if 
possible,  the  little  town  of  Urach  that  night. 

Soon  after  leaving  Stuttgart  he  entered  the  district 
known  as  the  Swabian  Alb,  a  country  of  wooded  moun- 

277 


Zum  Grauen   Baren 

tains  and  picturesque,  well-watered  valleys,  now  in  all  their 
midsummer  glory.  The  road  became  steeper  after  he  had 
crossed  the  river  Neckar,  and  as  his  horse  was  labouring 
somewhat  he  began  to  wish  that  he  had  remained  to  sleep 
in  Stuttgart.  He  was  still  some  miles  short  of  Urach 
when  he  came  suddenly  upon  an  inn,  standing  back  from 
the  high-road,  and  nestling  among  a  group  of  tall,  full- 
leaved  beeches.  It  bore  the  sign  "Zum  grauen  Baren". 
The  pleasant  situation  and  the  warm  colours  of  this 
Swabian  hostelry  were  very  inviting  to  a  tired  man.  His 
mouth  was  parched  with  thirst;  his  horse  was  panting 
and  steaming;  and  a  short  rest  would  do  both  of  them 
good.  A  moment's  hesitation ;  then  he  wheeled  to  the 
left,  and  was  met  by  the  landlord,  who  rose  from  a  bench 
before  the  inn,  where  he  was  smoking  his  evening  pipe 
along  with  a  squat  companion  looking  like  a  farmer. 
The  landlord  was  not  so  attractive  in  appearance  as  his 
inn,  but  he  gave  Harry  a  suave  greeting  in  German,  and 
asked  how  he  could  serve  the  noble  Herr.  Harry  had 
picked  up  a  word  or  two  of  German  in  Holland,  and  asked 
in  that  tongue  for  the  refreshment  he  desired;  but  at  the 
first  word  the  landlord  gave  him  a  sharp  yet  furtive  look, 
immediately  effaced  by  his  wonted  bland  smile.  He  went 
into  the  inn,  and  soon  returned  with  a  cup  of  wine,  while 
an  ostler  brought  a  pail  of  water  for  the  horse. 

Harry  was  glad  to  rest  his  aching  limbs  on  the  bench, 
and  to  sip  the  cool  Rhenish.  The  landlord,  standing  by 
him,  showed  a  desire  to  be  conversational. 

"The  noble  Herr  is  for  Urach?  He  will  scarcely  get 
there  to-night." 

He  spoke  now  in  a  mixture  of  German  and  bad 
French. 

"Why,  is  it  so  far?"  said  Harry.  "I  thought  I  was 
nearly  there." 

"True,  Excellency,  it  is  not  very  far;  but  the  town 
council  has  become  somewhat  timid  since  the  French  and 
Bavarians  came  prowling  along  the  Danube,  and  the  gates 
are  shut  at  half-past  seven." 

278 


Mein  Wirth 

"A  solitary  horseman  will  not  scare  them,"  said  Harry 
with  a  smile.  "They  will  surely  open  to  me." 

"Not  so,  Excellency.  The  order  is  stern.  Why,  only 
yesterday  a  Rittmeister  passing  to  join  the  forces  of  the 
Prince  of  Baden  was  refused  admittance  just  after  the 
clock  had  struck,  and  had  to  come  back  to  this  very  inn. 
Donner,  was  he  not  angry,  the  noble  Herr!  But  anger 
cannot  pierce  stone  walls;  the  gentleman  uttered  many 
round  oaths,  but  he  came  back  all  the  same.  Was  it  not 
so,  Hermann?" 

His  thickset  companion  assented  with  a  rough  "Jawohl!" 

"Well,  I  can  but  try,"  said  Harry,  thinking  of  Count 
Wratislaw's  letter  as  his  open  sesame.  "  I  shall  ride  on 
in  a  minute  or  two." 

The  landlord  lifted  his  eyebrows. 

"The  noble  Herr  has  perhaps  more  persuasion  than  the 
Herr  Rittmeister.  But  if  you  find  it  as  I  say, — well,  there 
is  good  accommodation  within." 

He  went  into  the  inn  with  his  companion,  leaving  Harry 
on  the  bench.  Harry  reflected.  It  was  absurd  to  tire 
himself  needlessly ;  he  had  ridden  with  brief  intervals  for 
nearly  eighteen  hours  since  he  left  Maintz,  and  felt  by  no 
means  eager  to  get  into  the  saddle  again.  Perhaps  it 
would  be  best  to  close  with  the  man's  offer,  sleep  at  the 
inn,  and  start  fresh  early  in  the  morning.  Yet  he  hesi- 
tated ;  there  was  something  about  the  landlord  that  he  did 
not  like;  he  felt  for  him  one  of  those  unaccountable  anti- 
pathies that  spring  up  at  a  word,  a  look,  a  touch.  But 
the  feeling  was  vague  and  unsubstantial ;  after  a  moment 
he  dismissed  it  as  unreasonable,  and  concluded  that  his 
best  course  would  be  to  take  his  rest  now  rather  than  run 
the  risk  of  having  it  deferred  for  some  hours. 

He  went  into  the  inn. 

"The  noble  Herr  decides  to  stay?"  said  the  landlord. 
"Well!  I  would  not  persuade,  but  I  think  you  are  right, 
Excellency.  Johann,  take  the  gentleman's  horse  to  the 
stable.  I  will  see  then  that  a  room  is  prepared.  And  you 
will  like  supper,  Excellency?" 

(  B  357 )  279  T 


Breakfast  at  Three 

"Yes.     Anything  will  do." 

He  accompanied  the  ostler  to  the  stable  and  saw  the 
horse  well  rubbed  and  fed. 

"Whose  horse  is  that?"  he  asked,  noticing  a  sorrel  in 
the  next  stall. 

"He  belongs,  Excellency,  to  the  gentleman  now  with 
the  host,  byname  Hermann  Bart,  a  farmer  of  the  district." 

"Oh!  he  looks  a  strong  beast — the  horse,  I  mean.  I 
shall  want  to  be  off  at  dawn;  you'll  see  that  my  horse  is 
ready?" 

Returning  to  the  inn,  he  ate  the  plain  supper  brought 
him  by  an  old  woman  as  deaf  as  a  post.  While  he  sat  at 
table  the  landlord  stood  opposite  him,  attentively  antici- 
pating his  wants. 

"  I  can  have  a  light  breakfast  at  three,  landlord?" 

"  Certainly,  Excellency;  we  are  early  birds  here,  though 
in  these  times  there  are  few  travellers  along  the  road, 
more's  the  pity." 

"  Ah !     Is  there  any  news  of  the  armies  hereabouts?" 

"Why  yes.  Only  yesterday — so  it  is  said- — the  Elector 
of  Bavaria  crossed  the  river  at  Ulm,  and  the  Prince  of 
Baden,  who  'tis  to  be  hoped  will  beat  him,  stands  some- 
what higher  up  at  Ehingen  across  the  mountains  yonder." 

"You  have  not  been  troubled  yourself  by  the  soldiers?" 

"Never  a  whit,  Excellency.  And  I  trust  I  never  shall 
be.  They  march,  you  see,  along  the  rivers,  and  my  little 
place  is  out  of  their  route.  You  are  travelling  far,  mein 
Herr?" 

"Not  a  great  distance,"  replied  Harry,  thinking  it 
prudent  to  give  no  information.  The  landlord  made  no 
attempt  to  press  him,  but  kept  up  a  desultory  conversa- 
tion until  he  had  finished  his  supper. 

"I  will  go  and  take  a  look  at  my  horse,  and  then  turn 
in." 

He  went  out  to  the  stable,  and  noticed  that  the  second 
horse  was  gone. 

"Your  friend  the  farmer  has  gone  home  then?"  he  said 
to  the  ostler. 

280 


The  Second-best  Room 

• 

"Yes,  Excellency,  some  time  ago." 

"My  horse  is  comfortable,  I  see;  good-night ! " 

As  he  left  the  stable  he  heard  the  man  behind  him 
whistling  as  he  gave  the  cobbles  a  final  sweeping  for  the 
night.  The  tune  seemed  familiar,  but  Harry  was  not 
sufficiently  interested  to  give  another  thought  to  it.  The 
landlord  met  him  at  the  door  with  a  lighted  candle  and  led 
the  way  to  his  room. 

"It  is  a  small  room,  Excellency,"  he  explained  apolo- 
getically;  "not  such  a  room  as  befits  a  gentleman  of  your 
rank.  But  the  truth  is,  the  heavy  rains  of  late  have  found 
out  a  weak  spot  in  the  roof,  and  my  large  guest-chamber 
is  consequently  very  damp.  The  small  room  here  to  the 
left  is,  however,  very  comfortable;  it  was  last  occupied  by 
an  Austrian  nobleman  who  slept  through  the  night  with- 
out turning  an  eyelid." 

"Then  it  will  suit  me  very  well,"  said  Harry. 

"  Breakfast  at  daybreak,  you  said,  Excellency?" 

"Yes." 

"You  will  want  nothing  more  to-night?" 

"Nothing.     Good-night,  landlord!" 

Harry  shut  the  door  and  shot  the  bolt.  He  thought  the 
Austrian  nobleman  must  have  been  easily  satisfied.  The 
room  was  about  twelve  feet  by  seven,  and  contained 
nothing  but  a  bed  and  a  chair.  There  was  one  small 
window  opening  on  to  the  courtyard  some  thirty  feet 
below,  the  view  of  the  yard  being  partially  obstructed  by  a 
projecting  wing  of  the  house  immediately  beneath.  The  air 
of  the  room  being  very  stuffy,  he  opened  the  window  wide; 
then  he  undressed,  blew  out  the  light,  and  got  into  bed, 
pulling  out  the  blanket,  which  seemed  somewhat  frowsy, 
and  finding  enough  warmth  in  the  light  coverlet. 

But  he  found  it  impossible  to  sleep.  He  was  in  fact 
overtired,  and  bodily  fatigue  often  makes  the  mind  only 
more  active.  He  fell  a-musing,  and  wondered  what  it 
was  in  the  landlord's  manner  that  he  disliked.  Through 
the  window  came  the  sound  of  the  stableman's  whistle  as 
he  lacked  the  yard  gate,  and  Harry  tried  in  vain  to  recol- 

281 


A  Trap-Door 


lect  where  he  had  heard  the  tune  before.  The  ostler  was 
a  happy  fellow,  evidently;  perhaps  his  master  was  better 
than  he  appeared.  The  whistling-  ceased,  a  door  banged, 
presumably  the  man  had  gone  to  bed;  "  and  he'll  sleep  as 
sound  as  a  top,"  thought  Harry.  He  turned  over  on  to 
his  back  and  stared  at  the  ceiling,  which  consisted  of  thick 
beams  with  rough  boards  between.  By  and  by  he  noticed 
a  dark  square  outline  in  the  planking  just  above  him.  He 
could  not  see  it  distinctly,  for  the  beams  of  the  rising 
moon  did  not  fall  upon  it  directly,  but  across  the  bed, 
making  the  room  itself  fairly  light.  For  a  time  he  looked 
idly  at  the  square;  it  was  evidently  a  trap -door.  He 
began  to  be  curious  about  it,  then  was  aware  of  an  in- 
definable, inexplicable  sense  of  uneasiness,  of  insecurity. 
He  felt  that  he  could  neither  withdraw  his  gaze  from  the 
trap-door  nor  put  it  from  his  thoughts.  He  turned  on 
to  his  right  side,  away  from  the  window,  but  in  a  few 
moments  was  on  his  back  again,  staring  up  as  before. 

"This  is  ridiculous,"  he  said  to  himself  impatiently. 
"I  wonder  whether  the  thing  has  a  bolt." 

He  rose,  and,  standing  on  the  bed,  found  that  with  out- 
stretched hand  he  could  just  reach  the  boards.  Exploring 
the  edge  of  the  trap-door  with  his  fingers  he  soon  dis- 
covered that  there  was  no  bolt,  though  there  had  evidently 
been  one  at  some  time,  for  on  a  second  search  he  felt  an 
iron  socket  let  into  one  of  the  adjacent  joists.  He  raised 
himself  on  tiptoes  and  gently  pushed  at  the  door.  It  rose 
slightly;  clearly  it  was  not  fastened  above.  No  glimmer 
of  moonlight  came  through  the  small  gap  between  the  trap 
and  the  ceiling;  therefore  it  did  not  give  directly  upon  the 
roof,  but  probably  opened  into  an  attic  or  loft.  There  was 
nothing  more  to  be  discovered,  and  indeed  he  scarcely  felt 
that  he  needed  to  discover  more,  for  his  uneasiness  had 
already  been  largely  dissipated  by  action.  He  lay  down 
again,  and  tried  to  sleep. 

This  time  he  was  successful.  How  long  he  slept  he  did 
not  know.  He  suddenly  awoke,  and  at  the  first  moment 
of  consciousness  remembered  the  ostler's  tune;  he  identi- 

282 


Midnight  Visitors 


fied  it  now;  it  was  something  like  Fanshawe's  song  of 
"  Widdicombe  Fair".  He  was  not  enough  of  a  musician 
to  decide  how  close  was  the  resemblance;  country  songs 
of  different  nations  were,  he  supposed,  often  alike.  Glad 
that  his  puzzlement  was  gone,  he  settled  himself  once 
more  to  sleep. 

All  at  once  his  senses  were  roused  to  full  activity  by  the 
sound  of  two  or  more  horses  approaching  the  inn,  at  a 
walk,  as  he  knew  by  the  fall  of  the  hoofs.  It  was  very 
late  for  travellers ;  besides,  travellers  would  probably  have 
ridden  up  at  a  trot;  he  wondered  who  the  riders  could 
be,  and  listened  intently.  In  a  few  moments  the  sounds 
ceased;  then  through  the  open  window  came  the  murmur 
of  low  voices.  Springing  quietly  out  of  bed,  he  went 
to  the  window  and  peeped  cautiously  out.  Five  men 
were  leading  their  horses  into  the  copse  immediately 
opposite  to  the  inn.  The  short  squat  figure  of  one  of 
them  reminded  him  of  the  farmer  whom  he  had  seen 
with  the  landlord  a  few  hours  before ;  he  seemed  the 
shorter  by  contrast  with  the  next  man,  a  tall  massive 
figure.  They  went  quietly,  and  disappeared  into  the 
copse;  soon  afterwards  four  of  them  emerged  from  the 
trees  and  approached  the  inn.  Not  a  word  was  spoken; 
the  men  were  apparently  walking  on  tiptoe;  but  there 
came  the  slight  sound  of  a  door  opening  and  closing,  then 
dead  silence  again. 

By  this  time  Harry  was  as  wide-awake  as  ever  he  had 
been  in  his  life.  His  uneasiness  returned  in  full  force,  and 
was  now  magnified  into  suspicion.  The  landlord's  furtive 
look  and  unsatisfactory  manner;  the  story  of  the  closing 
of  the  gates  of  Urach;  his  lame  explanation  about  the 
room;  the  absence  of  a  fastening  to  the  trap-door;  the 
disappearance  of  the  landlord's  forbidding  companion ;  the 
reappearance  of  the  same  man  with  a  number  of  others; 
their  stealthy  movements,  and  the  fact  that  they  had  tied 
their  horses  up  in  the  copse  instead  of  bringing  them  into 
the  courtyard — all  these  were  links  in  a  chain  of  suspicious 
circumstance,  of  little  significance  singly,  but  disturbing 

283 


A   Hasty  Toilet 


when  taken  together.  And  the  stableman's  tune — what 
did  that  mean?  Was  it  actually  the  tune  of  "  Widdicombe 
Fair",  and  not  merely  one  resembling-  it?  Had  the  ostler 
heard  it  from  Fanshawe's  lips?  Was  he  on  the  track  of 
the  explanation  of  the  disappearance  of  one  of  Marl- 
borough's  messengers? 

Quickly  and  noiselessly  Harry  slipped  on  his  clothes. 
His  first  duty  was,  of  course,  to  deliver  the  duke's  letter; 
nothing  must  interfere  with  that.  His  suspicions  might 
be  utterly  groundless,  but  on  the  other  hand  they  might  be 
only  too  well  justified.  He  must  be  on  the  safe  side;  it 
was  necessary  to  put  himself  out  of  harm's  way. 

Only  one  staircase  led  to  his  room :  it  sprang  from  the 
narrow  entrance -hall  of  the  inn,  on  each  side  of  which 
were  the  doors  of  the  rooms  on  the  ground  -floor.  He 
could  scarcely  hope  to  be  able  to  pass  down,  however 
stealthily,  without  being  discovered ;  and  even  if  he  did 
succeed  in  this  and  left  the  inn,  he  would  be  immediately 
seen  by  the  fifth  man,  who,  he  guessed,  had  been  left  in 
the  copse  to  keep  watch  on  the  front  door.  The  staircase 
being  given  up,  there  remained  only  the  window  and  the 
trap-door.  By  placing  the  chair  upon  the  bed  and  mount- 
ing it  he  might  manage  to  swing  himself  up  through  the 
trap-door;  but  it  flashed  upon  him  that  if  any  mischief 
were  intended  the  midnight  visitors  would  certainly  ap- 
proach through  the  attic  or  loft  above.  He  remembered 
passing,  at  the  head  of  the  stairs,  a  door  which  he  had 
taken  to  be  that  of  a  cupboard ;  it  might  be  the  entrance  to 
a  stair  leading  to  the  loft,  and  if  he  tried  that  exit  he  would 
certainly  be  in  an  even  worse  trap. 

A  glance  from  the  window  determined  his  choice.  There 
was  a  drop  of  about  fifteen  feet  from  it  to  the  roof  of  the 
outbuilding.  In  the  moonlight  he  caught  sight  of  what 
appeared  to  be  the  top  of  a  drain-pipe  from  the  roof  of  this 
lower  building  to  the  ground.  The  drain-pipe  would  form 
an  easy  means  of  descent  could  he  gain  the  roof.  There 
was  only  one  way  to  do  that :  to  descend  by  aid  of  a  rope. 
Without  hesitation  he  drew  the  thin  coverlet  from  the  bed, 

284 


A  Sound  on  the  Stairs 

and  tore  it  across  the  middle.  Knotting  the  two  pieces 
together  he  rolled  up  a  clumsy  but  serviceable  rope.  The 
window  was  only  two  feet  from  the  bed-post.  He  tied  the 
rope  to  this,  slung-  his  boots  round  his  neck,  wrapped  his 
scabbard  in  a  corner"  cut  from  the  blanket,  to  prevent  its 
clanking,  and  prepared  to  descend. 

It  was  fortunate  that  the  window  was  already  open,  for 
the  creaking  of  the  frame  might  have  attracted  attention. 
There  was  a  risk  that  the  man  in  the  copse  might  see  him 
as  he  got  through  the  window;  but  the  moon  was  now 
above  the  house,  and  the  overhanging  roof  cast  a  deep 
shadow  over  all  below. 

He  had  his  hand  on  the  broad  window-sill,  preparing  to 
begin  the  descent,  when  an  idea  gave  him  pause.  How 
ridiculous  he  must  appear  if  his  suspicions  turned  out  to 
be  baseless,  and  he  had  slunk  like  a  thief  from  the  house ! 
How  humiliating  would  be  his  situation  if  he  were  caught 
in  the  act  and  treated  as  a  doubtful  character !  He  could 
not  be  suspected  of  stealing;  there  was  nothing  to  steal; 
but  he  might  be  thought  to  be  running  away  without 
paying.  He  could  prevent  that,  at  any  rate.  He  put  a 
gold  piece  on  the  chair. 

"That's  double  pay,"  he  thought. 

But  still  he  hesitated.  No  man  cares  to  look  a  fool,  and 
he  would  certainly  look  very  foolish  if  his  imagination 
proved  to  have  run  away  with  him.  But  what  is  that? 
A  slight  creak  on  the  stairs,  then  another.  Now  a  faint 
rustle  outside  the  door.  Holding  his  breath  he  listens. 
Yes,  the  supposed  cupboard  door  is  being  opened;  a 
moment,  then  he  hears  the  faint  but  unmistakable  creak 
of  footsteps  on  the  crazy  stairs  leading  to  the  attic.  He 
hesitates  no  longer.  In  two  minutes  at  the  most  the 
intruders  will  have  come  through  the  trap -door  into  the 
room.  Throwing  one  leg  over  the  window-sill,  he  grasps 
his  rope  with  one  hand  and  the  sill  with  the  other;  over 
goes  the  other  leg,  and  now  he  is  hanging  by  the  frail 
rope.  He  feels  the  soft  material  yield  to  his  weight;  it  is 
stretched  to  its  full  extent ;  it  holds !  He  needs  it  for  only 

285 


Through  the  Copse 

a  few  feet.  Down  he  glides:  his  feet  touch  the  slates  of 
the  outhouse;  now  he  is  in  full  view  from  the  copse  save 
that  a  chimney-stack  on  the  roof  throws  a  black  shadow  all 
around  him.  Will  he  escape  notice?  Keeping  the  chimney 
between  him  and  the  copse  he  crawls  slowly  over  the  slates 
and  finds  as  he  had  hoped  that  the  rain-water  pipe  is  out 
of  sight.  He  slips  over,  grasps  the  pipe,  and  is  half-way 
down  when  there  is  a  noise  in  the  room  above ;  and  as  his 
feet  at  last  touch  the  ground  he  sees  two  faces  at  the  open 
window  and  hears  loud  shouts. 

He  had  already  resolved  on  a  risky  experiment;  it 
appeared  his  only  chance  of  escape.  He  had  noticed  that 
the  country  around,  though  hilly,  was  bare  of  vegetation 
except  about  the  inn,  where  trees  had  been  planted  to 
tempt  wayfarers.  He  knew  that  as  soon  as  he  got  away 
from  the  buildings  his  figure  would  be  seen  in  the  bright 
moonbeams,  and  he  was  bound  to  be  ridden  down.  The 
shouts  from  the  window  might  be  expected  for  the  moment 
to  hold  the  attention  of  the  naan  on  the  watch.  Relying 
on  this,  Harry  darted  across  the  road  in  the  shadow  of  the 
outbuildings  and  dived  into  the  copse  some  twenty  or 
thirty  yards  from  the  place  where  the  men  had  entered 
with  the  horses.  Bending  low,  moving  rapidly,  yet  with 
all  possible  caution,  among  the  trees,  he  bore  to  the  left 
towards  the  single  watcher,  whom  he  could  now  hear  on 
the  road  shouting  in  answer  to  the  men  in  the  house. 
Harry  could  not  distinguish  their  words,  but  judged  from 
the  vehemence  of  their  tone  and  his  own  consciousness  of 
his  design  that  they  were  bawling  to  the  sentinel  to  return 
to  the  horses  he  had  left.  It  was  a  question  which  should 
reach  them  first.  The  copse  was  almost  dark;  a  glint  of 
light  from  the  moon  filtered  through  the  foliage  here  and 
there.  Running  in  his  stockings  Harry  made  no  noise; 
but  he  could  already  hear  the  heavy  trampling  of  the  man 
as  he  plunged  through  the  trees  somewhere  to  his  left. 

Suddenly  he  came  to  a  narrow  clearing;  on  the  other 
side  he  saw  the  horses  tethered  to  the  trees.  Keeping  just 
within  the  edge  of  the  copse  he  ran  round  at  his  utmost 

286 


Stampede 


speed  towards  the  animals,  and  just  before  he  reached 
them  saw  that  their  guardian  had  arrived  at  the  end  of  the 
clearing-  nearest  to  the  road  and  had  stopped  in  the  attitude 
of  listening.  There  was  much  hubbub  from  the  direction 
of  the  inn,  and  by  the  sounds  Harry  knew  that  several  men 
were  crossing  the  road  towards  the  copse.  The  horses 
were  between  him  and  the  solitary  sentinel.  Coming  to 
the  nearest,  he  cast  off  its  bridle,  then,  vaulting  to  the 
saddle,  he  drew  his  sword  and  cut  the  bridles  of  the  others, 
which  were  standing  head  to  head,  loosely  attached  to  the 
projecting  branch  of  a  small  tree.  The  man  gave  a  shout 
and  rushed  forward  when  he  saw  Harry  on  the  horse. 
It  was  a  moment  for  quick  decision.  Smartly  hitting  the 
four  intervening  horses  with  the  flat  of  his  sword,  Harry 
set  them  scampering  through  the  edge  of  the  copse.  The 
man  could  not  evade  them,  and  in  a  moment  he  was 
knocked  down.  Harry  meanwhile,  trusting  to  the  dark- 
ness, followed  on  the  heels  of  two  horses  which  were 
heading  through  the  clearing  towards  the  inn.  At  the 
outer  edge  of  the  copse  he  was  encountered  by  two  men 
who  attempted  to  catch  his  rein.  Toppling  one  over  and 
cutting  at  the  other  he  gained  the  highway;  then  set  his 
borrowed  steed  to  a  gallop  and  rode  on  towards  Urach. 
"A  near  shave!"  he  thought.  He  stopped  a  few  hundred 
yards  from  the  walls  to  put  on  his  boots,  then  rode  up  to 
the  gate. 

It  was  shut,  and  he  had  some  difficulty  in  rousing  the 
gatekeeper.  When  the  man  came  at  length  to  his  sum- 
mons, he  refused  point-blank  to  allow  the  rider  to  enter. 

"I  can't  wait,"  cried  Harry.  "Seek  the  officer  of  the 
watch ;  I'll  not  answer  for  what  may  happen  if  you  delay 
me." 

The  gatekeeper  went  away  grumbling  and  returned  with 
the  lieutenant  of  the  town  guard,  who  held  a  pistol  and 
asked  Harry's  business. 

"I  am  on  a  mission  for  my  lord  Marlborough,"  said 
Harry.  "  This  letter  from  his  Excellency  Count  Wratislaw 
will  satisfy  you." 

287 


The  Lieutenant  of  the  Guard 

The  officer  tried  to  read  the  letter  by  the  light  of  the 
moon,  but  finding  this  impossible,  waited  until  the  gate- 
keeper had  lit  his  horn  lantern.  Then,  having  read  the 
letter,  he  ordered  the  man  to  open  the  gate. 

"  Will  you  ride  farther  to-night,  Monsieur?"  he  asked. 

"  No,  I  am  dog  tired,"  replied  Harry.  "  Will  you  direct 
me  to  a  lodging?" 

"Permit  me  to  offer  you  the  hospitality  of  my  own 
quarters.  The  inns  are  all  closed,  of  course;  you  are  a 
very  late  traveller,  Monsieur." 

"  Yes,  I  have  been  somewhat  delayed  on  the  road.  If 
you  will  give  me  sleeping  quarters  for  a  few  hours  I  shall 
be  obliged  to  you." 

In  less  than  a  quarter  of  an  hour  he  was  fast  asleep. 
At  four  he  was  wakened,  according  to  instructions  given 
before  he  turned  in.  Stiff  and  sore  as  he  was,  he  meant 
to  ride  on  at  once,  for  the  sooner  his  mission  was  com- 
pleted the  sooner  would  he  have  the  opportunity  of  seeking 
an  explanation  with  the  innkeeper,  which  he  promised 
himself  should  be  a  thorough  one.  The  lieutenant  of  the 
guard,  a  pleasant  fellow,  had  a  light  breakfast  ready,  and 
was  eager  to  give  information  about  the  road.  From  him 
Harry  learnt  that  the  highway  to  Biberach  would  lead 
through  the  lines  of  Prince  Louis  of  Baden.  Though  he 
had  no  instructions  to  avoid  the  prince's  army,  he  thought 
it  very  probable  that  he  would  best  serve  the  duke  by 
preventing  gossip.  So,  finding  that  by  diverging  somewhat 
to  the  right  and  taking  the  road  by  Riedlingen  he  would 
pass  outside  Prince  Louis's  lines  and  lose  little  time,  he 
decided  to  adopt  this  course.  Thanking  his  entertainer, 
and  promising  to  call  on  him  on  the  way  back,  he  set  off 
on  his  ride.  Not  a  word  had  he  said  about  his  adventure 
at  the  inn.  It  would  be  time  to  deal  with  that  when  his 
duty  was  done. 

Harry  rode  a  hundred  miles  that  day,  reaching  the  town 
of  Immenstadt  in  the  evening.  He  met  with  no  adventure 
on  the  way;  he  found  ready  service  at  the  inns  at  which  he 
stopped  to  change  horses,  rest,  and  eat.  But  at  the  day's 

288 


At  Obermiemingen 

end  he  felt  all  but  worn  out.  The  sun  had  shone  brilliantly, 
scorching  his  face,  neck,  and  hands,  and  causing  much  dis- 
comfort to  his  horses.  They  suffered,  however,  less  than 
he,  for  while  the  steeds  were  changed  at  short  stages,  the 
rider  was  always  the  same.  He  got  some  little  relief  by 
walking  up  the  steepest  hills  along  the  road.  His  physi- 
cal state  and  his  preoccupation  made  him  oblivious  of  the 
scenes  through  which  he  passed;  afterwards  he  had  but 
the  vaguest  recollections  of  hill  ridges,  bosky  dells,  blue 
lakes,  and  dark  masses  of  rock,  with  a  miry  road  winding 
among  them,  and  here  and  there  inns  where  he  was  thank- 
ful to  rest  awhile. 

He  slept  that  night  at  Immenstadt,  rose  reluctantly  early 
next  morning,  and  started  for  what  he  hoped  was  the  last 
stage  of  his  journey.  About  ten  o'clock  he  arrived  at  the 
little  village  of  Obermiemingen.  As  he  rode  in,  he  noted 
signs  of  excitement  in  the  street.  The  whole  population 
seemed  to  be  gathered  about  the  inn.  At  the  door  stood 
a  heavy  travelling  coach  with  four  horses,  two  of  them 
saddled  for  postilions.  His  arrival  diverted  the  attention 
of  some  of  the  peasants  to  himself,  and  they  parted  to 
make  way  for  him.  Dismounting  stiffly  he  went  to  the 
inn-door  and  called  for  the  host.  After  some  time  a  servant 
came  to  him  and  explained  that  mine  host  was  engaged  at 
that  moment  with  his  Excellency  Prince  Eugene  of  Savoy, 
who  had  driven  up  shortly  before  attended  by  two  officers 
and  thirty  troopers. 

"Then  I  am  in  luck's  way,"  said  Harry.  "I  have  a 
letter  to  his  Excellency:  conduct  me  to  his  room." 

Two  minutes  later  he  found  himself  in  the  presence  of 
the  renowned  soldier:  the  man  who,  mocked  at  in  the 
French  court  as  the  "  little  abbe"  "  and  refused  employment 
by  King  Louis,  had  ever  since  lived  for  nothing  else  but  to 
prove  himself  a  thorn  in  that  monarch's  side.  He  was  of 
somewhat  less  than  the  middle  height,  dark-complexioned, 
with  refined  though  not  small  features,  and  large  flashing 
eyes.  Harry  presented  his  letter;  the  prince  having  read 
it,  laughed  and  said: 

289 


The  Little  Abbe 

"  My  lord  Marlborough  is  anxious,  Monsieur.  But  a 
few  hours  ago  I  received  a  message  from  him — dated 
several  days  back,  it  is  true :  you  have  had  better  fortune 
than  the  first  messenger.  The  letter  was  brought  to  me  at 
Innspriick  by  a  farmer  from  the  Swabian  Alb;  the  courier, 
an  officer  of  my  lord  Marlborough,  had  fallen  from  his 
horse,  it  appears,  and  being  conveyed  to  a  cottage  the 
children  had  made  free  with  his  wallet  while  he  himself 
lay  insensible  and  their  elders  were  attending  upon  him. 
For  myself,  I  suspect  it  was  the  elders  who  were  curious. 
But  the  letter  contained  no  more  than  this  one  you  have 
brought,  so  their  curiosity  reaped  but  little  gratification. — 
Now,  are  you  to  carry  my  answer  to  my  lord?" 

"  If  your  Excellency  wishes,"  said  Harry,  "but  my  lord 
duke  told  me  I  might  use  another  hand  if  I  were  fatigued." 

"And  that  you  certainly  are.  You  must  have  come  at 
great  speed,  and  I  will  not  tax  you  further.  Very  well.  I 
am  proceeding  to  Immenstadt ;  there  I  shall  await  a  com- 
munication from  Vienna,  and  then  go  directly  forward  to 
my  meeting  with  the  duke.  I  will  acquaint  him  of  my 
design  by  a  messenger  of  my  own.  Pray  refresh  yourself 
now,  Monsieur." 

In  a  few  minutes  the  prince  drove  off  with  his  escort, 
and  Harry  enjoyed  a  sort  of  reflected  importance.  He  was 
given  the  best  the  inn  could  afford,  and  provided,  after 
some  delay  and  difficulty — his  request  was  almost  incom- 
prehensible to  the  landlord — with  the  luxury  of  a  bath. 
He  remained  in  Obermiemingen  until  the  heat  of  the  day 
had  spent  itself,  then  cantered  easily  back  to  Immen- 
stadt, where  for  the  first  time  for  many  days  he  slept  the 
round  of  the  clock.  Reporting  himself  to  Prince  Eugene 
next  morning,  he  learnt  that  the  expected  messenger  from 
Vienna  had  not  yet  arrived,  and  having  nothing  to  detain 
him  there  he  started  on  the  road  back.  There  was  no  need 
for  hurry ;  that  day  he  rode  seventy  miles,  to  Riedlingen ; 
then  next  morning  he  went  on  to  Urach,  where  he  at  once 
looked  up  the  amiable  lieutenant  of  the  guard  who  had 
treated  him  so  well  on  his  way  through. 

290 


Max   Berens 

"You  are  back  then,  Monsieur?"  said  the  lieutenant, 
greeting  him  heartily.  "I  did  not  tell  you  before,  but 
the  truth  is  I  was  not  at  all  sure  you  would  reach  your 
destination  safely." 

"And  you  didn't  wish  to  frighten  me!  But  why, 
Monsieur?" 

"There  are  bands  of  marauders  in  the  hills;  deserters, 
broken  men,  and  what  not,  ready  to  snap  up  any  unsus- 
pecting traveller  who  promises  to  be  worth  it.  They  have 
done  much  damage  in  the  neighbourhood,  robbing  and 
plundering  undefended  farms  and  hamlets,  and  though  we 
are  strong  enough  here  to  beat  them  off  we  cannot  risk  an 
expedition  against  them,  and  Prince  Louis  of  Baden  is  too 
much  occupied,  I  suppose,  to  give  any  heed  to  our  requests 
for  assistance." 

"Well,  Monsieur,"  said  Harry,  "I  was  not  ignorant  of 
what  you  have  told  me.  And  indeed  I  want  to  ask  your 
help  in  a  matter  not  unconnected  with  it.  Two  messengers 
from  my  lord  Marlborough's  army  have  disappeared  some- 
where in  these  parts;  I  think  I  have  a  clue  to  their  fate,  and 
wish  to  follow  it  up.  Can  you  procure  me  the  services  of 
a  stout,  sensible  fellow  to  ride  with  me? — a  man  thoroughly 
to  be  depended  on,  and  one  who  will  face  danger  if  need  be." 

"  I  know  the  very  man,"  said  the  officer  instantly;  "one 
Max  Berens,  who  was  servant  to  a  French  officer  until  the 
beginning  of  the  war,  but,  refusing  to  fight  against  his  own 
people,  is  now  out  of  employment.  He  is  a  young  fellow, 
strong,  honest,  intelligent;  I  know  him  well.  I  will  send 
for  him." 

Harry  liked  the  look  of  Max  Berens  when  he  appeared. 
He  reminded  him  not  a  little  of  Sherebiah,  of  whom  he 
might  have  been  a  younger  and  a  slighter  copy.  Max 
readily  accepted  Harry's  offer  of  a  week's  service,  and 
promised  to  be  ready  with  horses  at  seven  o'clock  that 
same  evening. 

At  that  hour  the  two  rode  north  towards  the  wayside  inn. 
On  the  way  Harry  asked  Max  if  he  knew  anything  of  the 
landlord. 

291 


A   Surprise  Visit 


"  Little  enough,  Monsieur.  He's  a  sly  fellow,  and 
demands  high  prices;  but  there,  the  same  could  be  said 
of  any  innkeeper." 

As  they  drew  near  the  inn  they  made  a  detour,  and, 
entering  the  copse  from  the  farther  side,  tied  up  their 
horses  and  came  through  the  trees.  Dusk  had  already 
fallen,  and  as  the  sky  was  overcast  the  evening  was 
blacker  than  is  usual  at  the  time  of  year.  The  inn  was 
in  darkness  except  for  a  light  in  the  kitchen.  Followed 
by  Max,  Harry  emerged  from  the  copse,  crossed  the  road, 
and  rapped  smartly  on  the  closed  door.  It  was  opened 
almost  immediately  by  the  landlord  himself,  who,  seeing 
two  men  on  foot,  and  not  recognizing  Harry  in  the  dark- 
ness, said: 

"Come  in,  gentlemen.  What  are  your  commands?  I 
will  bring  a  light  in  a  moment." 

Returning  with  a  candle,  he  now  saw  who  the  first  of 
his  visitors  was,  and  looked  very  uncomfortable. 

"  I   have  very  little  in  the  house,   Excellency "  he 

began  deprecatingly.     Harry  cut  him  short. 

"Pray  don't  be  distressed.  I  left  hurriedly — you  re- 
member me,  landlord? — and  we  have  a  little  reckoning  to 
make  together.  It  need  not  take  long. — Max,  stand  at 
the  door,  and  see  that  our  good  host  and  I  are  not  dis- 
turbed.— Now,  landlord,  we  will  have  a  little  talk."  The 
kitchen  door  was  open  and  the  room  empty.  "This  will 
do  quite  well;  I  repeat,  we  shall  not  remain  long." 

The  man  looked  relieved,  Harry  thought;  but  he  said 
nothing,  merely  brushing  a  chair  for  his  visitor.  Harry 
sat  down,  removed  his  hat,  and  leant  back,  stretching  his 
legs  for  comfort  after  his  ride. 

"Yes,  landlord,  I  left  your  house  somewhat  hurriedly,  I 
fear,  and  at  an  unseemly  hour." 

The  man  shot  a  quick  glance  at  him ;  but,  having  now 
had  time  to  collect  his  wits,  assumed  an  air  of  friendly 
concern,  and  began  to  speak  with  great  volubility. 

"The  noble  Herr  had  indeed  a  miraculous  escape.  Your 
excellency  will  remember — I  told  you  of  the  marauders. 

292 


Mein  Wirth  Explains 

They  are  dangerous  knaves;  they  stick  at  nothing;  only 
the  other  day  they  sacked  and  burnt  a  farmhouse  in  the 
hills,  and  killed  all  the  inmates — man,  wife,  three  children, 
and  a  dozen  servants.  Glad  indeed  was  I  to  find  that  your 
excellency  had  eluded  them.  They  must  have  spied  upon 
your  coming-;  yes,  dangerous  villains,  I  say.  We  should 
have  had  troops  to  protect  us,  but  his  highness  Prince 
Louis — whom  God  defend! — cannot  spare  a  man,  it  is 
said,  so  hard  is  he  pressed  by  the  French ;  and  we  poor 
Swabians  are  at  the  mercy  of  these  robbers,  the  offscour- 
ings of  all  the  armies.  Ah,  your  excellency,  these  are  bad 
times  for  us  poor  folk,  bad  times  indeed;  not  that  it  be- 
comes me  to  complain  when  our  noble  rulers  think  it  neces- 
sary to  make  war;  but  it  is  the  poor  who  suffer.  It  is  we 
who  are  taxed  to  keep  the  soldiers  afoot;  the  bread  is 
taken  out  of  our  children's  mouths ;  we  are  murdered  and 
robbed,  our  houses  are  plundered  and  burned " 

"Except  in  your  case,  mein  Wirth,"  said  Harry,  inter- 
rupting the  man's  hurried,  nervous,  inconsequent  speech. 
"You  seem  very  comfortable  here;  I  see  no  signs  of 
plunder  or  burning." 

"No,  your  excellency,  they — they — they  were  disturbed." 

"Disturbed!" 

"Did  I  say  disturbed?  I  meant  alarmed — alarmed, 
mein  Herr.  Your  excellency's  escape — for  which  Heaven 
be  thanked! — caused  them  to  hurry  off; — yes,  to  hurry  off, 
for,  of  course,  they  feared  the  guard  from  Urach ;  that  is 
how  it  was:  your  excellency  understands?" 

"  Perfectly.     And  which  way  did  they  go?" 

"Which  way,  your  excellency?"  The  man's  tone  was 
expressive  of  the  greatest  surprise :  he  was  gaining  confi- 
dence. "How  should  I  know?  They  galloped  away; 
that  was  all  I  knew " 

"  Ah !     And  where  did  they  get  the  horses?" 

"The  horses!  the  horses!  Ah  yes!  the  horses."  Mine 
host  was  now  floundering  desperately.  "  Why,  of  course, 
they  caught  the  horses  and  then  galloped  away — you 
understand?" 

293 


Injured  Innocence 


"  Excellently.  And  my  horse — you  have  that  in  your 
stable  still?" 

"Your  horse!  Yes,  of  course;  it  must  be  there;  I  will 
go  and  saddle  it  myself  for  your  excellency." 

"Not  so  fast.  There  is  no  hurry,  my  friend.  They 
caught  the  horses  and  galloped  away.  And  where  are 
they  now?" 

"What  strange  questions,  Excellency!  Where  are  they 
now?  How  should  I  know!  It  is  announced  they  went 
away  towards  Ulm:  one  can  never  tell  with  such  wretches: 
they  are  here  to-day  and  gone  to-morrow.  To  look  for 
them  would  be  like  looking  for  a  needle  in  a  haystack." 

"That's  a  pity,  landlord;  I  fear  you  must  make  up  your 
mind  for  a  long  search." 

"A  search!     I,  Excellency?" 

"Yes,  you.     And  we  will,  if  you  please,  start  at  once." 

Harry  said  this  in  the  same  quiet  matter-of-fact  tone  in 
which  he  might  have  said,  "  I  will  have  breakfast  at 
eight  ".  The  landlord  looked  dumbfounded,  his  head  hang- 
ing forward,  his  eyes  fixed  in  a  wild  stare  upon  the  face 
of  the  visitor.  Harry  sat  up  in  his  chair  and  spoke  very 
slowly  and  distinctly,  leaving  time  for  the  words  to  sink  in. 

"  I  have  come,  landlord,  either  to  find  our  midnight 
disturbers,  or  to  deliver  you  in  their  stead  to  the  magis- 
trates of  Urach.  Which  it  is  to  be  depends  entirely  on 
you.  No;  it  is  useless  to  protest  " — the  man  was  rubbing 
his  hands  nervously  together,  and  stammering  an  expostu- 
lation— "  I  have  the  strongest  proof  that  you  were  associ- 
ated with  the  villains  in  the  trap  set  for  me  three  nights 
ago.  You  can  make  your  choice  between  returning  with 
me  to  Urach,  where  there  is  plenty  of  rope  and  a  service- 
able gallows-frame  in  the  market  square ;  and  yielding  me 
sincere  and  instant  help  in  the  little  enquiry  I  am  about  to 
make.  I  do  not  wish  to  hurry  you :  you  shall  have  a  few 
minutes  to  think  it  over.  Bring  me  a  cup  of  wine." 

The  man  moved  to  the  cupboard  as  in  a  dream.  Harry 
took  the  cup  he  offered,  and  as  he  sipped  it,  watched  the 
landlord  return  the  bottle  mechanically  to  its  place  on  the 

294 


In  the  Net 

shelf,  take  up  a  plate  and  put  it  down  again,  cut  half 
through  a  loaf  of  bread  and  leave  the  knife  in  it,  flick 
imaginary  crumbs  from  the  clear  table.  He  looked  like 
a  rat  in  a  trap.  He  glanced  at  the  window,  then  at  the 
door,  and  appeared  for  a  moment  to  measure  his  chances 
in  a  struggle.  But  Harry's  air  of  confident  self-possession, 
and  the  knowledge  that  a  sturdy  henchman  held  the  door 
within  a  few  feet  of  him,  daunted  any  impulse  to  active 
resistance.  At  length,  drawing  a  napkin  nervously  through 
his  fingers,  and  trying  to  assume  an  air  of  dignified  for- 
bearance, he  said: 

"  I  am  in  your  excellency's  hands.  I  protest;  but  since 
you  doubt  me,  I  am  willing  to  accompany  your  excellency 
to  Urach,  and  prove  my  innocence  to  the  magistrates.  I 
am  well  known  in  Urach,  and  permit  me  to  say,  I  shall 
require  good  compensation  when  you  are  forced  to  admit 
your  mistake." 

"Your  expectation  shall  not  be  disappointed,"  said 
Harry  quietly.  "  We  will,  then,  start  at  once." 

"But  it  will  be  near  midnight  when  we  arrive,  your 
excellency  being  on  foot " 

"You  have  my  horse  in  your  stable,  I  thought?" 

"  I  was  mistaken, — a  moment's  forgetfulness,  mein 
Herr.  The  horse — the  other  day — I  mean " 

"Yes,  I  understand.  Nevertheless,  we  will  start  at 
once." 

"  But,  Excellency,  nothing  can  be  done  until  the  morn- 
ing. If  you  will  wait " 

"  For  another  visit  from  your  friends?  no." 

"Not  my  friends,  Excellency.  I  am  an  honest  man. 
But  as  you  will.  I  will  awaken  the  ostler  and  leave  him 
in  charge  of  the  inn." 

He  made  quickly  towards  the  door,  but  Harry,  who  had 
seen  through  all  his  attempts  to  gain  time  and  make  an 
opportunity  to  get  away,  interposed. 

"Ring  your  bell  there:  that  will  waken  him.  But  you 
will  not  leave  him  in  charge  of  the  house:  he  will  come 
with  us,  and  your  servant  also.  The  inn  shall  be  shut  up, 
(  B  357 )  295  u 


Hobson's  Choice 

and  I  doubt  not  your  good  fortune  in  escaping  the  atten- 
tions of  the  marauders  will  still  hold.  I  will  give  you 
five  minutes  to  get  ready." 

The  landlord,  seeing  that  his  last  hope  of  communi- 
cating with  his  friends  was  gone,  recognized  that  the 
game  was  up.  His  assurance  collapsed;  he  became 
merely  sullen. 

"  What  is  it  that  your  excellency  wishes  me  to  do?" 

"As  I  said:  first  to  choose  between  complying  with  my 
demands  and  facing  a  public  trial  for  treason  at  Urach." 

"  What  are  your  excellency's  demands?" 

"  First  make  your  choice." 

"Your  excellency  will  guarantee  my  safety  if  I  com- 
ply?" 

"  I  cannot  answer  for  that;  but  I  will  do  what  I  can." 

The  man's  face  gave  signs  of  a  final  mental  struggle ; 
then  he  said : 

"  I  will  do  as  your  excellency  wishes." 

"A  wise  choice:  it  gives  you  a  chance  of  saving  your 
neck ;  there  is  none  at  all  the  other  way.  A  few  questions 
first.  How  many  travellers — let  us  say  officers  of  the 
English  army — have  you  trapped  as  you  tried  to  trap 
me?" 

The  man  hesitated. 

"Quick!"  cried  Harry,  "no  paltering  now.  You  know 
the  alternative." 

"One,  your  excellency,"  was  the  reluctant,  sullen 
admission. 

"  And  what  became  of  the  other?" 

"  He  was  waylaid  on  the  road." 

"The  first,  or  the  second?" 

"The  second." 

"And  the  officer  captured  here — what  was  he  like? 
Was  he  tall  or  short?" 

"He  was  tall,  Excellency,  with  fair  hair  and  blue  eyes. 
He  was  always  whistling." 

"These  officers — where  were  they  taken  to?" 

"To  the  hills." 

296 


The   Missing  Messengers 

"  In  what  direction?" 

"Towards  Geislingen." 

"  Where  are  they  now?" 

The  man  dropped  his  eyes  and  fidgeted.  He  had  been 
growing"  restive  und.er  this  examination ;  his  tone  had 
become  more  and  more  sullen. 

"  I — I  don't  know,  Excellency,"  he  stammered. 

"Come,  refresh  your  memory.  Remember — they  have 
to  be  found ;  I  must  have  an  answer,  and  an  exact  descrip- 
tion of  the  spot :  out  with  it ! " 

The  landlord  could  hardly  have  looked  more  uncom- 
fortable if  a  thumb-screw  had  been  applied.  For  a  few 
moments  he  strove  with  himself;  then  muttered: 

' '  I  don't  know :  the  castle  of  Rauhstein — when  I  last 
heard." 

"  And  when  was  that?" 

"Yesterday." 

"  The  castle  will  not  have  moved,  eh?     Where  is  it?" 

"About  ten  miles  away." 

"Who  owns  it?" 

"Nobody:  it  is  a  ruin.  The  land  belongs  to  the  Graf 
von  Rauhstein." 

"  But  it  is  not  so  much  a  ruin  that  it  cannot  shelter  your 
friends.  How  many  do  they  number?" 

"  Two  hundred  or  more." 

"What  are  they?" 

"All  kinds:  soldiers,  outlaws  —  French,  Bavarian, 
Swabian." 

"  And  who  commands  them?" 

"  A  Bavarian  captain :  by  his  speech,  a  foreigner  born." 

"That  is  enough,  I  think.     We  will  prepare  to  start." 

' '  To  start,  Excellency !     Whither? " 

"  For  the  castle." 

"But — but,  Excellency,"  stammered  the  man,  "you  do 
not  mean  it?  You  would  not  venture  there,  you  and  I  and 
two  men?  You — we — they  would  murder  us  all." 

"We  must  risk  that.  As  for  you,  your  risk  will  be 
equally  great,  or  greater,  if  you  stay  here:  if  the  two 

297 


In  Terrorem 

officers  are  not  safe  in  Urach  by  to-morrow  night,  a  detach- 
ment will  be  sent  to  arrest  you.  You  understand?" 

The  landlord  was  chapfallen  and  pallid  with  mingled 
fears.  On  the  one  hand,  the  vengeance  of  the  associates 
he  had  been  constrained  to  betray;  on  the  other,  the 
retribution  of  the  burghers  of  Urach. 

"Excellency,"  he  said  falteringly,  "I  have  given 
you  information.  You  have  promised  to  guarantee  my 
safety " 

"No,"  interrupted  Harry;  "I  said  I  would  do  what 
I  could." 

"  I  trust  to  you,  Excellency:  you  will  have  mercy  upon 
a  poor  man ;  in  these  days  it  is  hard  to  live ;  I  did  not 
mean  any  harm  to  the  officers;  I  insisted  their  persons 
should  not  be  injured :  I  was  under  compulsion,  fear- 
ing " 

"Enough!"  said  Harry,  to  whom  the  man's  cring- 
ing and  whining  were  more  distasteful  than  his  former 
attitude.  "Give  my  man  the  key  of  your  stable:  he  will 
saddle  your  horse.  We  shall  not  need  to  awaken  your 
servant,  after  all.  You  will  lead  the  way  to  the  castle. 
And  one  word  before  we  start :  try  to  mislead  us  or  play 
us  false,  and  you  will  be  immediately  shot.  I  give  you 
my  word  for  that.  Now,  put  on  your  hat." 


CHAPTER  XX 

The  Castle  of  Rauhstein 

IT  was  about  nine  o'clock,  and  a  dark  night,  when  Harry 
with  his  two  companions  set  off  on  horseback  towards 
the  castle  of  Rauhstein.  When  Harry  mentioned  their 
destination  to  Max,  the  man  said  that  he  had  known  the 
district  from  boyhood,  and  was  well  acquainted  with  the 
castle  and  its  precincts,  so  that  it  was  unnecessary  to  take 
the  landlord  as  guide.  But  the  latter  could  not  be  left 
to  himself  except  under  lock  and  key,  and  Harry  decided 
that  it  would  be  at  once  safer  and  more  convenient  to  have 
him  with  them.  Max  led  the  way  along  a  horse-track 
that  zigzagged  over  the  limestone  hills,  Harry  followed 
with  the  landlord,  their  horses  being  securely  linked  to- 
gether. Harry  had  unbuttoned  his  holsters,  displaying 
two  pistols;  the  sight  of  them,  he  felt,  would  keep  the 
landlord  on  his  good  behaviour. 

The  track  was  tortuous,  skirting  rugged  spurs  of  rock, 
crossing  narrow  ravines,  and  here  and  there  a  mountain 
brook,  passing  through  black  clumps  of  beech  forest  that 
dotted  the  slope.  The  riders  were  surrounded  by  a  vast 
silence,  broken  only  by  the  cries  of  night  birds  and  the 
croak  of  frogs  in  the  pools.  The  horses'  shoes  clicked  on 
the  hard  ground ;  it  would  clearly  not  be  safe  to  approach 
too  close  to  the  castle  on  horseback,  and  as  they  rode 
Harry  quietly  asked  the  landlord  how  the  ruin  was 
situated,  and  whether  there  was  any  cover  within  a  secure 
distance.  He  learnt  that  the  castle  was  built  against  the 
hill-side,  so  that  it  was  inaccessible  from  the  rear;  it  was 
almost  wholly  in  ruins,  but  the  keep  and  one  or  two 
adjacent  parts  had  been  recently  made  habitable  by  the 
marauders.  There  was  a  fosse,  now  dry;  the  drawbridge 

299 


The  Hidden  Way 


had  disappeared,  and  was  replaced  by  a  rough  bridge  of 
planks.  The  landlord  knew  of  no  entrance  but  this;  it 
was  guarded  day  and  night,  but  no  watch  was  kept  on 
any  other  part  of  the  building.  There  were  no  trees  in 
the  immediate  neighbourhood  of  the  castle,  but  about  half 
a  mile  before  it  was  reached  an  extensive  plantation  of 
beech  covered  a  valley  to  the  right  of  the  track,  and  in 
this  the  horses  could  be  left. 

It  was  past  eleven  before  the  three  riders  reached  the 
beech  plantation.  There  alighting,  they  tied  their  horses 
to  trees  well  within  the  clump,  and  proceeded  on  foot.  It 
occurred  to  Harry  that  if  the  animals  chanced  to  whinny 
they  might  be  heard  by  any  member  of  the  garrison  who 
happened  to  be  without  the  walls ;  but  Max  told  him  that 
the  two  tracks  leading  to  the  castle  from  the  Urach  high- 
road were  both  a  considerable  distance  to  right  and  left 
of  the  hill  path  by  which  they  had  come,  so  that  there  was 
little  fear  of  such  an  untoward  accident. 

They  climbed  up  the  path  in  silence,  the  darkness  being 
so  deep  that  they  could  not  distinguish  the  outline  of 
anything  more  than  a  few  yards  away.  It  was  therefore 
almost  unawares  that  Max  himself,  for  all  his  knowledge 
of  the  country,  came  upon  the  main  road  into  which  the 
track  ran,  about  a  quarter  of  a  mile  from  the  castle. 
Here  he  stopped. 

"  Monsieur,"  he  said,  "  I  heard  what  the  landlord  said 
to  you.  It  is  all  true ;  but  though  he  speaks  only  of  the 
entrance  by  the  plank  bridge,  I  know,  and  he  may  know 
too,  of  another — one  that  I  discovered  by  chance,  ramb- 
ling here  with  some  comrades  many  years  ago.  It  is  a 
small  broken  doorway  opening  from  the  fosse,  much  over- 
grown with  bush  and  trees,  and  indeed  so  well  hidden 
that  I  almost  doubt  whether  I  could  find  it  after  this 
long  time." 

"Well,  Max,  you  must  try.  I  don't  want  you  to  go 
into  the  castle  yourself:  I  suppose  you  have  not  seen  it 
since  the  marauders  have  sheltered  there?" 

"No,  Monsieur." 

300 


In  the   Fosse 

"Then  I  must  go  myself.     The  fosse  is  dry,  you  say?" 

"  Yes,  Monsieur." 

"Then  we  can  all  three  go  down  into  it,  and  the  land- 
lord and  I  will  remain  hidden  while  you  search  for  the 
secret  entrance.  Whither  does  it  lead?" 

"To  a  tunnel  that  rises  gradually  up  the  hill,  and  enters 
the  castle  near  the  dungeons  below  the  keep." 

"  Lead  on,  then.  We  will  go  to  the  left,  and  walk 
warily  to  escape  the  ears  of  the  sentry  at  the  gate." 

In  a  few  minutes  they  came  to  the  edge  of  the  fosse. 
They  clambered  carefully  down,  assisting  their  steps  by 
the  young  trees  which  thickly  covered  the  steep  side. 
When  they  reached  the  bottom,  Max  went  forward  by 
himself  to  explore.  His  movements  caused  a  rustle,  but 
being  followed  by  the  scurrying  of  rabbits  disturbed  in  the 
brake,  such  slight  customary  noises  were  not  likely  to 
alarm  the  sentry,  even  if  he  should  hear  them. 

Harry  had  his  hand  on  the  landlord's  wrist  as  they 
waited  minute  after  minute.  Max  was  gone  a  long  time. 
All  was  silent  now  save  for  the  murmurs  of  birds  and  the 
chirping  of  insects.  At  length,  after  what  seemed  to 
Harry's  impatience  hours  of  delay,  the  man  groped  his 
way  back,  and  whispered : 

"  I  have  found  it,  Monsieur." 

"That  is  well.     Now  lead  us  to  it." 

"You  will  not  take  me  into  the  castle,  Excellency?" 
murmured  the  landlord  in  affright. 

"  Have  no  fear.     Be  silent." 

The  three  went  into  the  tangled  mass  of  tree  and  shrub, 
and  Max  had  no  difficulty  now  in  taking  a  pretty  direct 
path  to  the  opening  of  the  tunnel.  When  the  bushes  were 
pulled  aside,  they  revealed  to  the  touch — for  to  see  was 
impossible — an  arch  of  crumbling  brickwork  not  more 
than  five  feet  high.  Evidently  a  man  could  not  walk 
upright  through  the  tunnel. 

"Did  you  ever  get  into  the  castle  this  way?"  asked 
Harry. 

"Yes,  Monsieur,  but  it  was  fifteen  years  ago." 

301 


Below  the  Dungeons 

"  So  that  the  tunnel  may  be  blocked  now?" 

"Certainly." 

"Or  it  may  be  the  haunt  of  wild  beasts?" 

"  Nothing-  wilder  than  rabbits,  I  should  think." 

"  Well,  it  is  not  too  pleasant  a  task  to  crawl  through 
there  in  the  dark,  but  it  must  be  done.  Now,  Max,  you 
will  return  to  the  place  where  we  left  our  horses ;  the  land- 
lord will  go  with  you.  Here  is  one  of  my  pistols ;  you 
know  what  to  do  with  it  if  need  be.  Wait  for  me  there: 
if  I  do  not  come  to  you  within  say  a  couple  of  hours,  ride 
to  Urach,  and  tell  the  lieutenant  of  the  guard  what  has 
happened." 

Max  hesitated. 

"Let  me  go,  Monsieur,"  he  said.  "Why  should  you 
run  into  the  jaws  of  danger?  They  are  desperate  men, 
these  brigands." 

"Thank  you,  Max!  but  it  is  my  task.  Do  my  bidding, 
my  good  fellow;  I  have  counted  the  cost." 

He  waited  until  the  two  men  had  crept  away;  then, 
crushing  the  feeling  of  eeriness  that  affected  him  in 
spite  of  himself,  he  bent  his  head  and  went  forward  into 
the  tunnel.  There  was  at  once  a  scurry  of  animals  past 
his  legs ;  he  felt  the  furry  coats  and  tails  of  rabbits  brush 
his  hands  ;  but  he  went  slowly  forward,  touching  the  wall 
at  his  right  to  guide  himself,  and  wondering  how  long  the 
tunnel  was,  and  whether  there  was  enough  air  to  carry 
him  through  to  the  end.  The  atmosphere  was  stuffy,  with 
mingled  smells  so  nauseating  that  Harry  quickened  his 
pace,  eager  to  escape  into  purer  air  again.  He  had  not 
thought  to  count  his  steps  when  he  first  entered  the 
tunnel,  but  began  to  do  so  after  taking  about  a  dozen. 
At  the  fortieth  of  his  counting  the  wall  to  his  right  came 
to  an  end.  He  stopped,  and,  raising  his  hand  above  his 
head,  found  that  it  was  not  obstructed  by  the  roof:  he 
had  evidently  come  to  the  end  of  the  passage.  He  stood 
upright  and  listened;  he  could  hear  nothing. 

Extending  his  arms,  he  found  that  he  was  in  a  narrow 
passage.  Max  had  said  that  the  tunnel  led  below  the 

302 


Out  of  the  Depths 

keep :  there  must,  then,  be  a  staircase  somewhere.  Harry 
went  cautiously  forward,  stopping  at  every  few  steps  to 
listen,  and  placing-  his  feet  with  great  care  to  avoid  coming 
unawares  upon  some  obstacle.  At  length  his  foot  touched 
what  felt  like  a  stone  step  in  front  of  him ;  another  mo- 
ment, and  he  was  sure  he  had  come  to  the  expected  stair- 
case. It  was  pitch  dark ;  he  mounted  carefully,  and  found 
that  the  stairs  wound  round  and  round.  He  had  just 
counted  fifteen  steps,  when  his  head  came  into  violent 
contact  with  something  above.  The  blow  brought  tears 
to  his  eyes,  and  he  rubbed  his  head  vigorously,  as  he  had 
been  wont  to  do  after  a  knock  in  his  childish  days. 

Feeling  with  his  hands,  he  discovered  that  the  staircase 
was  roofed  over  with  stone.  It  appeared  to  be  a  slab  let 
down  into  sockets;  yet  no,  on  the  left  side  there  was  a 
space  of  about  a  finger-width  between  the  stone  and  the 
wall,  on  the  right  there  was  no  such  space.  He  paused ; 
the  stone  was  so  broad  that  to  lift  it  was  clearly  impos- 
sible ;  it  had  never  been  intended  to  be  moved  from  below. 
He  bent  his  head,  hitched  his  left  shoulder,  and  shoved 
hard  against  the  stone.  It  did  not  yield  by  the  smallest 
interval.  For  a  moment  he  was  puzzled.  Then  a  possible 
explanation  of  the  space  between  the  stone  and  the  wall 
at  the  left  occurred  to  him.  Perhaps  the  stone  moved  on 
a  pivot?  He  went  to  the  other  side  and  set  his  right 
shoulder  to  it.  At  first  he  felt  no  yielding;  but  exerting 
all  his  strength  he  shoved  again,  the  stone  slowly  gave, 
and  with  continued  pressure  moved  over  until  it  came 
to  a  vertical  position,  leaving  space  enough  for  his  body 
to  pass  through.  He  ascended,  keeping  his  hand  on  the 
stone  to  prevent  it  from  falling  back  noisily  into  its  place, 
clambered  on  to  the  floor  above,  let  the  stone  carefully 
down,  and  stood  up  to  collect  himself  before  proceeding 
farther. 

Now  that  he  had  come  thus  far,  he  felt  a  chill  shrinking 
from  what  lay  before  him.  He  was  alone  in  a  strange 
place,  within  a  few  feet  of  desperate  and  unscrupulous 
ruffians,  who  would  kill  him  with  no  more  compunction 

3°3 


A   Sleeping  Castle 


than  they  would  spit  a  hare.  The  unknown  peril  might 
well  give  the  bravest  pause.  But  a  thought  of  his  duty 
stilled  his  tremors.  He  had  a  duty  of  service  to  Marl- 
borough,  and  a  duty  of  friendship  to  Fanshawe;  remem- 
bering them,  he  steeled  his  soul. 

If  his  hazardous  visit  was  to  prove  of  any  service  he 
must  discover  the  nature  and  position  of  the  defences. 
He  knew  little  about  the  construction  of  castles,  but  Max 
had  said  that  the  entrance  led  to  the  keep,  which  was  the 
only  part  of  the  ruin  still  habitable.  The  inmates  must 
therefore  be  somewhere  near  him,  and  it  behoved  him  to 
move  warily.  He  was  apparently  in  a  stone-flagged  pass- 
age. He  took  off  his  boots  and  slung  them  round  his 
neck ;  then  went  forward  a  few  steps,  and  came  upon 
another  passage  at  right  angles,  the  farther  end  being 
faintly  lit  as  from  a  distance.  Stealing  down  this,  he  saw 
on  his  right  hand  the  arched  entrance  to  what  was  clearly 
the  great  hall  of  the  keep,  a  long  bare  chamber  illuminated 
by  two  or  three  smoky  candles.  Along  the  walls  lay  a 
number  of  men,  sleeping  on  mattresses,  cloaks,  bundles 
of  straw.  At  the  farther  end  was  a  large  table,  at  which 
two  men  were  seated,  bending  forward  with  heads  on  their 
crossed  arms,  as  though  dozing.  The  table  was  covered 
with  pots  and  tankards  and  metal  plates.  Taking  this  in 
at  one  swift  glance,  Harry  turned  to  see  what  lay  in  the 
other  direction. 

A  few  feet  from  him  was  the  bottom  of  another  winding 
stair,  which,  he  conjectured,  led  to  the  top  of  the  keep. 
In  the  wall  to  his  right  there  was  a  narrow  opening  giving 
on  the  courtyard,  where  he  heard  the  movements  of  many 
horses.  He  was  wondering  whether,  finding  the  doorway 
into  the  courtyard,  he  might  venture  to  steal  across  it  and 
explore  the  other  side,  when  he  heard  voices  from  the  hall 
behind  him.  Quick  as  thought  he  slipped  back  into  the 
dark  passage  he  had  first  entered,  and  waited  there  with 
beating  heart.  Peeping  round  the  corner,  he  saw  two  men 
— doubtless  the  two  who  had  been  bending  over  the  table — 
pass  as  if  towards  the  staircase.  He  heard  their  spurred 

304 


The  Stairway  in  the  Keep 

boots  ring-ing  on  the  stones,  and  knew  by  the  sounds  that 
they  were  ascending  the  stairs,  to  relieve  guard,  he  guessed, 
at  the  top  of  the  keep.  There  was  evidently  nothing  to  be 
discovered  by  remaining  where  he  was ;  if  he  followed  the 
men  he  might  find  a  means  of  exploring  the  upper  part  of 
the  fortress.  He  ran  lightly  along  the  passage,  and  began 
the  ascent  of  the  winding  stair,  finding  himself  soon  in 
total  darkness.  But  after  about  a  dozen  steps  the  stair- 
case began  to  be  faintly  illuminated  from  above.  Harry 
paused  for  a  moment  to  listen.  He  heard  nothing  but 
the  footsteps  of  the  men  who  had  preceded  him,  and  was 
just  going  on  when,  through  a  loophole  in  the  wall  to  his 
right,  he  heard  the  clatter  of  a  horse's  hoofs  and  the  shout 
of  a  man.  He  held  his  breath  and  stood  still.  The  horse 
had  evidently  just  come  over  the  bridge  and  through  the 
archway  into  the  courtyard.  There  were  now  sounds  of 
many  voices  below;  the  hoof-beats  suddenly  ceased,  and 
shortly  afterwards  Harry  heard  hurried  footsteps  on  the 
stone  passage  he  had  lately  left,  and  voices  growing  in 
volume  and  echoing  in  the  circular  space  of  the  winding 
stair.  Several  men  were  ascending.  If  he  remained  where 
he  was  he  must  inevitably  be  detected ;  his  only  course 
was  to  continue  his  ascent.  But  he  had  not  taken  three 
steps  before  he  heard  footsteps  above  him ;  the  sentry  who 
had  been  relieved  was  coming  down.  His  heart  was  in 
his  mouth.  But  the  men  below  were  the  nearer;  there 
was  just  a  chance  that  if  he  went  higher  he  might  come 
upon  some  temporary  hiding-place,  and  in  his  stocking 
feet  he  made  no  sound  that  would  betray  him. 

Up  then  he  went ;  the  light  was  becoming  stronger ; 
and  a  turn  of  the  staircase  brought  him  opposite  the  door- 
way through  which  it  shone.  The  door  was  gone.  He 
hesitated  but  for  a  moment ;  below  and  above  him  the 
footsteps  were  perilously  near;  on  the  wall  of  the  room 
he  saw  two  long  military  cloaks  hanging  to  the  floor; 
they  would  conceal  him.  Peeping  into  the  room,  he 
noted  with  one  rapid  glance  a  smoky  guttering  candle 
and  a  figure  recumbent  on  a  mattress.  He  went  in  on 

305 


Counting  the  Chickens 

tiptoe,  and  slipped  behind  the  cloaks.  The  slight  rustle 
he  made  disturbed  the  slumbering  man. 

"  Qui  va  la?"  came  the  sleepy  question. 

Harry  stood  still  as  a  stone,  and  felt  his  heart  thumping 
against  his  ribs. 

"Qui  va  la?"  repeated  the  voice  in  a  louder  tone,  and 
by  the  increased  light  in  the  narrow  crack  between  the 
cloak  and  the  wall  Harry  guessed  that  the  man  had  risen 
on  his  elbow  and  snuffed  the  candle.  An  answering  voice 
came  from  the  doorway. 

"  Sebald  Schummel,  mon  capitaine." 

"Ah!     Bien!     Donnez-moi  de  vos  nouvelles." 

Harry  felt  a  cold  shiver  down  his  back,  and  an  impulse 
to  pull  aside  the  cloak  and  confirm  by  sight  the  evidence 
of  his  hearing.  The  voice  was  the  voice  of  Captain 
Aglionby.  Here  was  a  discovery  indeed.  But  he  had 
scarcely  time  even  to  be  surprised,  for  he  was  listening 
intently  to  a  conversation  that  absorbed  all  his  thought. 

"The  prince  has  arrived  in  Urach,"  said  the  new-comer. 
"  He  leaves  at  five  in  the  morning  on  his  way  to  Stutt- 
gart. He  travels  by  coach." 

"Ah!  what  is  his  escort?" 

"Two  aides-de-camp  and  thirty  dragoons,  mon  capi- 
taine." 

"  A  bagatelle !     The  game  is  ours ! " 

"Yes,  mon  capitaine,"  said  another  voice;  "he  will  not 
easily  escape  us." 

"Parbleu!  He  shall  not.  You  are  sure  of  the  hour, 
Sebald?" 

"Yes,  Monsieur;  and  I  have  left  a  trusty  man  to  send 
us  word  if  it  is  altered." 

"  He  is  not  likely  to  change  his  route?" 

"There  is  no  reason  for  it,  mon  capitaine,  and  our  men 
are  watching  every  road." 

"Good!  Your  news  is  welcome,  Sebald.  Go  and  eat; 
I  will  consult  with  Monsieur  le  Lieutenant  here ;  you  shall 
have  your  orders  by  and  by." 

Two  or  three  men  left  the  room,  and  the  captain  was 

306 


The  Battlements 

alone  with  his  lieutenant  and  Harry.  The  latter  had 
already  heard  enough  to  set  all  his  wits  on  the  alert. 
The  conversation  that  ensued,  though  carried  on  by  both 
the  speakers  in  continuance  of  a  former  discussion,  gave 
Harry  little  trouble  to  understand.  It  was  evident  that 
the  marauders  under  Captain  Aglionby's  lead  were  plan- 
ning to  intercept  Prince  Eugene  on  his  way  to  meet  Marl- 
borough,  and  Harry  listened  with  a  flutter  at  the  heart  as 
all  the  details  were  arranged.  The  ambuscaders,  divided 
into  three  bands,  were  to  station  themselves  at  a  point 
about  two  miles  north  of  the  wayside  inn,  where  the  road 
narrowed.  Two  of  the  bands  were  to  conceal  themselves 
in  the  woods  on  either  side  of  the  road,  the  third  some 
distance  behind  them,  towards  the  inn,  to  cut  off  any 
escape  rearwards. 

"Monsieur  le  Prince  will  sleep  hard  to-morrow,"  said 
Aglionby  with  a  chuckle,  when  he  had  arranged  the  com- 
position of  the  bands.  "Now,  as  we  must  start  in  an 
hour  or  two,  do  you  go  down  and  rouse  the  men;  I  will 
follow  in  a  minute  and  give  them  their  orders.  What  sort 
of  night  is  it?" 

"  Dull,  with  a  threat  of  rain." 

' '  Ah !  we  shall  want  our  cloaks.  Well,  rouse  the  men ; 
our  bird  will  have  his  feathers  clipped  long  ere  this  to- 
morrow." 

Harry  had  gone  cold  at  the  mention  of  the  cloaks,  and 
gripped  his  pistol.  But  the  lieutenant  went  from  the  room 
without  disturbing  him,  and  Aglionby  shortly  afterwards 
followed.  Harry  heaved  a  silent  sigh  of  relief,  waited 
until  the  sound  of  his  footsteps  had  quite  died  away,  then 
left  his  hiding-place  and  hastened  to  the  staircase. 

He  was  in  no  doubt  what  to  do.  To  descend,  now  that 
the  garrison  was  awakened,  would  be  to  court  instant 
detection.  The  alternative  was  to  go  higher  up  the  keep, 
and  endeavour  to  find  some  way  of  escape  over  the  ruined 
battlements.  He  mounted  a  few  steps;  the  moon  had 
risen,  and  her  light,  fitfully  shining  between  masses  of 
flying  scud  in  the  sky,  lit  up  the  staircase  through  the 

307 


A   Breakneck  Descent 

narrow  openings  at  intervals  in  the  wall.  A  few  steps 
more,  and  on  his  right  Harry  saw  a  low  doorway,  this  also 
without  a  door,  leading  directly  on  to  the  battlements. 
He  peered  up  the  outer  wall  of  the  keep,  and  saw  that 
a  sentinel  at  the  top  must  almost  certainly  descry  a  figure 
moving  along  below.  But  escape  he  must ;  Prince  Eugene 
must  be  warned  in  time,  and  Urach  was  several  miles 
away.  He  longed  for  a  friendly  cloud  to  obscure  the 
moon  while  he  made  a  dash ;  and,  pat  to  his  wish,  a  dark 
mass  of  thunderous  density  cut  off  every  gleam.  Without 
another  moment's  delay  Harry  sprang  on  to  the  broken 
masonry,  and,  taking  sure  foothold  in  his  stocking  feet,  ran 
towards  a  tower  at  the  left-hand  corner  of  the  enceinte, 
hoping  there  to  find  an  exit.  The  upper  part  of  the  tower 
was  almost  wholly  in  ruins,  but  the  lower  part  was  in 
good  preservation,  and  to  his  disappointment  Harry  found 
that  the  only  doorway  led  into  the  courtyard,  in  which  he 
already  heard  the  bustle  of  preparation.  There  was  nothing 
for  it  but  to  pursue  his  way  along  the  battlements  to  the 
tower  at  the  right-hand  rear  corner.  Entering  this,  he 
discovered  a  postern  on  the  outer  wall.  It  was  twenty 
feet  above  the  summit  of  a  steep  slope  leading  to  the  level 
ground  a  hundred  yards  away.  Harry  looked  out,  and 
saw  that  below  the  postern  the  masonry  had  crumbled  and 
fallen,  and  was  now  covered  with  undergrowth  and  ivy 
clinging  to  the  tower  wall.  To  make  his  descent  here  he 
would  have  to  risk  a  broken  limb,  perhaps  a  broken  neck, 
but  there  was  no  other  means  of  exit  that  he  could  dis- 
cover, and  it  was  necessary  that  he  should  get  quickly 
away  with  Max  and  the  landlord  before  the  marauding 
band  rode  out.  Clinging  to  a  strong  tendril  of  ivy,  he 
leapt  on  to  a  precarious  corner  of  broken  brickwork,  lost 
his  footing,  checked  his  fall  by  clutching  at  a  shrub,  found 
a  firmer  foothold  a  little  below,  and  so  made  the  complete 
descent  to  the  edge  of  the  slope,  where  he  stayed  his 
progress  by  again  grasping  the  ivy. 

The  air  was  warm  and  close,  foreboding  thunder,  and 
by  this  time  Harry  was  bathed  in  sweat.     He  rested  for 

308 


A   Friendly  Shower 

a  few  moments  at  the  foot  of  the  wall.  The  jagged 
masonry  had  cut  holes  in  his  stockings  and  made  his  feet 
bleed.  Between  him  and  level  ground  was  a  steep  de- 
clivity of  almost  bare  rock,  so  precipitous  that  to  walk 
down  it  was  impossible,  to  run  dangerous.  He  pulled  on 
his  boots,  lay  on  his  back,  and  slid  down  feet  foremost, 
with  some  bumps  and  bruises,  but  with  more  serious 
injury  to  his  apparel.  As  he  reached  the  level  a  loud 
rumble  of  thunder  broke  above  him,  and  he  felt  the  first 
large  spots  of  a  shower.  He  was  far  from  the  place 
where  he  had  left  his  companions,  and  to  reach  it  he 
would  have  to  cross  the  direct  road  to  the  castle  gate. 
To  avoid  discovery  it  seemed  best  to  creep  down  into  the 
dry  overgrown  fosse,  and  steal  his  way  along  until  he 
gained  the  spot  on  the  other  side  of  the  plank  bridge 
where  he  had  descended  to  find  the  tunnel.  Even  under 
the  bridge  the  vegetation  was  rank  and  thick  enough  to 
conceal  him,  and  he  had  no  fear  of  his  movements  being 
heard,  for  the  rain  was  now  pattering  fast.  This,  then, 
he  did;  in  a  few  minutes  he  came  to  the  place  'where  he 
had  parted  with  Max,  and,  scrambling  up  the  side  of  the 
fosse,  struck  into  the  road  and  hastened  towards  the  trees. 
He  wandered  for  some  time  among  them  without  finding 
the  men  of  whom  he  was  in  search,  and  at  length  risked 
a  low  call. 

"Is  that  you,  Monsieur?"  came  the  reply  in  Max's 
voice  from  near  at  hand. 

"Ah!  I  was  afraid  I  had  lost  you.  Have  you  the 
landlord  safe?" 

"Yes,  Monsieur.     I  had  almost  given  you  up." 

"Lead  out  the  horses.  We  must  get  to  Urach  as 
quickly  as  possible.  And  not  by  the  road:  do  you  know 
a  way  across  the  hills?" 

"Yes,  but  it  will  be  difficult  to  find  in  the  dark,  and 
hark  to  the  rain!" 

"Yes,  it  is  raining  hard,  but  you  must  try  to  find  the 
way;  I  dare  not  risk  the  road.  Lead  on,  Max;  I  will 
follow  you  with  the  landlord." 

309 


A  Narrow  Margin 


Max  led  his  horse  through  the  wood,  the  others  close 
behind  him.  Crossing  the  road,  he  entered  a  narrow 
ravine,  left  this  at  a  cleft  on  the  right,  and  taking  a 
tortuous  course,  rising  continually,  he  came  after  some 
twenty  minutes  to  the  crest  of  a  rocky  hill. 

"It  is  all  right,  Monsieur,"  he  said.  "The  way  is 
easier  now  and  we  can  mount.  The  rain  is  over,  too." 

"Well  for  us!  Now,  Max,  at  your  best  pace,  provided 
it  is  not  neck-breaking." 

The  three  set  off,  the  landlord  uttering  many  groans 
and  lamentations  as  he  jolted  in  his  saddle.  Harry  did 
not  address  him;  he  had  too  much  to  think  of.  If,  as 
Aglionby's  messenger  had  said,  there  were  spies  in  Urach 
and  around,  it  was  likely  that  the  entrance  of  three  riders 
into  the  town  at  so  late  an  hour  would  be  noticed,  and 
might  awaken  suspicion.  Harry's  wish  was  not  merely  to 
foil  the  ambuscade,  but  to  turn  the  tables  on  the  ambus- 
caders.  As  he  rode  he  decided  what  to  do. 

"  Max,."  he  said,  riding  alongside  of  the  man  where  a 
difficult  part  of  the  track  caused  a  slackening  of  the  pace ; 
"Max,  tell  me  when  we  come  within  about  half  a  mile 
of  the  town;  we  will  halt  there." 

"We  leave  the  hills  and  strike  the  road  at  that  distance, 
Monsieur." 

"  Very  well;  we  will  stop  before  we  reach  the  road." 

It  was  two  o'clock  in  the  morning  when  the  three  riders 
came  to  a  halt  within  a  little  dell  concealed  from  the  road 
by  an  intervening  hillock. 

"Remain  here  with  the  landlord  and  my  horse,  Max," 
said  Harry.  "  I  am  going  on  foot  to  the  town." 

At  the  gate-house  he  gave  the  password  and  was  at 
once  admitted.  He  went  to  the  lodging  of  the  lieutenant 
of  the  guard,  woke  him,  and  told  him  in  a  few  words 
what  he  had  discovered. 

"  Mon  Dieu !"  cried  the  lieutenant,  "  you  are  just  in  time. 
The  prince  decided  last  night  to  hasten  his  going ;  he  sets 
off  at  four.  He  will  have  to  remain  here,  or  go  back,  for 
his  escort  are  no  match  for  these  brigands,  even  with  our 

310 


Eugene  Laughs 


burgher  guard,  who  in  any  case  are  not  permitted  to  leave 
the  town.  The  prince  must  either  wait  here  until  he  can  get 
a  force  from  Prince  Louis  of  Baden,  or  try  another  road." 

"The  roads  are  watched.  But  I  think  the  prince  had 
better  carry  out  his  original  intention  and  leave  here  at 
five." 

"  But  he  will  certainly  be  captured." 

"  Not  certainly.  I  should  like  to  see  him.  I  left  Max 
and  that  rascal  of  a  landlord  half  a  mile  out.  The  town  is 
quiet;  do  you  think  it  will  be  safe  to  send  for  them?" 

' '  Oh  yes !  I  will  do  that.  You  will  find  the  prince  at 
the  Rathhaus." 

"  Will  you  lend  me  a  change  of  things  while  mine  are 
drying?" 

"  Of  course!  The  sleeves  of  my  coat  will  be  short  for 
you,  I  fear,  but  you  will  not  need  it  long." 

To  change  was  but  the  work  of  a  few  minutes;  then 
Harry  hastened  to  the  Rathhaus.  The  guard  made  some 
demur  to  admitting  him  at  such  an  hour,  but  yielded  when 
he  assured  them  that  his  message  was  urgent,  and  he  was 
conducted  to  an  aide-de-camp,  who  on  hearing  his  story  in 
outline  did  not  scruple  to  awaken  the  prince.  Harry  was 
not  prepared  for  the  reception  his  news  met  with.  The 
prince  broke  into  a  roar  of  laughter. 

"  A  right  tit-for-tat  for  the  Duke  de  Vendome,"  he  said. 
"Two  can  play  at  coney-catching!  You  are  surprised  at 
my  levity,  young  sir;  but  the  truth  is,  I  tried  to  play  the 
same  game  on  the  duke  two  years  ago :  attempted  to  seize 
him  in  his  house  at  Rivalto  on  the  banks  of  the  Lake  of 
Mantua.  I  sent  fifty  men  in  boats  to  capture  him;  but 
they  killed  the  sentinel  instead  of  carrying  him  off,  as  I 
intended;  the  noise  drew  the  guard  to  the  spot,  and  my 
men  had  to  re-embark  to  save  their  skins.  Well,  in  war 
let  him  trick  the  other  who  can :  I  am  obliged  to  you  for 
your  warning.  Un  homme  averti  en  vaut  deux:  we'll  be 
even  with  the  tricksters.  What  shall  we  do,  lieutenant?" 

"  It  would  seem  that  we  must  take  another  road,  Mon- 
sieur le  Prince,"  said  the  aide-de-camp. 

(B357)  311  x 


A   Bold  Stroke 

"Ma  foi,  non;  we'll  cut  our  way  through  them.  I 
never  turned  back  on  my  enemy  yet." 

"They  are  too  many,  your  highness.  Your  thirty  men 
could  not  cut  their  way  through  two  hundred." 

"Then  we  must  go  another  way." 

"They  have  spies  on  the  roads,  Monsieur,"  said  Harry. 
"Your  highness  would  have  to  make  a  wide  detour,  and 
that  would  give  the  brigands  plenty  of  time  to  sweep 
round  and  intercept  you.  If  I  might  suggest  a  plan  that 
occurred  to  me " 

"  Go  on." 

"It  is  that  your  highness's  coach  should  set  off  at  the 
time  arranged,  attended  by  a  portion  of  your  escort " 

"  Empty?" 

"  Not  so,  Monsieur.  A  man  might  take  your  highness's 
place.  The  brigands  would  imagine  their  scheme  was 
prospering;  the  scouts  would  be  drawn  off;  and  after  an 
interval  your  highness  with  the  remainder  of  the  escort 
could  safely  take  the  western  road  and  be  well  on  the  way 
to  Stuttgart  before  the  trick  was  discovered." 

"Aha!  And  who  is  to  personate  me?  Not  yourself? 
You  have  too  great  an  advantage  of  me  in  inches." 

"  My  ambition  is  less,  your  highness.  I  have  a  man 
of  about  your  height ;  if  you  would  deign  to  let  him  wear 
your  wig,  hat,  and  cloak  for  a  few  hours,  I  think  he  would 
make  a  personable  copy  of  your  highness." 

The  prince  laughed. 

"  Well,  you  have  a  ready  wit,  my  lad.  But  it  would  be 
running  into  the  jaws  of  the  wolves ;  I  should  lose  half  my 
escort  and  my  coach,  and  you  and  your  man  your  lives. 
They  would  not  spare  you  when  they  learnt  how  you  had 
tricked  them." 

"  It  would  be  a  cheap  purchase  of  your  highness's 
safety.  Besides,  I  think  we  might  manage  to  escape  the 
wolves,  as  your  highness  is  pleased  to  call  them." 

"Indeed!  Come,  you  are  a  young  strategist;  what 
have  you  in  your  mind?" 

"  To  get  into  the  castle,  Monsieur  le  Prince,  while  the 

312 


Eugene's  Double 


greater  part  of  the  brigands  are  absent,  and  to  hold  it 
until  a  force  can  be  sent  from  Stuttgart  to  our  assistance." 

"  A  bold  scheme,  by  my  faith!  What  reason  have  you 
to  suppose  you  could  surprise  the  castle?  It  will  not  be 
left  unguarded." 

Then  Harry  gave  a  rapid  narrative  of  what  had  hap- 
pened since  his  adventure  at  the  inn.  Prince  Eugene 
listened  with  close  attention,  his  eyes  lighting  up  with 
excitement  and  pleasure  as  he  heard  the  details  of  the 
plan  Harry  had  thought  out  as  he  rode  from  the  castle. 

"Parbleu!"  he  exclaimed  at  the  end,  "a  bold  scheme 
indeed,  one  after  my  own  heart ;  I  should  like  of  all  things 
to  be  with  you  in  it.  And  you  think  my  cousin  Marl- 
borough's  two  messengers  are  now  in  the  castle?" 

"  I  have  no  doubt  of  it,  your  highness;  and  as  one  of 
them  is  an  old  friend  of  my  own,  I  have  a  strong  personal 
reason  for  making  the  attempt." 

"Well,  I  will  not  stay  you.  Rather  I  will  say,  Good 
luck  to  you!  You  deserve  to  succeed.  I  make  no  doubt 
that  I  shall  be  able  to  send  you  from  Stuttgart  a  squadron 
or  two  of  Prince  Louis  of  Baden's  horse,  and  if  you  and 
they  can  annihilate  this  pestilent  band  of  outlaws  you  will 
do  a  service  to  the  Emperor — a  service  that  I  shall  take 
care  is  not  forgotten.  Time  is  pressing;  my  valet  shall 
give  you  the  suit  I  wore  yesterday;  I  shall  not  need  to 
trouble  your  man  to  lend  me  his  in  exchange,  as  I  have 
another  with  me — a  plain  costume  that  will  tell  no  tales. 
Ma  foi!  I  could  wish  that  for  the  next  twelve  hours  he 
were  Eugene  of  Savoy  and  I — what  is  his  name?" 

"Max  Berens,  Monsieur." 

"Write  his  name,  Lieutenant;  if  he  were  a  courtier  he 
would  doubtless  be  content  with  the  bare  honour  of  filling 
my  clothes  for  the  nonce,  but  being  a  sensible  man  he 
will  prefer  a  more  tangible  recompense.  I  shall  see  to  it. 
Well,  you  have  woke  me  from  sleep,  Monsieur;  now  I  will 
ask  you  to  leave  me  while  I  dress.  And  as  we  must  be 
secret  about  this  disguise,  lest  there  be  spies  in  the  town, 
I  shall  not  see  you  again  until  I  meet  you,  as  I  hope  to 

3*3 


"  Our  Good  Prince  Eugene " 

do,  in  my  lord  Marlborough's  camp.  Send  your  man  here ; 
I  will  take  care  that  he  is  treated  with  the  deference  be- 
coming his  rank.  Ha!  ha!  it  is  an  excellent  joke." 

Harry  went  away  delighted  with  the  readiness  with 
which  the  prince  had  entered  into  the  spirit  of  his  scheme. 
It  was  full  of  danger ;  he  was  under  no  illusion  as  to  that ; 
but  this  lent  an  additional  zest  to  the  adventure;  he  had 
thought  out  his  plan  carefully,  and  reckoned  on  finding  an 
invaluable  coadjutor  in  the  landlord. 

At  five  o'clock,  in  the  cool  of  a  fine  morning,  the  prince's 
gilded  coach  drew  up  at  the  door  of  the  Rathhaus,  with 
fifteen  dragoons  in  full  riding  trim.  A  carpet  was  spread 
from  the  entrance  across  the  path  to  the  coach,  and  one  of 
the  town  officials  stood  in  waiting  to  show  the  great  man 
to  his  seat.  By  and  by  a  figure  in  cocked  hat,  full  wig, 
laced  coat,  and  corslet  came  out  with  a  fair  counterfeit  of 
Eugene's  active  gait;  he  gave  a  somewhat  stiff  acknow- 
ledgment of  the  salutes  of  the  soldiers  and  the  respectful 
obeisance  of  the  local  magnates  and  the  crowd  of  inter- 
ested townspeople,  and  stepped  quickly  into  the  coach. 
Harry  followed  him.  The  door  was  shut,  the  word  given 
to  the  two  postilions,  and  amid  the  cheers  of  all  Urach 
the  vehicle  rattled  over  the  stones,  out  at  the  gate,  into 
the  open  highway.  No  one  but  the  principals  in  the  little 
drama,  and  the  fifteen  picked  men  of  the  escort,  knew  that 
the  man  to  whom  they  had  just  shown  such  deference  was 
not  Eugene  of  Savoy,  a  prince  of  a  sovereign  house,  but 
Max  Berens,  the  simple  son  of  a  shoemaker. 

Harry  had  been  at  the  pains  to  drill  his  companions 
in  the  part  they  were  to  play.  He  had  learnt  from  Max 
that  there  were  two  roads  leading  from  the  main  highway 
to  the  castle.  Of  these  the  one  nearest  to  Urach  was 
the  better;  it  branched  off  about  a  mile  on  the  town  side 
of  the  inn.  The  other  was  a  more  circuitous  and  difficult 
track  across  the  hills,  leaving  the  highroad  at  a  point 
rather  more  distant  from  the  inn  on  the  farther  side,  and 
only  a  few  yards  from  the  spot  chosen  for  the  ambuscade. 
Between  the  two  cross-roads  the  highway  took  a  some- 


Mein  Wirth  as  Postilion 

what  irregular  course,  and  while  it  was  visible  from  point 
to  point,  only  a  few  yards  of  the  intervening  portion  could 
be  seen  from  either  of  the  by-roads,  owing  to  its  windings 
and  the  undulations  of  the  ground.  When  the  coach, 
therefore,  should  arrive  at  the  first  road  it  would  be 
descried  by  the  ambuscaders,  but  would  then  disappear 
from  their  view,  not  becoming  visible  again  until  a  short 
distance  before  it  reached  them.  On  this  fact  Harry 
reckoned  for  the  successful  accomplishment  of  the  first 
part  of  his  scheme. 

A  mile  out  of  Urach,  Harry  found  the  landlord  awaiting 
him  in  charge  of  one  of  the  town  guard.  He  was  taken 
into  the  coach,  which  then  drove  rapidly  on.  On  arriving 
at  the  cross-road,  instead  of  going  straight  forward  towards 
the  inn  and  the  ambush,  it  swung  round  to  the  right,  and 
at  Harry's  orders  the  postilions  whipped  up  the  horses  and 
drove  at  a  headlong  pace  towards  the  castle.  The  actual 
turning  could  not  be  seen  from  the  place  of  the  ambuscade, 
and  Harry  confidently  expected  that  the  brigands,  having 
caught  sight  of  the  coach  the  moment  before  it  left  the 
road,  would  await  its  coming  without  suspicion.  Its  non- 
appearance  after  a  time  would  surprise  them ;  they  might 
suppose  it  had  stopped  at  the  inn  to  bait  the  horses ;  they 
would  allow  for  this,  and  a  considerable  time  would  elapse 
before  they  discovered  the  truth.  This  interval  would,  he 
hoped,  give  him  so  long  a  start  that  he  would  have  ample 
time  to  play  his  trick  upon  the  garrison. 

About  half  a  mile  from  the  castle,  Harry  ordered  the 
postilions  and  escort  to  halt  at  a  spot  where  they  were 
hidden  from  the  garrison  by  a  stretch  of  rising  ground. 
He  then  dismounted  four  of  the  dragoons,  bade  them  get 
into  the  coach,  and  made  the  landlord  change  places  with 
the  postilion  on  one  of  the  sear  horses.  In  his  hand  he 
placed  an  empty  pistol. 

"When  we  drive  on,"  he  said,  "you  will  point  that 
at  the  back  of  the  postilion  in  front  of  you,  and  look  as 
grim  as  you  please.  When  we  come  within  earshot  of 
the  sentry  at  the  bridge — I  will  give  the  word — you  will 


An  Empty  Pistol 


shout  to  him  to  let  us  through  quickly :  '  Here  we  are ! ' 
you  will  cry.  I  have  let  down  the  window,  you  observe ; 
Berens  will  be  a  few  feet  behind  you  with  a  loaded  pistol : 
you  understand?" 

Then  turning  to  the  eleven  dragoons  who  were  still  on 
horseback,  he  said : 

"Now,  men,  you  know  your  part.  Wait  till  we  are 
over  the  bridge,  then  gallop  up  at  full  speed  with  sabres 
drawn  and  pistols  cocked,  ready  for  anything." 

"What  about  the  four  horses,  Herr  Capitan?"  asked 
one  of  the  troopers. 

"We  must  leave  them.  Tie  their  heads  together 
and  string  them  to  that  tree  yonder :  we  may  get  them 
by  and  by;  if  not,  the  coach  horses  will  serve.  Now; 
all  ready!  Drive  on,  landlord." 

The  two  postilions — the  foremost  a  stalwart  dragoon — 
whipped  up  the  horses,  which  dashed  forward  at  a  furious 
gallop  towards  the  castle.  It  was  a  tight  squeeze  in  the 
coach — Harry,  Max,  and  the  four  big  troopers  jammed 
together  in  a  narrow  space. 

"  Level  your  pistol,  landlord!"  cried  Harry. 

The  pale  perspiring  landlord  held  his  harmless  weapon 
in  his  left  hand,  covered  by  the  loaded  pistol  of  Max  in 
the  coach.  On  they  drove,  ploughing  up  the  soil  heavy 
with  last  night's  rain,  the  horses  straining  at  the  traces. 
They  were  within  thirty  yards  of  the  bridge. 

"Shout,  landlord!"  said  Harry  in  a  loud  whisper 
through  the  open  window. 

"  Here  we  are!  here  we  are!"  cried  the  man. 

"Louder!" 

"  Here  we  are!"     He  almost  shrieked  the  words. 

"The  others  are  behind!"  prompted  Harry. 

"The  others  are  behind! ".cried  the  landlord. 

The  sentry  at  the  farther  end  of  the  bridge  gave  an 
answering  shout;  the  boards  that  served  for  a  gate  were 
removed ;  the  coach  clattered  and  rumbled  over  the  rock- 
ing creaking  planks,  and  the  postilions  pulled  up  their 
reeking  horses  in  the  courtyard  of  the  castle. 

316 


CHAPTER  XXI 

Across  the  Fosse 

THE  shouting  and  the  clatter  of  the  coach  had  drawn  the 
garrison  into  the  courtyard.  From  these  twenty  men,  the 
remnant  of  the  brigand  band,  a  great  cheer  went  up,  and 
they  pressed  forward  eagerly  to  see  the  princely  captive. 
Two  or  three  of  them  were  unarmed,  but  the  rest,  with 
the  habit  of  seasoned  warriors,  had  their  swords  in  their 
belts  and  carbines  slung  at  their  shoulders. 

"Well  done,  Otto!"  cried  one,  slapping  the  landlord  on 
the  back. 

But  at  that  moment  both  doors  of  the  coach  were  flung 
open,  and  out  of  each  sprang  a  man  with  a  pistol  in  the 
left  hand  and  a  sword  in  the  right.  These  were  followed 
by  others,  and  before  the  astonished  garrison  realized  the 
situation,  six  fully  armed  men  were  among  them,  and  one, 
a  tall,  dark,  lissom  young  fellow,  all  fire  and  energy,  was 
calling  on  them  to  surrender.  A  few,  cowed  by  the  pistols 
pointed  within  a  foot  of  their  heads,  and  taken  utterly 
aback  by  this  astounding  change  of  scene,'  flung  down 
their  carbines  from  sheer  inability  to  think ;  but  the  more 
nimble-witted,  and  those  on  the  outskirts  of  the  little 
group,  scurried  away,  under  cover  of  their  comrades,  out 
of  range,  unslinging  their  carbines  and  drawing  their 
swords  as  they  ran. 

Meanwhile  the  foremost  postilion,  in  obedience  to  orders 
previously  given  by  Harry,  whipped  up  his  horses  and 
drove  them  at  a  gallop  round  the  courtyard,  narrowly 
escaping  a  bullet  from  the  carbine  of  one  of  the  garrison, 
until  he  came  opposite  the  gateway,  where  he  drew  up  so 
as  to  present  the  side  of  the  coach  to  the  opening,  and  cut 
the  traces.  The  garrison,  having  by  this  time  perceived 


Shoulder  to  Shoulder 

by  how  small  a  body  they  were  confronted,  came  forward 
in  a  compact  mass  against  the  little  band.  Carbines 
cracked,  pistols  flashed,  steel  rang-  on  steel,  and  with 
shouts  and  oaths  the  two  bands  engaged.  Harry  was  not 
in  this  mellay,  for  in  the  confusion  he  had  slipped  away 
and  rushed  through  the  archway,  just  in  time  to  see  the 
sentry  striving  with  might  and  main  to  hurl  the  planks 
of  the  bridge  into  the  fosse.  He  had  caught  sight  of 
eleven  dragoons  in  Austrian  uniform  galloping  up  from 
the  valley  half  a  mile  away.  The  man  turned  as  he  heard 
Harry's  approach,  snatched  up  his  sword,  which  he  had 
dropped  for  his  work  with  the  planks,  and  threw  himself 
into  his  guard  in  the  nick  of  time  to  meet  the  attack. 
Harry  felt  that  it  was  not  a  moment  for  fine  sword-play ; 
the  man  was  a  burly  fellow,  clumsy,  and  to  appearance 
dull  of  wits.  Running  a  risk  which  would  be  fatal  if  his 
opponent  were  a  keen  swordsman,  Harry  gave  him  an 
opening.  It  was  instantly  accepted,  but  the  thrust  was 
parried  with  lightning  rapidity,  and  before  the  man  could 
recover  himself  Harry's  sword  had  ploughed  a  deep  furrow 
in  his  forearm,  and  with  a  yell  of  pain  he  let  his  own 
weapon  fall  to  the  ground.  Stepping  back  at  the  same 
moment  with  the  instinct  of  self-preservation,  he  tumbled 
headlong  into  the  fosse. 

Immediately  Harry  wheeled  round  and  dashed  back 
to  the  support  of  his  men,  now  engaged  in  a  desperate 
and  unequal  battle.  Their  backs  to  the  coach,  they  were 
facing  dauntlessly  thrice  their  number  of  infuriated  brig- 
ands, who  had  discarded  their  firearms  and  came  to  the 
attack  with  swords  flashing  in  ever-narrowing  circles. 
One  of  the  dragoons  had  already  fallen ;  but  his  comrades 
were  all  tough  soldiers  tried  on  many  a  battle-field,  recking 
nothing  of  the  odds,  every  man  with  full  confidence  in  him- 
self and  his  fellows.  They  were  ranged  in  a  quarter  circle 
against  the  coach,  with  just  enough  space  between  them 
to  allow  free  play  with  their  weapons.  Twice  already  had 
they  beaten  back  the  enemy ;  a  third  and  more  determined 
onslaught  had  somewhat  broken  their  formation,  and  two 


Wrecking  the   Bridge 

men  had  been  wounded  and  forced  back,  exposing  the 
flank  of  the  others.  Harry  sprang  through  the  coach 
just  in  time  to  close  the  gap.  He  hurled  himself  into 
the  fray  with  a  shout;  the  enemy,  taking  him  for  the 
advance-guard  of  reinforcements,  fell  back  for  a  moment; 
and  before  they  could  recover  and  return  to  the  charge 
there  was  a  thunderous  clatter  on  the  bridge,  the  eleven 
troopers  flung  themselves  from  their  steeds,  and  scram- 
bling man  by  man  through  the  coach  gave  threefold 
strength  to  the  hard-pressed  line. 

"Charge!"  shouted  Harry  in  his  clear,  ringing  voice. 

The  men  surged  forward  with  a  roar  of  exultation, 
scattering  the  brigands  to  the  limits  of  the  courtyard. 
Two  or  three  bolted  like  rabbits  into  the  keep;  the  rest 
cried  for  quarter  and  flung  down  their  arms;  the  din  of 
battle  suddenly  ceased,  and  some  seventeen  panic-stricken 
prisoners  were  the  prize  of  the  victors. 

"Max,  go  into  the  keep,  up  the  stairs  to  the  top,  and 
tell  me  what  you  see." 

From  the  parapet  of  the  keep  Max  shouted  that  he  saw 
a  large  troop  of  horse  not  a  mile  away,  galloping  amain 
towards  the  castle. 

"  Men,  with  me!"  cried  Harry. 

Twelve  dragoons  sprang  through  the  coach  after  him, 
and  with  haste  helped  him  to  draw  the  planks  of  the  bridge 
within  the  archway.  They  had  completed  their  task  save 
for  the  last  plank  when  the  foremost  files  of  the  enemy 
galloped  up,  checking  their  horses  at  the  very  brink  when 
they  saw  the  unbridged  gap  before  them ;  no  horse  could 
cross  on  a  two-foot  plank.  Harry  withdrew  his  men  just  in 
time  to  escape  the  bullets  fired  at  them  by  the  baulked  and 
enraged  brigands.  At  the  last  moment  he  himself  stooped, 
lifted  the  end  of  the  plank,  and  hurled  it  into  the  fosse.  A 
slug  whizzed  past  his  head;  he  dashed  back  under  the 
archway,  through  the  coach,  breathless  but  safe. 

As  he  stepped  through  the  coach  into  the  courtyard  he 
heard  a  groan.  His  wounded  men  had  been  carried  into 
the  keep;  at  the  moment  no  trooper  was  near.  Bending 


Well  Found 

down,  he  looked  beneath  the  coach,  and  saw  the  landlord 
lying  flat  on  his  face,  his  head  buried  in  his  arms,  groaning 
dismally. 

"Are  you  hit,  landlord?"  asked  Harry. 

"  Lord  have  mercy  on  my  soul!"  groaned  the  man. 

"Never  mind  your  soul;  are  your  limbs  sound?  Come 
out,  and  let  me  look  at  you." 

A  palpitating  mass  crawled  from  beneath  the  vehicle. 
Dirty,  chap-fallen,  and  dishevelled,  but  unhurt,  the  landlord 
stood  in  trembling  and  pitiful  cowardice. 

"Where  are  you  hurt?  Come,  I've  no  time  to  waste. 
Why,"  he  added,  as  he  turned  the  man  round  and  examined 
him,  "you  haven't  a  scratch.  You're  a  pretty  consort  of 
ruffians !  Get  away  into  the  keep  and  make  yourself  use- 
ful, or " 

The  man  scrambled  away  in  limp  despair,  and  Harry 
smiled  grimly  as  he  went  about  his  pressing  task. 

He  knew  that  he  was  safe  for  a  time.  The  two  hundred 
men  outside  were  completely  cut  off  from  their  quarters. 
"If  they  want  their  castle  they  must  come  and  take  it," 
thought  Harry.  They  could  only  enter  by  one  of  three 
ways :  the  main  entrance,  if  they  repaired  the  bridge — but 
that  could  be  prevented  by  marksmen  within ;  the  tunnel — 
but  that  could  be  blocked  up ;  the  tower  by  which  he  him- 
self had  escaped — but  one  or  two  men  there  could  easily 
prohibit  access  by  the  slope  and  postern.  Harry  set  a 
sentinel  at  each  point,  and  then  made  a  rapid  survey  of 
the  position. 

He  found  that  the  castle  contained,  besides  a  huge  quan- 
tity of  plunder,  a  plentiful  stock  of  provisions,  arms,  and 
ammunition.  There  were  indeed  many  bags  of  powder 
ranged  carelessly  around  the  walls  of  the  courtyard,  and 
these  Harry  had  removed  to  a  more  secure  place  in  one  of 
the  towers,  and  covered  with  sacking.  He  then  went  up 
on  the  battlements  to  see  what  the  enemy  were  about. 
They  had  withdrawn  to  a  knoll  at  some  distance  and  dis- 
mounted, and  an  exciting  discussion  appeared  to  be  going 
on  among  their  leaders.  Harry  called  to  Max  to  remain 

320 


The  Dungeons  of  Rauhstein 

on  the  look-out  and  report  any  fresh  movement  among1 
them;  then  he  prepared  to  visit  the  dung-eons. 

The  prisoners  had  been  secured  in  the  hall  of  the  keep. 

"  Which  of  you  acts  as  warder?"  asked  Harry,  entering 
the  hall. 

"Zooks!  if  it  an't  young  Mr.  Rochester!"  said  an 
amazed  voice  in  English.  "I  be  the  warder,  Mr.  Ro- 
chester." 

"You,  John  Simmons!  Now,  answer  me  quickly:  are 
there  any  prisoners  below?" 

"  There  be  two,  sir,  certainly,  and  I  was  against  it — that's 
the  truth,  sir;  I  was  against  it,  but  the  capt'n  he  would 
cool  their  courage,  he  said,  and  what  could  I  do,  sir? 
— though  it  did  cut  me  to  the  heart  to  serve  Mr. 
Fanshawe  so " 

"Hold  your  tongue,  knave!  Take  me  to  the  place  at 
once." 

"  I  was  against  it,"  muttered  the  man,  as  he  led  the  way 
out  of  the  hall,  through  the  stone  passage,  into  a  room 
near  the  spot  at  which  Harry  had  ascended  from  the 
tunnel.  Here  he  lifted  a  slab  in  the  floor,  and  let  down 
a  rope  ladder,  coiled  beneath  it,  into  a  pit  of  blackness. 

"They  are  there?"  exclaimed  Harry  in  horror,  as  he 
peered  down,  and  found  himself  unable  to  discern  any- 
thing. 

"  I  was  against  it,"  murmured  Simmons  again. 

"  The  inhuman  fiends !"  cried  Harry.  "  Fanshawe,  are 
you  there?"  he  called  into  the  mouth  of  the  dungeon,  his 
voice  echoing  strangely  from  the  hollow. 

"Yes,"  came  the  faint  answer.      "  Who  are  you?" 

"'Tis  Harry  Rochester,  old  fellow.  We'll  have  you  out 
in  a  trice, — and  Lieutenant  Buckley,  too;  is  he  with  you?" 

"Ay.     Is  the  ladder  down ? " 

"Yes.     Come  along;  we're  all  friends  here." 

Soon  Fanshawe's  fair  head  appeared  above  the  hole. 
Harry  caught  his  arm  and  helped  him  to  step  on  to  the 
floor. 

"God  bless  you,  Harry!"  he  said  feebly.  His  cheeks 

321 


The  Castle  Cook 

were  drawn  and  pale;  his  eyes  sunken  and  haggard;  his 
hair  was  dank  and  disordered ;  and  he  tottered  and  would 
have  fallen  but  for  Harry's  sustaining  arm.  After  him 
came  a  young  officer  whom  Harry  did  not  know.  He, 
too,  showed  signs  of  suffering,  but  his  incarceration  was 
shorter  by  several  days  than  Fanshawe's,  and  he  was  not 
so  much  overcome  by  the  sudden  return  to  light  and 
liberty. 

"  Poor  old  fellow!"  said  Harry,  linking  his  arm  in  Fan- 
shawe's. "Come  and  let  me  make  you  comfortable.  I'll 
tell  you  all  about  things  by  and  by,  and  hear  what  you 
have  to  tell.  We  must  get  you  right  first.  Aglionby  shall 
pay  for  this ! " 

The  two  luckless  prisoners  were  taken  to  the  hall  and 
given  food. 

"  I've  fed  'em  twice  a  day  reg'lar,"  said  Simmons. 
"They  ha'n't  wanted  for  nothing,  and  I  was  against  keep- 
ing 'em  shut  in  that  there  damp  and  foul  hole." 

"Silence,  fellow!  Go  and  bury  the  men  killed  in  the 
fight.  Then  come  to  me." 

Having  made  Fanshawe  and  Buckley  as  comfortable  as 
possible,  Harry  selected  one  of  his  own  men  to  act  as 
store-keeper,  and  then,  as  a  sudden  idea  struck  him,  called 
for  the  landlord.  The  man  could  not  at  first  be  found, 
but  after  some  search  was  discovered  and  hauled  with 
many  gibes  into  Harry's  presence. 

"Cease  whimpering  and  listen  to  me,"  said  Harry. 
"You  must  do  something  to  earn  your  food.  You  shall 
be  cook.  Doubtless  you  know  the  arrangements  of  this 
place;  go  and  prepare  a  good  meal  for  the  men,  and  do 
your  best;  it  will  be  to  your  interest." 

Ascending  then  to  the  top  of  the  keep,  he  sent  Max 
down  to  get  some  breakfast,  and  looked  around.  The 
enemy  were  not  in  sight.  They  had  evidently  withdrawn 
into  the  copse  about  half  a  mile  distant;  perhaps  under 
cover  of  it  they  had  drawn  off  altogether.  But  know- 
ing their  leader,  and  imagining  the  fury  with  which 
he  must  have  seen  the  frustration  of  his  carefully -laid 

322 


The  Enemy's  Plan 

plans,  Harry  could  not  believe  that  he  would  tamely 
accept  the  check  as  final.  Aglionby,  whatever  his  faults, 
did  not  lack  courage.  He  was  not  likely  to  throw  up  the 
game  at  the  loss  of  the  first  trick.  He  would  probably 
assume  that  it  was  Prince  Eugene  himself  who  had  stolen 
a  march  upon  him ;  in  that  case  he  would  suppose  that  he 
had  the  prince  caged  in  the  castle;  and  whatever  advan- 
tage he  had  expected  to  derive  from  the  capture  of  the 
prince  would  induce  him  to  strain  every  nerve  to  prevent 
him  from  escaping.  His  aim,  Harry  supposed,  had  been 
to  hand  Prince  Eugene  over  to  the  Elector  of  Bavaria,  and 
reap  much  credit  as  well  as  a  more  tangible  recompense. 
In  order  to  entrap  the  prince  he  had  sent  on  Fanshawe's 
letter  by  another  hand.  If  he  returned  to  the  Elector's 
army  without  his  prize,  when  the  odds  had  seemed  all  in 
his  favour,  he  would  become  the  laughing-stock  of  the 
camp.  Harry  therefore  felt  certain  that  he  would  attempt 
to  retake  the  castle  at  whatever  cost. 

If  he  should  succeed,  Harry  knew  that  he  himself  need 
expect  no  mercy.  Aglionby  had  a  long  account  against 
him ;  time  after  time  his  plans  had  been  foiled ;  the  sole 
item  on  the  credit  side,  the  saving  of  his  life  at  Breda, 
was  likely,  in  a  man  of  his  disposition,  only  to  deepen  his 
rancour. 

He  would,  of  course,  sooner  or  later  find  out  his  mistake 
in  regard  to  Prince  Eugene ;  and  when  the  discovery  was 
made  he  would  expect  the  prince  to  send  a  force  at  the  first 
opportunity  to  relieve  the  men,  whoever  they  were,  who 
had  captured  the  castle,  or  at  any  rate  to  avenge  their  fate. 
In  either  case  Aglionby  would  lose  no  time,  but  would 
hasten  by  all  the  means  in  his  power  any  attack  he  might 
meditate.  So  far  as  Harry  could  judge,  he  had  nearly 
three  hundred  men  under  his  command;  it  would  not  be 
long  before  he  learnt,  if  indeed  he  did  not  already  know, 
that  the  present  holders  of  the  castle  did  not  number  more 
than  a  score.  In  the  circumstances  he  would  almost  cer- 
tainly attempt  to  take  the  place  by  assault,  and  the  obvious 
point  of  attack  was  the  gateway.  The  bridge  was  broken 

323 


Unwilling  Help 


down ;  the  fosse  was  too  deep  to  be  filled  up ;  the  attackers 
would  therefore  have  to  construct  another  bridge,  and  the 
fosse  being  little  more  than  twenty  feet  wide,  they  could 
easily  rig-  up  a  portable  platform  strong  enough  to  carry 
them  to  the  assault.  There  was  plenty  of  timber  in  the 
neighbourhood;  with  the  force  at  his  disposal  Aglionby 
might  make  a  serviceable  bridge  in  a  few  hours. 

Meanwhile,  what  was  Harry  to  do  with  the  prisoners? 
The  question  gave  him  some  trouble.  He  had  plenty  of 
provisions ;  there  would  be  no  difficulty  in  feeding  them ; 
but  if  he  kept  them  in  the  castle  they  would  require  a 
guard  of  at  least  one  man  day  and  night,  so  that  of  his 
own  little  band  two  men  would  practically  be  lost  for 
effective  defence.  If,  on  the  other  hand,  he  let  them 
loose,  he  would  add  eighteen  men,  fourteen  of  whom 
were  unhurt,  to  the  enemy's  strength.  Deciding  that  on 
the  whole  it  would  be  best  to  keep  them,  he  went  down 
to  settle  their  fate  without  loss  of  time. 

He  gave  them  one  by  one  the  option  of  making  himself 
useful  in  the  defence  of  the  castle,  or  of  being  lowered  into 
the  dungeon  whence  Fanshawe  and  Buckley  had  just  been 
released.  With  one  consent  the  men  elected  to  avoid  the 
dungeon.  Harry  at  once  set  some  of,  them  to  collect 
stones  from  the  more  ruinous  parts  of  the  castle,  and  to 
pile  them  up  across  the  gateway,  leaving  loopholes  for 
musketry  fire.  Others  he  ordered  to  take  a  supply  of 
heavy  stones  to  the  summit  of  the  keep,  and  to  stack 
them  there  out  of  sight  from  the  distant  copse.  Three 
armed  men  accompanied  each  squad  to  prevent  treachery. 
In  pursuance  of  the  plan  of  defence  that  was  forming  in 
his  mind,  Harry  went  himself  to  the  most  dilapidated  of  the 
three  towers,  and  selecting  two  or  three  specially  large 
blocks  of  stone,  weighing  at  a  guess  about  a  hundred- 
weight each,  he  had  them  loosened  from  the  debris  and 
carried  up  the  winding  stair  of  the  keep.  In  the  court- 
yard he  saw  a  number  of  stout  poles,  for  which  a  use  at 
once  suggested  itself.  As  they  would  not  go  up  the 
winding  stair,  he  got  one  of  the  men  to  splice  several 

324 


A   Parley 


lengths  of  rope,  and  the  long  rope  thus  formed  was  let 
down  from  the  top  of  the  keep  and  knotted  to  one  end  of 
the  poles,  which  were  then  drawn  up  the  tower  on  the 
side  facing  the  courtyard. 

When  these  tasks  had  been  completed,  the  prisoners 
were  placed  in  the  ground-floor  room  of  one  of  the  towers, 
and  a  man  was  set  over  them,  with  orders  to  shoot  any 
who  should  attempt  to  move  from  the  place.  Harry 
divided  his  garrison  into  watches  as  on  board  ship,  each 
watch  to  be  on  duty  for  four  hours.  Every  man  had  his 
post,  and,  entering  into  their  young  leader's  spirit,  the 
dragoons  accepted  readily  the  duties  laid  upon  them,  and 
showed  themselves  full  of  a  light-hearted  confidence  that 
augured  well  for  their  success.  One  and  all  they  were 
hugely  delighted  with  the  trick,  and  discussed  it  among 
themselves  with  much  merriment,  exasperating  Max,  how- 
ever, by  the  mock  deference  they  still  paid  to  him  as  Prince 
Eugene. 

As  soon  as  he  had  a  spare  moment,  Harry  got  from 
Fanshawe  and  Buckley  an  account  of  their  experiences.  As 
he  had  guessed,  Fanshawe  had  been  captured  at  dead  of 
night  in  the  inn,  his  captors  coming  through  the  trap-door. 
Buckley  had  been  misdirected  by  the  landlord,  and,  losing 
his  way,  had  fallen  into  an  ambush.  Both  had  been  kept 
in  the  dungeon  day  and  night,  and  fed  twice  a  day.  In 
his  turn  Harry  related  the  chain  of  adventures  which  had 
ended  so  happily  for  them,  and  when  he  told  them  some- 
thing of  his  plans  for  the  future  they  both  declared  them- 
selves well  enough  to  assist  him.  This,  however,  he  would 
not  allow  for  the  present,  promising  to  avail  himself  of 
their  help  as  soon  as  they  had  had  time  to  recover  from 
the  effects  of  their  confinement. 

Just  before  noon,  the  man  on  the  look-out  at  the  gate- 
way announced  that  one  of  the  enemy  was  approaching 
with  a  flag  of  truce.  Harry  climbed  up  to  the  battlements 
to  the  left  of  the  keep,  and  as  soon  as  the  man  was  within 
earshot  demanded  his  business.  Speaking  in  French,  the 
messenger  said  that  he  had  come  at  his  captain's  order  to 

325 


The  Bridge  Builders 

say  that  if  Prince  Eugene  surrendered,  he  would  be  granted 
honourable  treatment,  and  conducted  to  the  camp  of  his 
highness  the  Elector  of  Bavaria,  his  men  being  allowed 
to  go  free.  If  these  terms  were  rejected,  the  castle  would 
be  stormed  and  every  member  of  the  garrison  would  be 
put  to  the  sword.  The  decision  must  be  made  in  half  an 
hour.  Harry  smiled. 

"  You  may  take  our  answer  now,"  he  said.  "  Tell  your 
captain  that  soldiers  of  the  confederate  army  do  not  yield 
to  brigands  and  cut-throats." 

The  messenger  rode  back  to  the  copse,  and  for  some 
hours  there  was  no  further  sign  of  the  enemy,  except  for 
a  few  men  who  were  noticed  moving  about  a  stretch  of 
marshy  ground  about  a  mile  from  the  castle.  Harry  won- 
dered what  their  object  could  be,  and  calling  Max  to  him, 
asked  what  there  was  on  the  marsh  that  they  were  likely 
to  find  useful. 

"  There  is  nothing  there,  Monsieur,  but  mud  and  reeds." 

"Reeds!  Of  course.  They  are  cutting  reeds  to  bind 
together  lengths  of  timber  for  a  bridge.  I  heard  the 
sound  of  chopping  from  the  copse  this  morning.  Well, 
Max,  I  think  we  are  prepared  for  them." 

Soon  after  three  o'clock  a  body  of  about  two  hundred 
men  was  seen  approaching  on  foot  in  open  order.  When 
within  musket -shot  they  took  what  cover  the  irregulari- 
ties of  the  ground  and  the  scattered  shrubs  afforded,  and 
opened  fire  on  every  embrasure.  Among  them  Harry  had 
no  difficulty  in  recognizing  the  burly  figure  of  Aglionby. 
Word  was  passed  round  among  the  defenders  to  make  no 
reply.  The  enemy  were  at  present  too  far  off  to  do  much 
damage,  or  for  the  fire  of  the  garrison  to  be  effective.  A 
few  minutes  later  Harry,  who  had  posted  himself  on  the 
keep,  so  that  while  invisible  himself  he  could  see  every- 
thing, observed  a  small  body  of  men  emerge  from  the 
copse,  bearing  a  number  of  narrow  palisades,  consisting, 
as  he  discovered  on  their  nearer  approach,  of  thin  logs 
roughly  bound  together.  When  they  had  come  within 
about  two  hundred  yards  of  the  castle,  the  main  body  of 

326 


At  Short  Range 


the  enemy  directed  a  more  continuous  fire  upon  the  battle- 
ments and  loopholes,  many  advancing-  close  up  to  the  edge 
of  the  fosse.  Still  there  was  no  reply  from  the  defenders. 
The  bridg-e-bearers  came  up  at  a  slow  run. 

Harry  had  disposed  of  his  little  force  as  follows.  Three 
men  were  stationed  on  the  top  of  the  keep,  four  at  loop- 
holes on  the  stairways  half-way  up  each  side,  five  behind 
the  barricade  of  stones  in  the  gateway,  and  one  to  carry 
orders  from  his  own  position  on  the  keep  to  the  men 
below.  As  soon  as  he  saw  the  bridge-bearers  approaching 
he  instructed  his  dragoons  to  fire  when  he  gave  the  word, 
but  only  at  the  men  carrying  the  palisades.  The  extem- 
porized bridge  was  in  four  sections,  each  about  two  feet 
across,  and  carried  by  six  men. 

The  twenty -four  came  on,  halted  at  the  brink  of  the 
gully,  and  prepared  to  raise  their  palisades.  Then  Harry 
gave  the  word.  The  troopers  below  had  been  instructed 
to  fire  at  the  left-hand  sections,  those  above  at  the  right- 
hand  sections.  At  the  word  they  sprang  up,  thrust  their 
muzzles  through  the  embrasures  and  loopholes,  and,  un- 
deterred by  the  patter  of  the  enemy's  bullets  around  them, 
took  deliberate  aim.  The  effect  was  all  that  Harry  had 
hoped.  The  range  was  short;  the  men  were  old  cam- 
paigners of  iron  nerve,  and  almost  every  shot  told.  Two 
or  three  men  in  each  section  of  the  bridge-bearers  fell ;  the 
rest,  dismayed  by  the  fate  of  their  comrades,  loosened  their 
hold  on  the  palisades,  which  dropped  back  on  to  the  farther 
side  of  the  fosse.  There  was  a  rush  among  the  bolder  spirits 
to  supply  their  places,  and  Aglionby  himself,  his  red  face 
purple  with  fury  and  excitement,  threw  himself  at  the  head 
of  his  men,  who  strove  with  desperate  haste  to  raise  the 
palisades  once  more.  But  there  was  no  cessation  of  the 
fire  from  the  walls.  Harry  had  taken  the  precaution  of 
collecting  from  the  stock  of  arms  four  muskets  for  each 
man,  so  that  they  needed  to  waste  no  time  in  reloading. 
No  sooner  had  the  palisades  begun  to  rise  again  than  a 
second  fusillade  burst  forth  from  the  castle;  again  the 
unwieldy  poles  fell  clattering  to  the  ground ;  again  the  men 
(B357)  327  Y 


Supper 


who  had  survived  rushed  back  out  of  range.  Aglionby 
and  one  or  two  others  at  first  refused  to  budge,  and 
took  shelter  behind  the  timber;  but  when  they  found  them- 
selves deserted  they  at  length  scoured  away  after  the  rest, 
and  the  whole  force  drew  off. 

"  Fire  no  more,"  cried  Harry.  "  Let  them  look  to  their 
wounded." 

Finding  that  the  firing  from  the  castle  had  ceased,  a  party 
of  the  enemy  ventured  to  the  edge  of  the  fosse  and  removed 
the  hapless  men  there,  some  stark  dead,  others  wounded 
more  or  less  severely.  Half  a  dozen  men  remained  on 
watch  at  points  surrounding  the  castle ;  the  rest  withdrew 
to  the  copse ;  and  the  members  of  the  garrison,  not  one  of 
whom  was  hurt,  rejoiced  in  the  repulse  of  this  first  assault, 
and  went  in  relays  to  eat  the  meal  which  Otto  the  landlord 
had  prepared  for  them. 

No  further  movement  of  the  enemy  was  observable. 
Max  suggested  that  they  had  encamped  in  a  large  open 
glade  within  the  wood.  As  night  drew  on,  a  slight  glow 
above  the  tree-tops  and  thin  columns  of  smoke  proclaimed 
that  camp  fires  had  been  lighted.  Evidently,  then,  the 
enemy  had  not  relinquished  their  hope  of  recapturing  the 
castle.  They  were,  of  course,  aware  that  its  present  garri- 
son could  not  escape,  for  the  plank  bridge  could  not  be 
collected  and  replaced  unobserved ;  without  it  the  inmates 
could  only  leave  on  foot,  and  they  would  thus  easily  be 
overtaken  by  the  horsemen. 

Harry  sat  down  with  Fanshawe  and  Buckley  to  eat  his 
supper  and  discuss  the  situation.  He  was  most  apprehen- 
sive of  a  night-attack. 

"They  would  have  far  better  chances  than  by  day,"  he 
said,  "for  their  numbers  would  tell  against  us,  and  we 
should  have  to  divide  our  force  so  as  to  guard  points  that 
might  be  threatened  at  any  moment." 

"  But  the  battlements  are  inaccessible,"  said  Fanshawe. 

"The  tower  by  which  I  escaped,  you  remember,  is  not. 
'Tis  difficult  of  approach,  indeed,  but  not  impossible  to 
resolute  men.  I  should  have  to  leave  at  least  one  man  to 

328 


Counsel 

guard  the  postern.  Of  course,  I  shall  block  up  the  under- 
ground entrance  by  the  tunnel ;  a  few  stones  piled  on  the 
trap  will  prevent  it  from  being  lifted  from  below.  But  in 
the  darkness  'twill  not  be  so  easy  to  hinder  the  enemy 
from  throwing  a  bridge  across  the  fosse:  that  is  most  to 
be  feared." 

"  Defend  it  with  a  mine,"  suggested  Buckley. 

"A  good  thought!" 

"  And  easy  to  do.  The  soil  at  the  edge  of  the  fosse  will 
be  soft:  dig  a  hole  and  bury  half  a  bag  of  powder  in  it. 
Pack  it  tightly  with  earth  and  stones ;  you  can  lead  a  train 
of  powder  through  the  barricade  into  the  courtyard." 

' '  Take  care  it  is  out  of  the  reach  of  stray  sparks  from 
the  men's  matches,"  said  Fanshawe,  "or  there'll  be  an 
explosion  too  soon  and  all  spoilt." 

"You're  good  counsellors,  both  of  you.  We'll  make 
something  of  this  defence  among  us." 

Harry  waited  until  dusk  before  carrying  out  Buckley's 
suggestion,  in  order  that  his  movements  might  not  be 
seen  by  the  enemy.  Having  removed  several  stones  from 
the  barricade,  he  set  two  men  to  dig  a  hole  near  the 
gateway,  filled  it  with  a  large  charge  of  powder,  and 
rammed  down  the  earth  upon  it,  taking  care  that  several 
large  stones  were  placed  near  the  surface.  Then  the  barri- 
cade was  restored,  and  the  garrison  rearranged,  only  two 
men  being  now  left  in  the  keep,  the  rest  being  ordered  to 
take  up  their  position  in  the  courtyard. 

These  arrangements  had  only  just  been  completed, 
and  those  of  the  dragoons  who  were  not  on  watch  had 
just  turned  in,  when  a  body  of  men  was  heard  approach- 
ing. The  garrison  was  instantly  called  to  arms,  and 
Harry  went  up  to  a  coign  of  safety  in  the  battlements  to 
await  events.  It  was  almost  pitch-dark:  he  dimly  saw 
black  masses  moving  about  on  the  farther  side  of  the 
fosse;  but  he  had  resolved  not  to  waste  powder  and  shot 
by  opening  fire  with  uncertain  aim,  and  the  enemy,  finding 
their  progress  unmolested,  came,  as  his  ears  told  him, 
right  up  to  the  fosse.  He  wished  he  had  some  means  of 

329 


Fireworks 

throwing  a  light  on  the  scene,  but  knew  of  nothing  in  the 
castle  sufficiently  inflammable  for  the  purpose. 

After  a  time  the  noise  outside,  strikingly  in  contrast 
with  the  absolute  silence  in  the  castle  itself,  increased ;  the 
sound  was  like  that  of  men  slowly  moving  forward  with 
heavy  loads.  Harry  heard  the  clank  of  stone  against  stone, 
low  whispers  from  across  the  fosse,  less  guarded  com- 
mands from  a  short  distance  farther  back,  where  work  of 
some  kind  was  evidently  in  progress.  As  Harry  listened, 
his  uncertainty  as  to  what  was  going  on  at  length  became 
intolerable,  and  racking  his  brains  to  devise  some  means 
of  making  a  light  he  at  last  hit  upon  an  idea.  The 
cushions  of  the  coach  were  probably  stuffed  with  hay; 
that  would  burn,  and  if  smeared  with  grease  might  give 
a  blaze  strong  enough  to  illumine  the  scene  for  a  few 
moments.  He  immediately  had  the  cushions  ripped  up, 
and  found  that  their  stuffing  was  as  he  had  guessed. 
There  was  a  good  stock  of  candles  in  the  store-room ;  some 
of  these  were  melted  down  and  the  grease  poured  into  the 
long  bundle  of  hay  made  from  the  cushions.  The  mass 
was  carried  to  the  top  of  the  keep,  weighted  with  a  stone, 
kindled,  and  thrown  down.  It  fell  steadily,  the  flame 
increasing  as  it  gained  impetus,  casting  a  yellow  glare 
upon  the  walls  of  the  castle  and  its  surroundings.  Its 
appearance  caused  a  sensation  among  the  enemy :  as 
it  reached  the  ground  several  men  rushed  forward  and 
stamped  it  out ;  but  it  had  already  fulfilled  its  purpose,  and 
Harry  had  seen  all  that  he  wished  to  see. 

At  the  brink  of  the  fosse  the  enemy  had  constructed  a 
low  parapet:  a  large  supply  of  stones  was  stacked  about 
thirty  yards  to  the  rear,  and  men  were  still  adding  to  the 
store  from  the  scattered  debris  in  the  fosse  and  at  the  base 
of  the  ruined  walls.  The  intention  was  clear:  protected 
by  the  parapet,  the  enemy  hoped  to  throw  their  bridge 
across  the  fosse  in  safety.  With  this  knowledge  Harry's 
fear  of  a  night-attack  was  removed,  for  if  the  enemy  in- 
tended to  assault  in  the  darkness  the  parapet  would  be 
unnecessary.  They  had  apparently  not  cared  to  risk  such 

330 


Long  Odds 


an  enterprise.  The  bridge  would  be  none  too  wide  even 
in  daylight  for  the  passage  of  a  body  of  men  rushing  pell- 
mell  over  it.  The  attack,  then,  was  probably  to  be  deferred 
until  dawn.  Having  completed  their  task  the  enemy  by 
and  by  drew  off,  and  in  anticipation  of  desperate  work  on 
the  morrow  Harry  went  to  snatch  a  brief  sleep,  leaving 
Max  as  responsible  head  of  the  watch. 

In  the  cool  glimmering  dawn  of  that  June  morning 
Harry  was  awakened  by  Max  with  the  news  that  the 
brigands  were  moving  from  the  copse.  He  hastened  at 
once  to  his  post,  and  saw  that  the  parapet  extended  for 
some  twenty  yards  along  the  farther  side  of  the  fosse, 
with  a  gap  in  the  centre  protected  by  a  traverse.  The 
enemy  came  forward  rapidly,  took  up  the  palisades  they 
had  vainly  endeavoured  to  throw  across  the  fosse  on  the 
previous  day,  and  under  cover  of  the  parapet  began  to  rear 
them.  As  Harry  had  feared,  musketry  fire  from  the  castle 
was  almost  wholly  ineffectual :  only  the  men  on  the  top 
of  the  keep  got  an  occasional  chance  as  the  besiegers 
incautiously  moved  away  from  their  breastwork,  thus 
exposing  the  upper  part  of  their  bodies.  The  long 
palisades  were  slowly  reared  on  end,  and  lowered  as 
slowly  across  the  fosse,  till  the  end  nearer  to  Harry  rested 
on  the  base  of  the  barricade  beneath  the  archway.  When 
the  last  section  was  in  its  place,  the  fosse  was  spanned 
by  a  bridge  wide  enough  to  allow  four  men  to  cross  it 
abreast. 

Harry  felt  a  tightening  at  the  heart  as  he  realized  the 
magnitude  of  the  task  he  had  set  himself.  His  force, 
reduced  by  his  losses  to  eighteen,  including  himself  and 
the  two  English  officers,  who  were  scarcely  effectives,  was 
outnumbered  by  nearly  eighteen  to  one.  And  the  enemy 
were  no  feather-bed  warriors.  Looking  at  their  motley 
array,  he  recognized  that  he  had  to  contend  with  some 
of  the  fiercest,  most  desperate,  least  scrupulous  men  of 
war  that  Europe  could  produce.  Their  nationalities  were 
as  varied  as  their  costumes.  His  inexperienced  eye  could 
not  distinguish  their  types :  but  he  saw  small  men  and  big 

33* 


A   Rush 

men,  men  fair,  men  dark,  old  and  young ;  some  were  born 
dandies,  as  their  attempts  at  decoration  in  adverse  circum- 
stances showed ;  others  born  tatterdemalions,  who  even  in 
affluence  would  have  held  the  decencies  of  costume  in  deri- 
sion. About  a  hundred  seemed  to  be  regular  soldiers  of 
the  Elector  of  Bavaria's  army.  Only  one  bond  held  them 
together:  a  common  love  of  lawlessness  and  rapine.  He 
felt  a  new  respect  for  Aglionby ;  only  a  man  of  some  moral 
force,  however  perverted,  could  have  imposed  his  leader- 
ship on  such  a  heterogeneous  crew. 

At  the  moment  Aglionby  was  in  consultation  with  a 
few  others  at  some  distance,  and  out  of  range  of  the 
clumsy  firearms  of  those  days.  Among  the  little  group 
Harry  singled  out  two  men  as  of  more  consequence  than 
the  rest:  a  tall  fellow  matching  the  captain  in  height  and 
bulk,  wearing  a  red  sash — the  same  man  he  had  seen 
approaching  the  inn, — and  a  small  active  man  in  whose 
cap  a  peacock's  feather  was  jauntily  stuck.  They  were 
evidently  discussing  with  great  animation  their  plan  of 
attack. 

As  nearly  as  Harry  could  judge,  about  a  hundred  men 
were  crouching  behind  the  parapet.  A  body  nearly  two 
hundred  strong  was  held  in  reserve  near  the  leaders. 
Against  these  Harry  had  five  men  in  the  gateway,  three 
at  the  summit  of  the  keep,  three  half-way  up,  and  Max 
as  lieutenant  and  aide-de-camp. 

Suddenly  the  group  of  leaders  parted,  a  bugle  rang  out, 
and  simultaneously  with  a  fierce  discharge  of  musketry 
from  the  parapet  two  men  dashed  forward  from  each  end 
of  the  gap  on  to  the  bridge.  At  a  second's  interval  these 
were  followed  by  another  four,  while  several  men  rushed 
from  the  reserve  towards  the  far  end  of  the  parapet  to 
fill  their  places.  Three  fell  under  the  first  volley  from  the 
defenders,  but  the  rest  sprang  forward  unhurt,  and  gain- 
ing the  other  side  began  to  clamber  up  the  barricade,  to 
tear  down  the  stones,  or,  thrusting  their  muskets  through 
the  loopholes,  to  discharge  them  hap-hazard  at  the  garri- 
son within.  But  three  of  the  defenders  of  the  gate  had 

332 


From  a  Sling 


held  their  fire,  and,  boldly  mounting-  a  low  platform 
of  stones  just  inside  the  barricade,  they  discharged  their 
pieces  point-blank  into  the  mass  of  men  now  crowd- 
ing with  shouts  across  the  bridge.  The  brigands,  Harry 
noticed,  were  headed  by  the  big  red-sashed  Croatian  he 
had  seen  in  consultation  with  Aglionby.  They  recoiled 
but  for  a  second,  then  surged  forward  again,  and,  yelling 
with  fury,  hurled  themselves  against  the  breastwork. 
Eugene's  troopers,  led  by  Max,  held  their  ground  in 
silence,  save  for  a  muttered  exclamation  when  one  of  their 
adversaries  fell  reeling  into  the  fosse. 

It  was  not  long  before  the  weight  of  numbers  began  to 
tell ;  portions  of  the  barricade  had  been  pulled  down ;  the 
gallant  defenders  were  hard  beset.  Calling  to  the  two 
men  in  the  keep,  Harry  rushed  down  and  flung  himself 
into  the  fray,  shouting  to  Max  to  go  to  the  top  of  the 
keep  and  carry  out  orders  he  had  previously  received. 
Max  hurried  away,  and  Harry  lost  count  of  time  as  he 
engaged  in  a  desperate  hand-to-hand  fight  across  the 
fast  crumbling  barricade.  Standing  upon  their  platform 
the  defenders  still  had  the  advantage  of  position,  and 
Harry  and  his  two  men  being  fresh,  the  enemy  for  some 
few  minutes  gained  but  little.  Then,  as  the  attackers 
were  once  more  beginning  to  make  headway,  there  was 
a  terrible  crash  on  the  bridge.  The  fighting  ceased  as 
by  magic;  all  was  still.  A  huge  mass  of  stone,  swung 
outwards  from  the  top  of  the  keep,  had  broken  with 
terrific  force  through  the  light  palisades,  leaving  only 
one  section  intact,  and  carrying  with  it  into  the  fosse 
nearly  a  dozen  men.  The  survivors  on  the  castle  side, 
seeing  themselves  almost  cut  off,  were  seized  with  panic 
and  made  a  simultaneous  rush  for  safety,  the  big  Croatian 
pushing  his  weaker  and  wounded  comrades  into  the  fosse 
in  his  reckless  haste  to  regain  the  opposite  bank. 

Harry  gave  a  gasp  of  thankfulness  and  relief, — and 
turned  to  see  Fanshawe  and  Buckley,  who,  weak  as  they 
were,  had  come  up  unknown  to  him  towards  the  close 
of  the  fight  to  bear  a  hand. 

333 


A  Covered  Way 


"Thank  you,  old  fellow!"  he  said  to  Fanshawe,  "we 
have  scored  one." 

But  he  turned  again,  and,  leaning  on  the  barricade, 
anxiously  scanned  the  field.  The  leaders  of  the  enemy 
were  once  more  in  earnest  consultation.  They  must  have 
lost  at  least  twenty  men  in  the  short  sharp  struggle ;  but 
the  defeat  seemed  only  to  have  enraged  them.  During 
the  first  part  of  the  fight  Max  had  been  full  in  their  view, 
and  as  he  still  wore  the  prince's  costume  the  brigands 
were  no  doubt  convinced  that  Eugene  himself  was  the 
head  and  front  of  the  defence,  and  were  buoyed  up  by 
the  hope  of  capturing  him.  For  some  minutes  the  dis- 
cussion among  the  leaders  continued ;  then,  as  having 
come  to  a  decision,  they  moved  off  with  their  men  towards 
the  copse,  and,  save  for  half  a  dozen  who  remained  to 
watch  the  castle,  were  seen  no  more  for  some  hours. 

Their  absence  gave  Harry  an  opportunity  of  attending 
to  his  wounded.  He  found  that  three  were  somewhat 
seriously  hurt,  and  one  was  rendered  hors  de  combat. 
His  total  force  was  now  reduced  to  fourteen,  including 
himself,  his  brother  officers,  and  the  two  men  on  guard. 

Towards  mid-day,  under  a  broiling  sun,  the  enemy  again 
appeared.  This  time,  in  addition  to  palisades  freshly 
made,  they  carried  with  them  a  number  of  rough  frame- 
works penthouse  shaped,  fashioned  from  stout  saplings 
bound  together,  like  the  bridge,  with  withies  from  the 
marsh.  Evidently  there  was  a  man  of  resource  among 
them.  Each  of  the  frames  formed  a  kind  of  wooden  tent, 
two  yards  long,  some  three  to  four  wide,  and  six  feet 
high,  requiring  the  united  strength  of  half  a  dozen  men 
to  carry.  But  there  was  no  lack  of  men,  and  the  bearers, 
protected  from  bullets  from  above  by  the  roof  of  these 
shelters,  came  safely  almost  to  the  edge  of  the  fosse. 
The  new  palisades  were  thrown  across,  but  this  time  the 
materials  were  stronger.  One  of  the  sheds,  its  end  closed 
with  light  logs,  was  rushed  across  the  bridge  by  a  dozen 
strong  men.  A  second  was  joined  to  it,  then  a  third,  and 
so  on  until  a  continuous  corridor  stretched  across  the 

334 


Firing  the  Train 


fosse.  The  lashings  holding  the  logs  together  at  the  inner 
end  being  cut,  from  out  of  this  testudo  sprang  brigand 
after  brigand,  who  came  impetuously  up  to  the  barricade 
and  instantly  engaged  the  defenders  in  a  furious  hand-to- 
hand  combat.  Max,  whose  marksmanship  with  his  huge 
sling  had  been  so  effective  before,  hurled  stone  after  stone 
down  upon  the  testudo,  but  they  were  turned  off  by  the 
sloping  roof,  and  though  the  bridge  creaked  and  groaned 
under  the  impact  it  did  not  give  way. 

It  was  fortunate  for  the  defenders  that  only  a  few  men 
at  a  time  .could  make  their  way  through  the  shed,  and 
the  space  at  the  end  was  too  narrow  to  allow  of  a  great 
accession  of  numbers  unless  the  foremost  could  scale  the 
barricade.  The  enemy  had  again  lost  heavily  at  their 
first  onset,  but  as  soon  as  one  man  fell  his  place  was 
supplied,  and  no  respite  was  given  to  the  little  band 
within.  Shoulder  to  shoulder  Eugene's  men  formed  a 
wall  of  steel  across  the  gateway:  again  and  again  they 
beat  back  the  enemy  at  the  breastwork.  But  against 
such  odds  they  could  not  hope  to  escape  unscathed ;  there 
were  no  reserves ;  and  of  the  enemy  there  was  still  a  host 
ready  and  eager  to  fill  the  gaps.  One  man  and  then 
another  of  the  troopers  fell,  this  one  to  rise  no  more, 
that  to  crawl  away  and  stanch  his  wound.  Seven  men 
were  now  all  that  was  left  of  the  fighting  line,  and  when 
Fanshawe  and  Buckley  came  up  and  insisted  on  sharing 
their  comrades'  peril,  Harry  felt  that  he  dared  no  longer 
delay  the  playing  of  what  might  prove  his  last  card. 
With  a  word  to  Max  to  keep  up  the  fight,  he  slipped  for 
a  moment  out  of  the  press,  struck  a  flint,  kindled  some 
tinder  he  had  kept  in  readiness,  and  then,  shouting  to 
his  men  to  make  for  the  keep,  and  waiting  till  they  had 
begun  to  run,  he  lit  the  train. 

At  the  last  moment  a  trooper  fell,  so  badly  hurt  that 
he  could  not  move.  Harry  sprang  forward,  caught  the 
man  by  the  belt,  and  dragged  him  into  the  courtyard 
towards  the  keep.  The  enemy,  astonished  at  the  sudden 
flight  of  the  garrison,  hesitated  for  a  moment  before 

335 


Shambles 

charging1  across  the  obstacle  which  so  far  had  held  them 
off.  Then,  just  as  they  leapt  forward  over  the  barricade, 
now  an  irregular  heap  of  stones,  there  was  a  blinding  flash 
behind  them,  and  a  deafening  roar.  The  ground  rocked ; 
fragments  of  the  dilapidated  walls  fell  inwards  and  out- 
wards; a  dense  cloud  of  dust  and  smoke  bellied  over  the 
scene,  and  the  air  was  rent  by  the  cries  of  men  in  agony. 

Disregarding  the  falling  stone-work,  Harry  ran  forward 
to  the  archway,  his  eyes  smarting  with  the  fumes.  As  the 
cloud  gradually  settled,  he  saw  crowds  of  the  enemy 
huddled  together  on  the  farther  side  of  the  fosse,  their 
eyes  aghast  intently  fixed  on  the  archway.  But  of  the 
bridge,  and  the  sheds,  and  the  stream  of  men  who  a 
minute  before  had  been  pressing  forward  exultantly  across 
the  fosse,  not  a  vestige  remained.  Wood  and  men  lay  an 
indistinguishable  mass  at  the  bottom. 


336 


CHAPTER  XXII 

The   Fight  in  the   Keep 

HARRY  was  sick  at  heart  when  he  came  to  examine  his 
losses.  Three  of  hi?  men  were  dead,  nine  badly  wounded, 
there  was  not  one  but  bore  marks,  in  bruise  or  cut  or 
strain,  of  the  desperate  strife  in  which  they  had  played 
such  manful  parts.  He  arranged  for  the  burial  of  the 
three  gallant  troopers;  then,  heavy-hearted  as  he  was, 
set  to  work  with  indomitable  pluck  to  repair  the  damage 
done  to  the  defences.  The  prisoners  were  pressed  into  the 
service ;  the  barricade  was  restored,  and  another  mine  was 
dug,  though  from  the  crack  that  showed  in  the  masonry  of 
the  archway  Harry  feared  that  a  second  explosion  would 
bring  half  the  keep  tumbling  about  his  ears. 

Having  done  all  that  could  be  done,  and  shared  a  meal 
with  his  devoted  men,  Harry  went  with  Fanshawe  and 
Buckley  to  the  top  of  the  keep  to  discuss  the  future. 

"Our  state  is  parlous,  Fanshawe,"  he  said.  "Another 
assault  will  wipe  us  out." 

"We  have  a  breathing-space.  The  brigands  have 
had  enough  for  the  present.  Their  ill-success  must  have 
daunted  them." 

' '  But  Aglionby  will  not  give  up  yet.  He  is  playing 
for  a  high  stake. — What  is  doing  yonder?" 

In  the  distance  he  saw  two  wagons  and  a  band  of  some 
fifty  men  making  their  way  across  the  hills  towards  the 
copse  in  which  the  enemy  were  encamped. 

"  Reinforcements,  it  appears,"  said  Buckley.  "  Perhaps 
food;  they  will  raid  every  farmhouse  round." 

"We  must  say  nothing  of  this  to  the  men,"  said  Harry. 
"  'Twould  dishearten  them."  '. 

"  It  seems  you  have  no  choice  but  surrender,"  remarked 
Buckley. 

337 


Soldiers  All 

"Never — unless  you  and  Fanshawe  as  my  superior 
officers  take  the  responsibility." 

"Not  I,"  said  Fanshawe.  "  Tis  absurd  to  think  of! 
The  men  are  devoted  to  you ;  and  Prince  Eugene  put  you 
in  command ;  you  have  done  wonders,  and  whatever  be 
the  end,  we'd  be  fools  to  interfere— eh,  Buckley?" 

"Certainly." 

"Then  I  won't  surrender.  Say  we  make  terms,  think 
you  the  enemy  would  hold  to  them,  finding-  the  prince  not 
here?  They  would  wreak  vengeance  on  us  for  their  dis- 
appointment and  their  losses.  They  are  in  the  main  free- 
booters, the  scum  of  the  French  and  Bavarian  armies,  as 
near  savages  as  men  can  be.  We  could  expect  no  mercy 
at  their  hands.  Besides,  Aglionby  will  by  and  by  discover, 
if  he  have  not  already  done  so,  that  I  am  here ;  and  he  has 
too  many  scores  to  pay  off  to  deal  very  tenderly  with  me 
or  my  men.  We  can  but  hold  out  to  the  last,  and  hope 
that  help  may  come  in  time." 

"The  prince  must  by  this  be  in  our  camp,"  said 
Fanshawe.  "What  if  we  tell  the  enemy  they  are  on  the 
wrong  scent?" 

"  'Twould  avail  us  nothing.  Aglionby  would  not  believe 
the  story,  or,  if  he  believed  it,  would  scout  it  publicly 
so  as  to  keep  his  men  together.  He  would  be  the  more 
deeply  embittered  against  us." 

"You  are  in  the  right,"  said  Fanshawe.  "Pray  God 
help  comes  to  us,  then." 

"We  can  still  hold  the  keep,"  said  Harry.  "One  man 
on  the  winding  stair  can  hold  many  at  bay ;  we  must  fight 
against  time." 

That  night  Harry  could  not  sleep  for  the  harassing  pro- 
blem of  the  continued  defence  of  the  castle.  True,  his 
object  had  been  gained;  Prince  Eugene  had  got  off  in 
safety;  he  himself  had  fought  a  good  fight;  but  it  was 
clear  that  unless  help  came  soon  his  defence  must  be 
broken  through  by  sheer  force  of  numbers.  He  was  re- 
solved to  die  rather  than  fall  a  captive  into  Aglionby's 
hands;  but  the  longing  for  life  was  strong  within  him. 

338 


The   Silent  Watches 

He  thought  of  all  that  had  passed  during  the  two  years 
since  his  meeting  with  Lord  Godolphin :  the  strange  vicis- 
situdes, the  ups  and  downs  of  fortune;  the  inexplicable 
enmity  of  Mr.  Berkeley;  his  pleasant  relations  with  Myn- 
heer Grootz  and  'the  ladies  of  Lindendaal ;  the  chances 
which  had  served  him  so  well  and  brought  him  so  near  the 
realization  of  his  dearest  longings.  It  was  hard  to  think 
that  at  this  moment,  when  the  confederate  army  under  the 
greatest  generals  of  the  age  was  moving  towards  events  of 
high  moment,  he  should  be  cut  off  in  this  obscure  spot  and 
robbed  of  the  opportunity  to  which  he  had  looked  forward 
so  eagerly. 

He  did  not  think  only  of  himself.  He  remembered  his 
companions — Fanshawe,  Buckley,  the  faithful  Max,  the 
brave  troopers  whose  fate  was  linked  with  his.  Their  lot 
was  worse  than  his,  for  they  had  ties — parents,  children, 
relatives,  to  whom  they  were  dear:  he  himself  was  alone 
in  the  world.  Apart  from  Mynheer  Grootz,  who  he  knew 
loved  him;  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  whose  feeling  for  him 
was  warm;  Sherebiah,  whose  affection  was  perhaps  the 
closest  of  all ;  there  was  no  one  to  be  interested  in  his  wel- 
fare. Thinking  of  Madame  de  Vaudrey  he  thought  of  her 
daughter,  and  was  dimly  conscious  that  he  would  have 
liked  to  stand  well  in  her  eyes— to  break  through  that  cold 
reserve  of  manner  she  had  always  shown  to  him,  and  win 
from  her  one  look  or  word  of  approval.  Fanshawe,  he 
knew,  still  nourished  a  hope  of  winning  her ;  it  seemed  to 
depend  on  him  whether  Fanshawe  should  have  another 
chance. 

He  lay  awake,  thus  musing,  and  gazing  at  a  star  that 
shone  through  the  loophole  in  the  wall.  By  and  by  he  felt 
a  strange  uneasiness,  unconnected  with  his  previous  train 
of  thought.  All  was  quiet;  not  even  the  hoot  of  an  owl 
broke  the  stillness.  Unable  to  account  for  his  feeling,  he 
rose  and  went  to  the  top  of  the  keep. 

"  Is  all  well?"  he  asked  the  sentry  there. 

"All  is  well,  Monsieur." 

"You  have  seen  or  heard  nothing?" 

339 


Twice  a  Traitor 

"Nothing,  Monsieur,  but  the  scurry  of  rabbits  in  the 
fosse." 

"Good-night!" 

He  returned  to  his  bed  and  lay  down  again.  But  still 
he  felt  uneasy;  again  he  was  impelled  to  rise.  This  time 
he  went  down  into  the  courtyard.  Max  was  on  duty 
there.  The  horses  were  ranged  round  the  walls ;  the 
coach  stood  in  the  corner  to  which  it  had  been  hauled; 
everything  was  as  it  had  been.  He  went  into  the  large 
hall:  the  prisoners  were  all  asleep,  the  sentry  on  guard. 
Something  led  him  to  continue  his  round;  he  was  deter- 
mined to  allay  his  restlessness  by  examining  every  nook 
and  cranny  of  the  castle.  Taking  a  lighted  candle,  he 
made  his  way  into  the  lower  part  of  the  keep.  He  arrived 
at  length  at  the  chamber  to  which  there  was  access  from 
the  tunnel.  He  started,  and  stopped  short  in  amazement 
and  consternation.  The  stones  which  had  been  heaped  on 
the  trap-door  had  been  removed.  With  a  muttered  impre- 
cation on  the  man  who  he  supposed  had  carried  the  stones 
up  the  keep  for  use  with  the  sling,  he  was  turning  to  order 
someone  to  replace  them  when  he  noticed  that  several 
stones  were  piled  in  a  corner  near  at  hand.  He  stood 
still,  puzzled  at  this  strange  meddling  with  his  work. 

At  this  moment  he  heard  a  slight  sound  beneath  him, 
and  saw  a  tremor  in  the  stone  trap-door.  Could  he  believe 
his  eyes?  One  end  of  the  stone  was  rising.  Quick  as 
thought  he  blew  out  his  candle,  and  backing  behind  a 
pillar  drew  a  pistol  from  his  belt.  His  fascinated  eyes 
were  fixed  on  the  slowly  moving  stone.  There  was  now 
a  ray  of  light  at  its  edge;  he  heard  whispering  voices. 
Steadily  the  heavy  slab  was  pushed  into  a  vertical  position ; 
then  appeared  the  head,  the  shoulders,  the  body  of  a  man. 
By  the  light  of  the  sputtering  candle  he  carried  Harry 
recognized  Otto  the  landlord.  Now  he  saw  the  meaning 
of  all  that  had  puzzled  him.  The  man,  alarmed  for  his 
safety  if,  as  must  seem  inevitable,  the  brigands  captured 
the  castle  and  found  him  there,  apparently  an  accomplice 
in  the  trick  played  upon  them,  had  sought  to  purchase  his 

340 


Mein   Wirth   is  surprised 


The  Oubliette 

peace  by  leading  them  through  the  secret  passage.  Harry 
felt  a  keen  pang-  of  self-reproach  that  he  should  not  have 
foreseen  this  development  and  taken  steps  to  prevent  it. 

But  he  was  instinctively  bracing  his  muscles  for  the  im- 
pending struggle.  The  landlord  was  now  through  the 
opening;  he  stepped  on  to  the  floor  of  the  room  and  bent 
down  to  assist  the  next  man.  Slipping  the  pistol  back 
into  his  belt,  Harry  made  two  bounds  and  was  beside  the 
stooping  figure.  The  man  heard  his  footfall  and  instantly 
straightened  himself;  but  even  as  he  raised  the  hand 
holding  the  candle  to  ward  off  the  imminent  blow,  Harry 
struck  him  full  upon  the  chin,  and  with  a  stifled  gasp  he 
fell  headlong  to  the  stone  floor.  Then  Harry,  throwing 
all  his  weight  against  the  slab,  hurled  it  with  a  crash  into 
its  place.  The  landlord's  candle  was  guttering,  still  feebly 
alight,  on  the  floor.  By  its  glimmer  Harry  hauled  from 
the  corner  one  after  another  of  the  stones  that  had  been 
removed,  and  piled  them  with  desperate  haste  upon  the 
trap  until  the  way  was  again  effectually  blocked. 

Then,  picking  up  the  candle,  he  examined  the  prostrate 
body.  The  man  was  stunned.  Harry,  for  all  his  anger, 
could  not  help  pitying  the  poor  craven  wretch.  But  only 
one  course  was  open  to  him.  The  crashing  sound  had 
already  brought  Max  and  two  other  men  to  the  spot. 

"  Lower  him  into  the  dungeon,"  cried  Harry. 

And  the  dark  hole  in  which  Fanshawe  and  Buckley  had 
spent  nights  and  days  now  received  the  senseless  body  of 
the  traitorous  landlord. 

Sleep  was  banished  for  the  rest  of  the  night.  The 
alarm  had  gone  through  the  garrison,  and  every  man  was 
on  the  alert.  It  was  clearly  imperative  to  provide  against 
a  possible  attack  by  way  of  the  underground  passage. 
Such  an  attack  was,  in  truth,  not  very  likely.  Only  one 
man  could  pass  the  slab  at  one  time  from  below,  and  save 
by  mining  operations  the  enemy  could  scarcely  force  a  way 
through  the  ton  of  stones  which  Harry  now  caused  to  be 
heaped  above  it.  But  it  was  necessary  to  set  a  watch  at 
this  point,  and  as  he  could  not  spare  another  man  from  his 


The  Horizon 

already  too  much  diminished  force  he  decided  to  withdraw 
the  man  from  the  tower  by  which  he  had  escaped  from  the 
castle,  and  to  release  the  prisoners. 

Before  he  did  this,  however,  he  resolved  to  employ  them 
once  more  in  strengthening  his  defences.  It  was  pretty 
evident  that  the  result  of  another  assault  would  be  to  drive 
him  into  the  keep.  The  entrance  to  this  from  the  court- 
yard was  without  a  door;  it  was  necessary  to  block  it  up, 
leaving  only  a  narrow  gap  that  could  be  easily  closed. 
He  employed  the  prisoners  to  pile  the  largest  stones  that 
could  be  found  flush  with  the  doorway,  in  such  a  manner 
that  the  enemy,  approaching  from  the  outside,  should  be 
unable  to  get  a  hold  upon  them  or  push  them  away.  A 
narrow  opening  was  left,  and  heavy  stones  were  placed  on 
the  inside,  near  at  hand,  to  block  it  up  when  the  time 
should  come.  At  the  same  time  a  large  supply  of  missiles 
was  conveyed  to  the  top  of  the  keep. 

It  was  clear  from  the  movements  of  the  enemy  during 
the  day  that  they  were  far  from  abandoning  the  siege. 
No  doubt  they  had  been  encouraged  by  the  arrival  of  re- 
inforcements. Sections  for  a  new  bridge  were  brought  in 
the  afternoon  and  placed  close  to  the  fosse,  together  with 
the  sections  of  a  second  testudo.  These  were  certain  indi- 
cations of  another  attempt  on  the  gateway. 

Many  times  during  the  day  Harry  went  up  the  keep  and 
looked  anxiously  northward  for  the  expected  succour, 
always  to  be  disappointed.  He  could  not  believe  that 
Prince  Eugene  had  left  him  to  his  fate;  something  must 
have  happened  to  detain  the  relieving  force,  and  Harry 
thought  with  anguish  of  heart  that  it  might  arrive  too 
late.  Then  an  idea  struck  him.  Why  not  send  out  a 
messenger  to  hasten  the  troops  if  they  were  indeed  on  the 
road?  There  was  one  serious  objection:  the  garrison 
could  not  safely  spare  a  man.  He  mentioned  his  idea  to 
Fanshawe. 

"  Let  me  go,"  said  his  friend  instantly.  "  I  am  of  little 
use  as  a  fighting  man ;  my  strength  is  not  equal  to  a  fight 
so  desperate  as  the  last.  But  if  I  can  get  away,  I  might 

342 


Fanshavve  Volunteers 

find  a  horse  in  a  neighbouring  hamlet,  and  I  could  at  least 
keep  my  seat  in  the  saddle.  And  an  officer  would  prove 
a  better  messenger  than  a  trooper." 

Harry  accepted  the  offer.  Fanshawe  might  fall  into  the 
hands  of  the  enemy,  but  he  was  willing  to  face  the  risk, 
and  under  cover  of  night  there  was  a  reasonable  hope  that 
he  might  elude  them.  About  ten  o'clock  he  clambered 
along  the  battlements  towards  the  rearmost  tower,  and 
there,  assisted  by  a  rope,  he  made  his  exit  by  the  postern, 
slid  down  the  slope  more  riskily  ventured  by  Harry  on  his 
first  visit  to  the  castle,  and,  taking  a  wide  sweep,  dis- 
appeared into  the  darkness. 

When  Harry  returned  to  the  keep,  he  was  informed  by 
the  sentry  that  he  had  heard  dull  movements  beneath  the 
trap-door.  The  sounds  had  now  ceased.  Harry's  con- 
clusion was  that  the  enemy  had  been  searching  for  a  weak 
spot  in  the  passage,  and  having  failed  had  finally  given  up 
any  notion  of  effecting  an  entrance  there.  He  arranged 
with  Buckley  to  take  the  watch  from  midnight  till  dawn. 

With  the  first  glimmers  of  daylight  Harry  carried  out 
his  resolve  to  release  the  prisoners.  The  odds  were  so 
heavy  against  him  that  one  man  inside  was  now  worth 
thirty  out,  and  with  no  prisoners  to  guard  he  could  add 
one  to  his  effective  force.  Rapidly  marshalling  them,  he 
led  them  to  the  ruined  tower,  and  let  them  down  by  a  rope 
as  Fanshawe  had  been  let  down  in  the  night.  The  move- 
ment was  seen  by  one  of  the  enemy's  scouts,  and  before 
the  prisoners  had  all  reached  the  ground  a  crowd  of  their 
comrades  had  gathered  at  the  foot  of  the  slope  to  meet 
them.  Their  appearance  seemed  to  create  great  astonish- 
ment; they  were  surrounded  and  eagerly  plied  with  ques- 
tions. One  result  of  their  release  was  that  a  new  point  of 
attack  was  disclosed  to  the  enemy,  who  had  apparently 
not  dreamt  hitherto  of  making  an  attempt  by  the  postern. 
Harry  saw  a  small  body  detach  themselves  from  the  main 
force  and  approach  the  slope;  but  knowing  the  difficulty 
of  an  assault  uphill  upon  such  a  narrow  opening  he 
doubted  whether  they  would  push  an  attack  home;  still, 

(BS57)  343  X 


A  Powder  Barrel 

it  would  have  the  effect  of  engaging  one  at  least  of  his 
men. 

It  was  very  early  in  the  morning;  the  enemy  had  every- 
thing ready;  but  they  appeared  to  be  waiting  for  some- 
thing. Once  more  Harry  scanned  the  horizon  vainly  for 
sign  of  helmet  or  lance.  Suddenly  there  was  a  deep  rum- 
bling roar  from  the  interior  of  the  keep ;  an  exultant  shout 
rose  from  the  enemy's  ranks,  and  rushing  forward  at  full 
speed  they  began  to  throw  their  new  bridge  across  the 
fosse.  Shouting  to  his  men  to  hold  the  gateway  to  the 
death,  Harry  hastened  down  to  the  entrance  of  the  keep, 
where  he  was  met  by  stifling  fumes  of  gunpowder.  Then 
he  rushed  up  the  winding  stair  to  the  first  floor,  and  saw 
Buckley  staggering  towards  him. 

"I  had  just  been  relieved,"  panted  Buckley.  "The 
explosion  occurred  the  moment  after  I  left  the  spot.  It 
stunned  me  for  a  few  seconds.  The  poor  fellow  who  took 
my  place  must  have  been  blown  to  atoms." 

"They  laid  a  charge  last  night,  'tis  clear,"  said  Harry. 
"But  they  can't  follow  up  at  once;  they  must  wait  until 
the  fumes  have  cleared  away,  and  that  will  take  time :  there 
are  no  vent  holes.  Remain  at  the  top  of  the  stair;  with 
your  musket  and  pistol  you  can  hold  several  off  for  a  time. 
They  are  assaulting  the  gateway;  I  must  go." 

Harry,  having  proved  the  futility  of  dropping  missiles 
upon  the  testudo,  had  concentrated  his  whole  force,  save 
Buckley  and  the  man  in  the  tower,  at  the  gateway.  He 
noticed  that  the  new  bridge  was  higher  at  the  farther  side 
of  the  fosse  than  at  the  end  near  the  castle.  The  reason 
was  soon  evident.  The  testudo  this  time  was  not  blocked 
up  by  logs,  and  Harry  behind  his  barricade  could  see 
through  its  entire  length.  A  screen  of  saplings  was  sud- 
denly raised  over  the  farther  end  of  the  bridge ;  it  was  as 
suddenly  removed;  and  down  the  inclined  plane  rolled  a 
small  keg  of  powder,  with  a  burning  fuse  attached 

"  Back,  men,  back!"  he  shouted. 

The  command  was  only  just  in  time.  They  were  but  a 
few  yards  from  the  barricade  when  there  came  a  roar  like 

344 


Nearing  the  End 


thunder,  followed  by  a  second  as  Harry's  own  mine  was 
exploded,  and  through  the  swirling  smoke  fierce  and  deri- 
sive cheers.  Holding  his  breath  and  stooping  low,  Harry 
rushed  back  to  see  what  damage  was  done.  The  barri- 
cade had  disappeared ;  the  archway  was  in  ruins ;  and  the 
enemy  were  flinging  another  bridge  across  the  fosse  to 
replace  that  destroyed  by  the  explosion.  So  far  as  the 
defence  of  the  gateway  was  concerned,  Harry  saw  that  the 
game  was  up.  At  the  best  he  could  but  delay  the  enemy 
for  a  few  minutes,  and  even  then  he  would  risk  having  his 
men  cut  off  from  the  keep.  Recalling  the  man  from  the 
farther  tower,  he  collected  his  little  band,  ordered  them  to 
fire  one  volley  into  the  advancing  ranks,  and  then  withdrew 
through  the  barricaded  doorway  into  his  last  defence. 

At  that  moment  he  heard  the  dull  sound  of  a  shot 
above.  Buckley  must  be  beset!  Giving  Max  orders  to 
hold  the  courtyard  entrance,  and  sending  a  man  to  hurl 
down  stones  from  the  roof  upon  the  enemy  crowding 
below,  he  took  two  men  with  him  to  assist  Buckley, 
whom  he  found  hard  pressed  near  the  head  of  the  other 
stairway.  Sword  in  hand,  he  was  holding  the  narrow 
winding  passage  against  the  big  red-sashed  Croatian,  who 
was  making  a  desperate  thrust  at  him  with  a  half-pike, 
the  head  of  which  had  been  severed  by  the  Englishman's 
blade. 

"Steady,  Buckley!     I  am  here!"  shouted  Harry. 

He  drew  his  pistol  from  his  belt,  slipped  under  Buckley's 
arm,  and  just  as  the  Croatian  hurled  himself  up  the  last 
step  intervening  between  himself  and  his  foe,  Harry  fired 
point-blank  at  his  heart,  and  he  fell  back  upon  his  com- 
rades. The  narrow  stairway  was  choked  with  men ;  the 
din  of  their  shouts  echoed  and  re-echoed  from  the  winding 
walls,  and  above  all  the  uproar  Harry  distinguished  the 
tones  of  Aglionby,  yelling  to  his  men  to  make  way  for  him 
to  pass. 

When  Fanshawe  left  the  castle  he  walked  steadily  on 
for  some  hours,  making  a  wide  circuit  round  the  enemy's 

345 


Allies 

position,  guiding  himself  by  the  north  star.  His  progress 
was  difficult  over  the  hills  in  the  darkness.  He  had  to 
scale  bluffs,  to  creep  up  rocks,  to  spring  across  ravines, 
to  wade  through  swamps  at  the  risk  of  being  engulfed, 
to  skirt  patches  of  wood — though  in  one  case,  finding  that 
he  was  being  taken  too  far  out  of  his  course,  he  plunged 
boldly  into  a  copse,  trusting  to  his  good  fortune  to  bring 
him  safely  out  at  the  other  side.  Thus  delayed,  it  was 
long  before  he  felt  sure  that  he  was  safe. 

At  last  he  struck  into  a  narrow  pathway  leading 
north-west.  Proceeding  more  rapidly  along  this,  he  was 
brought,  after  walking  for  some  four  hours,  into  what  was 
apparently  the  highroad  along  which  he  had  passed  with 
Maryborough's  letter  about  ten  days  earlier.  He  was  very 
tired,  but  resolved  to  press  on  until  he  reached  a  village. 
Another  hour's  walk  brought  him  to  a  hamlet  with  a 
modest  Gasthaus.  He  knocked  up  the  landlord,  and  with 
some  difficulty  persuaded  the  suspicious  man  to  provide 
him  with  a  horse.  No  troops,  he  learnt,  had  passed 
through.  The  landlord  had  been  told  that  firing  had 
been  heard  among  the  hills  in  the  direction  of  Rauhstein ; 
he  did  not  understand  what  it  could  be,  for  the  castle  was 
in  the  possession  of  brigands,  and  he  did  not  think  the 
prince's  men  were  near  enough. 

Staying  at  the  inn  but  to  eat  a  little  food,  Fanshawe 
rode  on,  and  suddenly,  some  little  while  before  dawn, 
came  on  a  picket  of  four  men  upon  the  road.  He  was 
challenged;  the  speaker  was  evidently  a  German,  and  of 
German  Fanshawe  knew  not  enough  to  frame  a  sentence. 
He  tried  French ;  but  that  raised  the  sergeant's  suspicions  ; 
he  mentioned  the  names  of  Marlborough  and  Prince 
Eugene,  with  no  better  success;  and  he  was  marched  off 
under  guard  into  the  neighbouring  village. 

His  escort  halted  at  a  small  cottage,  and  the  sergeant 
entered.  Colonel  von  Stickstoff  was  in  bed.  He  was 
awakened,  but  the  colonel  was  nothing  if  not  a  stickler 
for  etiquette,  and  he  declined  to  see  Fanshawe  until  he 
had  made  some  preparations.  When  Fanshawe  was 

346 


Von  Stickstoff 

marched  in,  therefore,  he  found  himself  confronted  by  a 
short,  stout,  pompous  little  officer,  with  his  tunic  buttoned 
tight,  a  rug  across  his  knees,  which  were  guiltless  of 
breeches,  and  a  large  flaxen  wig  set  awry  over  his  night- 
cap. The  quarter-master  was  summoned,  and  an  interro- 
gation began. 

"  Who  are  you,  sir,  and  what  have  you  to  say  for  your- 
self?" asked  the  officer  in  German. 

Fanshawe  tried  to  explain  in  French,  of  which  he  had 
obtained  a  smattering. 

"  Ha!  You  are  a  Frenchman!  Take  that  down,  quarter- 
master. Everything  must  be  done  in  order." 

This  was  somewhat  embarrassing.  Fanshawe  might 
understand  the  German's  French,  but  he  must  necessarily 
be  ignorant  of  what  was  said  to  the  quarter-master  in 
German. 

"I  am  an  officer  in  my  lord  Marlborough's  army,"  he 
said  haltingly. 

"Take  that  down,  quarter-master.  A  Frenchman  in 
Lord  Marlborough's  army.  In  what  regiment,  Mon- 
sieur?" 

"In  Schomberg's  Horse." 

"Take  that  down.  Now,  Monsieur,  explain  to  me  how 
it  is  that  you,  a  Frenchman  in  Lord  Marlborough's  army, 
are  here,  ten  miles  from  his  camp  at  Gros  Heppach." 

This  was  good  and  unexpected  news.  Fanshawe  at 
once  proceeded  to  make  it  clear  that  he  was  an  English- 
man, then  explained  in  as  few  words  as  possible  whence 
he  had  come  and  the  urgency  of  his  mission. 

"Take  that  down,"  said  the  colonel,  translating  to  the 
quarter-master. 

The  man  wrote  slowly,  and  Fanshawe  was  growing 
more  and  more  restive. 

"  I  beg  you  to  note,  Monsieur,"  he  said,  "  that  while  we 
are  talking  Prince  Eugene's  men  are  possibly  being  mas- 
sacred by  the  brigands.  They  are  at  least  forty  to  one." 

"Ha!  Take  that  down.  The  enemy  is  in  force;  we 
must  adopt  every  precaution.  No  doubt  they  are  an  ad- 

347 


More   Stickstoff 

vance-guard  of  the   Elector's  army.     How  many  do  the 
enemy  number?" 

"Some  three  hundred." 

"Three  hundred! — And  I  have  only  two  hundred  and 
eighty -three.  We  are  outnumbered.  Take  that  down. 
We  must  arrange  a  postirung,  according  to  rule,  quarter- 
master ;  note  that,  strictly  according  to  rule.  I  will  write 
you  the  instructions.  Lieutenant  Spitzkopf  will  advance 
with  ten  men  three  hundred  and  twenty  paces  in  front  of 
our  position;  Lieutenant  the  Baron  von  Blindwurm  will 
post  himself  with  five  men  two  hundred  and  sixty  paces 
on  our  right  flank — or  is  it  two  hundred  and  forty?  Hand 
me  my  manual,  quarter-master." 

"There  is  a  swamp  there,  Excellency,"  suggested  the 
quarter-master  doubtfully. 

"Then  they  must  post  themselves  in  the  swamp.  A 
postirung  is  a  postirung;  let  there  be  no  mistake  about 
that.  Let  me  see ;  yes,  here  it  is :  page  one  hundred  and 
nine :  '  Superior  force :  detachment  in  presence  of,  what 
steps  to  take'.  Yes,  it  is  quite  clear;  we  must  secure  our 
position  and  send  for  reinforcements.  '  Send  for  rein- 
forcements ' :  that  is  it.  You  will  at  once  send  a  messenger 
to  Stuttgart ;  I  will  write  a  despatch  to  the  general  while 
he  is  saddling  up." 

Then  turning  to  Fanshawe  he  said : 

"  I  regret,  Monsieur,  that,  having  failed  to  give  the 
countersign,  you  must  consider  yourself  under  arrest  until 
your  bona  fides  is  established.  Quarter-master,  take  the 
prisoner  away ;  see  that  things  are  done  in  order,  and  be 
sure  to  wake  me  up  when  the  enemy  are  sighted." 

Fanshawe  protested,  but  the  colonel  was  evidently  im- 
patient to  get  back  to  bed,  and  waved  him  peremptorily 
away.  He  was  led  out  and  deprived  of  his  arms,  boiling 
with  anger,  and,  feeling  that  every  moment  was  of  impor- 
tance, in  a  state  of  desperation.  This  was  the  officer  to 
whom  Prince  Eugene  had  entrusted  the  urgent  task  of 
relieving  his  hard-beset  troopers!  The  confederate  camp 
was  only  ten  miles  distant;  if  only  he  could  find  some 

348 


The  Confederate  Camp 

means  of  sending  word  thither  of  the  dire  straits  in  which 
Harry  was! 

As  he  passed  along  the  street  with  his  escort,  he  saw 
a  number  of  horses  approaching,  apparently  from  being 
watered.  The  first,  a  fine  charger  lighter  in  build  than 
the  average  cavalry  horse  of  the  period,  was  led  by  a 
groom,  who  at  this  moment  tethered  the  animal  to  a 
post  a  few  yards  from  his  commandant's  cottage.  The 
trooper  into  whose  custody  Fanshawe  had  been  confided 
was  marching  on  his  right  hand,  carrying  not  only  his 
own  carbine  but  the  prisoner's  sword  and  pistols.  Fan- 
shawe saw  a  bare  chance  of  escape  and  unhesitatingly  took 
it.  With  a  sudden  movement  he  deftly  tripped  the  man  up, 
sprang  to  the  post,  unhitched  the  reins,  and  before  the 
onlookers  could  collect  their  scattered  wits  was  on  the 
horse's  back  and  twenty  yards  down  the  road.  There 
was  a  great  hubbub  behind  him;  fortunately  none  of  the 
troopers  was  at  that  time  armed.  Suddenly  he  bethought 
him  of  the  vedette  whom  the  extreme  caution  of  the  com- 
mandant had  doubtless  caused  to  be  posted  in  the  rear  of 
his  force.  He  might  come  upon  him  at  any  moment. 
Taking  the  first  turning  to  the  right  he  set  spurs  to  his 
steed,  dashed  along  a  lane,  leapt  a  fence,  and  plunged 
into  an  orchard.  From  his  study  of  the  map  previous  to 
his  ride  with  Marlborough's  message  he  remembered  that 
Gros  Heppach  lay  on  the  Goppingen  road,  to  the  north- 
east of  his  present  position.  If  he  could  strike  this  by 
a  path  over  the  hills  he  might  yet  succeed.  He  spurred 
on,  the  rising  sun  enabling  him  to  choose  the  easiest 
ground,  and  by  and  by  came  upon  a  rough  country  track 
leading  in  the  right  direction.  He  galloped  along  at 
break-neck  pace,  and  gaining  a  little  eminence,  his  eyes 
were  gladdened  by  the  sight  of  white  tents  dotting  the 
valley  some  three  miles  below  him. 

He  sped  down  the  hill,  and  soon  came  plump  upon  a 
Dutch  outpost,  which  had  evidently  seen  him  from  afar 
and  prepared  to  stop  him.  Reining  up,  he  asked  to  be 
taken  at  once  to  Lord  Marlborough.  The  Dutchman  did 

349 


The  Anspach  Dragoons 

not  insist  on  explanations,  recognizing  him  as  an  English 
officer,  but  sent  a  man  at  once  to  conduct  him  to  head- 
quarters. He  had  but  just  reached  the  outer  circle  of  the 
camp,  when  he  saw  Colonel  Cadogan  riding  slowly  along 
in  company  with  another  officer  whom  he  did  not  recognize. 
Without  hesitation  he  rode  up  to  the  colonel,  saluted,  and 
begged  to  be  allowed  a  word  with  him.  His  explanation 
was  soon  made,  and  to  his  surprise  Cadogan  burst  into  a 
great  laugh  and  cried  in  French : 

"This  concerns  your  highness.  The  troopers  who 
played  the  trick  on  the  brigands,  and  that  young  dare- 
devil Rochester,  are  trapped  in  a  castle." 

"  Nom  d'un  tonnerre ! "  cried  Prince  Eugene.  "  Are  they 
not  relieved?  I  ordered  a  detachment  of  Wiirtembergers 
to  ride  out  to  them  two  days  ago  as  I  passed  through 
Stuttgart.  What  has  become  of  them?" 

"It  appears,"  said  Cadogan,  still  laughing,  "that  they 
are  on  the  road,  but  the  colonel  is  learned  in  the  art  of  war 
and  is  advancing  by  strategical  moves." 

"Sacrebleu!  He  must  be  one  of  Baden's  men.  That 
young  countryman  of  yours,  Colonel,  must  be  saved." 

"Yes,  though  he  is  a  Dutchman  now.  Mr.  Fanshawe, 
your  friend's  regiment  is  close  by;  you  had  better  take 
a  squadron  and  ride  out  at  once.  I  suppose  a  troop  or 
two  of  Dutch  dragoons  will  be  a  match  for  the  brigands?" 

"Certainly,  sir,— of  the  Anspach  dragoons." 

"Very  well,  lose  no  time.  I  will  mention  the  matter  to 
the  duke,  to  whom  you  will,  of  course,  report  yourself  at 
the  earliest  opportunity.  Good  luck  to  you ! " 

Fanshawe  rode  off,  and  within  a  quarter  of  an  hour  was 
leading  some  two  hundred  of  Harry's  troopers,  Captain 
van  der  Werff  at  their  head,  and  Sherebiah  among  them, 
along  the  shortest  road  to  the  castle  of  Rauhstein. 

The  winding  staircase  of  the  keep  was  ampler  than  in 
most  castles  of  the  kind.  Two  men  could  mount  abreast, 
but  it  was  only  possible  for  one  to  find  room  for  sword- 
play.  The  attackers  soon  adapted  their  tactics  to  the 

35° 


At  the  Sword  Point 

conditions.  One  man  pushed  to  the  front  with  sword  and 
pistol ;  another  just  behind  supported  him  with  pistol  and 
pike.  Not  long-  after  Harry  came  upon  the  scene,  Buckley, 
all  but  sinking  under  the  strain,  had  to  be  assisted  up  the 
staircase.  This  gave  the  brigands  a  momentary  advan- 
tage, for  Harry  was  left  with  only  one  swordsman  to  stem 
the  rush.  There  was  no  room  for  his  companion  by  his 
side ;  he  therefore  sent  him  aloft  to  bring  large  stones  to 
hurl  upon  the  mob.  Not  for  the  first  time  he  had  reason 
to  congratulate  himself  on  the  hours  he  had  spent  with 
Sherebiah  and  the  Dutch  instructor  of  his  regiment  in 
practising  with  sabre  and  rapier.  His  was  the  advantage 
of  position,  but  the  enemy  were  always  two  to  'one,  and 
had  they  had  patience  to  recharge  their  pistols  after  the 
failure  of  their  first  flurried  snap-shots,  or  boldness  enough 
to  press  forward  regardless  of  the  loss  of  the  first  few 
men,  they  could  have  borne  him  down  with  ease. 

Only  a  few  minutes  had  elapsed  after  Harry's  arrival  at 
the  stairhead  when  he  heard  a  well-known  voice  storming 
below.  The  enemy  gave  back  for  a  moment,  then  Captain 
Aglionby  pressed  upward  and  engaged  Harry  hand  to 
hand.  Harry  was  sufficiently  occupied  in  parrying  the 
captain's  vengeful  attack  without  the  necessity  of  guard- 
ing against  the  pike  that  threatened  every  moment  to 
impale  him.  This  he  could  only  turn  aside;  he  had  no 
time  for  a  sweeping  cut  to  sever  its  head.  Fortunately 
for  him  the  captain  and  his  supporter  impeded  each  other 
on  the  stairway.  Yet  Harry  saw  that  the  struggle  could 
not  last  long,  and  fervently  hoped  that  the  man  he  had 
sent  for  missiles  would  return  in  time.  The  clang  of 
weapons  and  the  shouts  of  men  rang  through  the  stone- 
walled spaces.  Aglionby  had  learnt  from  the  released 
prisoners  of  the  trick  that  had  been  played  upon  him,  and 
his  fury  found  expression  in  the  violence  of  his  onslaught 
and  the  venom  of  the  curses  he  hurled  upon  his  nimble- 
wristed  opponent.  Harry  said  never  a  word,  but  kept  his 
eye  steadily  upon  the  captain,  turning  aside  stroke  and 
thrust. 


A   Brief  Respite 


At  length  he  heard  a  footstep  behind  him.  A  stone 
as  large  as  a  man's  head  struck  the  wall  immediately 
below  him  on  his  left.  Narrowly  missing-  Aglionby,  it 
rebounded  from  the  curved  surface  and  struck  the  pikeman 
below  him  with  a  terrible  thud.  With  the  steadiness  of 
an  old  campaigner  the  captain  did  not  so  much  as  wince, 
but  continued  his  attack  with  still  more  savage  energy. 
When,  however,  another  stone  hurtled  down  the  stairway, 
maiming  two  other  men  below  him,  the  rest  of  his  followers 
turned  tail  and  fled  helter-skelter  to  the  foot.  A  third 
stone  grazed  Aglionby's  arm;  then,  seeing  himself  deserted, 
he  backed  slowly  down  the  stairs. 

The  attack  having  been  thus  for  a  time  repulsed,  Harry 
left  two  men  on  the  stairs  with  pistols  ready  charged  and 
a  supply  of  stones,  and  hurried  across  to  the  other  stair- 
case to  find  how  things  had  gone  there.  It  was  with 
unutterable  relief  he  saw  that  the  assault  of  the  enemy 
on  the  entrance  to  the  keep  had  so  far  been  beaten  off 
by  the  combined  fire  from  the  doorway  and  the  hurling 
of  heavy  blocks  of  stone  from  the  top  of  the  building. 
But  the  enemy  were  preparing  another  move.  Finding 
that  they  could  not  force  the  obstacle,  nor  approach  near 
enough  to  tear  it  down,  they  were  about  to  try  the  effect 
of  an  explosion.  A  keg  of  powder  had  been  rolled  to  the 
entrance  by  a  lucky  rush  between  the  falling  of  two  of 
the  dreaded  stones  from  above ;  now,  hugging  the  wall  so 
as  to  avoid  the  fire  of  the  defenders,  they  were  laying  a 
train. 

Harry  saw  that  it  was  only  a  matter  of  minutes  before 
the  barricade  at  the  entrance:  to  the  keep  would  be  blown 
in.  He  utilized  the  time  by  bringing  down  a  further  supply 
of  stones  from  the  battlements  and  storing  them  within 
easy  reach  of  the  inner  stairway.  He  could  not  prevent 
the  explosion,  or  raise  further  obstacles  to  the  progress  of 
the  besiegers ;  he  could  but  defend  every  inch  of  the  stair- 
case, and  retreat,  if  it  must  be  so,  step  by  step  to  the 
top  of  the  keep.  Almost  despairing  now  of  relief,  he  was 
prepared  to  fight  to  the  end,  and,  looking  round  on  his  little 

352 


The   Fight  on  the  Stairs 

group  of  stalwarts,  he  saw  no  sign  of  wavering  on  their 
part.  Eugene's  men  were  worthy  of  their  master. 

Half  an  hour  passed;  the  pause  lengthened  itself  to 
an  hour;  yet  the  train  had  not  been  fired,  the  attack  had 
not  been  renewed.  Had  the  enemy  some  still  more  des- 
perate device  in  preparation?  Instinctively  he  looked  far 
out  over  the  country;  but  through  the  sun-shot  haze  he 
descried  no  sign  of  a  friendly  force.  Then  the  watchman 
whom  he  had  left  on  the  roof  saw  a  thin  ribbon  of  flame 
dart  from  the  outer  gateway,  along  the  wall,  to  the  barred 
doorway  of  the  keep.  There  was  a  deafening  roar,  fol- 
lowed by  the  crash  of  ruining  stone-work  and  the  voci- 
ferations of  the  exultant  forayers,  who  swarmed  forward 
to  clear  away  the  rubbish.  Their  ingenuity  was  inex- 
haustible. When  the  mingled  smoke  and  dust  had  eddied 
away,  Harry  saw  that  they  bore  with  them  stout  shields 
of  wood,  each  carried  by  two  men,  intended  to  ward  off 
the  missiles  he  was  preparing  to  launch  upon  them  as 
they  mounted  the  winding  stairs.  This  was  the  explana- 
tion of  their  long  stillness.  Running  down,  he  heard  from 
his  left  the  din  of  fierce  strife  in  the  stairway  leading  to 
the  dungeons.  The  enemy  were  attacking  at  both  points 
simultaneously. 

Then  began  the  last  bitter  struggle :  the  besiegers  push- 
ing relentlessly  before  them  the  long  upright  shields  that 
occupied  almost  the  whole  height  and  breadth  of  the  stair- 
way; the  besieged  contesting  every  step,  hacking  and 
thrusting,  splitting  the  shields  with  the  jagged  boulders 
from  the  ramparts,  lunging  with  sword  and  pike  through 
the  narrow  spaces  at  the  sides,  yet  moment  by  moment 
losing  ground  as  fresh  men  from  below  came  up  to  replace 
their  wounded  or  exhausted  comrades.  A  din  compounded 
of  many  separate  noises  filled  the  narrow  space — the  crash 
of  stones,  the  creak  of  riven  wood,  the  clash  of  steel  upon 
steel  or  stone,  the  crack  of  pistols,  the  cries  of  men  in 
various  tongues — cries  of  pain,  of  triumph,  of  encourage- 
ment, of  revenge.  Desperately  fought  the  little  garrison, 
every  man  loyal,  resolute,  undismayed.  They  had  no 

353 


The  Last  Stand 

reserves  to  draw  upon ;  theirs  but  to  stand  staunch  against 
fearful  odds,  and,  if  it  must  be,  die  with  courage  and  clear 
minds.  With  labouring  breath,  drenched  with  sweat, 
sickened  by  the  reek,  battle-worn  and  weary,  they  plied 
their  weapons,  hurled  their  missiles,  grimly  gave  blow  for 
blow.  Back  and  ever  back  they  were  driven  by  the  re- 
morseless shields;  forced  from  the  lower  stairways  they 
are  now  collected — a  little  band  of  seven — on  the  single 
one  above ;  Harry  and  Max  in  front,  two  pikemen  behind, 
and  behind  these,  three  who  turn  by  turn  smite  the  mass 
thronging  below,  over  the  heads  of  their  own  comrades, 
with  cyclopean  masses  which  only  the  strength  of  despair 
enables  them  to  lift  and  hurl.  Now  a  stone  crashes  clean 
through  one  shield,  ay,  through  two,  making  its  account 
of  the  bearers,  and  giving  pause  to  the  brigands.  Now 
a  pike  transfixes  a  limb,  a  sword  cleaves  a  red  path,  a 
bullet  carries  death.  But  the  enemy  press  on  and  up; 
like  an  incoming  tide  they  roll  back  a  little  after  every 
upward  rush,  rising,  falling,  yet  ever  creeping  higher,  soon 
to  sweep  all  before  them. 

Now  only  six  men  hold  the  narrow  stair.  The  dimness 
of  the  scarce  lit  space  below  is  illumined  from  above ;  a 
yell  of  triumph  breaks  from  the  brigands'  throats  as  they 
realize  that  they  are  nearing  the  top  of  the  turret.  The  cry 
is  like  a  knell  to  the  hearts  of  Harry  Rochester  and  his 
devoted  five.  Only  a  few  steps,  and  they  must  be  forced 
upon  the  roof,  driven  against  the  parapet,  at  bay  to  the 
horde  of  wolvish  outlaws  already  exulting  in  their  vic- 
tory. Aglionby  has  gone,  sore  hurt  by  a  thrust  from  a 
pike ;  but  a  doughty  leader  is  still  left,  the  lithe  Frenchman 
whose  peacock's  feather  flickers  hither  and  thither  in  the 
van.  Mechanically  the  defenders  wield  their  weapons, 
cast  their  last  stones ;  the  force  is  gone  from  their  strokes, 
their  dints  fall  ever  feebler  and  feebler  upon  the  steel- 
edged  wooden  wall  that  thrusts  them  upward  without 
mitigation  or  remorse.  Never  a  man  dreams  of  yielding; 
Buckley  falteringly  whispers  a  word  of  final  cheer;  there 
is  no  mercy  for  such  obstinate  fighters  from  the  savage 

354 


The  Anspachers 


outlaws,   afire  with    the  lust  of  blood,   infuriated  by  the 
checks  and  losses  of  the  past  desperate  days. 

They  are  at  the  upmost  turn  of  the  stairway  now,  their 
heads  already  in  the  pure  clear  air  of  the  bright  June 
morning.  The  imminence  of  the  end  nerves  them  for  a 
last  despairing  rally.  Through  the  gaping  joints  of  the 
battered  shields  they  make  so  sudden  and  trenchant  an 
attack  on  the  foe  that  for  a  brief  moment  the  upward 
movement  is  checked.  A  rebound:  already  the  feathered 
Frenchman  leaps  upward  as  on  the  crest  of  a  wave,  when 
a  confused  shout  reverberates  through  the  hollow  turret, 
a  message  is  sped  with  the  rapidity  of  lightning  from  base 
to  summit ;  all  is  hushed  to  a  sudden  silence ;  then,  while 
the  six  stand  in  amazed  stillness,  the  Frenchman  swings 
round  and,  amid  the  clatter  of  wood  and  weapons,  flees 
headlong  down  the  stairs  at  the  heels  of  his  scurrying 
comrades.  Bewilderment  for  a  moment  possesses  the  six, 
as,  with  the  vision  of  death  before  their  eyes,  they  rest 
heavily  on  their  weapons.  Then  Buckley,  nearest  to  the 
parapet,  with  a  shout  that  breaks  into  a  sob,  cries: 

"They  flee!  they  flee!" 

Three  bounds  bring  Harry  to  his  side.  With  elbows  on 
the  parapet  he  gazes  hungrily  into  the  open.  The  four 
press  about  him.  Between  the  castle  and  the  copse  men 
are  scampering  like  scared  animals,  a  few  on  horseback, 
most  of  them  on  foot.  And  yes — in  the  distance,  moving 
across  the  hills  from  the  north-west,  —  what  is  it  that 
causes  Harry's  heart  to  leap,  his  blood  to  sing  a  song  of 
tempestuous  joy  in  every  vein?  One  look  is  enough;  he 
cannot  be  deceived;  in  the  horsemen  galloping  amain  to- 
wards him  he  recognizes  his  own  regiment,  the  Anspach 
dragoons.  One  moment  of  self-collection:  then  he  turns 
to  his  men. 

"  We  are  saved,  my  men,"  he  says  quietly. 

And  from  the  parched  throats  of  the  five  war-scarred 
warriors  on  that  ancient  keep  rises  a  hoarse  thin  cheer, 
that  floats  away  on  the  breeze,  and  meets  the  faint  blare 
of  a  bugle. 

35S 


CHAPTER  XXIII 

Blenheim 

NEVER  a  more  cordial  meeting  took  place  between  friends 
than  the  meeting  of  Harry  with  Godfrey  Fanshawe. 
The  latter,  with  Sherebiah,  rode  straight  for  the  castle, 
while  Captain  van  der  Werff  and  his  dragoons  swept  upon 
the  scattered  forayers,  exacting  a  terrible  retribution  from 
all  within  reach  of  their  sabres.  The  moment  when  the 
friends  met  in  the  courtyard  was  too  tense  for  speech. 
Buckley,  weaker  than  the  others  after  his  imprisonment, 
almost  sobbed ;  Eugene's  three  dragoons  sat  down  on  the 
flagstones  and,  resting  their  heads  on  their  crossed  arms, 
sought  the  blessed  oblivion  of  sleep.  Harry's  overwrought 
body  was  all  a-quiver;  his  trembling  lips  stammered  out 
broken  and  inconsequent  phrases;  and  Fanshawe  wisely 
left  him  to  Sherebiah's  tendance. 

It  was  not  till  much  later  in  the  day  that  the  story  of  the 
siege  was  told.  Harry's  fellow-officers  were  unstinted  in 
their  admiration  of  his  pluck  and  resourcefulness.  He  on 
his  side  was  provoked  to  mirth  by  Fanshawe's  story  of  the 
methodical  Colonel  von  Stickstoff,  though  he  was  serious 
enough  when,  turning  to  his  friend,  he  thanked  him 
earnestly  for  what  he  had  done  to  hasten  the  relief. 

When  Captain  van  der  WerfT  arrived,  he  made  a 
thorough  search  through  the  castle,  and  discovered  in  the 
cellars  a  large  and  motley  collection  of  plunder  gathered 
by  the  outlaws.  There  were  costly  church  ornaments, 
bullion,  pictures,  pieces  of  tapestry,  jewelry,  arms,  clothes, 
articles  of  furniture,  but  no  plate;  this,  he  concluded,  had 
been  melted  down  to  avoid  the  risk  of  discovery.  In  the 
dungeon  was  found  the  shattered  body  of  the  landlord  of 


Compromising  Papers 

the  Zum  grauen  Baren,  killed  by  the  explosion  engineered 
by  his  own  friends.  Harry  could  not  but  reflect  on  the 
nemesis  which  had  pursued  this  man  of  crooked  ways. 

Preparations  were  made  in  the  late  afternoon  for  riding- 
back  to  the  confederate  camp.  Many  of  the  stricken 
brigands  had  surrendered  to  Captain  van  der  Werff's 
dragoons,  and  were  escorted  into  Urach  to  be  dealt  with 
by  the  civil  authorities.  At  Harry's  suggestion  the  bodies 
of  the  slain  were  examined  by  Sherebiah,  to  see  if  Aglionby 
was  among  them ;  but  he  was  not  recognized ;  it  was 
probable  that  he  had  escaped.  Before  the  castle  was  finally 
deserted,  Aglionby's  room  was  searched.  In  a  wallet 
beneath  his  bed  a  large  number  of  papers  was  found,  con- 
sisting of  letters,  tavern  bills,  private  memoranda,  gazettes, 
and  a  parchment  conferring  the  rank  of  captain  in  the  dra- 
goons of  the  Elector  of  Bavaria  upon  Ralph  Aglionby,  late 
of  the  Preobrashenski  regiment  of  his  imperial  majesty  of 
Muscovy. 

Harry  looked  through  all  these  papers  himself,  hoping  to 
find  some  clue  to  the  inveterate  animosity  of  Mr.  Berkeley. 
But  though  he  was  disappointed  in  this,  he  discovered 
three  papers  which  seemed  to  him  of  particular  interest, 
and  which  he  kept  carefully  apart  from  the  others.  The 
first  was  a  brief  note  in  French  from  Monsieur  de  Polignac, 
written  from  the  head-quarters  of  Marshal  Tallard,  con- 
gratulating Aglionby  on  his  commission  in  the  Bavarian 
forces,  and  asking  him  to  meet  the  writer  as  soon  as  cir- 
cumstances permitted.  From  this  Harry  concluded  either 
that  Polignac  had  not  been  concerned  in  the  attempt  to 
drown  Aglionby  in  the  Merk,  or  that  he  was  a  man  of 
consummate  and  unblushing  duplicity. 

The  second  was  a  letter  from  Mr.  Berkeley  himself, 
written  long  before.  The  squire  spoke  of  enclosing 

money,    and    referred    to    the    matter   of    H R , 

hoping  that  the  captain  would  make  a  better  job  of  this 

commission  than  with  the  M M ,  by  which  Harry 

understood  the  name  of  the  vessel  that  had  carried  him 
down  the  Thames.  The  letter  continued: 

357 


A  Jacobite  Agent 


"  I  shall  require  of  you  cleare  proofe  of  your  profess'd  Zeale  in 
my  service  before  I  despatch  any  further  Remittance.  It  will 
beseem  e  you  to  send  me  an  Attested  Copie  of  such  Forme  of 
Certificate  as  is  usual  in  Holland.  Let  nothing  stande  in  the 
way  of  this  moste  necessarie  Document;  I  doubt  not  that 
among  the  Notable  People  with  whom  you  at  present  consorte 
there  will  be  founde  a  respectable  Attorney  to  whom  the  Busi- 
nesse  may  be  with  suretie  confided." 

This  letter  left  no  possibility  of  doubt  that  Mr.  Berkeley 
was  prepared  to  stick  at  nothing  to  remove  Harry;  but  it 
threw  no  light  on  his  motive,  and  Harry  was  as  much 
perplexed  as  ever. 

The  third  of  the  papers  was  a  letter  from  a  certain 
Anne  Consterdine  in  Westminster,  addressed  to  Aglionby 
at  the  Hague. 

"This  is  to  advise  you",  it  ran,  "that  the  Packett  from 
M.  de  P —  -  despatch'd  by  the  hands  of  the  Honnest  Captin 
came  safely  to  my  hands.  The  Grattification  that  you  use  to 
recieve  will  be  pay'd  to  you  at  the  same  Place  as  afore.  I  am 

bid  by  the  Friende  at  St.  J to  say  that  besides  this  your 

Name  &  Services  have  been  noted  with  a  speciall  Marke,  &  will 
be  rewarded  with  all  Rightfull  Diligence  when  the  Good  Shippe 
you  wot  of  comes  safe  to  Port." 

To  Harry  this  letter  was  a  mere  enigma ;  it  bore  no 
special  significance ;  but  he  gained  enlightenment  when 
he  showed  it  to  Fanshawe.  That  young  man  was  three 
years  older  than  Harry,  and  had  moved  in  a  more  varied 
society. 

"By  Jove!"  he  exclaimed,  on  reading  the  letter,  "your 
friend  Aglionby  has  many  irons  in  the  fire.  'Tis  clear  he 
is  a  go-between,  and  the  correspondence,  being  betwixt 
Westminster  and  the  Hague,  can  mean  but  one  thing. 
The  'good  ship',  too — what  can  that  be  but  the  ship 
that  is  to  convey  the  Pretender  to  England  to  assume 
his  father's  crown?  Your  Aglionbys  and  Polignacs  are 
Jacobites,  Harry ;  there  will  be  another  bone  to  pick  with 
them." 

The  plunder  was  packed  into  Prince  Eugene's  coach; 

358 


Praise  from  Eugene 

the  wounded  dragoons  were  set  on  horseback  and  taken 
into  Urach  for  treatment.  Then,  after  the  destruction  of 
what  ammunition  remained  in  the  castle,  Harry  rode  with 
his  comrades  and  Eugene's  three  dragoons  from  the  me- 
morable scene,  and  before  sundown  entered  the  confederate 
camp  at  Gros  Heppach.  The  news  of  their  coming  had 
been  already  spread  by  a  man  riding  in  advance,  and  their 
entry  was  made  amid  the  clamour  of  thousands  of  shouting 
men  and  drums  and  fifes.  In  a  sort  of  triumph  Harry  was 
escorted  to  head-quarters,  where,  in  the  presence  of  Marl- 
borough  and  Eugene  and  officers  of  their  staffs,  he  had  to 
tell  over  the  story  of  the  ruse  and  the  subsequent  siege. 
He  remembered  afterwards  how  differently  the  two  great 
generals  had  heard  him.  Prince  Eugene  ever  and  anon 
broke  into  exclamations,  slapped  the  table,  crossed  and 
uncrossed  his  legs,  was  up  and  down,  restless  and  excited. 
Marlborough  listened  throughout  with  the  same  tranquil 
attentiveness,  scarce  moving,  saying  never  a  word.  When 
the  story  was  ended,  Eugene  cried  impetuously  : 

"  Ma  foi,  my  lord,  this  is  a  lad  of  mettle.  He  has  done 
right  worthily,  and  merits  much  at  our  hands.  For  my- 
self, I  beg  him  to  accept  at  once  this  ring;  you  did  me  a 
gallant  service,  Monsieur,  and  it  will  not  displease  you  to 
wear  as  a  token  of  my  thanks  a  ring  from  the  finger  of 
Eugenic  von  Savoye." 

"I  add  my  thanks  to  his  Excellency's,"  said  Marl- 
borough  quietly.  "  If  I  mistake  not,  my  secretary  already 
has  your  name  on  a  list  for  advancement ;  it  is  a  long  list, 
but  no  name  has  more  merit  than  yours.  You  will  see  to 
it,  Mr.  Cardonnel,  that  Mr.  Rochester  is  not  overlooked." 

"  Parbleu,  my  lord!"  exclaimed  Eugene,  "I  am  for 
speedier  measures.  The  lad  is  an  officer  of  Dutch  dra- 
goons, I  believe.  I  ask  for  his  services  as  aide-de-camp  to 
myself;  and,  ma  foi,  I  give  him  a  commission  in  my  own 
hussars.  Monsieur,  you  will  not  object  to  the  transfer?" 

"Your  Excellency  does  me  too  much  honour,"  said 
Harry,  his  breath  almost  taken  away  by  such  good  for- 
tune. 

(  B  357 )  359  *  A 


A  Contrast 

"That  is  settled  then,  with  my  Lord  Marlborough's 
consent?" 

"  I  have  no  objection,  your  Excellency.  And  the  young 
man  could  not  be  in  better  hands." 

"Then  I  will  see  your  colonel,  Monsieur,  and  the  matter 
shall  be  arranged  as  speedily  as  possible." 

Harry  felt  some  natural  elation  at  this  surprising  change 
in  his  fortunes.  He  was  a  little  amused,  too,  to  think  that 
this  was  the  third  time  he  had  come  under  Marlborough's 
notice,  and  each  time  the  benevolent  intentions  of  the  duke 
had  been  anticipated.  He  could  not  but  contrast  Prince 
Eugene's  impetuous  generosity  with  Marlborough's  placid 
goodwill;  it  was  not  till  long  afterwards  that  he  under- 
stood what  obstacles  lay  in  the  duke's  way.  Marlborough 
was  continually  being  pestered  with  applications  from 
people  of  importance  at  home  on  behalf  of  their  friends 
and  connections ;  and  in  the  then  state  of  politics  he  could 
not  afford  to  set  aside  the  requests  of  those  whose  support 
he  was  so  deeply  concerned  in  retaining.  Harry  never 
had  reason  to  doubt  the  kindness  of  Marlborough's  feeling 
towards  him,  and  as  he  gained  knowledge  of  the  complex 
intrigues  in  which  the  public  men  of  those  days  were 
enmeshed,  he  thought  of  the  duke  without  bitterness. 

Before  many  days  he  was  gazetted  captain  in  the  Im- 
perial service,  and  left  his  regiment  to  join  Prince  Eugene. 
His  departure  was  signalized  by  a  banquet  got  up  by  his 
fellow-officers,  at  which  he  was  embarrassed  by  the  many 
complimentary  things  said  of  him.  He  parted  from  his 
old  comrades  with  regret,  tempered  by  delight  at  the 
prospect  of  close  service  with  the  great  general  who  had 
so  highly  honoured  him. 

Since  his  return  to  camp,  he  had  remarked  a  strange  and 
unaccustomed  moodiness  in  Sherebiah.  The  worthy  fellow 
went  about  his  duties  with  his  usual  care  and  punctuality, 
but  he  was  abnormally  silent,  seldom  smiled  or  hummed 
country  songs  as  he  had  been  wont  to  do,  and  appeared 
to  be  in  a  state  of  chronic  antagonism  to  Max  Berens, 
whom  Harry  had  taken  as  additional  servant  since  their 

360 


Sherebiah   Resigns 


adventure  together.  Harry  affected  to  ignore  Sherebiah's 
change  of  manner;  but  in  reality  it  amused  him,  and  he 
was  in  constant  expectation  of  something  that  would  bring 
matters  to  a  crisis. 

One  morning  Max  came  to  him  in  a  state  of  exaltation. 
Prince  Eugene,  unwilling  that  a  man  who  had  worn  his 
clothes  to  such  good  purpose  should  remain  unrewarded, 
had  not  only  presented  him  with  the  suit,  but  had  pur- 
chased for  him  the  Zum  grauen  Baren  on  the  Urach  road. 
Max  said  he  was  loth  to  leave  his  new  master,  but  could 
not  throw  away  so  good  a  chance  of  settling  in  life,  and 
added  that  as  Mr.  Rochester's  Englishman  apparently  dis- 
liked him,  the  prince's  gift  had  come  most  opportunely. 

Max  had  hardly  left  Harry's  presence  when  Sherebiah  en- 
tered. He  doffed  his  cap  and  fingered  it  uncomfortably,  his 
usually  cheery  face  wearing  a  portentously  lugubrious  look. 

"Well,  Sherry,  what  is  it?"  asked  Harry. 

"  Well,  'tis  like  this,  sir.  'Tis  a  sayen,  a'  b'lieve,  when 
in  Rome  do  as  the  rum  uns  do.  These  be  furren  parts, 
and  there  be  furren  ways  o'  doen  things.  Seems  like  now 
as  if  I  bean't  no  more  use,  and  I've  been  a-chawen  of  it 
over,  and  the  end  on't  is,  I  be  come  to  axe  'ee  kindly  to  gi' 
me  my  discharge,  sir." 

"  Indeed,  Sherry!  you  surprise  me." 

"You  see,  sir,  I  be  nowt  but  a  Englishman, — a  poor 
honest  Wiltshire  man;  you  can't  make  a  silk  purse  out  o' 
a  sow's  ear,  and  nothen'll  make  a  furrener  out  of  a  home- 
spun countryman." 

"That's  true  enough,  Sherry,  but  you're  right  as  you 
are." 

"  Nay,  sir,  axen  your  pardon.  True,  I  ha'  still  got  a  bit 
o'  muscle,  and  can  handle  a  sword  featly;  but  I'm  afeard 
I  can't  brush  a  coat  nor  fold  a  pair  of  breeches  like  a 
furrener,  let  alone  wearen  on  'em.  Zooks !  suppose  a  man 
do  get  inside  of  a  high  prince's  goodly  raiment,  do  it  make 
un  a  whit  the  better  man? — I  axe  'ee  that,  sir.  Many's 
the  time  I've  seed  a  noble  coat  on  a  scarecrow  in  a  turmut- 
field,  sir." 

361 


Foreign  Ways 


Harry  remembered  that  of  late  Max  had  made  the  care 
of  his  clothes  his  special  province. 

"  Furren  ways  and  furreners,"  continued  Sherebiah, 
"  I  can't  abide  'em,  and  but  for  bein'  a  man  o'  peace  I'd 
find  it  main  hard  to  keep  my  hands  off  'em,  be  they  in 
prince's  fine  linen  or  their  own  nat'ral  smalls,  sir." 

"You  don't  like  foreigners,  eh? — Katrinka,  eh?" 

Sherebiah  was  nonplussed  for  a  moment,  but  recovered 
himself  with  his  usual  readiness. 

"  Ay,  but  there's  a  deal  in  the  bringen  up,  sir.  You  can 
break  a  colt,  and  tame  wild  beasts,  and  make  summat  o' 
crabs  wi'  graften.  Katrinka  be  a  young  wench,  and  teach- 
able ;  bless  'ee,  I've  teached  her  how  to  fry  a  rasher  and 
make  a  roly-poly ;  her  be  half  Wiltshire  a'ready,  and  sings 
the  song  o'  turmut-hoein'  like  a  bird.  And  'tis  my  thought, 
sir,  bein'  discharged,  to  have  our  names  cried  and  do  the 
lifelong  deed,  and  goo  home-along  and  bide  wi'  feyther." 

"  Well,  if  your  mind's  set  on  it,  I  suppose  I  must  be 
content  to  lose  you  both." 

Sherebiah  ceased  twiddling  his  cap  and  looked  startled. 

"  Both,  sir! — did  I  rightly  hear  'ee  say  both?" 

"Yes,  you  and  Max." 

"  Hoy!  be  it  the  holy  state  o'  matrimony  wi'  he  too?" 

"  I  shouldn't  wonder.  Prince  Eugene  has  made  him  a 
present  of  the  Zum  grauen  Daren  inn,  and  he'll  want  a 
wife  to  help  him." 

Sherebiah  looked  thoughtfully  at  the  floor. 

"The  striplen  be  a  good  enough  feller,"  he  said  slowly. 
"Barren  his  furren  blood,  which  he  couldn't  help,  poor 
soul,  he  bean't  a  bad  feller.  He  looks  uncommon  spry  in 
the  prince's  noble  garments — ay,  he  do  so." 

Sherebiah  paused,  and  began  to  twiddle  his  cap  again. 
Harry  waited  patiently. 

"  I'm  a-thinken,  sir,  'twould  be  onbecomen  in  a  Wiltshire 
man  to  let  his  duty  goo  by,  in  furren  parts  an'  all.  Bean't 
in  reason  for  both  to  take  our  discharge  all  o'  a  heap,  and 
if  the  young  man  Max  goos,  I  bides,  leastways  till  'ee  set 
eyes  on  a  plain  Wiltshire  man  as  'ee'll  fancy  better." 

362 


A   Divided  Command 

"Well,  that's  all  right,  Sherry.  Now  I  think  the  best 
thing  you  can  do  is  to  go  and  wish  Max  good  luck." 

He  could  not  help  smiling  at  Sherebiah's  obvious  relief 
at  the  turn  things  had  taken.  Sherebiah  heaved  a  deep 
sigh;  then,  as  he  observed  Harry's  amused  expression,  a 
broad  grin  overspread  his  features,  and  he  moved  away. 

With  the  arrival  of  Prince  Eugene  the  campaign  entered 
upon  a  new  phase.  Dissimilar  as  they  were  in  character 
and  temperament,  the  prince  and  the  duke  at  once  became 
fast  friends.  Eugene  not  merely  fell  under  the  spell  of 
Marlborough's  personal  force  of  character;  he  recognized 
his  transcendent  genius,  and  threw  himself  with  enthusi- 
asm into  his  plans.  Unluckily,  the  Prince  of  Baden  was 
a  man  of  a  different  stamp.  He  was  a  soldier  of  the  old 
school,  brave  as  a  lion,  but  wanting  in  judgment,  cautious, 
methodical,  a  stickler  for  form.  He  joined  the  others  in 
counsel  at  Gros  Heppach,  and  being  the  eldest  in  rank 
expected  that  they  would  yield  him  the  chief  command. 
But  the  execution  of  their  plan,  so  daringly  conceived, 
demanded  qualities  he  did  not  possess,  and  Marlborough 
had  to  exercise  all  the  tact  and  patience  of  which  he  was 
so  consummate  a  master.  With  much  difficulty  he  per- 
suaded the  prince  to  share  the  command  with  him  on 
alternate  days,  but  not  all  his  diplomacy  availed  to  induce 
him  to  depart  for  the  Rhine  army.  He  insisted  on  remain- 
ing with  Marlborough  on  the  Danube,  and  Eugene  had 
reluctantly  to  accept  the  other  charge.  On  the  i4th  of 
June,  therefore,  Eugene  left  for  Philipsburg,  to  watch 
Marshal  Tallard,  who  was  marching  along  the  Rhine  to 
join  forces  with  the  Elector  of  Bavaria.  Harry  accom- 
panied him. 

Then  began  a  fortnight  of  wearisome  marching,  in  cold 
and  rainy  weather.  The  Elector  of  Bavaria  was  by  this 
time  aware  that  Marlborough's  design  was  to  attack  him, 
and  in  order  to  cover  his  dominions  and  check  the  con- 
federate army  until  the  expected  reinforcements  reached 
him  he  sent  General  D'Arco  to  occupy  the  Schellenberg, 
a  height  commanding  Donauworth,  on  the  north  bank  of 

363 


The  Duke's  Day 


the  Danube.  Hearing  from  Eugene  that  Tallard  and 
Villeroy  were  at  Strasburg  organizing  these  reinforce- 
ments, Marlborough  decided  immediately  to  attack  the 
Schellenberg.  It  happened  to  be  his  turn  of  command ; 
he  knew  that  if  the  day  was  allowed  to  pass  Baden  would 
find  reasons  for  postponing  the  attempt,  and  after  a  hard 
march  he  threw  his  weary  troops  upon  the  position  and 
carried  it  with  heavy  loss  against  an  obstinate  defence. 

A  diplomatic  attempt  to  detach  the  Elector  from  his 
alliance  with  France  having  failed,  Bavaria,  now  open 
to  the  confederates,  was  put  to  fire  and  sword.  Marl- 
borough,  one  of  the  humanest  generals  that  ever  lived, 
refused  to  allow  his  own  forces  to  engage  in  the  work  of 
burning  and  pillage,  and  did  his  utmost  to  restrain  the 
excesses  of  the  German  soldiery. 

Eugene  meanwhile,  having  failed  to  prevent  the  junction 
of  Tallard  with  Marsin  and  the  Elector  of  Bavaria,  paid 
a  hurried  visit  to  Marlborough  at  his  camp  at  Sandizell  to 
concert  operations  against  the  now  formidable  enemy. 
Luckily,  Prince  Louis  of  Baden  agreed  to  lay  siege  to 
Ingolstadt,  and  his  colleagues  were  relieved  of  the  presence 
of  one  whose  captious  temper  was  a  continual  stumbling- 
block. 

During  Eugene's  absence  news  reached  his  camp  that 
the  enemy  were  hastening  towards  Lauingen  with  a  design 
to  cross  the  Danube.  Harry  was  despatched  to  Sandizell 
with  this  important  information.  He  met  the  prince  on 
the  road  back;  the  latter  immediately  returned  to  Marl- 
borough,  who  decided  to  reinforce  him,  and  moved  his 
own  camp  to  Schonefelt,  nearer  the  Danube,  in  order  to  be 
able  to  co-operate  with  him  should  occasion  arise.  Late 
at  night  on  Sunday,  August  10,  Eugene  sent  word  to 
Marlborough  that  the  enemy  had  crossed  the  river  at 
Lauingen.  Marching  out  at  once  he  joined  the  prince, 
and  early  on  Tuesday  morning  they  went  towards  Hoch- 
stadt,  where  they  intended  to  make  their  camp.  On  a 
hill  two  miles  east  of  that  town  they  caught  sight  of  some 
squadrons  of  the  enemy.  Not  knowing  whether  this  was 

364 


The  Field  of  Battle 

merely  a  reconnoitring  party  or  the  advance-guard  of  the 
main  force,  the  two  generals  mounted  the  church  tower 
of  Dapf  heim,  and  through  their  glasses  saw  that  the  whole 
army  of  the  enemy  was  in  full  march  in  their  direction, 
and  that  a  camp  was  being  marked  out  on  the  very 
ground  chosen  by  themselves.  They  instantly  determined 
to  attack. 

On  the  north  bank  of  the  Danube,  at  the  head  of  a  loop 
of  the  river,  lies  the  little  village  of  Blindheim,  or,  as  it  was 
spelt  by  Marlborough,  Blenheim.  At  the  eastern  extremity 
of  the  loop  the  Danube  is  joined  by  the  brook  Nebel, 
shallow  and  narrow,  formed  by  many  rivulets  flowing  from 
a  range  of  wooded  hills  three  miles  to  the  north.  In  those 
days  the  ground  between  these  various  branches  was  an 
undrained  swamp.  The  Nebel  flows  through  two  villages, 
Unterglau  a  mile  above  Blenheim,  Oberglau  three-quarters 
of  a  mile  farther  north. 

Tuesday  night  was  spent  in  preparation  for  the  coming 
battle.  At  three  o'clock  on  Wednesday  morning  the  con- 
federate army  moved  slowly  out.  A  light  mist  hung  over 
the  ground,  but  after  three  hours'  march  they  came  in 
sight  of  the  enemy,  and  the  cannon  opened  fire  while  the 
troops  deployed  into  line. 

The  enemy,  west  of  the  Nebel,  were  in  two  main  divi- 
sions, the  right  under  Tallard  resting  on  Blenheim,  the 
left  under  Marsin  and  the  Elector  of  Bavaria  higher  up  the 
brook,  occupying  the  villages  of  Oberglau  and  Unterglau, 
the  rear  being  in  the  village  of  Lutzingen.  On  the  con- 
federate side,  Eugene  commanded  the  right,  opposite 
Marsin,  while  Marlborough  was  opposed  to  Tallard. 

The  confederate  troops,  composed  of  English,  Germans, 
Dutch,  and  Danes,  were  all  in  the  highest  spirits.  The 
victory  of  the  Schellenberg  had  heartened  them;  they  had 
unbounded  confidence  in  their  generals.  As  he  mounted 
his  horse  that  morning  Marlborough  said  quietly,  "This 
day  I  conquer  or  die,"  and  officers  and  men  alike  caught 
the  infection  of  his  brave,  calm  spirit. 

The  ground  on  which  Prince  Eugene's  division  was  to 

365 


"The  Doubtful   Battle" 

be  posted  was  broken  by  branches  of  the  Nebel  and  be- 
came uneven  as  it  rose  towards  the  hills.  For  this  reason 
it  took  the  prince  some  time  to  get  his  men  into  position. 
Marlborough's  force  was  earlier  posted,  and  he  occupied 
the  interval  until  he  should  hear  from  Eugene  that  all 
was  ready  by  having-  prayers  read  at  the  head  of  each 
regiment.  About  twelve  o'clock  a  message  came  from 
Eugene  that  he  was  prepared.  "Now,  gentlemen,  to  your 
posts,"  cried  Marlborough  to  the  officers  with  whom  he 
had  been  breakfasting.  Up  sprang  the  big  Lord  Cutts, 
deputed  to  open  the  attack  on  Blenheim — a  gallant  leader, 
nicknamed  Salamander  from  his  careless  daring  under  fire. 
Up  sprang  General  Churchill,  and  galloped  off  towards 
Unterglau,  already  set  on  fire  by  the  cannonade.  Up 
sprang  General  Lumley,  hero  of  the  cavalry  charge  at  the 
Schellenberg.  From  brigadier  to  bugler,  every  man  was 
determined  to  "conquer  or  die". 

Blenheim  was  filled  with  French,  seventeen  battalions  of 
Tallard's  best  troops  hampering  each  other's  movements 
there.  So  strongly  was  the  village  defended  that  the 
English  troops  were  twice  compelled  to  retire.  Marl- 
borough's  foreseeing  eye  marked  the  urgency  of  the 
moment.  The  enemy  must  be  prevented  from  pursuing 
their  advantage.  In  spite  of  artillery  fire  in  flank  and 
cavalry  charges  in  front  he  got  his  horse  across  the  stream 
and  the  intervening  marshes.  Tallard  was  late  in  meeting 
the  movement.  He  allowed  the  first  line  of  English  to 
form  up  on  his  own  side  of  the  brook  before  he  ordered 
a  strenuous  attack.  Then  Marlborough  reinforced  his 
lines,  and  having  assured  himself  that  they  could  hold 
their  own,  galloped  to  the  left  to  see  how  things  were 
faring  toward  Blenheim. 

Meanwhile  on  the  right  Eugene  had  fought  with  vary- 
ing success.  A  dashing  cavalry  charge  broke  the  enemy's 
front  line,  but  from  the  second  his  horse  recoiled,  and  he 
brought  up  his  Prussian  infantry  to  stem  the  tide.  At 
Oberglau  also  the  Prince  of  Holstein's  division  was  thrown 
into  confusion  by  the  gallant  Irish  brigade,  which  flung 

366 


A  Famous  Victory 


itself  upon  the  Germans  with  the  fierce  valour  for  which 
these  exiles  were  renowned.  Here,  too,  Marlborough's 
all-seeing  eye  marked  the  crisis.  Galloping  to  the  point 
of  danger,  he  ordered  up  battalions  and  squadrons  that 
had  not  yet  been  engaged,  and  in  his  turn  threw  the  Irish 
into  confusion. 

The  summer  afternoon  was  drawing  on;  for  five  hours 
the  battle  had  raged,  and  neither  side  had  yet  gained  a 
substantial  advantage.  But  soon  after  five,  having  seen 
all  his  cavalry  across  the  Nebel,  the  duke  rode  along  the 
front,  and  gave  orders  to  sound  the  charge.  At  the 
trumpets'  blare  8000  horsemen,  splendidly  mounted,  moved 
up  the  slope  in  two  lines  towards  the  enemy,  first  at  a 
gentle  trot,  quickening  their  pace  until  it  became  a  gallop. 
One  slight  check  from  the  terrible  fire  of  the  French 
musketeers,  then  they  swept  forward  irresistibly.  The 
enemy  recoiled,  broke,  fell  into  disorder,  and  fled,  the 
infantry  towards  Hochstadt,  the  cavalry  towards  Sonders- 
heim,  on  the  river  bank.  Then  was  seen  Tallard's  fatal 
mistake  in  crowding  so  many  men  into  the  narrow  streets 
of  Blenheim.  Catching  the  panic  from  their  flying  com- 
rades, they  turned  hither  and  thither,  not  knowing  how 
to  find  safety.  Some  plunged  into  the  river,  only  to  be 
borne  away  on  its  swift  current  and  drowned.  Others 
sought  to  escape  towards  Hochstadt,  but  every  avenue 
was  blocked.  In  rage  and  despair  they  maintained  a 
stubborn  fight  until  the  evening  dusk  descended,  and  the 
hopelessness  of  their  plight  counselled  surrender. 

At  the  head  of  his  shouting  cavalry  Marlborough  him- 
self had  chased  thirty  squadrons  down  the  steep  bank  of 
the  Danube  to  destruction.  He  had  but  just  returned 
when  he  was  met  by  an  aide-de-camp  with  a  prisoner  no 
less  notable  than  Marshal  Tallard  himself.  The  duke  put 
him  into  his  own  coach,  and  sat  down  to  pencil  that  famous 
note  to  his  duchess  which  gave  England  the  first  tidings 
of  this  glorious  victory. 

The  victorious  army  bivouacked  on  the  field,  taking 
possession  of  the  enemy's  standing  tents,  with  a  great 

367 


A   Fugitive 


store  of  vegetables  and  a  hundred  fat  oxen  ready  skinned 
for  the  pot. 

During"  this  great  action  Harry  had  been  hither  and 
thither  in  all  parts  of  the  field,  bearing  Eugene's  orders 
to  his  divisional  commanders.  Of  the  details  of  the  fight 
he  saw  little,  but  was  well  pleased  at  the  close  of  the 
day  when  the  prince  thanked  him  in  the  presence  of  his 
staff,  and  invited  him  to  his  own  supper  table. 

During  the  next  few  weeks  the  troops  marched  towards 
the  Rhine,  the  duke's  objective  being  Landau,  which  he 
hoped  to  take  before  the  close  of  the  campaign.  One 
afternoon  Harry  went  on  in  advance  with  Sherebiah  from 
Langenhandel  to  Weissembourg,  to  secure  quarters  for 
Prince  Eugene.  His  errand  accomplished,  he  was  sitting 
at  dinner  in  the  inn  when  through  the  open  window  came 
the  sound  of  hubbub  in  the  street. 

"  What  is  it,  Sherry?."  he  asked. 

"  'Pears  to  be  a  crowd  of  Germans  a-setten  on  to  a 
wounded  Frenchman,  sir.  He  have  his  arm  strapped, 
and why,  sakes  alive!  'tis  black  John  Simmons  hisself." 

"Indeed!"  cried  Harry,  rising.  "Then  the  captain 
will  be  near  at  hand.  Out  and  bring  the  fellow  in." 

Sherebiah  issued  forth  and  shouldered  his  way  through 
the  growing  crowd.  When  Simmons  caught  sight  of  him, 
his  jaw  dropped  and  he  turned  to  make  away ;  but  Shere- 
biah was  at  his  heels  in  a  twinkling,  and  soon  he  dragged 
him  through  the  throng  and  into  the  inn.  The  man 
looked  even  more  woebegone  than  when  Harry  had  last 
seen  him,  and  his  drawn  face  betokened  keen  suffering. 

"Cotched  again!"  said  Sherebiah.  "  Stand  there  afore 
Master  Harry  and  speak  your  mind." 

"  How  come  you  here,  Simmons?"  asked  Harry. 

The  man  explained  that  after  the  rout  at  the  castle  he 
had  escaped  with  his  master  to  the  Elector's  camp  and 
been  with  the  army  at  the  battle  of  Blenheim.  He  had 
ridden  out  of  the  fight  with  Aglionby,  but  being  wounded 
had  fallen  from  his  horse  and  been  callously  left  to  his 
fate  by  the  captain.  Contriving  to  evade  capture,  he 

368 


Coals  of  Fire 

had  wandered  from  village  to  village,  and,  reaching  Weis- 
sembourg,  had  been  sheltered  there  by  a  cottager  until 
all  his  money  was  gone.  Then  he  was  turned  out  neck 
and  crop,  and  was  being  hustled  out  of  the  village  when 
Sherebiah  intervened.  His  wound  had  not  been  properly 
treated,  and  he  was  in  a  sorry  plight. 

Harry  could  not  help  pitying  the  poor  wretch  whose 
service  had  been  so  ill-requited  by  his  master.  Properly 
he  was  a  prisoner  of  war — one  of  the  13,000  who  had 
fallen  into  the  hands  of  the  victors.  But  he  was  a  fellow- 
countryman  after  all,  and  possibly  had  been  an  honest 
fellow  until  he  came  under  Aglionby's  sinister  influence. 
Harry  had  not  the  heart  to  let  him  go  to  his  fate. 

"  Sherry,  look  to  his  arm,"  he  said.  "  Let  us  see  what 
sort  of  a  leech  Jacob  Spinney  made  of  you.  Then  give 
him  some  food  and  find  him  a  lodging." 

Several  days  passed,  and  Harry,  in  the  bustle  of  camp 
life,  had  almost  forgotten  the  incident,  when  one  morning 
Simmons  presented  himself  and  asked  to  be  allowed  to 
speak  a  word.  His  arm  was  nearly  healed,  and  he  looked 
a  cleaner,  trimmer  fellow. 

"Ah,  Simmons!"  said  Harry,  "you're  better,  I  see. 
What  have  you  got  to  say?" 

"  First  to  thank  you,  sir,  for  your  kindness,  which  I  know 
I  don't  deserve.  Sherebiah  Minshull  has  treated  me  well." 

"I'm  glad  of  that.  Now  is  there  anything  else  I  can 
do  for  you?" 

"I've  been  thinkin',  these  few  days,  sir,  and  ponderin' 
on  my  past  life;  and  there's  a  thing  I  believe  you  ought 
to  know." 

"Well,  speak  up,  man." 

"  Tis  summat  I  heard  pass  between  Cap'n  Aglionby  and 
the  Frenchman,  sir." 

"That's  enough:  I'm  not  interested  in  the  doings  of 
your  rascally  employer." 

"But  you  are,  sir,  unless  I  be  much  mistaken.  The 
matter  concerns  the  French  lady  near  Breda,  and  the 
young  mistress — partickler  the  young  mistress,  sir." 

369 


A  Revelation 

Harry  was  now  all  attention. 

' '  Speak  on  then,  and  use  few  words. 

Simmons  then  related  that,  some  few  days  before  the 
battle  of  Blenheim,  Monsieur  de  Polignac  had  come  secretly 
into  the  camp  and  paid  a  visit  to  Aglionby.  (Harry  re- 
membered the  letter  making-  the  appointment  he  had 
found  in  the  castle.)  The  opening-  of  the  interview  had 
been  stormy;  Ag-lionby  had  accused  Polignac  of  being  a 
party  to  the  attempt  on  his  life  at  Breda,  and  at  first 
refused  to  accept  his  assurances  that  he  knew  nothing- 
whatever  of  the  matter.  But  Polig-nac  spoke  him  fairly, 
declaring  that  his  connection  with  Mr.  Berkeley  had  been 
limited  to  planning-  Aglionby's  rescue  from  prison.  The 
Captain's  suspicions  being-  at  last  lulled,  Polignac  opened 
up  the  subject  of  his  visit.  Of  the  remainder  of  the 
interview  Simmons  had  but  hazy  ideas :  he  had  listened 
through  a  hole  in  Aglionby's  tent,  and  the  conversation 
being-  conducted  in  low  tones  and  in  French,  of  which  he 
had  only  a  smattering-,  he  had  missed  a  good  deal  of  it. 
But  he  had  heard  enough  to  know  that  the  Mademoiselle 
of  whom  the  two  spoke  was  Mademoiselle  de  Vaudrey, 
and  that  Polignac  was  bargaining-  with  Aglionby  to  aid 
him  in  an  attempt  to  get  possession  of  the  young-  lady. 

"One  thing  I  heard  plain,  sir,"  said  Simmons  in  con- 
clusion, ' '  and  that  was  that  the  cap'n  was  to  get  a  good 
bit  o'  gold  when  the  Frenchman  married  the  lady,  and  a 
good  bit  more  when  he  came  into  the  estates." 

"What  estates?" 

"That  I  can't  tell  you,  sir;  'the  estates'  was  all  I  heard 
— terres  was  the  word  as  was  used." 

"  Oh!     And  why  do  you  betray  your  master?" 

"Well,  sir,  he've  led  me  a  dog-'s  life  for  years;  holds 
over  me  that  hang-in'  business  on  the  old  road ;  and  then 
after  I'd  served  him  faithful  leaves  me  to  shift  for  myself 
with  a  bullet  in  my  arm.  I  don't  owe  him  no  thanks." 

Harry  stood  in  thought  for  a  few  moments. 

"You're  a  Londoner,  I  think,  Simmons?"  he  said  at 
length. 

370 


Warnings 


"Ay,  sir." 

"  What  trade  were  you  bred  to?" 

"  A  joiner,  sir." 

"Well,  if  you'll  promise  me  to  go  straight  back  to 
London  and  work  at  your  trade,  I'll  contrive  to  send  you 
down  the  Rhine  with  the  prisoners,  and  give  you  a  little 
money  to  start  you." 

"Thank  'ee  kindly,  sir!" 

"Very  well.  Sherebiah  shall  take  you  to  Hanau  and 
see  you  safely  lodged.  Remember,  you've  your  character 
to  build  up  afresh.  If  you  stick  to  your  trade,  and  keep 
out  of  the  way  of  folk  who  want  to  use  you  for  dirty  work, 
you  may  become  a  decent  citizen  yet." 

"  On  my  soul  I'll  try,  sir.  'Tisn't  every  one  would  give 
a  poor  fellow  a  chance,  and  I  thank  'ee  true,  sir." 

Harry  dismissed  the  man  in  Sherebiah's  care.  He  was 
greatly  disturbed  by  his  news.  It  was  clear  that  Polignac, 
having  failed  to  win  Mademoiselle  de  Vaudrey  by  fair 
means,  and  by  the  attempt  to  bring  pressure  to  bear,  so 
happily  frustrated  by  Mynheer  Grootz,  was  now  deter- 
mined to  resort  to  desperate  measures.  Something  must 
be  done  at  once  to  put  Madame  de  Vaudrey  on  her  guard. 
He  would  have  liked  to  convey  the  warning  himself,  but 
felt  the  impossibility  of  asking  from  Prince  Eugene  leave 
of  absence  for  so  long  a  journey  until  the  campaign  was 
ended.  The  only  other  means  open  to  him  was  to  write. 
Couriers  were  constantly  going  backwards  and  forwards 
between  the  armies  and  the  Hague  and  other  towns;  he 
might  avail  himself  ot  one  of  these  to  send  his  urgent 
message. 

Harry  lost  no  time  in  putting  his  decision  into  effect.  He 
wrote  both  to  Madame  de  Vaudrey  and  to  Mynheer  Grootz, 
telling  them  that  Aglionby  and  Polignac  were  scheming 
to  abduct  Mademoiselle,  and  also  that  they  were  in  league 
with  the  Jacobites  in  France  and  England.  This  latter 
fact  would  give  Grootz  a  free  hand  in  dealing  with  them, 
even  if  he  detected  them  in  no  overt  act  against  Made- 
moiselle de  Vaudrey.  It  was  two  days  before  Harry  could 


Silence 

send  off  his  letters,  which  for  greater  safety  he  entrusted 
to  an  official  despatch  -  rider,  by  permission  of  Prince 
Eugene.  The  post  would  take  several  days;  it  would  be 
towards  the  end  of  the  first  week  in  October  before  a 
reply  could  be  expected. 

Time  passed  away,  and  Harry  was  anxiously  waiting, 
when,  two  days  before  the  earliest  date  on  which  a  letter 
could  be  received  from  Grootz,  he  was  unexpectedly  sent 
by  Prince  Eugene  on  an  urgent  private  errand  to  Vienna. 
He  was  accompanied  by  Sherebiah,  now  again  his  con- 
stant companion.  They  made  as  much  speed  as  possible, 
but  nearly  a  month  elapsed  before  Harry  was  able  to 
report  the  success  of  his  mission  to  the  Prince,  then  in  the 
confederate  camp  before  Landau.  As  soon  as  he  had  seen 
the  prince,  he  enquired  whether  a  letter  had  arrived  for 
him  during  his  absence,  and  felt  a  great  sense  of  relief 
when  a  packet  was  given  him  addressed  in  Grootz's  big 
business  hand. 

But  his  feeling  was  changed  to  the  keenest  anxiety 
when  he  found  that  the  letter,  though  written  more  than 
a  week  after  the  date  at  which  Grootz  might  reasonably 
be  supposed  to  have  received  his  letter,  made  no  reference 
to  the  news  he  had  sent,  and  had  clearly  been  despatched 
in  entire  ignorance  of  the  threatening  danger.  Long 
afterwards  he  learnt  that  the  courier  had  been  accidentally 
drowned  in  crossing  a  river  at  night,  and  his  letters  had 
been  lost.  He  dreaded  to  think  what  might  have  hap- 
pened in  the  interval.  He  wrote  another  urgent  letter  to 
Mynheer  Grootz,  and  despatched  it  by  a  special  messenger; 
but  the  bare  possibility  of  a  mishap  alarmed  him,  and  he 
could  never  put  the  subject  from  his  thoughts.  He  woke 
at  night  under  the  pressure  of  his  anxiety ;  if  only  he 
could  himself  go  to  Lindendaal  to  see  that  all  was  safe! 
But  while  the  siege  was  still  being  prosecuted,  and  the 
prince  had  constant  need  of  his  services,  he  could  not 
bring  himself  to  ask  for  leave. 

His  difficulty  was  solved  for  him  by  the  prince  himself. 
His  evident  preoccupation,  and  a  slight  mistake  he  made 

372 


A  Soft  Impeachment 

in  noting-  down  a  message,  attracted  that  astute  gentle- 
man's attention.  He  spoke  to  Harry  on  the  matter;  by 
this  time  they  were  on  such  terms  that  Harry  felt  no 
difficulty  in  opening  his  mind;  and  he  explained  that 
having-  become  aware  of  a  plot  likely  to  injure  some 
friends  of  his,  and  fearing  that  his  letter  of  warning  had 
miscarried,  he  was  in  considerable  anxiety  on  their  behalf. 

"Naturally,"  said  the  prince.  "Who  are  these  friends 
of  yours?" 

"A  French  refugee  lady  and  her  daughter,  Monseigneur, 
who  live  near  Breda." 

"  Ah !     What  is  their  name?" 

"  De  Vaudrey,  Monseigneur." 

"  Are  they  relatives  of  yours?" 

"No,  Monseigneur." 

"A  mere  matter  of  friendship,  eh?"  The  prince's  eyes 
twinkled.  "Now,  my  boy,  confess:  you  are  in  love." 

"No,  indeed,  Monseigneur." 

"Well,  the  symptoms  are  not  unusual.  You  ought 
to  know  best,  of  course ;  but  in  any  case  you  had  better 
get  the  matter  off  your  mind.  This  weary  siege  cannot 
last  more  than  a  few  days  longer;  we  hear  that  the  enemy 
are  on  the  point  of  surrender;  we  shall  go  into  winter 
quarters  immediately,  I  suppose,  and  I  shall  be  able  to 
dispense  with  your  services  until  the  spring.  Pack  off 
to  Breda  and  see  your — friends,  holding  yourself  in  readi- 
ness, of  course,  to  come  back  to  me  when  summoned." 

Harry  was  too  much  pleased  at  the  opportunity  of  assur- 
ing himself  that  all  was  well  to  think  it  necessary  to  make 
any  protestation  about  his  motives.  Thanking  the  prince, 
he  finished  off  one  or  two  small  duties  and  went  to  arrange 
with  Sherebiah  for  their  journey.  Before  he  left  he  came 
across  Fanshawe  in  camp,  and,  without  disclosing  his 
reasons,  told  him  where  he  was  going. 

"Then  will  you  do  something  for  me?"  asked  Fanshawe 
eagerly.  "Will  you  carry  a  letter  for  me?  I  love  that 
girl,  Harry.  I  can't  get  over  it.  I  made  a  mistake  last 
time.  I  ought  to  have  known  that  our  English  ways 

373 


Down  the  Rhine 

would  not  answer  with  French  ladies.  I  spoke  to  Adele 
herself;  I  rught  to  have  spoken  to  her  mother.  If  you 
will  take  it,  I  will  write  a  letter  to  Madame  de  Vaudrey 
asking  permission  to  pay  my  addresses  to  her  daughter; 
that  may  give  me  a  chance;  don't  you  think  so,  Harry?" 

"  I  don't  know,"  said  Harry.  He  felt  strangely  un- 
sympathetic with  Fanshawe  at  that  moment.  "  I  will 
take  your  letter  if  you  are  not  long  about  it:  I  ride  for 
Maintz  to-night." 

"Thanks,  old  fellow!  Wait  till  you're  in  love;  then 
you'll  know  how  a  fellow  feels;  I  shall  have  no  peace  of 
mind  till  I  know  my  fate." 

A  few  hours  after  this,  Harry  left  the  camp  with 
Sherebiah,  carrying  the  letter  on  which  Fanshawe's  fate 
depended.  To  save  time  he  had  decided  to  take  boat 
at  Maintz,  and  sail  night  and  day  down  the  Rhine.  Ten 
hours  later  he  had  bought  a  big  boat,  engaged  a  man 
who  knew  the  river,  and  begun  his  journey.  With  the 
aid  of  the  stream  and  oars,  and  proceeding  continuously, 
he  could  save  a  day  or  two  on  the  land  journey.  His  plan 
was  to  engage  fresh  crews  at  every  important  stopping- 
place,  so  as  to  have  relays  of  sturdy  oarsmen  and  to  get 
out  of  them  all  the  work  of  which  they  were  capable. 
The  Germans  were  naturally  not  so  eager  as  himself, 
and  grumbled  a  good  deal  at  the  exertions  demanded  of 
them.  "Unerhort!  unerhdrt!"  was  the  exclamation  he 
frequently  heard  from  their  lips.  But  he  never  relaxed 
his  determination,  and  found  liberal  pay  a  ready  stimulus. 

Thus,  without  mitigation  of  pace,  the  boat  rushed  down 
the  river.  As  one  after  another  the  river-side  towns  were 
passed,  Harry  felt  a  satisfaction  mingled  with  an  impa- 
tience too  great  to  allow  of  his  taking  much  interest  in 
the  scenes.  The  ugly,  dirty  garrison  town  of  St.  Goar, 
the  fortress  of  Hesse-Rheinfels,  the  famous  Rat  tower  of 
the  Hatto  legend,  Coblentz,  Cologne,  Dusseldorf,  were 
only  so  many  stages  of  his  uneventful  journey. 


374 


CHAPTER  XXIV 

The  Wages  of  Sin 

ABOUT  four  o'clock  on  a  November  afternoon,  fine  for 
the  time  of  year,  two  horsemen  rode  up  to  the  inn  at 
Eyndhoven.  Huge  clouds  of  steam  rose  from  their  horses 
into  the  cold  air ;  the  panting  of  the  beasts  told  of  a  forced 
pace.  Dismounting-,  the  riders  called  for  refreshment  and 
a  change  of  horses:  they  were  anxious  to  push  on  at  once. 

When  their  hasty  meal  was  finished,  while  the  master 
was  paying  the  bill,  the  man  went  into  the  inn  yard  and 
tried  to  enter  into  conversation  with  a  servant  standing 
there  in  charge  of  a  large  empty  travelling  carriage. 

"  Whose  carriage  is  that?"  he  asked. 

"  Monsieur  de  Polignac's,"  was  the  surly  answer. 

The  man  started  slightly,  but  no  one  would  have  sus- 
pected anything  but  pure  curiosity  from  the  tone  of  his 
next  question. 

"  Who  is  it  waiting  for?" 

"  Monsieur  de  Polignac." 

The  reply  was  still  more  surly. 

"The  roads  will  be  heavy  for  travelling.  Bad  enough 
for  horsemen,  worse  for  coaches.  Maybe  the  gentleman  is 
not  going  far?" 

"Maybe  not." 

"The  Breda  road?" 

"What  is  that  to  you?" 

"  No  offence,  comrade.  A  man  may  ask  a  question,  to 
pass  the  time.  Bid  you  good-day!" 

Seeing  that  he  was  unlikely  to  get  any  further  infor- 
mation he  sauntered  off,  but  disappeared  as  quickly  as 
possible  into  the  inn. 

(B357)  375  *B 


Promenade  a  Berlin 

"  Mounseer's  coach  is  in  yard,  sir,"  he  said  quietly, 
"and  a-waiten  for  Mounseer." 

"Ah!     Are  we  in  time,  Sherry?     Call  the  ostler." 

When  the  man  appeared,  Harry  slipt  a  coin  into  his 
hand. 

"Monsieur  de  Polignac  is  making  a  journey.  Tell  me 
all  you  know  about  it." 

The  man  replied  that  the  coach  had  been  sent  to  the  inn 
two  days  before.  Monsieur  de  Polignac  was  expected  at 
any  moment.  He  had  recently  sold  his  estate  and  was 
leaving  for  Germany.  It  was  thought  that  he  wished 
to  take  his  departure  quietly,  for  he  had  always  been 
unpopular  with  his  tenants,  and  he  ran  the  risk  of  a 
hostile  demonstration  if  the  time  of  his  setting  out  were 
known.  He  probably  intended  to  slip  secretly  away  from 
his  house  and  make  his  real  start  from  Eyndhoven.  A 
large  quantity  of  his  baggage  had  passed  through  the 
town  a  few  days  before;  but,  strangely  enough,  a  carter 
coming  in  had  reported  that  Monsieur's  wagons  were 
going  south,  which  was  certainly  not  towards  Berlin, 
the  alleged  destination.  On  the  road  they  had  taken 
there  was  great  danger  of  their  falling  into  the  hands  of 
the  French,  for  it  was  not  more  than  five  or  six  leagues 
from  Marshal  Villeroy's  lines,  and  Monsieur  as  a  Huguenot 
refugee  would  meet  with  scant  consideration  from  his 
countrymen. 

"  Has  Monsieur  de  Polignac  himself  been  to  Eyndhoven 
lately?"  asked  Harry. 

"No,  Mynheer;  the  arrangements  were  made  for  him 
by  an  English  officer  who  fought  at  Blenheim,  where  the 
great  duke  gave  the  French  such  a  drubbing  a  few  months 
back.  He  was  a  masterful  man ;  gave  orders  that  the 
horses  were  to  be  ready  at  a  moment's  notice  and  to  be 
kept  in  good  condition.  Only  this  morning  a  messenger 
came  with  instructions  for  the  coach  to  be  ready  by  eight 
o'clock  to-night,  with  a  stock  of  wine  and  provisions  which 
Monsieur  will  take  with  him." 

Harry  was  perturbed  at  this  news.  It  was  clear  that 

376 


A  Sudden  Stop 


Polignac  intended  to  depart  in  haste;  but  whether  on 
political  grounds,  having  found  his  character  as  spy 
detected,  or  in  pursuance  of  the  plot  hinted  at  by  Sim- 
mons, it  was  impossible  to  know.  If  the  latter,  there 
was  certainly  not  a  moment  to  lose,  and  it  behoved  to 
push  on  with  all  speed  to  Lindendaal.  Fresh  horses  had 
been  waiting  for  some  minutes.  Harry  and  Sherebiah 
were  soon  in  the  saddle,  and  set  off  at  a  gallop  along 
the  miry  road,  into  the  gathering  night. 

Some  hours  previously  a  traveller  approaching  Linden- 
daal from  the  opposite  direction  had  passed  through  Breda. 
He  had  found  it  impossible  there  to  get  a  change  of  team 
for  his  coach ;  all  the  horses  in  the  town  were  out,  convey- 
ing to  their  homes  the  gentry  of  the  countryside  who  had 
come  into  Breda  for  a  grand  ball  given  the  night  before  by 
the  officers  of  the  garrison,  the  finale  of  a  week  of  enter- 
tainments. Not  even  Mynheer  Grootz's  liberal  offers 
sufficed  to  secure  a  team  at  once.  The  motive  of  his 
journey  was  clearly  urgent,  for  instead  of  waiting  a  few 
hours  until  some  of  the  hacks  returned,  he  pushed  on  at 
once  with  his  tired  animals  to  Tilburg,  four  leagues 
farther  on  the  road.  There  he  succeeded  in  hiring  fresh 
horses,  and  without  delay  continued  his  journey. 

He  was  himself  very  much  fatigued,  having  risen  from 
a  sick  bed  on  receiving  the  letter  sent  him  by  Harry  from 
Landau.  As  he  drew  out  of  Oerschot,  where  the  team 
was  again  changed,  he  pulled  up  the  wooden  slat  blinds, 
and  settled  himself  in  the  corner  of  his  seat  for  a  short 
nap.  So  much  exhausted  was  he  that  he  was  still  sound 
asleep  when,  nearly  two  hours  later,  the  coach  reached 
the  end  of  the  park  wall  of  Lindendaal. 

It  was  now  growing  dark.  All  at  once  Grootz  was 
roused  from  sleep  by  the  stopping  of  the  coach.  In  his 
half-awake  condition  he  thought  that  he  was  at  his  jour- 
ney's end,  and  was  rising  to  lower  the  blinds  when  there 
was  a  shout  and  the  report  of  a  pistol-shot.  Wide-awake 
in  an  instant  he  groped  in  the  darkness  for  his  own  pistol. 

377 


Grootz  Chuckles 

But  just  as  he  laid  his  hand  upon  it  the  coach  jolted  on 
again,  throwing  him  back  into  his  seat.  It  was  rattling 
and  swaying  from  side  to  side,  the  horses  being  urged 
to  their  utmost  speed.  His  first  impulse  was  to  let  down 
the  blinds  and  endeavour  to  get  a  shot  at  one  of  the  men 
who  had  waylaid  him.  Then  he  hesitated;  a  sudden 
thought  had  occurred  to  him ;  he  gave  a  quiet  chuckle, 
and  peeped  through  the  slats  of  the  blinds,  first  on  one 
side,  then  on  the  other.  He  could  just  see  that  a  horse- 
man was  riding  at  each  side  of  the  carriage,  and  through 
the  small  window  at  the  back  he  saw  a  third  following. 
He  smiled  grimly,  and,  holding  his  pistol  ready,  waited 
for  what  he  suspected  must  happen  before  long. 

His  own  postilion,  he  guessed,  had  been  killed  or 
wounded  by  the  pistol-shot  he  had  heard,  and  the  coach 
was  now  driven  by  a  stranger.  He  was  thus  one  against 
four.  He  might  shoot  one  of  them,  but  would  clearly  be 
at  the  mercy  of  the  three  others.  It  was  a  lonely  road; 
there  was  nothing  for  the  present  to  be  gained  by  resis- 
tance, and  besides,  he  had  a  further  reason  for  biding 
his  time.  Delay  would  not  worsen  his  own  situation; 
while  if  his  suspicions  were  correct  the  longer  he  remained 
passive  the  better  his  purpose  would  be  served. 

After  a  headlong,  rattling,  bumping  flight  of  about 
two  miles,  as  it  seemed  to  Grootz,  he  heard  the  horse- 
man on  his  right  shout  an  order  to  the  postilion.  The 
coach  was  pulled  up ;  the  horseman  threw  himself  from 
the  saddle,  and  wrenching  open  the  door  peered  in. 

"I  regret,  Madame,  the  necessity " 

He  started  back,  for  in  the  waning  light  he  had  just 
become  aware  that  there  was  but  one  figure  in  the  car- 
riage, and  that  clearly  the  figure  of  a  man. 

"Trichd,  morbleu!"  he  cried  in  fury.  "Someone  shall 
pay  for  this.  Come  out,  or  I  will  empty  this  pistol  into 
you ! " 

The  only  answer  was  the  click  of  a  pistol  within  the 
coach,  and  a  flash  from  the  corner.  Grootz's  weapon 
had  missed  fire.  Whipping  his  own  pistol  from  his  belt 

378 


Place  aux  Dames 

Polignac  fired;  and  the  Dutchman  fell  back,  hit  in  the 
shoulder.  With  a  cry  to  his  companions  Polignac  sprang 
on  his  horse,  and  galloped  furiously  back  along  the  road 
he  had  come,  the  other  two  horsemen  hard  at  his  heels. 
Immediately  afterwards  the  postilion  cut  the  traces  and 
set  off  in  haste  after  his  employer,  leaving  Grootz,  the 
coach,  and  one  horse  to  themselves. 

Five  minutes  later,  from  the  Eyndhoven  direction,  up  rode 
two  horsemen  at  speed.  It  was  now  almost  totally  dark ; 
the  coach  could  barely  be  discerned  in  the  middle  of  the 
road,  and  Harry,  who  was  foremost,  pulled  up  only  just  in 
time  to  save  his  horse's  knees.  In  a  moment  he  was  out  of 
the  saddle ;  Sherebiah  was  by  his  side,  and  while  the  man 
held  the  horses,  Harry,  anxiety  tearing  at  his  heart,  looked 
into  the  coach.  There  was  a  huddled  heap  upon  the  floor. 

"Steel  and  tinder!"  he  cried  to  Sherebiah. 

A  light  was  struck. 

"  Good  heavens!  it  is  Mynheer  Grootz." 

He  bent  down  and  touched  the  wounded  man's  hand, 
fearing  he  might  be  already  dead.  The  touch  revived 
Grootz  from  his  swoon. 

"On  to  Lindendaal!"  he  said  faintly  and  brokenly. 
"Leave  me!  Ladies  in  danger.  Take  care.  Desperate 
men :  four ;  at  once !  " 

Loth  as  Harry  was  to  leave  his  friend  in  so  ill  a  plight, 
the  imminence  of  the  peril  to  which  the  ladies  were  exposed 
was  predominant. 

"  I  will  send  a  man  back  to  you,  Mynheer,"  he  said. 
"Sherebiah,  we  must  hasten." 

The  short  halt  had  given  the  horses  time  to  recover 
their  wind.  They  had  not  travelled  far,  nor  had  they  far 
to  go.  The  two  sprang  to  their  saddles,  and  as  they  rode 
off  into  the  darkness  there  was  a  look  on  Harry's  face  that 
boded  ill  for  Polignac  or  any  of  his  party.  Never  before, 
even  when  carried  bound  on  board  the  Merry  Maid,  even 
when  his  own  life  had  been  attempted,  had  he  felt  the 
overmastering  desire  for  vengeance  that  burnt  within  him 
now.  The  sight  of  his  friend  and  benefactor  wounded  and 

379 


The  Last  Two  Miles 

helpless  had  quickened  his  indignation  with  Polignac  and 
his  crew  into  a  fury  of  resentment,  and  at  the  back  of  his 
consciousness  there  was  another  and  a  subtler  feeling 
which  he  did  not  pause  to  analyse.  With  eyes  staring 
into  the  distance,  ears  strained  to  catch  the  slightest 
sound,  every  sense  on  the  alert,  he  led  the  way  over  the 
heavy  miry  road,  Sherebiah  a  short  length  behind.  If 
anyone  could  have  seen  the  riders'  faces  he  would  have 
been  struck  by  the  contrast  between  their  expressions. 
Harry's  was  grim  and  tense  with  white  rage;  Sherebiah's 
round  cheeks  wore  their  settled  look  of  cheerful  placidity 
— the  unruffled  carelessness  of  a  man  of  peace. 

It  was  a  furious  gallop,  over  the  two  miles  from  the 
halted  coach  to  the  gates  of  Lindendaal.  Harry's  eager 
eyes  at  length  caught  a  twinkle  of  light  ahead  to  the  right 
of  the  road.  A  moment  later  the  faint  sound  of  a  shout 
came  down  the  wind,  then  the  crack  of  a  pistol-shot.  Dig- 
ging his  spurs  into  his  steed's  heaving  flanks  he  drew  his 
sword ;  it  was  a  matter  of  seconds  now.  He  flew  past 
the  ruined  barn,  standing  bare  and  black  on  the  right; 
and  there,  before  him  on  the  road,  shone  a  light,  from  a 
carriage  lamp  as  he  supposed.  Now  mingled  with  shouts 
and  oaths  he  heard  the  clash  of  steel ;  in  a  moment  there 
loomed  up  before  him  at  the  entrance  to  the  balustraded 
avenue  a  dark  still  mass,  and  in  the  yellow  glare  of  the 
lamp  he  perceived  two  men  on  foot  fighting  desperately. 
He  was  still  some  yards  away  when  he  saw  the  man 
farthest  from  him  shorten  his  sword  and  run  his  opponent 
through  the  body,  then  with  lightning  speed  prepare  to 
meet  the  horseman,  whether  friend  or  foe,  whose  coming 
the  ring  of  hoofs  had  announced.  As  he  dashed  forward, 
Harry  recognized  in  the  sinister  features  and  the  wry  mouth 
the  evil  face  of  Polignac.  Leaning  low  over  his  horse's 
neck  he  made  a  sweeping  blow  with  his  heavy  cavalry 
sabre  that  would  have  cut  the  Frenchman's  spare  frame 
into  halves  had  he  not  with  rare  presence  of  mind  sunk  on 
one  knee  and  allowed  the  blade  to  swish  harmlessly  over 
his  head. 

380 


Polignac  Pays  the  Penalty 

Harry  was  carried  on  for  some  yards  before  he  could 
check  the  impetus  of  his  horse,  and  then  he  found  himself 
in  the  thick  of  a  fight  in  which  he  could  disti  guish  neither 
friend  nor  foe.  A  fierce  oath  on  his  right,  however,  pro- 
claimed the  identity  of  one  of  the  group,  and,  turning,  he 
saw  the  bulky  form  of  Captain  Aglionby  on  horseback 
outlined  against  the  light  from  the  distant  house.  Leaving 
Polignac  for  the  moment  Harry  made  straight  for  his  elder 
enemy,  who  was  wheeling  to  deal  with  the  new-comer.  It 
was  no  moment  for  nice  sword-play  on  either  side;  cut 
and  thrust,  lunge  and  parry  —  thus  the  two  engaged  in 
the  dark.  Blade  clashed  on  blade,  horse  pressed  against 
horse,  their  hoofs  struck  sparks;  nothing  to  choose  be- 
tween the  combatants  except  that  Aglionby  was  between 
Harry  and  the  light. 

Suddenly  the  captain  made  a  supreme  effort  to  quell  his 
assailant  by  main  force  for  good  and  all.  Rising  in  his 
saddle,  he  brought  his  sword  down  with  the  full  weight  of 
his  arm.  But,  thanks  to  the  friendly  light  from  Lindendaal, 
Harry  saw  the  movement  in  time.  Parrying  the  swashing 
blow  with  ease,  he  replied  with  a  thrust  that  tumbled  the 
captain  groaning  from  his  saddle.  The  horse  plunged  and 
galloped  madly  into  the  night.  Harry  did  not  wait  to  dis- 
cover the  full  effect  of  his  blow,  but  wheeled  round  to  find 
Polignac,  the  duel  on  his  left  having  terminated  in  the 
flight  of  one  of  the  parties  and  pursuit  by  the  other. 

At  the  moment  of  wheeling  he  heard  the  voice  of  Shere- 
biah  at  his  elbow. 

"Hold,  sir!     Tis  done.     Mounseer  ha'  paid  his  score." 

"You  have  killed  him?" 

"My  sword  went  through  un.  He  be  on  ground:  no 
risin'  for  he." 

"Then  secure  Aglionby.  He  fell  from  his  horse  a  few 
yards  up  the  road." 

He  himself  sprang  from  the  saddle  and  ran  to  the  door 
of  the  coach.  Wrenching  it  open,  he  saw  by  the  light  of 
the  lamp  Adele  de  Vaudrey  erect  on  the  seat,  supporting 
the  unconscious  form  of  her  mother.  The  girl's  cheeks 

381 


Zo! 

were  the  colour  of  death ;  her  lips  were  ashen ;  upon  her 
face  was  the  fixed  look  of  resigned  despair. 

"Mademoiselle,"  cried  Harry  breathlessly,  "all  is  well. 
You  are  safe." 

A  sob  broke  from  the  girl's  dry  lips;  tears  welled  in 
her  eyes. 

"  Mother  has  swooned,"  she  said  in  a  whisper. 

Harry  darted  to  the  canal  side,  stuck  his  handkerchief 
on  the  point  of  his  sword  and  let  it  down  to  the  water, 
returning  with  it  dripping  wet  to  the  coach.  Bathing  the 
lady's  temples  they  revived  her,  and  Adele  whispered  the 
news  that  they  were  safe.  Madame's  nerves  were  quite 
unstrung ;  incapable  of  heeding  what  was  said  to  her  she 
wept  and  laughed  alternately,  to  Harry's  great  alarm. 

"We  must  get  her  home,"  said  Adele. 

"Yes;  I  will  find  a  man  to  lead  the  coach.  You  will 
not  mind  my  going:  Mynheer  Grootz  is  wounded  two 
miles  away." 

•"  Oh,  Monsieur  Harry,  go  then  at  once.  I  can  take  care 
of  Mother." 

Harry  ran  back  to  the  road  to  find  Sherebiah,  who  in 
his  absence  had  made  an  examination  of  the  ground  with 
the  aid  of  the  carriage  lamp.  Polignac  was  stone  dead ; 
his  body  lay  at  the  very  brink  of  the  canal.  There  was  no 
sign  of  Aglionby  or  of  the  other  two  men,  though  traces 
of  blood  were  found  on  the  spot  where  the  captain  had 
fallen.  Of  the  house  party  two  men  were  badly  wounded ; 
these  Harry  despatched  to  the  house  for  ministration  while 
himself  with  Sherebiah  hurried  back  at  full  speed  to 
Mynheer  Grootz.  The  coach  stood  undisturbed  where 
they  had  left  it.  Grootz  lay  on  the  seat,  conscious  but 
very  weak. 

"  Well?"  he  said,  as  they  appeared. 

"Well,  thank  God!"  replied  Harry.  "The  ladies  are 
safe,  Polignac  is  dead,  Aglionby  and  the  rest  have  fled." 

"Zo!" 

Quite  content,  the  merchant  said  no  more.  He  was 
taken  at  a  walking  pace  to  Lindendaal. 

382 


CHAPTER  XXV 

A  Bundle  of  Letters 

SOME  hours  later,  when  Madame  de  Vaudrey  had  been 
composed  to  sleep,  and  the  three  patients  made  as  com- 
fortable as  possible  pending  the  arrival  of  the  doctor,  who 
had  been  summoned  from  the  village,  Adele  left  her 
mother's  bed-side  and  joined  Harry  in  the  dining-room. 

"  I  must  thank  you,"  she  said,  advancing  to  him  with 
outstretched  hands.  "  We  have  always  to  thank  you.  It 
seems  to  be  fated  that  you  should  save  us  from  that 
bad  man." 

"  He  will  trouble  you  no  more,  Mademoiselle." 

Adele  looked  a  question. 

"Yes,  he  is  dead." 

The  girl  shuddered,  and  looked  involuntarily  towards 
the  sword  at  Harry's  side. 

"  No,  it  was  not  I ;  it  was  my  man." 

There  was  a  look  of  relief  in  Adele's  face. 

"How  thankful  to  God  we  must  be  that  you  came  in 
time,  Monsieur!" 

"  Did  Madame  not  get  my  letter?" 

"  Did  you  write  a  letter?" 

"Yes;  I  learnt  some  time  ago  that  this  plot  was  hatch- 
ing, and  I  wrote  twice.  The  first  letter,  I  know,  must  have 
miscarried,  but  the  second — it  should  have  reached  you, 
for  I  am  sure  Mynheer  Grootz  must  have  received  a  letter 
written  at  the  same  time.  That  is  why  he  is  here  now." 

' '  We  have  been  away  from  home :  stay,  Monsieur,  I  will 
enquire." 

She  soon  returned  with  the  letter  unopened. 

"It  came  three  days  ago,"  she  said.  "We  have  been 
for  a  week  in  Breda;  there  were  festivities  given  by  the 
officers  of  the  garrison,  and  the  servants  did  not  think 

383 


Jealousy 


to  send  the  letter,  knowing-  that  we  should  soon  return. 
M.  de he  must  have  found  out  the  time  of  our  de- 
parture, and  so  planned  to  waylay  us.  But  we  were  late 
in  starting;  Mother  was  fatigued;  and  I  see  how  it  hap- 
pened. Mynheer  Grootz's  coach  was  taken  for  ours ;  when 
the — the  man  found  that  it  was  not,  he  thought  it  had 
been  sent  on  in  front  to  deceive  him.  Oh,  Monsieur  Harry, 
but  for  your  letter  to  Mynheer  Grootz,  and  your  coming  so 
soon  yourself — 

"Think  no  more  of  it,  Mademoiselle.  I  cannot  say  how 
glad  I  am  that  I  happened  to  be  able  to  serve  you.  For- 
give me ;  you  are  worn  out ;  it  will  not  do  to  have  another 
invalid,  you  know — 

Adele  smiled  in  answer. 

"Yes,  I  will  go  to  bed,"  she  said,  "and  I  do  thank  you 
for  Mother  and  myself." 

She  clasped  his  hands  again,  then  ran  from  the  room. 
Harry  had  never  seen  her  so  much  moved.  Hitherto  she 
had  always  been  so  cold,  so  reserved,  seeming  to  grudge 
the  few  words  that  courtesy  demanded.  Even  when 
something  claimed  her  active  help,  as  in  the  stratagem 
by  which  Lindendaal  had  been  saved  from  the  raiders 
nearly  eighteen  months  before,  she  had  acted,  indeed, 
with  decision  and  courage,  as  a  good  comrade,  but  had 
at  once  relapsed  into  her  former  attitude  of  aloofness, 
almost  disdain.  With  Fanshawe,  on  the  contrary,  she 
had  been  frank  and  gay,  ready  with  quip  and  jest,  gently 
correcting  his  French,  merrily  laughing  at  her  own  at- 
tempts to  speak  English,  never  wearying  of  accompany- 
ing on  the  harpsichord  his  west-country  songs,  which  she 
quickly  picked  up  by  ear.  Fanshawe  was  thoroughly  in 
love  with  her — and  Harry  remembered  with  a  pang  that 
he  bore  a  letter  from  Fanshawe  to  her  mother,  once  more 
urging  his  suit. 

"Confound  him!"  he  thought,  and,  his  hands  tight 
clasped  behind  him,  he  strode  up  and  down  the  room 
with  compressed  lips  and  lowering  brow. 

He  had  no  doubt  now  of  the  relationship  in  which  he 

384 


Hard  Facts 

stood  to  Fanshawe;  he  was  both  his  rival  and  friend. 
He  tried  to  face  the  situation  calmly.  Fanshawe  was  a 
good  fellow,  an  officer  in  the  English  army,  and  heir  to 
a  baronetcy  and  a  fine  estate.  He  could  sell  out  at  any 
moment,  and  doubtless  enjoy  by  the  liberality  of  his  father 
an  income  sufficient  to  maintain  a  wife  in  something  more 
than  comfort.  It  gave  Harry  a  pang  to  contrast  his  own 
position.  He  had  no  property,  no  family  influence,  nothing 
beyond  his  pay  and  the  income  so  generously  allowed  by 
Mynheer  Grootz.  True,  he  was  now  in  the  service  of 
Prince  Eugene,  and  the  circumstances  in  which  he  had 
joined  the  Austrian  service  gave  him  a  good  prospect  of 
ultimate  advancement ;  but  it  might  be  many  years  before 
he  could  venture  to  ask  a  lady  to  share  his  fortunes. 
Besides,  if  Mademoiselle  de  Vaudrey  was  indeed  heiress 
to  an  estate,  as  Simmons  had  reported,  a  poor  man  could 
not  seek  her  hand  without  incurring  the  suspicion  of  being 
a  fortune-hunter :  the  mere  suggestion  brought  a  hot  flush 
to  Harry's  cheeks.  No ;  he  could  but  stand  aside.  Fan- 
shawe had  failed  once ;  he  might  yet  succeed ;  and  if  it 
should  so  turn  out,  Harry  could  but  wish  his  friend  joy 
and  go  his  way. 

"  Heigh  ho!  Some  fellows  are  lucky!"  he  thought,  and, 
heaving  a  tremendous  sigh,  he  went  to  bed. 

A  good  night's  rest,  and  the  knowledge  that  Polignac 
could  never  disturb  her  again,  cured  Madame  de  Vaudrey's 
hysteria,  and  she  came  down  next  morning  somewhat  pale, 
but  in  her  usual  health.  After  breakfast  Harry  took  the 
first  opportunity  of  finding  his  hostess  alone,  to  deliver 
Fanshawe's  letter.  She  smiled  as  she  took  it  and  noticed 
the  handwriting. 

"From  that  dear  Monsieur  Fanshawe,  is  it  not?"  she 
said. 

"Yes,  Madame." 

"  What  can  he  have  to  write  about,  I  wonder?  Do  you 
know,  Harry?" 

"  Fanshawe  told  me,  and — well,  he  asked  me — that  is, 
I  promised  to  put  in  a  word  for  him." 

38S 


A  Special  Plea 


"Vraiment!  Then  I  think  I  guess  the  subject  of  his 
letter.  Come,  mon  ami,  what  have  you  to  say  for  him, 
then?" 

The  comtesse  watched  Harry  with  a  twinkle  of  enjoy- 
ment. Her  mother's  eye  had  penetrated  the  state  of  the 
case. 

"  Godfrey  is  a  good  fellow,  Madame ;  amiable — you  know 
that;  he  will  be  rich  some  day;  he — sings  a  good  song; 
he — in  short,  Madame,  he  is  very  fond  of  Mademoiselle, 
and — and " 

"And  would  make  a  good  husband,  you  think?  Well, 
my  dear  Harry,  I  shall  tell  Adele  that  he  has  written  to 
me,  and  repeat  what  you  have  said  in  his  behalf;  but  you 
know  her :  she  has  a  mind  of  her  own ;  and  I  can  only  give 
her  my  advice." 

And  she  left  Harry  in  a  tormenting  perplexity  as  to  what 
her  advice  would  be. 

It  was  a  week  or  two  before  Mynheer  Grootz  was  well 
enough  to  leave  his  room,  and  during  those  days  his 
kind  attendants  were  careful  to  avoid  all  but  the  most 
necessary  references  to  what  had  happened.  He  was  told 
that  Polignac  was  dead  and  the  hue  and  cry  was  out  after 
Aglionby,  and  his  convalescence  was  not  retarded  by  any 
fears  on  the  ladies'  behalf.  One  morning,  when  the  doctor 
allowed  him  to  come  downstairs,  he  sent  Harry  to  find 
Madame  de  Vaudrey.  It  was  time,  he  said,  that  the 
motive  of  Polignac's  recent  attempt  should  be  seriously 
considered. 

"Madame,"  he  said  in  French,  when  with  Harry  they 
were  closeted  in  the  reception-room,  "it  has  not  yet  been 
told  you,  but  we  have  reason  to  believe  that  Polignac 
urged  his  suit  upon  Adele  because  he  had  information  that 
she  is  heiress  to  some  estates." 

"As  she  is — heiress  to  Lindendaal." 

"Yes,  but  the  estates  in  question  must  be  of  greater 
value.  Your  little  estate  here  is  not  of  so  much  worth 
as  to  account  for  Polignac  promising  large  sums  to 
Aglionby,  first  on  his  marriage  with  Adele,  secondly  on  her 

386 


Family  History 


succession  to  her  property.  Tell  me,  Madame,  know  you 
of  anything  that  could  give  colour  to  the  beliefs  of  these 
wretches?" 

"  Nothing,  my  friend.  My  husband,  as  you  know  well, 
was  a  refugee,  an  exile :  his  family  estates  in  France  were 
confiscated  long  ago.  As  for  me,  I  had  nothing  but  my 
poor  little  dowry.  No  relatives  of  mine  are  owners  of 
estates." 

"But  on  Monsieur  le  Comte's  side:  his  mother:  she 
was  an  Englishwoman,  I  believe?" 

"Yes.  I  know  little  of  her;  she  died  very  soon  after 
the  birth  of  her  only  child,  my  dear  husband." 

"What  was  her  name?" 

"  I  do  not  remember.  Certainly  I  have  heard  it,  but 
it  is  many  years  ago,  and  English  names  are  so  difficult 
to  keep  in  mind." 

"  But  Monsieur  le  Comte — had  he  not  some  souvenir  of 
his  mother? — some  portrait,  or  heirloom,  or  family  papers ?" 

"  I  never  saw  any.  But  I  have  upstairs  a  box  in  which 
I  treasure  many  little  things  that  were  his :  perhaps  you 
would  like  to  see  it?" 

"Certainly.     It  would  be  as  well." 

Madame  de  Vaudrey  sent  a  servant  to  a  private  room 
in  the  turret,  whence  he  returned  presently  with  a  leather- 
covered  brass-studded  box.  After  some  search  the  key 
was  discovered,  the  box  was  opened,  and  the  comtesse 
took  out,  one  after  another,  various  memorials  of  her 
dead  husband.  Among,  them  was  a  bundle  of  papers 
tied  up  with  ribbon;  this  she  laid  with  trembling  hands 
before  her  friend. 

"You  permit  me,  Madame?"  he  said. 

She  nodded  through  her  tears. 

Grootz  untied  the  ribbon,  and  unfolded  the  topmost 
paper.  A  cursory  glance  showed  that  it  threw  no  light 
on  the  subject  all  had  at  heart.  Several  other  papers 
were  examined  with  a  like  result;  then,  nearly  at  the 
bottom  of  the  bundle,  Grootz  came  upon  a  smaller  packet 
separately  tied.  The  outer  wrapper  bore,  in  a  faded, 

387 


Brother  and  Sister 

delicate  handwriting,  the  words:  "  Dernieres  letters  de  la 
famille  de  feu  ma  chere  femme  ".  Harry  got  up  and  leant 
towards  him  in  some  excitement. 

"Wait,  my  son,"  said  Grootz;  "let  us  proceed  with 
quietness." 

He  opened  the  topmost  letter,  and  read  it  slowly  through. 

"It  tells  us  nothing,"  he  said.  "It  begins  'My  dear 
sister',  and  ends  'Eustace'.  We  go  to  the  next." 

Unfolding  this,  he  saw  at  the  top  the  date  June  12,  1659, 
and  an  address  in  London. 

"This  is  in  the  same  hand,"  he  said.  "  It  is  cramped; 
Harry,  your  eyes  are  young;  read  it,  my  boy,  aloud." 

Harry  took  the  letter  and  read: 


"  It  will  please  you  to  heare  the  Affaire  goes  according  to 
our  hopes.  The  people  are  well  dispos'd  to  the  Gentleman  you 
wot  of,  &  the  rule  of  the  Saintes  is  abhorr'd  of  the  moste.  But 
businesse  of  State  holds  lesse  in  your  Estimation  than  the  fortunes 
of  your  brother,  and  I  have  a  peece  of  Newes  that  will  put  your 
gentle  heart  all  in  a  Flutter.  What  do  'ee  think,  sweete?  You 
never  had  a  sister :  will  you  thanke  me  if  I  give  you  one?  There ! 
not  to  keepe  you  on  tenterhooks,  I  designe — now  is  yr  heart 
going  pit-a-pat — to  wed :  ay,  Mary,  your  brother  has  met  his 
fate.  This  daye  weeke  the  Knot  is  to  be  ty'd.  I  knowe  the 
questions  that  at  this  Newes  flocke  into  your  mind :  is  she  black 
or  faire,  tall  or  short,  of  court  or  cottage?  I  am  not  carefull  to 
answer;  you  shall  love  her,  my  sweet;  'tis  the  fairest,  dearest 
ladie  lucky  man  ever  wonne,  yonge,  freshe,  winsome  as  you  could 
wishe.  I  dare  not,  as  you  may  beleeve,  wed  in  my  owne  name ; 
'tis  too  perilous  as  yet,  my  Businesse  being  what  it  is ;  indeede, 
Lucy  herselfe  knows  not  of  my  family,  for  being  so  yonge  and 
simple,  she  might  let  fall  in  an  unwatch'd  moment  what  might 
bring  me  to  the  block.  She  shall  knowe  all  in  due  season.  I 
have  not  open'd  my  Designe  to  our  brother,  for  in  truthe  I  find  no 
reason  to  truste  him;  his  warm  professions  of  Zeale  for  us  seeme 
to  me  but  Flams.  I  feare  he  has  play'd  throughout  a  Double 
Game.  He  stands  exceeding  well  with  the  Godly  Partie,  & 
having  been  at  Paines  to  enquire  thro'  a  sure  friend  I  can 
heare  of  nothing  done  in  our  behalfe,  but  rather  of  endeavors 
to  feather  his  owne  nest.  But  enough  of  that ;  if  our  hopes  are 

388 


Marriage  Lines 


crown'd,  as  praye  God  they  may  be  speedilie,  Nicolas  will 
nave " 

Harry  paused  as  he  read  the  name. 

"Nicolas  will  have  no  choice  but  to  quitte  the  Hall,  and 

make  what  Profitte  he  may  of  his  owne  farmes.  Ask  in  yr  prayers 
that  the  Happie  Daie  be  hasten'd.  And  now  no  more  from  your 
righte  loving  Brother  EUSTACE." 

Harry  laid  the  letter  down,  and  looked  at  Mynheer 
Grootz. 

"  Why  did  you  pause?"  asked  the  Dutchman. 

"  'Twas  a  thought  I  had,  Mynheer.  It  may  be  vain. 
Before  I  say  more,  will  you  look  at  the  next  paper?" 

"H6!"  exclaimed  Madame  de  Vaudrey,  "I  am  be- 
coming" curious." 

Mynheer  Grootz  with  the  same  imperturbable  calm 
unfolded  the  next  paper  of  the  bundle. 

"This,"  he  said,  scanning  it  over  his  spectacles,  "is 
not  a  letter ;  it  is  a  document.  It  records  the  marriage, 
in  the  Huguenot  church  in  Paris,  on  May  2,  1658,  of 
Louis  Marie  Honored  Comte  de  Vaudrey,  aged  34,  with 
Mary  Berkeley," — he  pronounced  the  name  in  three 
syllables,  foreign  fashion— "  aged  22,  daughter  of  John 
Berkeley  Esquire  of  Winton  Hall,  in  the  county  of  Wilt- 
shire, England." 

"  'Tis  found!"  cried  Harry,  springing  up  in  excitement. 
"We  call  the  name  Barkley  in  England;  Madame,  Mon- 
sieur le  Comte  was  the  son  of  Mr.  Berkeley's  sister;  he 
is  the  squire  of  my  own  village  Winton  St.  Mary;  without 
a  doubt  it  is  his  estates  to  which  Mademoiselle  is  heiress. 
What  a  discovery  we  have  made ! " 

"  Stay,  Harry,"  said  Mynheer  Grootz  quietly;  "  did  you 
not  tell  me  that  your  squire  has  a  son?" 

"Yes,  yes,  but  now  I  remember:  at  home  I  have  heard 
it  said  that  Mr.  Berkeley  was  lord  of  the  manor  only  by 
default  of  other  heirs :  yes,  it  comes  back  to  me  now : 
the  villagers  did  not  like  him;  they  grudged  him  his 

389 


A   Fair  Claimant 

estate;  he  was  stepson  of  the  former  squire,  and  step- 
brother of  the  lady  who  became  Comtesse  de  Vaudrey." 

"Still  I  do  not  understand.  The  lady  had  a  brother — 
the  gentleman  whose  name  was  Eustace ;  being-  employed 
in  state  business,  to  do  with  the  restoration  of  your  King 
Charles,  I  think,  he  was  doubtless  the  elder  of  the  two: 
he  would  be  his  father's  heir,  and  his  children  after  him. 
The  letter,  you  see,  announces  his  approaching  marriage." 

"You  are  right,  Mynheer.  I  heard  him  talked  of,  too; 
he  was  killed  in  a  fray  with  highwaymen  on  the  Dover 
road,  when  he  was  returning  from  France,  after  King 
Charles  came  back,  to  claim  his  estates.  Yes,  the  squire's 
family  history  is  well  known  in  the  village ;  but  I  never 
heard  of  a  Mistress  Eustace  Berkeley;  perhaps  the 
marriage  did  not  take  place  after  all." 

"  It  would  seem  so." 

"It  must  be  so,"  cried  Harry.  "Do  you  not  now  see 
Captain  Aglionby's  part?  When  he  stayed  with  you, 
Madame,  six  years  ago,  he  must  have  discovered  Monsieur 
le  Comte's  relationship  with  Mr.  Berkeley ;  that  explains 
his  hold  over  the  squire;  it  explains  also  the  scheme 
arranged  between  him  and  Monsieur  de  Polignac.  Indeed, 
it  is  clear  as  daylight :  the  captain  bled  Mr.  Berkeley  on 
pretence  of  keeping  his  secret ;  and  he  sold  that  secret 
to  Polignac." 

"The  odious  man!"  exclaimed  Madame  de  Vaudrey, 
who  sat  in  a  state  of  perfect  amazement  as  link  after  link 
was  added  to  the  chain. 

"A  very  villain!"  said  Grootz,  smiting  the  table. 
"Madame,  it  appears  that  Adele  is  indeed  the  rightful 
owner  of  the  estates  now  held  by  this  miscreant  Berkeley, 
and  I,  Jan  Grootz,  will  make  it  my  business,  as  soon  as  I 
am  recovered,  to  see  that  right  is  done." 

"And  it  is  to  Harry  that  we  owe  it  all!  Oh,  my  dear 
Harry,  Adele  shall  thank  you !  If  only  my  dear  husband 
could  have  lived  to  bless  you  too!" 

"Zo!"  exclaimed  Grootz.  "But,  Madame,  I  have  a 
'  thing  to  say.  Adele  shall  thank  Harry;  yes;  but  I  say 

390 


Air  Castles 

tell  her  nothing  until  I  have  been  to  London,  and  with 
the  aid  of  English  law  have  overthrown  the  villain  Berke- 
ley. It  will  be  best;  yes,  it  will  be  best." 

"  Very  well,  my  friend.  Dear  Adele!  to  think  of  her  as 
lady  of  an  English  manor!  She  has  thought  much  of  her 
English  grandmother:  she  will  love  to  live  in  England ; 
I  have  no  English  blood  in  me,  and  I  dread  the  sea;  but 
I  must  live  with  her,  of  course  I  must." 

Grootz  compressed  his  lips. 

"II  ne  faut  pas  vendre  la  peau  de  1'ours  avant  de  1'avoir 
tueV'  he  said  sententiously. 


(BS5T)  391 


CHAPTER   XXVI 

The  New   Squire 

GILES  APPLEYARD,  giving  a  flick  to  the  off  leader,  scraped 
his  well-rasped  chin  over  the  stiff  collar  of  his  coat  and 
addressed  the  outside  passenger  who  had  just  mounted 
his  coach  at  Basingstoke. 

"Why,  Willum  Nokes,"  he  said,  "'tis  many  a  long 
day  since  I  set  eyes  on  your  noble  frame.  How's  the 
wicked  world  sarven  'ee,  Willum?" 

"Fairish,  Giles  coachman,  on'y  fairish.  A've  never  bin 
the  same  man  since  that  tarrible  day  when  John  Simmons 
gi'  me  the  go-by.  Ay,  I  were  constable  then,  a-sarven  the 
Queen  and  Sir  Godfrey,  and  wi'  the  bodies  of  all  the  souls 
in  Winton  Simmary  under  me.  Now  I  be  on'y  parish 
beadle  at  Basingstoke,  sarvant  to  pa'son,  and  rulen  over 
none  but  the  misbehaven  childer  in  church." 

He  sighed  and  shook  his  head. 

"Ay,  and  th'  on'y  thing  as  keeps  me  above  ground  is  a 
journey  once  a  year  to  th'  old  place,  where  I  wanders  round 
a-thinken  deep  things  o'  the  noble  line  o'  life  as  used 
to  be." 

"Ay,  poor  soul,  'ee  did  truly  make  a  gashly  fool  o'  yer- 
self  that  day,  Willum.  Well,  better  a  live  fool  than  a  dead 
'oss,  as  you  med  say." 

"An'  yerself,  Giles — you  looks  hale  an'  hearty  as  ever  I 
seed  'ee." 

"Ay,  Willum,  I  goos  up  an'  down  the  world  rain  or 
shine,  merry  as  a  grig." 

"  'Ee  must  see  a  powerful  deal  o'  life,  Giles;  all  sarts  an' 
perditions  o'  men,  as  pa'son  sings  in  church.  Who  med  be 
your  insides  to-day,  if  I  med  axe  so  homely  a  quest'on?" 

"Only  two  to-day,  Willum.  There  be  little  travellen 
392 


Jonahs 


for  a  week  or  two  arter  Christmas.  One  on  'em  be  a  Dutch 
skipper;  I  mind  I  carried  un  once  afore;  ay,  'twas  the 
same  day  as  young-  pa'son  Rochester  and  Sherry  Minshull 
rode  a-top,  all  agwine  to  Lun'on.  Young  pa'son  be  now  a 
sojer,  so  'tis  said,  arr'  hob-a-nob  wi'  the  mighty  o'  the  earth. 
The  way  o'  the  world,  Willum ;  some  goos  up,  like  young 
pa'son ;  some  goos  down,  like  Willum  Nokes ;  some  goos 
steady,  like  Giles  Appleyard ;  eh,  soul?" 

"Ay,  'tis  constables  goos  down,  a'  b'lieve.  But  who 
be  your  other  inside,  coachman?" 

"  Why,  no  one  an't  telled  me,  but  I'd  take  my  affidavy 
afore  any  justice  o'  peace  'tis  a  limb  o'  the  law.  I  knows 
they  sart.  They  ought  to  pay  double;  for  why?  'cause 
bean't  safe  to  carry;  last  time  I  carried  a  lawyer  fore  off 
wheel  broke  as  we  trundled  through  Winterslow.  When 
I  seed  this  chap  at  Angel  and  Crown  this  marnen,  says  I 
to  myself,  'Zooks!'  says  I,  'what  poor  mortal  soul  be 
agwine  to  suffer  now?' ' 

For  the  rest  of  the  journey  coachman  and  passenger  ex- 
changed gossip  on  their  common  acquaintances.  William 
Nokes  alighted  at  the  Queen's  Head,  at  Winton  St.  Mary, 
and  shook  his  head  in  sympathy  with  Mistress  Joplady 
when  he  saw  the  two  inside  passengers  descend  from  the 
coach  and  enter  the  inn. 

"  One  a  furrener,  t'other  a  lawyer!"  he  muttered.  "  Ah! 
what  tarrible  things  some  poor  souls  ha'  got  to  putt  up  wi'!" 

Mistress  Joplady,  however,  welcomed  both  her  guests 
with  her  wanted  heartiness,  and  with  her  own  hands  plied 
the  warming-pan  for  their  beds. 

At  ten  o'clock  next  morning  the  two  strangers  left  the 
inn  together.  One  of  them  carried  a  small  portfolio. 
They  went  through  the  village,  across  the  common,  and, 
entering  the  park  gates  of  Winton  Hall,  walked  up  the 
long  drive  to  the  porch  and  asked  whether  Mr.  Berkeley 
was  at  home.  After  a  few  minutes'  delay  they  were  invited 
to  step  in,  and  conducted  to  a  little  room  in  the  turret, 
where  they  found  the  squire  in  cassock  and  skull-cap, 
warming  his  withered  hands  at  the  fire. 

393 


Step-brothers 


"  Mr.  Berkeley?"  said  the  elder  of  the  two. 

"That  is  my  name.     What  is  your  business?" 

"My  name,  sir,  Jan  Grootz.  My  friend  Mr.  Swetten- 
ham  Tape,  of  Lincoln's  Inn." 

"Well?" 

"You  will  permit  me  to  take  a  chair;  dank  you!  And 
my  friend  Mr.  Tape;  dank  you!" 

At  the  mention  of  his  name,  Mr.  Berkeley  flashed  a 
shrewd  glance  under  his  bushy  white  eyebrows  at  the 
Dutchman,  then  gripped  the  arms  of  his  chair,  and  waited. 

"  Mr.  Berkeley,  my  business  will  not  hold  you  long. 
You  will  pardon  if  I  begin  at  de  beginning  and  tell  you 
a  little  history?" 

The  squire  kept  his  eyes  fixed  on  his  visitor,  but  said 
nothing.  Taking  his  silence  as  permission  to  proceed, 
Grootz  settled  himself  in  his  chair,  with  his  plump  right 
hand  ready  to  punctuate  his  sentences. 

"Dis  history  dat  I  tell  you,  sir,  I  hope  you  will  find  it 
interesting.  It  is  ver  much  about  yourself;  you  are  old 
man,  but  of  dose  old  men,  pardon  me,  who  regard  dem- 
selves  as  de  most  interesting  subjeck  in  de  world ;  zo ! 
De  history  begin  long  ago;  zixty-vive  year  indeed,  when 
your  shadow  first  zink  over  dis  place."  Grootz's  hand 
made  a  comprehensive  sweep.  "You  were  den  Nicolas 
Heller,  an  eleven-year  boy ;  your  moder,  a  widow,  she  had 
married  Mr.  John  Berkeley,  a  widower,  wid  two  children, 
one" — here  the  forefinger  wagged — "Eustace  Berkeley,  a 
nine-year  boy ;  de  oder,  Mary,  a  child  four  year.  On  your 
moder  Mr.  Berkeley  settle  de  farms  of — of— 

"  Winton  Chase  and  Odbury,"  said  Mr.  Swettenham 
Tape,  speaking  for  the  first  time. 

"  Zo;  de  farms  of  Winton  Chase  and  Odbury;  you  took 
de  name  Berkeley,  and  after  your  moder  dese  farms  should 
become  yours.  Dree  years  go,  your  moder  die ;  Mr.  John 
Berkeley  is  again  a  widower,  and  never  marry  no  more. 
War  had  broke  out,  he  take  part  wid  de  king  and  fight 
in  de  vield,  your  step-broder  alzo  whenever  he  is  of  age 
to  bear  arms.  But  Nicolas,  poor  boy!  is  not  strong,  he 

394 


Whose  Gain? 

is  always  at  home  to  care  for  de  estates;  besides,  he 
do  not  love  de  king;  no,  Nicolas  never  love  nobody — 
nobody  but  himself." 

Grootz  paused  and  bent  a  little  forward  in  his  chair;  the 
squire  had  not  moved  a  muscle. 

"  De  king  is  killed,  Oliver  Cromwell  is  ruler  in  de 
land,  and  after  de  battle  of  Worcester,  Mr.  John  Berkeley, 
his  son  and  daughter,  go  for  safety  to  France.  But 
Nicolas — he  find  dat  he  is  a  Puritan,  a  saint  in  heart;  he 
give  money — it  was  not  his  to  give — to  de  Parliament  side, 
and  he  speak  of  his  stepfader — of  de  man,  mark  you,  to 
whom  he  owe  everyding — as  a  traitor,  a  malignant.  At 
same  time  he  write  letters  to  de  traitor  in  France  telling 
how  he  work  to  keep  his  estate  for  him,  if  chance  come  he 
zall  return  and  enjoy  his  own.  How  kind  is  Nicolas ! 
zo! 

"Time  flows;  de  chance  come;  King  Charles  wears 
his  fader's  crown,  but  Mr.  John  Berkeley  is  not  alive 
to  return  alzo.  In  1658  he  die.  But  his  son,  Nicolas' 
stepbroder  Eustace,  what  of  him?  In  June  1660  he  come 
back  to  claim  his  inheritance,  but  he  never  see  his  home. 
No,  on  de  road  he  is  set  upon  and  murdered." 

Still  the  old  man  sat  rigid  in  grim  silence. 

"  De  murder  of  Eustace  Berkeley,  whom  do  it  profit? 
De  men  who  killed  him? — not  zo;  dey  stay  not  to  empty 
his  pockets.  It  profit  nobody  but  Nicolas  Berkeley. 
Dink  you  not  dat  is  singular?  To  me  it  is  very  singular. 
Zo!" 

The  Dutchman  spoke  always  with  the  same  careful 
deliberation.  His  tone  now  became  stern. 

"  I  come  now,  Mr.  Berkeley,  to  someding  dat  interest 
you  more.  Mr.  John  Berkeley  had,  not  only  a  son,  but 
alzo  a  daughter."  The  keen-eyed  Dutchman  noticed  a 
slight  twitching  of  the  squire's  brow.  "Ah,  I  thought 
dat  would  interest  you!  De  daughter,  Mary,  marry  in 
Paris  de  Comte  d/2  Vaudrey,  a  nobleman,  a  Huguenot; 
dat  is  not  long  before  King  Charles  come  back.  Her 
broder  Eustace  risk  his  life  to  come  to  England  on  service 

395 


The   Female  Line 

for  his  sovereign ;  he  write  letters  to  his  sister ;  interesting 
letters;  I  take  leave  to  read  you  someding  he  said." 

He  took  the  portfolio  from  the  lawyer's  hands,  selected 
a  paper  from  it,  and  read  the  following  passage: — 

"  '  I  feare  he  has  play'd  throughout  a  Double  Game.  He 
stands  exceeding  well  with  the  Godly  Partie,  &  having  been  at 
Paines  to  enquire  thro'  a  sure  friend  I  can  heare  of  nothing 
done  in  our  behalfe,  but  rather  of  endeavors  to  feather  his 
owne  nest.  But  enough  of  that;  if  our  hopes  are  crown'd,  as 
praye  God  they  may  be  speedilie,  Nicolas  will  have  no  choice  but 
to  quitte  the  Hall,  and  make  what  Profitte  he  may  of  his  owne 
farmes.' 

"Zo!  dis  letter,  and  oders,  was  received  by  Madame  la 
Comtesse  de  Vaudrey — dat  is,  Mary  Berkeley — when  her 
husband  was  absent  from  Paris.  He  return ;  de  poor  lady 
is  dying ;  she  leave  a  little  boy.  He  write  to  Eustace  from 
Paris ;  he  get  no  reply ;  he  write  again,  dree  times  in  all ; 
still  no  reply,  and  he  dink  his  wife's  friends  English  and  care 
not  any  more.  As  for  him,  he  has  pride  and  keep  silence, 
and  believe  Eustace  Berkeley  is  now  lord  of  Winton  Hall. 

"  Zo  time  pass.  Den  come  trouble  to  de  Huguenots  in 
France,  and  de  Comte  de  Vaudrey  take  refuge  wid  his  son 
in  Holland.  He  read  no  English;  but  he  keep  dings  dat 
belong  to  his  wife,  among  dem  de  letters  of  Eustace.  His 
son  Louis  marry  in  Holland  a  Huguenot  lady.  Fader,  son, 
both  are  dead,  but" — he  wagged  his  forefinger  impressively 
— "but  Louis  Comte  de  Vaudrey  leave  a  daughter,  Adele, 
and  it  is  on  behalf  of  Mademoiselle  Adele  de  Vaudrey  I 
wait  upon  you  to-day.  I  know  well  dese  dings  are  not  new 
to  you ;  I  know  dat.  It  is  now  some  years  when  Captain 
Aglionby  —  an  adventurer,  a  cut-droat  —  discover  how 
Mademoiselle  Adele  is  related  to  de  house  of  Berkeley. 
Already  he  know  someding  of  you;  he  have  an  uncle 
Minshull  dat  live  on  your  estate.  He  see  a  chance  to 
feader  his  very  bare  nest,  and  he  take  it.  You  are  de 
squire,  he  dink ;  a  rich  man ;  you  will  pay  well  to  keep 
de  secret.  He  come  to  you ;  you  do  pay  well ;  you  become 

396 


The  End  of  the  Story 

his  generous  patron,  and  he  do  your  dirty  work.  But 
sometimes  you  lose  temper,  and  give  him  hard  words  and 
close  your  purse.  Perhaps,  dink  he,  he  may  find  yet 
anoder  rich  man  who  will  buy  de  secret.  Such  a  man  is 
Monsieur  de  Polignac.  Your  Aglionby  take  money  from 
you,  and  bargain  wid  Polignac  to  get  more  money  when 
he  become  by  marriage  owner  of  dis  estate  and  turn  you 
out.  But  de  plan  is  found  out ;  we  have  settle  with 
Polignac;  he  is  dead;  we  search  for  Aglionby;  he  hide 
himself;  and  now,  Mr.  Berkeley,  it  is  your  turn.  I  come 
to  you  to  demand,  on  behalf  of  Mademoiselle  Adele  de 
Vaudrey,  possession  of  her  property  in  seven  days  from 
dis  present  day.  My  friend  Mr.  Tape  of  Lincoln's  Inn 
have  copies  of  all  de  papers ;  he  will  show  dem,  at  proper 
time,  to  your  lawyer.  De  history  is  now  at  end,  Mr. 
Berkeley.  I  dank  you  for  your  zo-patient  hearing  It  is 
now  to  you ;  zo ! " 

Mr.  Berkeley  had  spoken  never  a  word.  For  a  few 
moments  he  remained  motionless  in  his  chair;  then, 
lengthening  Ms  arm,  he  pulled  a  bell-rope  at  his  side.  A 
servant  entered. 

"Thomas,"  said  the  squire  in  his  thin  hard  voice, 
"  show  these  gentlemen  to  the  door." 

Grootz  and  the  lawyer  glanced  at  each  other.  The 
latter  gave  a  slight  shrug  and  began  to  tie  up  his  port- 
folio. Grootz  rose. 

"  I  have  de  honour,  Mr.  Berkeley,  to  wish  you  good- 
day." 

And  with  his  companion  he  left  the  room. 

An  hour  later  the  village  was  startled  by  the  news  that 
the  squire  had  had  a  stroke.  A  man  had  ridden  to  Salis- 
bury for  the  physician,  and  the  gossips  at  the  Queen's 
Head  were  already  discussing  the  expected  succession  of 
"  young  squire  "  to  the  estates.  But  in  the  afternoon  the 
report  was  contradicted.  The  squire  had  merely  been 
seized  with  a  fainting  fit ;  he  had  recovered  and  was  to  all 
appearance  his  usual  self. 

397 


Treason 

A  week  passed ;  Mr.  Berkeley  had  received  from  Mr. 
Swettenham  Tape  of  Lincoln's  Inn  a  formal  demand  for 
the  surrender  of  the  property,  to  which  he  made  no 
reply.  At  the  end  of  the  week  Mr.  Tape  filed  a  suit  in 
chancery.  But  the  mills  of  the  law  grind  slowly.  Grootz 
had  returned  to  Holland,  a  new  campaign  had  opened, 
and  Harry  Rochester  was  with  Prince  Eugene  in  northern 
Italy  before  Mr.  Swettenham  Tape  had  all  his  affidavits 
sworn. 

A  few  weeks  before  the  case  was  to  be  opened  before 
Lord  Chancellor  Cowper,  a  bailiff  armed  with  a  warrant, 
and  accompanied  by  two  strong'  tipstaves,  appeared  at 
the  house  of  a  Mistress  Consterdine  near  the  Cockpit, 
Whitehall.  The  bailiff  gained  admittance,  and  when  after 
some  time  he  returned  to  the  street  he  was  accompanied 
by  a  tall  bulky  man  in  semi-military  garb,  with  whom  he 
and  the  tipstaves  entered  a  hackney  coach  and  were  driven 
to  Newgate.  The  prisoner  was  at  once  brought  before 
the  magistrate  and  charged  under  the  name  of  Ralph 
Aglionby  with  entering  into  a  treasonable  conspiracy  on 
behalf  of  the  exiled  Stuarts.  In  addition  to  the  letters 
taken  in  his  lodging,  other  papers  that  had  been  brought 
from  Germany  were  put  in  by  the  Crown,  proving  Aglionby 
to  have  been  in  the  service  of  Her  Majesty's  enemies ;  and 
a  man  Simmons,  a  joiner  in  London,  who  had  received  a 
free  pardon,  gave  evidence  that  Aglionby  had  fought  with 
the  Bavarians  at  Blenheim  and  elsewhere,  holding  a  com- 
mission in  the  Elector  of  Bavaria's  forces.  His  papers 
were  found  to  include  letters  from  Mr.  Nicolas  Berkeley  of 
Winton  Hall,  forwarding  sums  of  money  to  Aglionby  in 
Holland.  The  sequel  to  this  discovery  was  the  arrest  of 
Mr.  Berkeley  at  his  inn  in  Soho,  and  his  inclusion  in  the 
indictment  for  conspiracy. 

The  trial  came  on  in  due  course.  Captain  Aglionby's 
connection  with  the  Jacobites  was  fully  established,  and 
he  was  sentenced  to  be  transported  to  the  Plantations 
for  twenty  years.  Mr.  Berkeley's  complicity  was  not  so 
clearly  shown,  though  he  could  bring  no  evidence  to  prove 

398 


The  Fleet 

his  statement  that  the  sums  remitted  to  his  fellow-prisoner 
were  payment  for  private  services  totally  unconnected  with 
the  Jacobite  cause.  The  circumstances  were  suspicious, 
and  the  judge  considered  that  he  showed  great  lenience  in 
condemning-  Mr.  Berkeley  to  pay  a  fine  of  £500.  Although 
he  had  for  years  enjoyed  a  large  income,  he  had  but  little 
ready  money  at  command.  He  had  spent  large  sums  in 
purchasing  lands  adjoining  the  Winton  property,  and  the 
extravagance  of  his  son  had  been  a  constant  drain  upon 
his  purse.  With  the  civil  action  de  Vaudrey  v.  Berkeley 
pending  in  the  court  of  chancery,  he  found  some  difficulty 
in  borrowing  sufficient  money  to  pay  his  fine. 

The  chancery  suit  came  on  for  hearing.  The  claimants 
had  engaged  the  highest  counsel  of  the  day,  and  brought 
a  great  array  of  evidence,  documentary  and  oral,  from 
Holland.  Mr.  Berkeley's  case  was  ably  argued,  but  the 
evidence  was  irresistible ;  the  decision  was  given  against 
him  ;  he  was  ordered  to  produce  the  title  deeds  of  the 
property,  and  to  render  an  account  of  all  that  he  had 
derived  from  the  estates  since  his  illegal  usurpation  of 
them  forty-five  years  before.  He  wished  to  appeal;  but, 
discredited  by  the  result  of  the  trial  for  conspiracy,  he  was 
unable  to  raise  the  necessary  funds.  He  was  moving 
heaven  and  earth  to  overcome  his  difficulties  when  pay- 
ment was  demanded  of  the  sum  he  had  borrowed  to  meet 
the  fine,  and  as  the  money  was  not  forthcoming  he  was 
arrested  and  thrown  into  the  debtors'  prison  in  the  Fleet. 

It  was  December  before  the  case  was  finally  decided. 
As  soon  as  Mynheer  Grootz  was  released  from  his  business 
cares  by  the  armies  going  into  winter  quarters,  he  accom- 
panied Madame  de  Vaudrey  with  Adele  and  part  of  their 
household  to  England,  and  saw  them  installed  in  Winton 
Hall.  At  Adele's  wish,  Mr.  Berkeley  was  not  pressed 
for  the  costs  of  the  suit  he  had  lost ;  but  his  other  creditors 
were  relentless,  and  determined  to  keep  him  in  the  Fleet 
prison  until  the  income  from  the  farms  he  inherited  from 
his  mother  should  have  enabled  him  to  pay  his  debts. 

It  was  many  months  before  Harry  learnt  of  the  success 

399 


In  Italy  with  Eugene 

of  Grootz's  efforts  on  behalf  of  Adele.  In  March,  1705, 
he  left  Austria  with  Prince  Eugene  for  Italy,  where  the 
prince's  cousin,  Victor  Amadeus  the  Second  of  Savoy,  was 
maintaining  a  difficult  struggle  against  Marshal  Vendome. 
He  was  with  the  prince  at  the  indecisive  battle  of  Cassano 
in  August,  and  spent  the  winter  in  Turin.  There  letters 
reached  him  from  England  telling  how  Adele  had  taken 
up  her  residence  at  Winton  as  lady  of  the  manor,  and 
when  he  wrote  his  warm  letter  of  congratulation  he  said  to 
himself  that  his  fate  was  now  sealed.  At  Turin  also  he 
received  a  letter  from  Fanshawe  reporting  his  father's 
death  and  his  own  determination  to  sell  out  and  live  on 
his  estate.  This  news  gave  Harry  afresh  pang,  for,  though 
he  knew  that  Fanshawe's  suit  had  been  again  rejected,  he 
felt  that  as  next-door  neighbours  Adele  and  he  would  see 
much  of  each  other,  and  their  constant  companionship 
might  at  length  end  in  a  match  which  on  many  grounds 
must  be  considered  excellent. 

Next  year  he  served  Prince  Eugene  as  aide-de-camp  at 
the  battle  of  Calcinate  in  April,  and  again  five  months 
later  at  the  brilliant  victory  of  Turin,  when  the  prince,  by 
his  total  defeat  of  the  Duke  of  Orleans  and  Marshal 
Marsin,  finally  saved  Savoy  from  the  clutches  of  King 
Louis.  His  own  services  did  not  go  unrewarded.  The 
prince  gave  him  the  colonelcy  of  an  imperial  dragoon 
regiment,  and  held  out  hopes  that  if  he  remained  in  the 
emperor's  service  he  might  before  long  gain  an  estate 
and  a  title  of  nobility.  But  a  few  days  after  the  battle, 
he  received  from  England  a  letter  which  altered  the  whole 
course  of  his  life.  It  was  a  short  note  from  Madame  de 
Vaudrey,  written  at  Winton  nearly  three  months  before. 
Certain  circumstances  had  come  to  light,  wrote  the  lady, 
that  rendered  his  presence  at  Winton  desirable  as  soon 
as  he  could  obtain  leave.  It  was  nearly  four  years  since 
the  black  day  on  which  he  had  left  his  home  so  sadly; 
he  was  hungry  for  a  sight  of  the  old  scenes  and  the  old 
faces,  and  felt  something  more  than  curiosity  to  see  Adele 
de  Vaudrey  as  lady  bountiful  of  the  parish.  He  went  at 

400 


Home 

once  to  Prince  Eugene  with  the  letter;  the  prince  drew 
from  him  the  whole  story  of  his  connection  with  the 
family  of  Lindendaal,  and  with  a  twinkling  eye  consented 
to  his  immediate  departure  for  England. 

"The  French  will  give  us  no  more  trouble  here,"  he 
said.  "My  next  battle  will  be  fought  on  other  soil.  I 
said  before,  you  remember,  that  you  were  in  love.  You 
thought  not.  We  shall  see.  Go  home ;  but  the  war  is  not 
over.  I  shall  hope  to  see  you  at  the  head  of  your  regiment 
in  the  next  campaign." 

Sherebiah  was  as  much  delighted  as  his  master  at  the 
thought  of  seeing  home  again. 

"To  tell  'ee  the  truth,  sir,"  he  said,  when  Harry  ordered 
him  to  make  preparations  for  departure,  "  I  be  a-thinken 
o'  Katrinka.  I  don't  feel  happy  in  my  mind  at  the  notion 
o'  her  at  Winton  Simmary  wi'out  me.  Why,  old  feyther 
o'  mine,  ancient  soul  as  he  be,  if  he  knows  what  a  hand 
her've  got  for  griddle-cakes — zooks !  sir,  he'll  be  a-marryen 
her  hisself,  never  thinken  as  I  be  more'n  a  boy." 

One  October  day  Harry  and  Sherebiah  embarked  at 
Leghorn  for  the  voyage  home.  Their  vessel  made  quick 
sailing  as  far  as  Gibraltar,  where  Sir  George  Rooke  had 
planted  the  flag  of  England  two  years  before;  but  was 
beset  by  contrary  winds  in  the  Atlantic,  beat  about  for 
days  in  the  Bay  of  Biscay,  and  reached  Southampton  sadly 
buffeted  six  weeks  after  leaving  Leghorn.  The  travellers 
lost  no  time  in  taking  horse,  and  rode  up  to  Winton  Hall 
late  one  November  evening.  Harry  was  received  with  a 
warmth  of  greeting  that  made  him  glow  with  pleasure. 
Even  Adele  welcomed  him  with  more  frankness  than  she 
had  ever  before  shown  him,  though  he  detected  a  different 
constraint,  a  something  new  in  her  manner,  that  puzzled 
him.  The  evening  was  spent  in  talking  over  old  times 
and  the  strange  events  that  had  happened  since  their  last 
meeting.  Mynheer  Grootz,  Harry  learnt,  had  visited 
Winton  more  than  once  since  he  had  installed  Adele  in 
her  property  nearly  a  year  before,  and  was  coming  over 
to  spend  Christmas  with  them.  Godfrey  Fanshawe,  now 

401 


Adele  Studies  Geography 

Sir  Godfrey,  was  a  frequent  visitor  and  had  been  the 
means  of  introducing  them  to  many  of  the  best  people  in 
the  county,  who  had  welcomed  Adele  with  open  arms. 
Madame  afterwards  told  Harry  privately  that  Sir  Godfrey 
had  once  more  proposed  to  Ad/ele,  and  been  finally  refused. 
Adele  herself  looked  older  and  more  womanly.  She  had 
acquired  considerable  fluency  in  English,  and  was  fond 
of  going  about  among  the  villagers,  taking  the  keenest 
interest  in  ways  of  life  and  thought  so  novel  to  her. 

"But  the  dear  girl  is  not  happy,"  said  Madame  with 
a  sigh.  "No,  she  is  not  happy.  I  fear  she  is  home-sick. 
We  have  sold  Lindendaal  and  repaid  Mynheer  Grootz's 
friend  who  so  generously  bought  up  that  odious  man's 
mortgages.  But  Adele  was  happier  at  Lindendaal  than 
she  is  here.  She  has  been  restless  ever  since  we  came 
to  England,  and  you  would  be  surprised  to  know,  Harry, 
how  she  throws  herself  lately  into  the  details  of  this 
horrible  war.  The  Courant  comes  to  us  every  day  by 
the  coach  from  London,  and  the  house  is  littered,  perfectly 
littered,  mon  ami,  with  maps  of  Italy.  Decidedly  she  is 
a  changed  creature." 

"Mamma,"  interrupted  Adele,  "don't  give  Monsieur 
Harry  a  wrong  idea.  I  am  happy  enough,  but " 

"H6!  voila!"  exclaimed  Madame  with  a  little  gesture. 
"  She  is  happy,  but " 

"And  what  is  this  business  that  required  my  presence?" 
said  Harry,  to  relieve  the  girl  of  her  manifest  embarrass- 
ment. 

"Oh!  Adele  must  explain  that.  It  has  been  her  affair 
always. " 

"Really,  Mamma,  I  think  you  should  explain.  You 
wrote  to  Monsieur  Harry." 

"Eh  bien!  but  it  was  you  who  told  me  what  to  say. 
No,  I  leave  it  to  you :  I  have  no  head  for  affairs,  especially 
for  affairs  so  complicated.  But  it  is  growing  late,  and 
Harry  must  be  tired.  We  will  let  him  have  a  good  night's 
rest:  then  to-morrow,  ma  che"rie,  you  can  have  a  whole 
morning  together." 

402 


Lady   Bountiful 


The  morning  turned  out  bright,  and  after  breakfast 
Adele  proposed  a  walk  round  the  grounds.  Harry  was 
nothing  loth,  and  when  Madame  did  not  offer  to  accom- 
pany them,  he  concluded  that,  living  in  England,  she  had 
decided  to  conform  to  English  ways.  In  the  course  of  that 
ramble  Harry  heard  a  story  that  amazed  him. 

During  the  past  year  Adele  had  made  many  friends 
among  the  villagers,  and  one  friend  in  particular,  old 
Gaffer  Minshull.  She  had  been  specially  gracious  to  him 
for  the  sake  of  Katrinka,  who,  however  quick  she  might 
be  in  learning  how  to  cook  Wiltshire  bacon  and  to  sing 
Wiltshire  songs,  was  certainly  slow  in  learning  Wiltshire 
English.  The  Lady  Squire,  as  he  called  her,  had  become 
a  great  favourite  with  the  old  man,  and,  as  she  grew 
accustomed  to  his  dialect,  he  talked  to  her  freely  about 
the  village,  the  late  parson,  and  the  late  squire,  of  whom 
he  was  no  longer  "  afeard  ".  Adele,  like  everyone  else, 
had  always  been  puzzled  about  Mr.  Berkeley's  hatred  of 
Harry,  and  she  asked  the  old  man  whether  he  knew  of 
any  reason  for  it  beyond  his  being  the  son  of  the  squire's 
sturdy  opponent,  Parson  Rochester.  Minshull  confessed 
that  he  was  as  much  perplexed  as  she.  The  old  squire's 
man  Jock  had  told  him  of  the  incident  witnessed  at  the 
park  gate  on  the  day  of  Harry's  departure  for  London, 
when,  seeing  him  walk  by,  Mr.  Berkeley  had  looked  as 
if  he  had  had  a  shock;  and  he  remembered  that  Squire 
had  left  the  Hall  in  a  post-chaise  the  next  day,  though 
whither  they  went  Jock  never  would  tell. 

This  set  Adele  thinking.  She  made  further  enquiries 
of  the  old  man.  Had  not  the  squire  a  brother?  At  the 
question  Minshull  looked  hard  at  her,  and  replied  with 
some  hesitation  that  such  was  the  case ;  he  had  a  brother, 
or  rather  a  step-brother.  Adele  enquired  what  had  become 
of  him ;  she  knew,  for  Grootz  had  made  no  secret  of  his 
discovery;  but  she  asked  in  order  to  get  more  informa- 
tion. He  died,  said  the  old  man,  on  the  Dover  road;  a 
fine  young  man,  though  he  did  hold  to  that  false  Charles 
One  and  his  light  son  Charles  Two.  Then  insensibly  the 


Minshull  Remembers 

old  man  was  led  on  to  talk  at  large ;  he  seemed  anxious 
to  ease,  his  mind  of  a  burden;  and  with  the  garrulity  of 
old  age,  and  being  no  longer  "  afeard  "  of  the  squire,  he 
at  length  poured  out  the  whole  pitiful  story. 

Forty-seven  years  before,  in  '59,  when  he  was  a  Repub- 
lican trooper  and  his  regiment  was  stationed  at  Black- 
heath,  he  was  passing  one  morning  through  London  on 
his  way  back  to  camp  after — he  was  ashamed  to  confess 
it — a  riotous  night.  Suddenly  he  was  called  into  a  church 
to  witness  a  marriage.  No  one  was  present  save  the  clergy, 
bride  and  bridegroom,  and  the  other  witness,  apparently 
a  lady's-maid.  In  his  half-fuddled  state  he  had  no  clear 
recollection  of  anything  beyond  the  facts  that  he  signed 
his  name  and  came  away  with  a  guinea. 

About  a  year  later,  after  the  Restoration,  when  his  regi- 
ment was  gloomily  expecting  the  order  for  disbandment, 
he  was  strolling  one  evening  in  the  direction  of  Shooter's 
Hill,  and  attracted  by  a  crowd  about  an  inn  door.  A 
young  gentleman  had  been  discovered  a  few  miles  down 
the  road,  lying  unconscious,  and  severely  wounded.  He 
had  been  brought  to  the  inn,  and  soon  afterwards  his 
servant  appeared,  a  Frenchman,  who  had  fled  when  his 
master  was  attacked  by  footpads.  From  him  it  was 
learnt  that  the  name  of  the  wounded  man  was  Berkeley, 
and  that  he  was  on  his  way  to  Winton  St.  Mary  to  take 
possession  of  the  family  estates.  Minshull,  out  of  sheer 
curiosity,  asked  with  many  other  bystanders  to  be  shown 
the  unfortunate  gentleman,  and  to  his  amazement  he  re- 
cognized him  as  the  bridegroom  whose  wedding  he  had 
witnessed  nearly  a  year  before.  A  message  was  sent 
to  Winton  St.  Mary,  and  two  days  later  Mr.  Nicolas 
Berkeley  appeared  on  the  scene.  Minshull  meanwhile 
had  hung  about,  partly  out  of  curiosity,  partly  out  of 
interest  in  the  man  whose  murder  had  followed  so  quickly 
upon  his  marriage. 

The  wounded  man  never  recovered  consciousness.  He 
died  soon  after  his  brother's  arrival.  Minshull  found  an 
opportunity  of  speaking  to  the  squire,  and  condoled  with 

404 


A  Warning  from  Mr.  Tape 

him  on  the  loss  of  so  handsome  a  brother,  and  on  the  sad 
plight  of  the  young  widow  left  to  mourn  his  loss.  Mr. 
Berkeley  had  appeared  surprised  at  the  mention  of  a 
widow,  and  asked  the  trooper  to  tell  him  all  he  knew. 
This  was  very  little;  he  could  not  remember  the  church 
where  the  marriage  had  been  performed,  nor  the  name  of 
the  bride ;  all  he  was  sure  of  was  the  identity  of  the  bride- 
groom; he  did  not  even  remember  the  name  Berkeley. 
The  squire  had  shaken  his  head  and  frowned :  a  secret 
marriage! — there  was  something  suspicious  in  that;  his 
brother  had  some  reason  to  be  ashamed  of  his  alliance: 
he  would  look  into  it;  but  for  the  present  it  was  best  to 
drop  the  curtain  on  the  episode.  He  had  then  offered  the 
trooper  a  situation  at  the  Hall,  which  Minshull,  with  no 
settled  livelihood  after  nearly  twenty  years'  military  ser- 
vice, eagerly  accepted.  He  received  good  wages,  and  by 
and  by  a  cottage  on  the  estate.  He  was  well  aware  that 
the  squire  treated  him  thus  generously  to  keep  his  mouth 
shut,  and  though  many  times  he  had  felt  the  prick  of  con- 
science, he  was  so  comfortable,  and,  as  time  went  on,  so 
much  afraid  of  the  squire,  that  he  had  never  broken  the 
tacit  pact  between  them. 

Old  Minshull's  story  worked  so  powerfully  upon  Adele's 
imagination  that  she  became  at  length  ill  at  ease.  What 
had  become  of  the  bride  whose  marriage  he  had  witnessed? 
Adele  remembered  how  Eustace  Berkeley  had  spoken  of 
her  in  his  letters  to  Mary  de  Vaudrey;  she  remembered, 
too,  that  he  had  married  under  a  feigned  name.  Her  un- 
easiness grew  so  intolerable  that  she  persuaded  her  mother, 
not  without  difficulty,  to  put  the  facts  before  the  same 
lawyer  whom  Mynheer  Grootz  had  employed — Mr.  Swet- 
tenham  Tape  of  Lincoln's  Inn.  He  warned  her  that  enquiry 
might  result  in  the  loss  of  her  property,  but  she  insisted  on 
an  investigation,  and  as  it  promised  to  be  an  interesting 
enquiry,  the  attorney  took  it  up  with  enthusiasm. 

One  of  his  first  steps  was  to  interrogate  Mr.  Berkeley's 
man  Jock,  who  had  driven  with  his  master  to  Hungerford 
on  that  November  day  three  years  before.  As  the  result 

405 


Mr.   Tape  at  Hungerford 

of  the  interview,  the  lawyer  himself  made  a  journey  to 
Hungerford,  where  he  called  at  the  parsonage  and  had  a 
conversation  with  the  vicar,  enquiring-  particularly  about 
his  predecessors  in  the  living.  He  learnt  that  the  former 
rector  had  died  in  1680  at  the  age  of  sixty-eight,  leaving 
a  grandson,  his  only  daughter's  child,  a  young  man  of 
twenty-one  who  had  just  taken  deacon's  orders.  The 
grandson's  name  was  Rochester.  Did  the  vicar  know 
anything  of  the  young  man's  father?  Nothing  but  the 
vaguest  rumours ;  it  was  generally  understood  that  Lucy 
Rochester's  husband  had  deserted  her  a  few  months  after 
their  marriage,  and  that  was  naturally  a  subject  on  which 
the  family  would  say  nothing.  Was  the  lady  still  living? 
She  had  died  ten  years  before  her  father.  If  Mr.  Tape 
desired  further  details,  there  was  one  person  who  might 
gratify  him  if  she  wished :  the  wife  of  the  landlord  of  the 
Bear  Inn,  who  had  been  lady's-maid  to  Mistress  Rochester. 

The  attorney  hastened  to  the  inn,  engaged  a  room  for 
the  night,  and  took  the  first  opportunity  of  having  a  gossip 
with  Mrs.  Pemberton,  the  hostess,  a  comely,  pleasant  old 
dame  of  near  seventy  years.  She  had  the  keenest  recol- 
lection of  the  one  romantic  incident  of  her  life.  Mistress 
Lucy! — of  course  she  remembered  the  sweet  pretty  crea- 
ture. She  had  been  with  her  in  London  the  year  before 
the  King  came  back,  when  she  was  visiting  her  aunt. 
And  Mr.  Rochester,  too — ah !  such  a  handsome  young 
gentleman;  but  a  wicked  deceiver,  she  feared.  He  had 
protected  Mistress  Lucy  from  footpads  one  evening : 
that  was  the  beginning  of  it,  and  the  end  was  a  marriage, 
and  a  sad  end  it  was,  for  Mr.  Rochester  went  away  to 
France  three  months  afterwards,  on  some  urgent  business 
which  he  did  not  explain,  and  he  never  returned.  Mrs. 
Rochester  remained  for  nearly  a  year  in  London,  then 
returned  to  her  father  at  Hungerford  with  her  infant  son, 
a  bonny  boy  who  grew  up  a  blessing  to  her,  and  became  a 
parson,  and  died  only  three  years  back  at  Winton  St.  Mary, 
she  had  heard. 

Mr.  Tape  asked  whether  she  remembered  the  church  in 

406 


Exit  Harry  Rochester 

which  the  wedding  had  taken  place.  To  be  sure  she  did ; 
it  was  St.  Andrew's  Undershaft ;  she  remembered  how  dark 
it  looked,  and  how  awed  the  other  witness  had  appeared 
to  be,  a  rough  soldier  who  was  fetched  in  from  the  street, 
and  was  a  little  overtaken  with  liquor.  And,  strange  to 
say,  this  was  the  second  time  she  had  been  asked  about 
this  incident  of  long  ago,  a  miserable-looking  old  gentle- 
man having  called  upon  her  three  years  before ;  after  talk- 
ing with  her,  he  had  left  the  house  without  so  much  as 
asking  for  a  tankard  of  her  home-brewed. 

On  returning  to  London,  the  attorney  examined  the 
register  of  St.  Andrew's  Undershaft,  and  made  a  copy  of 
the  entry  of  a  marriage  on  June  19,  1659,  between  Eustace 
Rochester,  bachelor,  of  St.  Andrew's  parish,  and  Lucy 
Fleming,  spinster,  of  Hungerford.  The  information  given 
by  Gaffer  Minshull  and  Mrs.  Pemberton  was  then  em- 
bodied in  affidavits,  and  the  whole  case  being  complete, 
Mr.  Tape  laid  the  result  of  his  investigations  before 
Madame  de  Vaudrey  and  her  daughter,  and  asked  for 
their  instructions. 

Harry  had  listened  to  Adele's  story,  as  they  rambled 
round  and  round  the  park,  with  a  strange  mixture  of 
emotions.  Astonishment  was  perhaps  the  dominant  one, 
but  there  was  also  the  happiness  of  knowing  something 
about  his  family,  and  dismay  at  the  knowledge  that  he,  and 
not  Adele,  was  the  rightful  owner  of  the  Berkeley  estates. 

"Why,  then  you  are  my  cousin,  Adele!"  he  said. 

"  Yes,  Harry, — and  you  are  head  of  the  family." 

"How  plain  it  makes  everything!  And  do  you  know, 
I  pity  the  wretched  old  man  who  has  lived  for  nearly  fifty 
years  with  these  crimes  on  his  conscience.  He  must  have 
led  a  miserable  life." 

"That  is  why  I  am  glad  all  is  discovered.  I  should  lead 
a  miserable  life  too  if  I  found  I  was  enjoying  what  did 
not  belong  to  me." 

"But  that  is  nonsense,   Adele.      You  don't  imagine   I 
shall  take  the  estates?     Not  I.    The  good  folks  here  adore 
you  already;  I  won't  take  from  them  their  lady  squire." 
( B  557 )  407  2  D 


At  the  Gate 

"You  must." 

"No,  no!  Only  weak  or  foolish  sovereigns  abdicate, 
Adele :  you  are  not  weak  or  foolish.  Besides,  I  have  my 
career.  I  am  on  the  high  road  to  preferment.  Prince 
Eugene  has  given  me  a  regiment,  and  —  I  didn't  mean 
to  tell  you  this  —  promises  me  an  estate  and  a  title  in 
Austria." 

"And  you  know  perfectly  well  that  you  would  rather 
be  plain  Mr.  Berkeley,  an  English  squire,  than  count  or 
prince  or  royal  highness  in  Austria.  No ;  I  will  not  listen 
to  you:  if  you  insist  on  being  an  Austrian — well,  I  shall 
give  up  the  estates  to  the  crown :  Queen  Anne  shall  be  lady 
of  the  manor." 

"You  cannot:  you  are  not  of  age,  and  Madame  would 
never  hear  of  it." 

"  Mr.  Henry  Berkeley,  I  have  only  two  years  to  wait." 

They  had  come  round  to  the  gate  leading  from  the  park 
to  the  graveyard. 

"Come  and  see  the  monument  the  people  put  up  in  the 
church  to  your  father,  Harry,"  said  Adele,  with  a  change 
of  tone.  He  opened  the  gate  for  her;  she  passed  through, 
then  turned,  and  said:  "It  is  you  or  Queen  Anne,  Mr. 
Berkeley. " 

Harry  was  on  the  other  side  of  the  gate.  They  looked 
into  each  other's  eyes.  He  knew  her  strength  of  character: 
he  had  no  doubt  that  she  would  do  anything  to  which  she 
had  made  up  her  mind.  He  was  troubled,  and,  resting  his 
arms  on  the  upper  bar  of  the  gate,  stood  thus  pondering. 

"  Adele,"  he  said  presently,  "  but  for  me  you  would  stay 
at  the  Hall?" 

"If  I  were  the  rightful  owner,  certainly;  but  now  it  is 
clearly  impossible." 

"Not  quite  impossible,  Adele,  even  so." 

He  waited  for  an  answer,  but  she  was  unexpectedly 
silent,  her  eyes  cast  down. 

"Not  quite  impossible,  Adele.  If  you  will  not  stay  for 
any  other  reason — tell  me,  Adele,  will  you  not  stay  for  my 
sake?" 

408 


A  Royal  Feast 


Still  she  made  no  answer,  only  looked  up  with  a  shy 
startled  glance.  But  in  that  look  Harry  found  courage  to 
repeat  his  question. 


' '  Never  did  I  ply  my  fark  at  such  a  roaren  dinner — 
never  in  my  born  days;  I  tells  'ee  true,  souls." 

' '  Ay,  I  seed  'ee  myself,  Lumpy,  a-scoopen  chidlens 
an'  plum-pudden  an'  furmenty  into  your  thropple  till  I 
thowt  'ee'd  bust.  'Twere  noble  eatin',  to  be  sure." 

"  Ay,  Soapy,  an'  cost  a  pretty  penny,  I  warrant.  Squire 
Harry  be  a  different  sart  o'  feller  to  old  Squire  as  was. 
Never  did  he  gi'  us  a  warmen-up,  nor  never  would,  if 
there'd  ha'  bin  farty  weddens." 

"Why  bean't  every  day  a  marryen  day?  'T'ould  keep 
all  our  innards  warm  an'  cosy  'ithout  us  doen  a  hand's 
turn." 

"'T'ould  be  the  ruin  of  a  poor  stunpoll  like  'ee, 
Jemmy.  I'm  afeard  'ee'll  never  be  a  man,  an'  if  'ee  got 
your  vittles  so  easy  'ee'd  be  more  like  a  fatted  calf  'n 
ever." 

' '  Ah !  I  knows  my  dumb  brain  be  weak  by  natur' .  I 
mind  how  dazed  I  were  the  black  day  young  pa'son  went 
to  Lun'on,  and  John  painter  made  Mis'ess  Joplady's  pictur' 
the  colour  o'  sut." 

' '  An'  it'll  be  the  colour  o'  sut  to-morrer,  souls,  I  gi'  my 
word  for  that.  They  tells  me  'tis  treason,  but  John  painter 
do  blot  out  Queen's  yead  to-morrer,  and  inn  turns  to 
Berkeley  Arms  again." 

"  Like  a  'ooman,  changes  her  name  at  a  wedden. — Ah! 
here  be  neighbour  Minshull ;  a  scantling  o'  cheese  and  a 
mug  o'  old  stingo  for  gaffer,  Mistress  Joplady ;  he'll  want 
a  summat  to  comfort  un,  poor  aged  soul,  this  night  o' 
fearsome  joy." 

"True,  Tom  cobbler,  I  be  gone  eighty-vive.  I  ha'  seed 
un  home-along,  souls;  my  boy  Sherebiah  be  a  man  at 
last,  an'  I  be  proud  as  a  grandfeyther  a'ready.  Never  did 
I  think  my  boy  an'  young  pa'son  'd  say  the  awful  words  in 

409 


What's  in  a  Name? 

church  the  same  day.  '  I  take  thee,  Addle,'  says  Master 
Harry  in  a  feelin'  key,  and  'I  take  thee,  Katrinka,'  says 
my  boy  when  the  gentry  was  done ;  and  they  little  small 
words  do  have  a  world  o'  better  or  wuss  in  'em." 

"  Ay,  gaffer;  'ee  can  sing"  '  Now  lettest  thou  thy  sarvant 
depart',  wi'  a  honest  mind,  hey!" 

"Hoy!  Not  me!  I  bean't  got  no  vurther  'n  'My  soul 
doth  magnify'  yet.  I'll  bide  a  bit  longer  afore  I  goos  to 
churchyard,  trust  me.  My  boy  as  was  do  say  there'll 
be  another  wedden  afore  long;  the  Dutchman  and  Mis'ess 
Addle's  mother  be  a  -  comen  to't.  He've  been  sweet  on 
her,  a'  b'lieve,  for  many  a  forlorn  day.  My  boy  ha' 
carried  many  a  noble  gift  from  the  man  to  th'  'ooman." 

"Two  furreners  makes  a  better  match  nor  one  o'  one 
sart,  t'other  o'  t'other.  Mistress  Addle  be  a  goodly 
maid,  nesh  as  a  ripe  apple;  but  her  be  French;  that  you 
cannet  deny;  and  French  and  English  be  like  oil  and 
vinegar." 

"  And  what  do  mix  better  in  a  sallet-dressen  ? — tell  me 
that,  souls." 

"Ay,  Mistress  Joplady,  we  cannet  gainsay  'ee  on  a 
matter  o'  that  homeliness;  but  what  med  'ee  say  o'  the 
name?  Addle!  it  bean't  a  very  coaxen  name  for  a  squire's 
lady,  be  jowned  if  it  be." 

"Dear  lamb!  to  take  her  name  in  vain!  You,  Soapy 
Dick  you,  we  all  knows  'ee  for  a  addle-pate;  else  your 
hair  wouldn'  grow  so  fiery  red.  What  do  a  bide-at-home 
like  'ee  know  o'  high  names  an'  titles?  Addle  be  the  true 
French  for  a  bloomy  cheek — Sherry  Minshull  telled  me  so 
hisself.  Bean't  that  the  true  meanen  on't,  gaffer?" 

"Sherry's  yead  be  full  o'  rare  knowledge,  Mis'ess. 
But  daze  me,  name  or  no  name,  'tis  all  one:  French  her 
were,  English  her  be ;  and  if  any  twanken  feller  do  say  her 
bean't  good,  and  comely,  and  a  comforten  wife  for  young 
Squire — why,  old  as  I  be  I'll  try  the  thickness  of  his  poll, 
I  will  so." 

"I'll  help  'ee,  gaffer.  My  weak  head  cannet  make  no 
goodness  out  o'  Addle,  but  her  gi'  me  a  zilver  zixpence  for 

410 


A   Rustic   Moralist 

choppen  wood,  her  did,  and  if  I  cracks  a  poll  vvi'  'ee,  mebbe 
her'll  gi'  me  another." 

"Ay,  hers  be  a  good  heart,  'tis  true.  Why,  her  went 
along-  to  Grange  and  begged  and  prayed  young  Sir  God- 
frey to  putt  poor  Willum  Nokes  back  into  's  ancient  place 
o'  constable.  And  Sir  Godfrey  he  can't  refuse  her  nothen, 
for  all  her  have  refused  he,  as  'tis  said ;  and  so  wi'  noo 
year  poor  Willum'll  be  back  in  his  little  small  cottage, 
a-rulen  over  parish  in  the  Queen's  name  once  more." 

"Such  changes  as  the  world  do  see!  Look  'ee,  souls, 
I  be  eighty-vive,  and  I've  seed  a  mort  o'  things  in  my  time. 
I  ha'  growed  like  a  oak  from  boy  well-nigh  to  grandfeyther, 
an'  seed  six  high  and  mighty  sovrans  goo  to  yearth :  two 
Jameses,  two  Charleses,  Noll  Crum'ell,  and  Dutch  Willum 
to  end  the  tale.  Ay,  the  world  be  full  o'  ups  and  downs. 
To  think,  now,  that  old  Squire — him  as  once  I  were  so 
tarrible  afeard  on — be  now  eatin'  the  bread  and  water  of 
affliction  in  a  Lun'on  prison-house !  And  they  do  say  as 
how  his  son  Piers  be  joined  in  matrimony  to  a  Dutch 
'ooman  o'  great  tonnage,  full  o'  years  an'  goold  pieces. 
An  he  were  a  right  youth  a'd  pay  his  old  feyther's  debts  an' 
set  the  captive  free ;  but  not  he,  I  warrant :  he'll  lay  out  all 
the  goold  th'  old  wife  gies  un  on  wigs  and  furbelows. 
And  there  be  Squire  Harry — young  pa'son  as  was :  who'd 
a  thowt,  when  his  poor  feyther  went  under  ground,  'twas  a 
rightful  squire  Bill  sexton  had  dug  for,  and  the  boy 
a-droppen  warm  tears  into  his  holler  grave  ought  to  ha' 
been  squire  that  minute  in  his  place?  Ay,  I  mind  the 
sermon  as  pa'son  spoke  out  in  church  fust  Sunday  arter 
news  come  o'  Master  Harry  bein'  true  squire.  I  seed  un 
climb  pulpit  steps,  and  I  know'd  by  the  spread  o'  his  petti- 
coats summat  awful  for  poor  sinners  was  a-comen,  an' 
I  felt  all  leery  down  the  small  o'  my  back.  '  God  is  the 
judge,'  says  pa'son  in  his  slow,  tarrifyen  way:  'he  putteth 
down  one,  and  setteth  up  another.'  That  were  the  holy 
text,  out  of  Thy  sarvant  David's  psa'ms,  and  daze  me  if 
pa'son  didn't  scarify  old  Squire  as  if  'twas  pa'son  hisself 
was  choused  out  o'  his  rightful  proputty.  'Twas  a  powerful 

411 


Wedding  Bells 


bit  o'  preachen ;  every  'ooman  there  was  took  wi'  a  long-en 
to  let  the  water-drops  tummle,  but  none  on  'em  durst  begin 
till  Mis'ess  Addle's  mother  set  the  key.  Then  'twas  a 
little  Noah's  flood;  you  mind,  souls? — such  a  fall  o'  tears 
bean't  seed  in  Winton  Simmary  since  pa'son  told  us 
Princess  Henrietta  were  dead  in  France." 

"And  be  Squire  Harry  a-gwine  to  gi'  up  the  trade  o' 
killen,  and  bide  at  home  wi'  poor  peaceful  folks  like  we 
as  never  slays  nowt  but  pigs  and  other  beasts  o'  the 
field?" 

"Ay,  'tis  so.  My  boy  do  zay  he  med  ha'  been  a  knight 
or  lard  at  a  word  wi'  Prince  Eugene ;  but  bless  'ee,  he've 
got  his  lands  to  look  arter,  and  we  poor  folks  besides,  and 
like  his  feyther  afore  un  he  have  a  true  heart  for  home  an' 
friends.  Why,  he  wouldn'  gi'  up  the  charge  o'  we  poor 
souls,  not  to  be  the  Lord's  anointed." 

"Hark  'ee,  Gaffer  Minshull;  bean't  they  the  bells  at 
last?" 

"  Ay,  'tis  so.  Pa'son  commanded  a  peal  at  zeven  o'clock 
by  way  o'  holy  consolation  to  bride  an'  bridegroom.  Old 
Everlasten  ha'  took  his  coat  off;  'tis  he  do  call  the  changes; 
and  i'  feck,  the  bells  '11  romp  through  a  rare  randy  afore 
he've  done  wi'  'em.  Now,  sonnies,  what  d'ye  say  to 
wenden  out-along  an'  callen  choir  and  orchestry  together? 
Then  we'll  march  up  t'  Hall,  and  sing  'em  a  lively  ditty 
as  '11  cheer  'em  up  arter  the  Christian  doens  o'  the  day. 
Sackbut,  psalteery,  an'  all  sarts  o'  music,  says  the  Book; 
we  cannet  muster  they  holy  instruments,  to  be  sure,  but 
wi'  fiddle  and  bass-viol  and  serpent,  and  a  little  bit  o' 
tribble  an'  bass,  we'll  make  a  shift  to  raise  a  goodish  randy 
toon.  What  d'ye  say,  sonnies?" 

"  Be  jowned  if  it  bean't  a  fine  notion  for  such  a  old  aged 
martal.  Ay,  let's  out-along  and  make  all  the  nise  we 
can." 

"A  thimbleful  afore  'ee  goos,  souls.  Mugs  all,  an'  lift 
up  your  hearts  in  a  noble  cheer  for  Squire  an'  Lady  Squire, 
wishen  'em  long  life  an'  a  happy  end.  All  together  now; 
spet  it  out  o' your  wynd-pipes;  hurray!  hurray!  hurray!" 

412 


CHAPTER  XXVII 

Visitors  at  Winton  Hall 

ONE  January  evening,  in  the  year  1712,  a  little  group  was 
gathered  in  the  turret-room  of  Winton  Hall.  The  wind 
was  roaring  without ;  snow  had  been  falling  steadily  all 
day ;  but  within  all  was  warmth  and  peace.  A  big  wood 
fire  blazed  on  the  open  hearth,  lighting  up  with  its  ruddy 
glare  as  charming  a  scene  as  any  English  country-house 
could  show.  It  was  the  children's  hour;  little  Eustace 
Berkeley,  a  sturdy  boy  of  five,  stood  by  his  mother's  knee 
on  one  side  of  the  hearth,  and  on  the  other,  Mary,  two 
years  younger,  nestled  in  her  father's  arms. 

Squire  Berkeley  looked  up  from  his  copy  of  the  Courant. 

"The  duke  is  dismissed  from  all  his  offices,  Adele." 

"What  that  mean,  Faver?"  said  the  boy  instantly. 

"The  Queen  has  sent  away  the  great  man  who  fought 
her  battles  so  bravely;  he  will  hang  up  his  sword  and 
perhaps  never  use  it  again." 

"Why  did  the  naughty  Queen  send  the  great  duke 
away,  Faver?" 

"Why  naughty  tween  send  dute  away?"  echoed  Mary, 
a  golden-haired  fairy,  the  image,  as  Mevrouw  Grootz  was 
wont  to  declare,  of  Adele  at  the  same  age. 

"Because  the  Queen  does  not  like  him  as  she  used  to 
do.  She  likes  somebody  else  better,  and  there  are  unkind 
people  who  whisper  in  her  ear  stories  about  him  that  are 
very  likely  not  true.  He  is  a  great  man,  Eustace,  and 
there  are  always  little  men  to  say  unkind  things  about 
the  great." 

"  Are  you  a  great  man,  Faver?" 

"No,  my  son;  I  am  a  plain  English  squire,  that  would 
rather  live  here  with  you  all  than  in  any  king's  palace." 


Weather-bound 

"But  your  father  might  have  been  a  great  man,"  said 
Mistress  Berkeley.  "  A  great  prince " 

"Nay,  nay,  my  dear,"  interrupted  the  squire,  "leave 
that  story  till  the  children  are  older.  It  is  bed-time  now, 
my  chicks.  Hark  how  the  wind  roars!  Think  of  the  little 
birds  out  in  the  cold;  they  have  no  warm  cosy  cots  like 
yours.  In  the  morning,  remember,  we  are  to  make  a 
figure  of  the  great  duke  in  the  snow. — But  what  is 
that?" 

The  deep-toned  house-bell  had  clanged  in  the  hall  below. 

"  'Tis  late  for  a  visitor,  and  in  this  snowstorm  too!" 

He  threw  open  the  door,  and  stood  waiting.  In  a  few 
moments  a  man  appeared. 

"  An't  please  'ee,  sir,  a  coach  be  snowed  up  a  hunnerd 
yards  or  so  beyond  church,  an'  the  travellers  be  come  afoot 
to  axe  if  'ee'll  give  'em  shelter." 

"Of  course!  I  will  come  down.  Tell  Dick  to  take  a 
couple  of  horses  and  haul  the  coach  out  of  the  drift,  and 
ask  Sherebiah  to  prepare  some  hot  cordial." 

He  followed  the  man  downstairs.  Just  within  the  door- 
way stood  two  white  figures  muffled  up  to  the  ears  in  long 
cloaks.  They  doffed  their  snow-laden  hats  as  Harry  ap- 
peared, and  the  elder  came  forward. 

"I  crave  your  pardon,  sir,"  he  said  in  smooth  mellow 
tones  that  revived  old  memories  and  quickened  Harry's 
pulse — "  I  crave  your  pardon  for  troubling  you  at  such  an 
unseasonable  hour,  but  my  coach  is  blocked  in  a  drift  a 
hundred  yards  or  so  beyond  the  church,  and  as  my  friend 
Lord  Godolphin  is  far  from  well,  I  have  come  to  ask  your 
hospitality  until  we  can  free  the  coach  and  return  to  the 
inn.  I  am  the  Duke  of  Marlborough." 

"Your  grace  is  heartily  welcome.  But  pray  do  me  the 
honour  to  accept  beds  for  the  night.  The  inn  is  near  a 
mile  away,  and  you  are  cold  and  wet.  Let  me  remove 
your  things.  I  have  already  sent  a  man  to  bring  your 
coach  to  my  stables,  and  there  is  a  good  fire  above." 

"  I  thank  you.  I  cannot  resist  your  invitation.  To 
whom  are  we  indebted  for  our  welcome?" 

414 


A   Home  Circle 

"  Henry  Berkeley,  my  lord;  this  is  Winton  Hall." 

"Ah!  I  remember  the  name.  There  was  some  little 
romance,  if  I  mistake  not,  about  the  inheritance  a  few 
years  since.  Thank  you,  Mr.  Berkeley!  this  is  indeed 
a  haven  of  refuge  to  worn-out  travellers." 

Divested  of  their'  outer  garments  and  provided  with 
slippers,  the  two  noblemen  preceded  their  host  up  the  stairs. 
At  the  door  of  the  turret-room  he  advanced  a  few  paces. 

"  My  dear,  his  grace  the  Duke  of  Marlborough  and  Lord 
Godolphin.  They  are  our  guests  to-night." 

Mistress  Berkeley  rose  and  made  a  sweeping  curtsy, 
blushing  prettily,  and  throwing  a  half-startled,  half-amused 
glance  at  her  husband.  The  children  made  round  eyes  of 
wonder. 

"  Madame,  'tis  a  charming  welcome.  We  were  driving 
to  my  lord  Pembroke's  at  Wilton  Park,  and  were  besnowed. 
'Tis  indeed  a  delightful  transformation." 

He  patted  the  children's  cheeks  playfully.  Lord  Godol- 
phin, who  was  evidently  ill,  had  already  thrown  himself 
wearily  into  a  chair. 

"  Well,  my  little  man,  what  is  your  name?"  asked  Marl- 
borough  of  the  boy. 

"Eustace  Berkeley,  sir." 

"A  pretty  name,  egad.  And  what  would  you  like  to  be 
when  you  are  a  man,  eh?" 

"  A  soldier,  and  wear  a  red  coat,  and  a  sword,  and  fight 
for  the  Queen." 

"A  proper  answer,  indeed.  Well,  if  you  grow  strong,  and 
do  what  your  father  and  mother  tell  you,  you  may  be  a 
soldier  one  day,  and  perhaps — who  knows? — a  great  man." 

"  I  do  not  want  to  be  a  great  man." 

"Why  not,  my  boy?" 

"  Faver  says  people  are  not  kind  to  great  men,  and  the 
Queen  likes  somebody  else  better,  and  sends  them  away." 

"A  little  philosopher  already,  Mr.  Berkeley,"  said  my 
lord,  smiling  at  the  child.  "Well,  well,  my  little  fellow, 
be  a  good  man ;  not  even  the  Queen  could  wish  you  better 
than  that." 

4'5 


Maryborough   Unbends 

"  'Tis  the  children's  bed  hour,  my  lord,"  said  Mistress 
Berkeley.  "I  pray  you  excuse  me." 

As  mother  and  children  left  the  room,  Sherebiah,  who 
as  butler  at  Winton  Hall  had  settled  down  as  a  very  com- 
fortable man  of  peace,  entered  with  a  tray  on  which  were 
silver  tankards  of  mulled  wine.  The  good  fellow  looked 
not  a  day  older  than  when  he  had  led  Katrinka  to  the 
altar  six  years  before.  He  placed  the  tray  on  a  table  and 
silently  withdrew.  The  guests  sipped  the  grateful  liquor 
and  sat  in  tired  silence  gazing  into  the  fire. 

Presently  Mistress  Berkeley  returned. 

"  Supper  is  served,  my  lords,"  she  said. 

"  A  sweet  word  to  famished  men." 

The  duke  offered  her  his  arm  and  led  the  way  to  the 
supper  room,  followed  by  Lord  Godolphin  and  Harry.  At 
the  table  he  kept  up  an  animated  conversation  with  his 
hostess,  yielding  as  all  men  did  to  the  charm  of  a  rarely 
gracious  personality.  Lord  Godolphin  was  as  little  in- 
clined to  talk  as  to  eat.  When  the  cloth  was  removed, 
and  Sherebiah  had  placed  bottles  on  the  table  and  left  the 
gentlemen  to  themselves,  Marlborough  crossed  his  knees 
and  said : 

"  Egad,  Mr.  Berkeley,  you  are  a  lucky  man,  with  such 
a  wife  and  such  children.  We  could  not  have  fared  more 
happily — eh,  my  lord?" 

"  Nay  indeed,"  replied  Godolphin,  thawing  a  little. 
"We  could  never  have  reached  Wilton  to-night.  The 
wind,  hark  you,  is  gaining  in  fury — a  sorry  night  for 
travellers." 

"  Ay;  that  poor  wretch  at  Basingstoke  is  well  quit  of  his 
troubles.  A  sad  case,  Mr.  Berkeley;  but  too  common,  I 
fear.  'Twas  a  broken  soldier;  they  had  clapt  him  in  the 
stocks  as  a  vagrant ;  never  in  my  life  saw  I  a  more  piteous 
object.  He  was  outside  the  inn,  and  hailed  me  as  we 
alighted  to  dine  and  change  horses.  Had  fought  at  Blen- 
heim, he  told  me,  captain  in  a  Hanoverian  regiment, 
Aglionby  by  name,  and  lately  returned  from  the  Indies. 
We  had  him  released ;  but  the  poor  fellow  was  even  worse 

416 


Of  Princes 

than  he  seemed ;  for  he  died  of  a  sudden  before  we  left  the 
inn.  He  was  on  his  way  to  this  very  village  to  see  a 
cousin,  I  bethink  me  he  said.  'Tis  thus  we  serve  the  men 
who  have  fought  our  battles." 

There  was  a  note  of  bitterness  in  Marlborough's  voice. 

"  Your  pity,  I  fear,  was  ill-deserved,  my  lord,"  said  the 
Squire.  "  I  know  the  man.  He  fought  at  Blenheim, 
indeed,  but  on  the  other  side,  and  for  treasonable  practices 
was  sent  some  six  years  ago  on  a  long  term  to  the  Plan- 
tations. He  must  have  escaped." 

"  Poor  wretch!  He  had  a  miserable  end.  In  spite  of 
what  you  tell  me,  Mr.  Berkeley,  I  pity  him.  Such  is  the 
fate  of  too  many  loyal  soldiers  also,  the  innocent  victims 
of  war.  You  who  live  a  quiet  country  life  have  certainly 
chosen  the  better  part.  The  prizes  of  court  and  camp  are 
in  the  end  but  Dead-Sea  fruit.  '  Put  not  your  trust  in 
princes  ':  'tis  the  truest  of  warnings,  as  we  old  stagers — 
eh,  my  lord? — have  reason  to  know." 

A  cheerful  fire,  good  fare,  and  a  fine  vintage  of  much- 
travelled  Madeira  had  completed  the  good  impression 
made  by  the  host.  The  elder  men  began  to  talk  freely, 
with  none  of  the  constraint  which  the  presence  of  a 
younger  man  and  a  stranger  might  in  other  circumstances 
have  produced.  Harry  was  amused  to  find  that  the 
passage  of  years  had  altered  him  beyond  recognition,  and 
wondered  when  a  suitable  opportunity  would  occur  of 
recalling  himself  to  the  recollection  of  his  guests.  All  at 
once  Lord  Godolphin  said : 

"  'Tis  strange,  Mr.  Berkeley,  that  I  am  for  the  second 
time  detained  in  this  village  by  an  accident.  My  host  on 
that  occasion  was,  I  think,  a  Mr.  Fanshawe.  Is  he  still 
living?  It  was  ten  years  ago." 

"  Sir  Godfrey  Fanshawe  is  dead,  my  lord;  his  son  now 
owns  the  Grange." 

"  It  all  comes  back  to  me.  We  were  travelling  to 
London — Frank  and  I,  Jack — and  our  coach  broke  down 
as  we  left  a  cricket  match.  Sir  Godfrey  Fanshawe  was 
good  enough  to  give  us  beds  for  the  night,  ^nd  we  had 


A  Certain  Harry  Rochester 

gone  but  a  few  miles  on  the  road  next  morning  when  we 
were  pulled  up  by  a  fallen  tree,  and  in  a  trice  were  looking 
down  the  muzzles  of  half-a-dozen  horse  pistols.  I  had 
sent  some  of  my  young  men  ahead  to  arrange  a  change 
of  horses;  the  others  bolted,  and  there  we  were  in  the 
midst  of  the  gang.  'Twas  an  uncommonly  tight  place; 
Frank,  always  handy  with  his  pistol,  got  in  a  shot,  but 
in  another  half-minute  we  should  have  been  stripped  or 
worse  when  there  came  from  the  wall  at  our  left  a  wild 
hullabaloo  worse  than  a  dozen  Thames  bargemen  touting 
for  a  fare.  The  rascals  turned  tail  and  bolted;  over  the 
wall  sprang  a  man  and  a  boy,  and  egad,  I  remember  now 
how  I  laughed  when  they  told  me  they'd  done  the  trick 
betwixt  'em.  'Twas  a  rare  flam.  And  the  boy — 

"  I  think,  my  lord "  began  Harry,  feeling  somewhat 

uncomfortable;  but  Maryborough,  setting  his  glass  down 
on  the  table,  bent  forward  and  interrupted. 

"  Egad,  Godolphin,  you  bring  things  back  to  me.  The 
boy — we  were  always  going  to  do  something  for  him.  He 
found  his  way  to  the  Low  Countries,  and  showed  himself 
a  lad  of  mettle.  I  came  across  him  once  or  twice;  noted 
him — for  the  second  time,  by  the  way — for  an  ensigncy, 
and  found  that  he  was  already  a  cornet  in  a  Dutch  regi- 
ment. He  did  well  with  Eugene,  I  believe.  Rochester — 
that  was  his  name — Harry  Rochester.  I  wonder  what 
became  of  him !  Certainly  he  owed  nothing  to  patronage 
— yours  or  mine.  Wasn't  he  the  son  of  the  parson  here? 
Mr.  Berkeley,  has  he  ever  revisited  these  parts?  Ton  my 
soul,  I  should  like  to  meet  him  again." 

"  I  was  about  to  explain,  your  grace,  that — I  am  that 
Harry  Rochester." 


418 


Jl  Selection  from  the 
Catalogue  of 

G.  P.  PUTNAM'S   SONS 


Complete   Catalogues  sent 
on  application 


The  Light  Brigade 
in  Spain 

or 

The  Last  Fight  of  Sir  John  Moore 
By  Herbert  Strang 

Author  of  "  Tom  Burnaby,"  etc. 

With  a  Preface  by  Lieut. -Col.  WILLOUGHBY  VERNER. 
Illustrated  by  William  Rainey,  R.  I.     izmo.     $1.50 


"  In  '  Boys  of  the  Light  Brigade '  Mr.  Strang  draws  upon  the  re- 
sources of  the  Peninsular  War,  and  succeeds  in  extracting  much 
freshness  from  well-worn  themes,  as  Moore's  retreat  to  Corunna  and 
the  heroic  defence  of  Saragossa.  The  personal  interest  of  the  story 
is  kept  at  a  high  tension.  .  .  .  It  is  a  book  which  no  boy  will 
be  able  to  put  down  when  once  started.  The  volume  is  provided 
with  excellent  maps  and  plans  of  the  scenes  in  which  the  incidents 
take  place." — The  Standard. 

"  This  author  has  fairly  earned  the  right  to  be  accepted  as  the 
legitimate  successor  of  the  late  George  A.  Henty  in  furnishing  en- 
tertainment for  youth.  Like  Henty,  Strang  manages  to  galvanize 
the  dry  bones  of  history  into  a  close  semblance  of  glorious  life. 
.  .  .  The  present  volume  contains  vivid  and  spirited  descrip- 
tions of  campaign  life  in  Spain  .  .  .  with  many  rare  and  inter- 
esting episodes.  .  .  .  This  is  good  reading  for  young  and  old." 
— Chicago  Post. 

' '  The  author  describes  graphically  with  truth  to  history  the  last 
fight  of  the  British  commander,  Sir  John  Moore.  It  is  a  stirring 
military  story  in  the  manner  of  those  written  by  the  late  George  A. 
Henty,  but  really  with  more  authenticity." — Philadelphia  Press. 

"An  interesting  story,  with  extra  good  measure  in  its  incidents 
and  character  .  .  .  and  with  some  pretty  little  love  passages." 
— Cleveland  Leader. 


Q.  P.  PUTNAM'S  SONS 
New  York  London 


BY  THE  SUCCESSOR  TO  HENTY 

KOBO 

A.  Story  of  tKe  Russo-Japanese  War 
By  HERBERT  STRANG 

Author  of  "The  Light  Brigade  in  Spain,"  etc. 
Illustrated  by   William  Rainey,  R.I.     i2mo,  $1.50 


"  It  is  a  dashing  romance  for  boys,  founded  on  the  Russo- 
Japanese  War  and  worthy  of  the  late  Mr.  Henty  at  his  best.  A 
story  that  every  schoolboy  will  enjoy  and  one  that  will  be  read 
with  much  pleasure  and  profit  by  many  older  readers  as  well." 
— Cleveland  Leader. 

"The  story  throughout  bristles  with  adventures,  it  is  well 
written  and  the  author  shows  intimate  knowledge  of  Japanese 
character  and  customs." — San  Francisco  Bulletin. 

"  In  one  respect  Mr.  Strang's  tale  is  even  better  than  many 
of  the  late  G.  A.  Henty's,  It  has  more  dash  and  dialogue. 
These  are  strong  points  in  the  work  of  this  writer,  who  is 
destined  to  fill  the  place  vacated  by  the  lamented  author  of 
'Under  Drake's  Flag,'  and  'With  Clive  in  India.'"— The 
Dundee  Advertiser. 

"  For  vibrant  actuality  there  is  nothing  to  come  up  to  Mr. 
Strang's  'Kobo.'  "—The  Academy. 

"  A  great  amount  of  actual  military  history  is  incorporated 
with  an  exciting  and  romantic  plot." —  The  Westminster 
Gazette. 


New  "YorK— G.  P.  Putnam's    Sons — London 


By  ELBRIDQE  S.  BROOKS 

1bft3tOriC  3BOBS.     Their  Endeavors,   Their  Achievements  and 
Their  Times.       With  29  full-page  illustrations.      8°,  pp.  viii 

+  259 $1.25 

"  Told  with  a  spirit  that  makes  them  capital  reading  for  boys.     Mr.  Brooks 

rites  in  a  clear  and  yivacic"-   1C<--1:-1-    --J1 <--  -1--  — -  -*  »' 

into  high  relief  the  salient  pt 


writes  in  a  clear  and  vivacious  English,  and  has  caught  the  art  of  throwing 
the  salient  point  of  his  stories." — Christian  Union. 


IMStOdC  (3irI0.      Stories  of  Girls  Who  Have  Influenced  the 
History  of  Their  Times.    8°,  illustrated,  pp.  viii-|-225.  $1.25 

"  The  stories  are  worth  telling  on  their  own  account,  and  will  serve  at  once 
to  give  their  young  readers  some  knowledge,  and  to  quicken  the  historical 
imagination."  —  N.  Y.  Evening  Post. 


and  Youthful  Deeds.  Stirring  Stories,  pre- 
senting faithful  pictures  of  historic  times.  Illustrated, 
8°  .....  .....  $1.25 

"  The  historic  episodes  upon  which  these  stones  are  based  are  well  chosen, 
and  handled  with  considerable  skill  and  picturesqueness."  —  Mail  and 
Express. 

IberOfC    Ibappenfttgs,      Told  in   Verse  and  Story.       Illus- 
trated.    8°         ........     $1.25 

"  Told  in  a  manner  to  elicit  and  hold  the  attention  of  both  younger  and 
older  readers.  .  .  .  The  book  possesses  the  fascination  of  fiction,  while 
imparting  the  facts  of  history."  —  Chautauquan. 


<5teat  ffoen'S  Sons.     Stories  of  the  Sons  of  Great  Men  from 

Socrates  to  Napoleon.     Fully  illustrated,  8°      .         .     $1.25 

Including  the  Sons  of  Socrates,   Alexander,    Cicero,    Marcus 

Aurelius,   Mahomet,    Charlemagne,    Alfred,    William   the   Con- 

queror, Saladin,  Dante,  Tamerlane,  Columbus,  Luther,  Shake- 

speare, Cromwell,  Peter  the  Great,  Napoleon. 

"  Mr.   Brooks  has  performed  his  task  faithfully,  and  made  a  book  which 
every  thoughtful  man  ought  to  read.     It  is  very  charming."  —  N.  Y.  Herald. 

ftbe  3LOlig  TKflallS.  An  American  Boy's  Adventures  in  Greece. 
A  Story  of  Digging  and  Discovery,  Temples  and  Treasures. 
By  E.  S.  Brooks  and  John  Alden.  Illustrated  by  George 
Foster  Barnes.  8°  .....  .  .  $1.25 

"  The  characters  in  the  book  are  clearly  drawn     ...     the  picturesque 
and  exciting  adventures  are  told  with  vivacity."  —  Philadelphia  Press. 


New  York— Q.  P.  PUTNAM'S  SONS— London 


FOR  YOUNG  PEOPLE 


ROYAL  ROGUES 

By  ALBERTA  BANCROFT.     With  Illustrations  by  Louis 
BETTS.     12°.    $1.25 

There  are  few  healthy-minded  folk,  whatever  their 
time  of  life,  who  will  not  confess  to  a  fondness  for  fairy 
tales  of  the  right  sort.  "  Royal  Rogues"  has  that 
quality  which  makes  a  children's  book  win  the  hearts  of 
grown-ups.  The  heroes  are  merry  twin  rogues,  king's 
sons  of  course,  but  with  a  strain  of  fairy  blood  in  their 
veins.  Wildly  strange  and  delightful  are  their  explo- 
rations in  the  realms  of  fairyland. 

"A  charming  story  .  .  .  must  be  accounted 
one  of  the  prettiest  and  cleverest  of  modern  fairy 
stories." — Worcester  Spy. 


ON  BOARD  A  WHALER 

An  Adventurous  Cruise  through  Southern  Seas.  By 
THOMAS  WEST  HAMMOND.  With  16  full-page  illus- 
trations by  HARRY  GEORGE  BURGESS.  12°.  $1.35 

"Thrilling  throughout.  ...  In  the  name  of 
American  youth,  we  thank  Mr.  Hammond  for  resus- 
citating a  memory  that  had  slumbered  so  long." — Com. 
Advertiser. 

"The  yarn  he  spins  of  that  and  other  trips  in  search 
of  oil  is  one  of  the  best  I  ever  read.  It  is  indeed  a 
thrilling,  exciting,  dangerous  story  of  the  sea,  a  tale  of 
personal  experience  put  into  book  form  by  as  brave  a 
sailor  as  ever  chased  whales,  and  it  is  full  of  that  local 
color  which  makes  a  fellow's  blood  tingle  as  he  turns 
the  pages.  The  illustrations  are  excellent." — HENRY 
HAYNIE  in  The  Boston  Times. 


Q.  P.  PUTNAM'S  SONS 

•BW  YORK  LONDON 


DC  SOUTHERN  REGIONAL  LIBRARY  FACILITY 


A    001  409  321    5